summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/55115-0.txt8702
-rw-r--r--old/55115-0.zipbin141173 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55115-h.zipbin342957 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55115-h/55115-h.htm11284
-rw-r--r--old/55115-h/images/0001.jpgbin71116 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55115-h/images/0007.jpgbin50821 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55115-h/images/cover.jpgbin71116 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55115-h/images/enlarge.jpgbin789 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/old/55115-h.htm.2018-08-2011283
12 files changed, 17 insertions, 31269 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..af72880
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #55115 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/55115)
diff --git a/old/55115-0.txt b/old/55115-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index feab80e..0000000
--- a/old/55115-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8702 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: The City Of Pleasure
- A Fantasia on Modern Themes
-
-Author: Arnold Bennett
-
-Release Date: July 15, 2017 [EBook #55115]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CITY OF PLEASURE ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David Widger from page images generously
-provided by the Internet Archive
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-THE CITY OF PLEASURE
-
-A Fantasia on Modern Themes
-
-By Arnold Bennett
-
-Author Of “The Old Wives’ Tale,” “Clayhanger,” “The Old Adam,” Etc.
-
-New York: George H. Doran Company
-
-1907
-
-
-
-[Illustration: 0001]
-
-
-[Illustration: 0007]
-
-
-
-
-THE CITY OF PLEASURE
-
-
-
-
-PART I--CARPENTARIA
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I--Over the City
-
-
-Carpentaria!
-
-One of the three richly-uniformed officials who were in charge of the
-captive balloon, destined to be a leading attraction of the City of
-Pleasure, murmured this name warningly to his companions, as if to
-advise them that the moment had arrived for them to mind their p’s and
-q’s. And each man looked cautiously through the tail of his eye at a
-striking figure which was approaching through crowds of people to the
-enclosure. The figure was tall and had red hair and a masterful
-face, and it was clothed in a blue suit that set off the red hair to
-perfection. Over the wicket of the enclosure a small enamelled sign had
-been hung:
-
-“CITY OF PLEASURE.
-
-“_President_: Josephus Ilam.
-
-“_Managing and Musical Director_: Charles Carpentaria.
-
-“_Balloon Ascents every half-hour after three o’clock. Height of a
-thousand feet guaranteed. Seats, half-a-crown, including field-glass_.”
-
-The sign was slightly askew, and the approaching figure tapped it into
-position, and then entered the enclosure.
-
-“Good afternoon,” it said. “Everything ready?”
-
-“’d afternoon, Mr. Carpentaria,” said the head balloonist
-respectfully. “Yes, sir.”
-
-The three men with considerable ostentation busied themselves among
-ropes, while a young man in gold-rimmed spectacles gazed with sudden
-self-consciousness into the far distance, just as if he had that very
-instant discovered something there that demanded the whole of his
-attention.
-
-“Going up, sir?” inquired the head balloonist.
-
-“Yes,” replied Carpentaria. “Mr. Ilam and I are going up together. We
-have time, haven’t we? It’s only half-past two.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-Carpentaria examined the vast balloon, which was trembling and swaying
-and lugging with that aspiration towards heaven and the infinite so
-characteristic of well-filled balloons. He ignored the young man in
-spectacles.
-
-“Where’s the parachutist?” Carpentaria demanded.
-
-A parachutist was to give éclat to the first public ascent of the silken
-monster by dropping from it into the Thames or somewhere else. His
-apparatus hung beneath the great circular car.
-
-“He’ll be here before three, sir,” said the head balloonist.
-
-“He’s been here once, sir,” added the second balloonist, anxious to
-prove to himself that he also had the right to converse with the mighty
-Carpentaria.
-
-A few seconds later the august President arrived. Mr. Josephus Ilam was
-tall, like his partner, but much stouter. He had, indeed, almost the
-inflated appearance which one observes constantly in the drivers of
-brewers’ drays; even his fingers bulged. His age was fifty, ten years
-more than that of Carpentaria, and it was probably ten years since he
-had seen his own feet. Finally, he was clean-shaven, with areas of
-blue on his chin and cheeks like the sea on a map, and his hair--what
-remained of it--seemed to be hesitating between black and grey.
-
-“What’s the matter?” he asked of Carpentaria.
-
-“Oh, I thought I would just like to make the first ascent with you
-alone,” Carpentaria answered, and added, smiling, “I have something to
-show you up there.”
-
-His hand indicated the firmament, and his peculiar smile indicated that
-he took Ilam’s consent for granted.
-
-Ilam sighed obesely, and agreed. He did not care to argue before members
-of the staff. Nevertheless, the futility of ascending to the skies on
-this, the opening day, when the colossal organism of the show cried
-aloud for continual supervision on earth, was sufficiently clear to his
-mind. He climbed gingerly over the edge of the wickerwork car, which had
-a circumference of thirty feet, with a protected aperture in the middle,
-and Carpentaria followed him.
-
-“Let go,” said Carpentaria, gleefully. “Let go!” he repeated with
-impatience, when the balloon was arrested at a height of about ten feet.
-
-“Right sir,” responded briskly the head balloonist. There appeared to
-have been some altercation between the balloonists.
-
-The day was the first of May, but the London spring had chosen to be
-capricious and unseasonable. Instead of the snow and frost and east wind
-which almost invariably accompany what is termed, with ferocious irony,
-the merry month, there was strong, brilliant sunshine and a perfect
-calm. The sun glinted and glittered on the upper surfaces of the
-balloon, but of course the voyagers could not perceive that. They,
-in fact, perceived nothing except that the entire world was gradually
-falling away from them. The balloon had ceased to shiver; it stood
-as firm as consols, while the City of Pleasure sank and sank, and the
-upturned faces of more than fifty thousand spectators grew tinier and
-tinier.
-
-It would be interesting and certainly instructive to unfold some of the
-many mysteries and minor dramas which had diversified the history of the
-making of the City of Pleasure, from the time when Carpentaria, having
-conceived the idea of the thing, found the necessary millionaire in
-the person of Josephus Ilam, to the hurried and tumultuous eve of the
-opening day; but these are unconnected with the present recital. It
-needs only to remind the reader of the City’s geography. Towards the
-lower left-hand corner of any map of London not later than 1905, may be
-observed a large, nearly empty space in the form of an inverted letter
-“U.” This space is bounded everywhere, except across the bottom, by the
-Thames. It is indeed a peninsula made by an extraordinary curve of the
-Thames, and Barnes Common connects if with the mainland of the parish of
-Putney. Its dimensions are little short of a mile either way, and yet,
-although Hammersmith Bridge joins it to Hammersmith at the top, it was
-almost uninhabited, save for the houses which lined Bridge Road and
-a scattering of houses in Lonsdale Road and the short streets between
-Lonsdale Road and the reservoir near the bridge. The contrast was
-violent; on the north side of the Thames the crowded populousness of
-Hammersmith, and on the south side--well, possibly four people to the
-acre.
-
-Ilam and Carpentaria, with Ilam’s money, bought or leased the whole
-of the middle part of the peninsula--over three hundred acres--with a
-glorious half-mile frontage to the Thames on the east side. They would
-have acquired all the earth as far as Barnes Common but for the fact
-that the monomaniacs of the Ranelagh Club Golf Course could not be
-induced to part with their links, even when offered a fantastic number
-of thousand pounds per hole. They obtained the closing of the Bridge
-Road, which cut the peninsula downwards into two halves, and the
-omnibus traffic between Hammersmith and Barnes was diverted to Lonsdale
-Road--not without terrific diplomacy, and pitched battles in the columns
-of newspapers and in Local Government offices. They pulled down every
-house in Bridge Road, thus breaking up some seventy presumably happy
-English homes, and then they started upon the erection of the City of
-Pleasure, which they intended to be, and which all the world now admits
-to be, the most gigantic enterprise of amusement that Europe has ever
-seen.
-
-As the balloon rose the general conformation of the City of Pleasure
-became visible. Running almost north and south from Hammersmith Bridge
-was the Central Way, the splendid private thoroughfare which had
-superseded Bridge Road. It was a hundred feet wide, and its surface
-was treated with westrumite, and a service of gaily coloured cable-cars
-flashed along it in either direction, between the north and the south
-entrances to the City. It was lined with multifarious buildings, all
-painted cream--the theatre, the variety theatre, the concert hall, the
-circus, the panorama, the lecture hall, the menagerie, the art gallery,
-the story-tellers’ hall, the dancing-rooms, restaurants, cafés and bars,
-and those numerous shops for the sale of useless and expensive souvenirs
-without which the happiness of no Briton on a holiday is complete.
-The footpaths, 20 feet wide, were roofed with glass, and between
-the footpaths and the roadway came two rows of trees which were
-industriously taking advantage of the weather to put forth their
-verdure. Footpaths and road were thronged with people, and the street
-was made gay, not only by the toilettes and sunshades of women, but
-also by processions of elephants, camels, and other wild-fowl, bearing
-children of all ages in charge of gorgeous Indians and Ethiops. From
-every roof floated great crimson flags with the legend in gold: “City of
-Pleasure. President: Ilam; Director: Carpentaria.” Add to this combined
-effect the music of bands and the sunshine, and do not forget the virgin
-creaminess of the elaborate architecture, and you will be able to form
-a notion of the spectacle offered by the esplanade upon which Ilam and
-Carpentaria looked down.
-
-Midway between the north and south entrances, the Central Way expanded
-itself into a circular place, with a twenty-jetted bronze fountain in
-the middle. To the west was the façade of what was called the Exposition
-Palace, an enormous quadrangular building, containing a huge covered
-court which, with its balconies, would hold twenty thousand people on
-wet days. The galleries of the palace were devoted to an exhibition of
-everything that related to woman, from high-heeled shoes to thrones;
-it was astonishing how many things did relate to woman. North of the
-Exposition Palace stretched out the Amusements Park, where people looped
-the loop, shot the chute, wheeled the wheel, switched the switchback,
-etc.; and here was the balloon enclosure. South of the palace lay the
-Sports Fields, where a cricket match was progressing.
-
-Finally, and most important of all, to the east of the circular place
-in Central Way rose the impressive entrance to the Oriental Gardens, the
-pride of Ilam and Carpentaria. The Oriental Gardens occupied the entire
-eastern side of the City, and they sloped down to the Thames. They
-formed over a hundred acres of gardens, wood, and pleasaunce, laid out
-with formal magnificence. Flowers bloomed there in defiance of seasons.
-On every hand the eye was met by vistas of trees and shrubs, and
-by lawns and statues, and lakes and fountains. In the middle was
-Carpentaria’s own special bandstand. A terrace, two thousand five.
-hundred feet long, bordered the river, and from the terrace jutted out a
-pier at which steamers were unloading visitors.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II--Interviewed
-
-The occupants of the balloon could see everything. They saw the
-debarcation from the steamers; they saw the unending crowd of doll-like
-persons thrown up out of the ground by the new Tube station at the
-south end of Hammersmith Bridge; they saw the heavy persistent stream
-of vehicles and pedestrians over the bridge; they saw the trains
-approaching Barnes on the South-Western Railway; they saw the struggles
-for admittance at all the gates of the City; they even saw flocks of
-people streaming Cityward along the Barnes High Street and the Lower
-Richmond Road. It was not for nothing that advertisements of the City of
-Pleasure had filled one solid page of every daily paper in London, and
-many in the provinces, for a week past. Visitors were now entering the
-city at the rate of seventy thousand an hour, at a shilling a head.
-
-There was a gentle tug beneath the car. The thousand feet of rope had
-been paid out, and the balloon hung motionless.
-
-Then a faint noise, something between the crackling of musketry and the
-surge of waves on a pebbly beach, ascended from the city.
-
-“They’re cheering,” said Josephus Ilam. “What for?”
-
-“Cheering us, of course,” answered Carpentaria excitedly. “Isn’t it
-immense?”
-
-“Immense?” said Ilam heavily. “It’s hot. What did you want to show me up
-here?”
-
-“That!” exclaimed Carpentaria, pointing below to the city with a superb
-gesture. “And that!” he added passionately, pointing with another
-gesture to the whole of London, which lay spread out with all its towers
-and steeples and its blanket of smoke, tremendous and interminable to
-the east. “That is our prey,” he said, “our food.”
-
-And he began to sing the Toreador song from “Carmen,” exultantly
-launching the notes into the sky.
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria,” said Josephus Ilam, with unexpected bitterness, “is
-this your idea of a joke? Bringing me up here to see London and our
-show, as if I didn’t know London and our show like my pocket!”
-
-Ilam’s concealed, hatred of Carpentaria, which had been slowly growing
-for more than a year, as a fire spreads secretly in the hold of a ship,
-seemed to spurt out a swift tongue of flame in the acrimony of his tone.
-Carpentaria was startled. Even then, in a sudden flash of illumination,
-he grasped to a certain extent the import of Ilam’s attitude towards
-him, but he did not grasp it fully. How should he?
-
-“Why,” he said to himself, “I believe the old johnny dislikes mel What
-on earth for?” He could not understand all Ilam’s reasons. “Pity!” he
-reflected further. “If the managers of a show like this can’t hit it off
-together, there may be trouble.”
-
-In which supposition he was infinitely more right than he imagined.
-
-He balanced himself lightly on the edge of the car, his left leg
-dangling, and seized one of the field-glasses which hung secured by thin
-steel chains round the inside of the wicker parapet, and putting it
-to his eyes, he gazed down at the Oriental Gardens. He must have seen
-something there that profoundly interested him, for the glasses remained
-glued to his eyes for a long time.
-
-“I repeat,” said Ilam firmly, standing up, “is this your idea of a
-joke?”
-
-He was close to Carpentaria, and his glance was vicious.
-
-“My friend,” murmured Carpentaria, dropping the glasses. “What’s the
-matter with you is that you aren’t an artist, not a bit of one. You are
-an excellent fellow, with a splendid head for figures, and I respect
-you enormously, but you haven’t the artistic sense. If you had you would
-share the thrill which I feel as I survey our creation and that London
-over there. You would appreciate why I brought you up here.”
-
-“I’m a business man--a plain business man, that’s what I am,” said Ilam.
-“I’ve never pretended to be an artist, and I don’t want to be an artist.
-Let me tell you that I ought to be in the advertisement department, and
-not canoodling my time away up here, Mr. Carpentaria.”
-
-“My dear sir,” said Carpentaria hastily, “accept my apologies. Let us
-descend at once.”
-
-“And while I’m about it,” pursued Ilam unheedingly--his irritation was
-like a stone rolling down a hill--“while I’m about it, I’ll point
-out that your objection to having advertisements on the walls of the
-restaurants is fatuous.”
-
-“But, my dear Ilam,” Carpentaria protested, “people don’t care to have
-to read advertisements while they’re at their meals. It puts them off.
-For instance, to have it dinned into you that G. H. Mumm is the only
-champagne worth drinking when you happen to be drinking Heidsieck, or to
-have Wall’s sausages thrust down your throat while you are toying with
-an ice-cream--people don’t like it. We must think of our patrons. And,
-besides, it’s so inarti----”
-
-“Rubbish!” said Ilam. “One way and another these ads. would be worth a
-hundred’ a week to us.”
-
-“Well, and what’s a hundred a week?”
-
-“It’s the interest on a hundred and twenty thousand pounds,” Ilam
-replied vivaciously. “And there’s another thing. It would be much
-better if you employed more time in inspection instead of rehearsing and
-conducting your precious band. Any fool can conduct a band. Give me a
-stick and I’d do it myself. But inspection------”
-
-“My precious band!” stammered Carpentaria, aghast.
-
-His very soul was laid low; and considering that Carpentaria’s Band had
-been famous in the capitals of two continents for twelve years at least,
-it was not surprising that his soul should be laid low by this terrible
-phrase.
-
-“Yes,” said Ilam, “I’ve had enough of it.” His shoulder touched
-Carpentaria’s, and his eyes--little, like a pig’s--shot arrows of light.
-“Supposing I shoved you over? I should have the concern to myself then,
-and no foolish interference.”
-
-He twisted his face into a grim laugh.
-
-“You have a sense of humour, after all, Ilam,” responded gaily the man
-on the edge of the car, fingering his long red moustache, and he, too,
-laughed, but he got down from his perch.
-
-“I’d just like you to comprehend----” Ilam began again.
-
-But at that instant a head appeared above the edge of the central
-aperture of the car, and Ilam stopped.
-
-It was the head of the young man in spectacles--gold-rimmed spectacles.
-
-“I’m Smithers, of the _Morning Herald_,” said the young man brightly and
-calmly, “and I took this opportunity of seeing you privately. Your men
-objected when I got into the parachute attachment, but you told ‘em to
-let go, and so they let go. I’ve had some difficulty in climbing up here
-off the parachute bar. Dangerous, rather. However, I’ve done it. I dare
-say you heard the crowd cheering.”
-
-“So it was him they were cheering,” muttered Ilam, and then looked at
-Carpentaria.
-
-Ilam was not a genius in the art of conversation. He could only say what
-he meant, and when the running of the City of Pleasure demanded the art
-of conversation he relied on Carpentaria, even if he was furious with
-him.
-
-“What’s the game?” asked Carpentaria.
-
-“Well,” said Smithers politely, “don’t you think I deserve an
-interview?”
-
-“You know we have absolutely declined all interviews.”
-
-“Yes, that’s why the _Herald_ wants one so badly; that’s why I’m
-dangling a thousand feet above my grave.”
-
-Carpentaria and Ilam exchanged glances. Each read the thought of
-the other--that the spectacled Smithers might have overheard their
-conversation, and should therefore be handled with care, this side up.
-“Leave it to me,” said the eyes of Carpentaria to the eyes of Ilam.
-
-“Mr. Smithers, of the _Herald_”--Carpentaria blossomed into the flowers
-of speech--“we heartily applaud your courage and your devotion to duty
-in a profession full of perils, but you are trespassing.”
-
-“Excuse me, I’m not,” said Smithers. “You can only trespass on land and
-water, and this isn’t a salmon river or a forbidden footpath. Besides,
-I’ve got my press season-ticket. Come now, talk to me.”
-
-“We are talking to you.”
-
-“I mean, answer my questions, for the benefit of humanity. I’m the
-father of a family with two penniless aunts, and the _Herald_ will
-probably sack me if I fail in this interview. Think of that.”
-
-“I prefer not to think of it,” said Carpentaria. “However, we
-will answer any reasonable questions you care to put to us, on one
-condition.”
-
-“Name it,” snapped Smithers.
-
-“I will name it afterwards,” said Carpentaria, looking at Ilam.
-
-“All right,” sighed Smithers, “I agree, whatever it is.”
-
-“You look like an honourable man. I shall trust you,” Carpentaria
-remarked.
-
-“Journalists are always honourable,” said Smithers. “It is their
-employers who sometimes--however, that’s neither here nor there. You may
-trust me. Now tell me. Why this objection to interviews? That’s what’s
-puzzling the public. You’re a business concern, aren’t you?”
-
-“That’s just the reason,” said Carpentaria. “We aren’t a star-actor or a
-bogus company. We’re above interviews, we are. Do you catch Smith and
-Son, or Cook’s, or the North-Western Railway, or Mrs. Humphry Ward
-having themselves interviewed?”
-
-“Not much,” ejaculated Ilam glumly.
-
-“People who refuse to be interviewed have a status that other people
-can never have. Our business is our business. When we want the public to
-know anything, we take a page in the _Herald_, say, and pay two hundred
-and fifty pounds for it, and inform the public exactly what we do want
-’em to know, in our own words. We do not require the assistance of
-interviewers. There’s the whole secret. What next?”
-
-“That seems pretty straight,” Smithers agreed. “Another thing. Why have
-you gone and called this concern the City of Pleasure?”
-
-“Because it is the City of Pleasure,” growled Ilam.
-
-“Yes. But it seems rather a fancy name, doesn’t it?--rather too
-poetical, highfalutin?”
-
-“That’s merely because you journalists never have any imagination,”
- Carpentaria explained. “You aren’t used to this name yet. It was you
-journalists who cried out that the Crystal Palace was a too poetical and
-highfalutin name for that glass wigwam over there”--and he pointed to
-the twin towers of Sydenham in the distance--“but you’ve got used to it,
-and you admit now that it is the Crystal Palace and couldn’t be anything
-else.”
-
-Smithers laughed.
-
-“Good!” said he. “All that’s nothing. Let me come to the core of the
-apple. Do you expect this thing to pay? Do you really mean it to pay, or
-is it only a millionaire’s lark? You know all the experts are saying it
-can’t pay.”
-
-“Can’t it?” ejaculated Ilam.
-
-“We shall take fifteen thousand pounds at the gates to-day,” said
-Carpentaria. “The highest attendance in any one day at the Paris
-Exhibition of 1900 was six hundred thousand. Do you imagine we can’t
-equal that? We shall surpass it, sir. Wait for our August fêtes. Wait
-for our Congress of Trade Unions in September, and you will see! The
-average total attendance at the last three Paris exhibitions has been
-forty-five millions. We hope to reach fifty millions. But suppose we
-only reach forty millions. That means two million pounds in gates
-alone; and let me remind you that the minor activities of this show are
-self-supporting. Why, the Chicago Exhibition made a profit of nearly a
-million and a half dollars. Do you suppose we can’t beat that, with a
-city of six million people at our doors, and the millions of Lancashire
-and Yorkshire within four hours of us?”
-
-“But Chicago was State-aided,” Mr. Smithers ventured.
-
-“State-aided!” cried Ilam. “Chicago was the worst-managed show in the
-history of shows, except St. Louis. If the State came to me I should--I
-should----”
-
-“Offer it a penny to go away and play in the next street.” Carpentaria
-finished his sentence for him.
-
-“You interest me extremely,” said the journalist. “And now, as to the
-number of your employés.”
-
-He chuckled to himself with glee at the splendid interview he was
-getting out of Carpentaria and Ilam as they obligingly responded to his
-queries. It was Ilam who at last revolted, and insisted that he must
-descend.
-
-“Now for my condition,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“Let’s have it,” said the journalist.
-
-“You asked us to talk to you and we have talked to you. The condition
-is that you regard all you have heard up here as strictly
-confidential--mind, all! You tell no one; you print nothing..Remember,
-you are an honourable man.”
-
-“But this is farcical,” Smithers expostulated.
-
-“Not at all,” said Carpentaria sweetly. “Do you imagine that because you
-have an inordinate amount of cheek, a family and two penniless aunts, we
-are going to break the habits of a life-time? For myself, I have never
-been interviewed.”
-
-“Is this your last word?” the journalist demanded.
-
-“It is,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“Very well,” said the journalist, and his head disappeared.
-
-“Let us descend,” said Ilam, savagely pleased. And he waved the descent
-flag.
-
-“We shan’t descend just yet,” the journalist informed them, popping up
-his head again.
-
-“And pray, why not?”
-
-“Because I’ve cut the rope.”
-
-Carpentaria, always calm when art was not concerned, tore a fragment
-of paper from an envelope in his pocket and threw it out of the car. It
-sank away rapidly from the balloon. Moreover, it was evident, even to
-the eye, that their distance from the earth was vastly increasing.
-
-“I withdraw my promise now this moment,” said the journalist, climbing
-carefully into the car. “Everything that you say henceforward will
-be printed. We shall have quite an exciting trip. We may even get to
-France. Anyhow, I shall have a clinking column for Monday’s _Herald_.
-You evidently hadn’t quite appreciated what the new journalism is.”
-
-Then there was silence in the mounting balloon.
-
-Ilam bent his malevolent eyes longingly upon the disappearing scene
-below. The glory of the sunshine was nothing to him. He wanted to be in
-the advertisement department, arranging future contracts for spaces on
-the programmes. He reflected that it was another of the mad caprices of
-Carpentaria that had got him into this grotesque scrape. And he was
-so angry that he forgot even to think of the danger to which he was
-exposed.
-
-“So here we are!” said the journalist. “And you can’t do anything!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III--Inspiration
-
-Permit me to say, Mr. Smithers,” Carpentaria remarked at last, “that
-your knavery is futile. The resources of civilization are not yet
-exhausted. We are, in fact, already descending.”
-
-He held tightly in his hand the end of a rope, which reached up high
-above them and was lost in the mass of cordage. He had opened the valve
-to its widest.
-
-“Don’t venture to move,” he added, “or Mr. Ilam will break your head for
-you. This affair will cost us nothing but a few thousand cubic feet of
-gas at a half-a-crown a thousand. What it will cost you, I shall have to
-consider.”
-
-And without saying anything further for the moment, he unloosed a very
-thin cable that was wound round a windlass in the car itself, and, tying
-a white flag at the end of it, he began to lower it rapidly over the
-edge of the car.
-
-Thanks to the perfect calm which reigned, the balloon was still well
-over the Amusements Park.
-
-Soon the voyagers could perceive the excited movements of the crowds
-below, and then the white flag touched earth, and was seized by the
-eager hands of the balloonists, and slowly the balloon, in a condition
-bordering on collapse, subsided to the ground with the gentleness of
-a fatigued British workman falling asleep. And great cheers, for the
-second time that day, filled the air.
-
-“You might have been sure,” said Carpentaria, when they were ten feet
-off safety, “that in a show like this due precautions would be taken
-against accidents and idiots!”
-
-Smithers, nearly as limp as the balloon, made no reply. Josephus Ilam
-glared over him.
-
-“It’s nothing, it’s nothing!” cried Carpentaria to the staff, who
-besieged the party with questions. “Fill her up as quick as you can,
-attach the rope, and get ready for your public. Don’t bother me!” And he
-leapt out of the car and was running, literally running, away, when
-Ilam called out: “Hi! wait a minute. What’s to be done with this maniac
-here?” And Ilam muttered to himself, “Why does he run away like that?
-What’s his next caprice going to be?”
-
-“I was forgetting,” said Carpentaria, stopping. “Young man”--and he
-addressed Smithers severely--“follow me, and no nonsense!”
-
-Smithers obediently followed, pushing after Carpentaria through the
-curious crowds. They came at length to the Central Way, and Carpentaria
-halted and took Smithers by the coat collar.
-
-“Listen!” said he. “We’re much too busy to trouble with police-court
-proceedings. And besides, there’s your brace of penniless aunts. Cut!
-Clear out! Hook it! I rather admire you. See?”
-
-Smithers saw, and vanished.
-
-Carpentaria hastened on, rushing across the Central Way, scarcely
-avoiding cable-cars, and so, by a private passage between two shops,
-into the Oriental Gardens. Now, just within the Oriental Gardens, on
-either side of the grand entrance to them, were two spacious houses,
-built in the bungalow style, with enclosed gardens of their own. One
-of these was occupied by Josephus Ilam and his mother, and the other by
-Carpentaria and his half-sister, Juliette D’Avray. Between the house of
-Ilam and the back of the shops in Central Way was one of those
-small waste trifles of ground which often get left in planning a vast
-exhibition or show. It was skilfully hidden from the view of the public
-by wooden palisades, and in this palisading was a door, painted so as
-to escape detection. The plot of ground, about three yards by two, was
-already being utilized for lumber. Carpentaria entered by the door and
-shut it after him. A man--a middle-aged man, in a blue suit of rather
-shabby appearance--was seated on some planks. He started up, and then
-seemed to sway.
-
-“What are you doing here?” Carpentaria curtly demanded.
-
-“Look ’ere,” said the man, swaying towards Carpentaria, “I’m aw
-ri’--you’re aw ri’--eh? I’m a gemman. Come here to re’--rest. You leave
-me ’lone--I leave you ’lone. Stop, I give you my car’.”
-
-The man was obviously inebriated and Carpentaria was in no mood to spend
-precious minutes in diplomacy with a victim of Bacchus. He departed,
-shutting the door, and leaving the victim fumbling with a card-case. He
-meant to send some one to eject the man, but he forgot.
-
-“Say!” cried the drunkard after him, “how ju know I wazz ’ere? Mus’
-been up in a b’loon--I repea’--b’loon.”
-
-In another moment Carpentaria was in the study of his bungalow, panting.
-
-“Quick!” he said to Juliette, an extremely natty little woman of thirty
-or so.
-
-He sank into the chair before his desk. Juliette placed some music-paper
-in front of him and put a pen in his hand, and he scrawled across
-the top of the page “The Balloon Lullaby,” and began to scribble
-notes--quavers, crotchets, semibreves, and some other strange
-wonders--all over the page.
-
-“It came to me all of a sudden,” he murmured, “while we were up in the
-balloon.”
-
-“Don’t talk, dear,” said Juliette. “Write.”
-
-And he wrote.
-
-When it was finished Carpentaria wiped his brow and drank a whisky and
-milk which Juliette had prepared for him. He sighed with content and
-exhaustion. The creative crisis was over.
-
-“Play it,” he ejaculated.
-
-And Juliette sat down at the piano near the window overlooking
-the magnificent gardens, and played softly the two hundred and
-forty-seventh’ _opus_ of Carpentaria.
-
-“It is lovely,” she said.
-
-“Yes,” he admitted. “It’s a classy little thing. Came to me just like
-that!” He snapped his fingers.
-
-“Your best ones always do,” Juliette smiled.
-
-“I’ll have that performed this very night,” he stated.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV--Mrs. Ilam
-
-Somewhat later on the same afternoon, in the drawing-room of the house
-opposite, Josephus Ilam was drinking tea with his mother. The aged Mrs.
-Ilam, who was very thin and not in the least tall--her son would have
-made a dozen of her--sat tremendously upright in her chair, while
-Josephus lolled his great bulk in angry attitudes on a sofa, near which
-the tea-table had been placed. Mrs. Ilam wore widow’s weeds, though it
-was many years since she had lost her husband, a man who had made a vast
-fortune out of soda-water--in the days when soda-water _was_ soda-water.
-She had a narrow, hard face, with intensely black eyes, and intensely
-white hair, and when she directed those eyes upon her son, it became
-instantly plain that her son was at once her idol and her slave. She
-lived solely for this man of fifty, who had scarcely ever left her side.
-For her this mass of fifteen stone four was still a young child, needing
-watchful care and constant advice. Certainly she spoilt him; but,
-just as certainly, he went in awe of her. The fact that by judicious
-investments in hotel and public-house property he had more than doubled
-the fortune which his father left, did not at all improve his standing
-with the antique dame; it only made him in her view a clever boy with
-financial leanings. Moreover, every penny of the Ilam fortune was
-legally hers during her lifetime. Even Ilam’s share in the City of
-Pleasure was hers. When Carpentaria had discovered him, he had had to
-decide whether or not he should put more than a million pounds into
-the enterprise, and it was his mother who decided, who listened to
-everything, and then briefly told him that he would be a fool to leave
-the thing alone.
-
-“Well,” she said, in her high quavering voice, as she passed him a
-cup of tea--the cup rattled on the saucer in her blue-veined parchment
-hand--“so you are not getting on with Carpentaria? I was afraid you
-wouldn’t.”
-
-“He won’t listen to reason about the advertisements,” said Ilam crossly,
-stirring his tea.
-
-“No?”
-
-“And he’s absolutely mad about his music. He’s spent ten hours in
-rehearsing these last two days. All the work, I’ve had to do myself.”
-
-“Indeed!”
-
-“And then, to crown his exploits, he takes me up in the balloon,
-mother--wastes a solid hour.”
-
-“In the balloon!”
-
-Ilam recounted the incident of the balloon.
-
-“And, after all, he lets that impudent journalist go free--absolutely
-free!”
-
-“Jos,” said his mother, “it’s a wonder you’re alive, my dear.”
-
-“It’s a pity Carpentaria’s alive,” rejoined Ilam.
-
-His mother’s burning eyes met his.
-
-“That’s just what I’ve been thinking,” she piped calmly.
-
-Her son’s gaze dropped.
-
-“Since when?”
-
-“Since you began grumbling about him, last week but one, my pet.”
-
-“He’s no use now,” Ilam grumbled. “We’ve carried out all his ideas,
-and it’s simply a matter of business, and Carpentaria doesn’t know the
-meaning of the word ‘business.’ Just think of his argument about those
-ads.!”
-
-“Never mind that, Jos,” Mrs. Ilam put in.
-
-“He’s only in the way now,” Jos proceeded gloomily.
-
-“I suppose he wouldn’t retire,” Mrs. Ilam suggested.
-
-“Retire? Of course he wouldn’t retire--nothing would induce him to
-retire. He enjoys it--he enjoys annoying me.”
-
-“Anyway,” said the mother, “you’ll have the satisfaction of a very great
-success.”
-
-She looked out of the window at the gardens.
-
-“Yes,” growled Ilam. “And he gets half the profits. I’ve found all the
-money, and he hasn’t found a cent. But he gets half the profits. What
-for? A few ideas--nothing else. He pretends to direct, but he’ll direct
-nothing except his blessed band. And I reckon we shall clear a profit of
-ten thousand a week! Half of ten is five.”
-
-“He only gets half the profits as long as he lives, Jos,” said Mrs.
-Ilam. “After that--nothing.”
-
-“Nothing,” agreed Jos, biting cruelly into a hot scone. “But as long as
-he lives he’s costing me, say, five thousand a week, besides worry.”
-
-“He mayn’t live long,” Mrs. Ilam ventured. “No, but he may live
-fifty-years.”
-
-“Supposing he died very suddenly, Jos,” Mrs. Ilam pursued calmly;
-“he wouldn’t be the first person that was inconvenient to you who had
-disappeared unexpectedly.”
-
-“Mother!” Ilam almost shouted, starting up. “But would he?” Mrs. Ilam
-persisted.
-
-“No, he wouldn’t,” muttered Josephus, and his voice trembled.
-
-Mrs. Ilam blew out the spirit-lamp under the kettle as though she was
-blowing out Carpentaria. “I’m off,” said Josephus nervously.
-
-“Wait a moment, child. Ring the bell for me.” A servant entered.
-
-“Bring me your master’s knitted waistcoat,” said Mrs. Ilam.
-
-“But, mother, I shan’t want it.”
-
-“Yes, you will, Jos. There’s no month more treacherous than May. You’ll
-put it on to please me.”
-
-He obeyed, bent down to kiss his terrible parent, and departed.
-
-“Think it over,” she called out after him.
-
-Ilam stopped.
-
-“And then, what about his sister?” he said. “Don’t mix up two quite
-separate things,” Mrs. Ilam responded. “Besides, she isn’t his sister.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V--The Band
-
-That night the City of Pleasure was illuminated. Eighty thousand tiny
-electric lamps hanging in festoons from standard to standard lighted
-the Central Way alone; the façades of all the places of amusement were
-outlined in fire; the shops glittered; and the cable-cars, as they
-flashed to and fro, bore the monogram I.C. in electricity on their
-foreheads. At eight o’clock the thoroughfare was crowded with visitors,
-and the stream of arrivals was stronger than ever. In the superb
-restaurants, at all prices (no matter what the price, they were equally
-superb in decoration), five thousand diners were finishing five thousand
-dinners, their eyes undisturbed by the presence of advertisements on
-the walls. The theatre, the music-hall, the circus, the menagerie, the
-concerts, and the rest of the entertainments, were filling up. In the
-Amusements Park people shot down railways into water, slid down smooth
-slopes into mattresses, circled in great wheels, floated in the latest
-novelties of merry-go-rounds, ascended in the balloon, and practised all
-the other devices for frittering away eternity, just as though night
-had not fallen. In the vast court of the Exposition Palace a band was
-swelling the strains of the newest waltzes to three storeys of loungers
-and sitters at café-tables, while within the interior of the building
-men and women wandered about examining the multifarious attractions of
-the Woman’s Exhibition.
-
-But the chief joy was the Oriental Gardens, wherein a multitude of over
-fifty thousand persons had gathered together. The Oriental Gardens were
-illuminated, but in a different manner from the Central Way. Chinese
-lanterns were suspended everywhere in the budding trees, giving the
-illusion of magic precocious flowers that had blossomed there in a
-single hour, in all the tints of the rainbow and many others entirely
-foreign to the rainbow. The bandstand alone was picked out in
-electricity. It blazed in the centre of the gardens like a giant’s
-crown, and, although yet empty, it formed the main object of attention.
-Overhead stretched a dark-blue sky, silvered with stars, and the wind
-had a warm and caressing quality which encouraged sightseers to expose
-themselves to it to such an extent that the fifteen cafés of the
-Oriental Gardens, some sheltered, some quite open, but each a centre
-of light and laughter, were every one crowded with guests. The four
-thousand chairs surrounding the bandstand were occupied, and also the
-six thousand other chairs dispersed in various parts of the gardens. The
-murmur of conversation, the rustle of dresses, the tinkle of glasses,
-the rumour of uncountable footsteps, rose on the air. The faces of
-pretty women could be observed obscurely in the delicious gloom, and
-the glowing scarlet of cigars bobbed mysteriously about like aspecies of
-restless glow-worm.
-
-And everybody was conscious of the sensation of the extraordinary and
-amazing success of the great show. The evening papers had carried the
-news of the wonderful thing to each suburb of London. These papers
-gave from hour to hour the number of the persons who had passed the
-turnstiles, and calculated the number of tons of shillings that Ilam
-and Carpentaria would have to bank on Monday morning. But the principal
-thing that struck the evening papers was the complete readiness of the
-City of Pleasure. No detail of it was unfinished, and all agreed that
-this phenomenon stood unique in the history of the art of amusing
-immense crowds. All felt that a new era of amusement enterprise had been
-ushered in by Ilam and Carpentaria, that everything was changed, and
-that in the future an enlightened and excessively exacting public would
-not be satisfied with what had pleased it in the past. And the owners
-of the old-fashioned resorts trembled in their shoes, and hated Ilam and
-Carpentaria, while the myriad patrons of Ilam and Carpentaria on that
-first day flattered themselves that they had personally assisted at the
-birth of the grand innovation, and thought how they would say to
-their grandchildren: “Yes, I was present at the opening of the City of
-Pleasure, and a marvellous affair it was,” and so on, in the manner of
-grandparents.
-
-All were expecting Carpentaria, the lion of the show.
-
-His band was due to perform from eight o’clock to ten, and special
-bills, posted on the sides of the gilded bandstand and in the cafés,
-announced: “Carpentaria’s band will play the Balloon Lullaby, the latest
-composition of Carpentaria, composed this afternoon.”
-
-At ten minutes before eight the members of the band, sixty in number,
-and clad in the imperial purple uniform, marched in Indian file across
-the gardens to the stand. At a distance of ten paces from the end of the
-procession came Carpentaria, preceded by a small page bearing his
-baton on a cushion of purple velvet. Carpentaria always did things with
-overwhelming style and solemnity. Superior persons laughed at the style
-and solemnity, but the vast majority did not laugh; they cheered; they
-appreciated. Whether they were right or wrong, the indubitable fact
-is that these things came naturally to Carpentaria; they were the
-expression of his exceedingly theatrical soul, the devices of a man who
-believes in himself.
-
-At eight o’clock precisely Carpentaria faced the fifty thousand from
-his bandstand, and, after having bowed elaborately thrice, turned to the
-band, and lifted the sacred stick.
-
-It was a dramatic moment, the real inauguration of the City of Pleasure.
-
-Cheers and hurrahs rolled in terrific volumes of sound across the
-gardens, and they did not cease; and people not acquainted with the fame
-and renown of Carpentaria perceived what it was to be a favourite of
-capitals, a leading star in the galaxy of stars that the public salutes
-and recognizes.
-
-Carpentaria preserved the immobility of carven stone until the
-plaudits had ceased; they lasted for exactly five and a half minutes.
-Consequently the concert was exactly five and a half minutes late in
-commencing. Carpentaria himself was never late, but his public had a
-habit of delaying him.
-
-Suddenly he brought rown his baton with a surprising shock. The carven
-stone had started into life, and “God save the King” was under way.
-
-Now to see Carpentaria conduct was one of the sights of the world. He
-conducted not merely with his hand and eye, but with the whole of his
-immortal frame and his uniform. It was said that he was capable of
-conducting the Eroica Symphony of Beethoven with his left foot--and who
-shall deny it? “God save the King” was child’s play to him. Moreover,
-he showed a certain reserve in handling it. He merely conducted it as
-though in conducting it he himself were literally saving the King. That
-was all. But with what snap, what dash, what _chic_, what splash and
-what magnificent presence of mind did he save the King! The applause was
-wild and ample.
-
-The next item was “The City of Pleasure March,” composed by Carpentaria.
-Indeed, Carpentaria conducted nothing but national hymns, his own
-compositions, and, as a superlative concession, Wagner and Beethoven.
-“The City of Pleasure” was in Carpentaria’s finest style, and it was
-planned to give him the fullest scope in conducting it. He had already
-made it famous in a triumphal tour through the United States in the
-previous year. It began with the utmost possible volume of sound. It had
-a contagious and infectious lilt to it, and both the lilt and the volume
-of sound were continued without the slightest respite during the whole
-composition. In the course of this masterpiece Carpentaria performed
-physical feats that would have astounded Cinquevalli and the Schaffer
-Troupe. In the frenzy of self-expression he all but stood on his head.
-The bandstand was too small for him; he needed a planet on which to
-circulate. By turns his baton was a sceptre, a pump-handle, a maypole,
-a crutch, a drumstick, a flag, a toothpick, a mop, a pendulum, a whip, a
-bottle of soothing-syrup, and a scorpion. By turns he whipped, tortured,
-encouraged, liberated, imprisoned, mopped up, measured, governed,
-diverted, pushed over, pulled back, and turned inside out his band, and
-whenever their enthusiasm seemed likely to lead them into indiscretions,
-he soothed them with the soothing-syrup. By turns the conducting of the
-piece was a march, a campaign, a house on fire, the race for the Derby,
-the forging of a hundred-ton gun, a display of fireworks, a mayoral
-banquet, and a mother scolding a numerous family.
-
-It was colossal.
-
-At the close, as sudden as the shutting of a door, there was a vast
-strange silence, and then the applause, as colossal as the piece, broke
-out like a conflagration.
-
-Carpentaria bowed; the entire band bowed; Carpentaria bowed again.
-Lastly he indicated a flute-player with his baton, and the flute-player
-came forward and shared the glory of Carpentaria. Why a flute-player, no
-one could have guessed. Forty flutes could not have been heard in that
-terrific concourse of brass and drums. But Carpentaria was Carpentaria.
-
-“Did any of you hear the sound of a shot?” Carpentaria said in a low
-voice to his band.
-
-“Shot? No, sir. No, sir,” came from a dozen mouths. “Why, sir?”
-
-“Because a bullet has just grazed my ear. It was in the fourth bar from
-the end.” He put his hand to his ear and showed blood on his finger.
-“It’s nothing, nothing,” he quieted them. “I shall expect you to behave
-as though nothing had occurred, as soldiers in fact.”
-
-“Certainly, sir,” replied the intrepid band.
-
-Carpentaria gazed at one of the iron supports of the roof of the
-bandstand. In a line with his head the surface of the pillar had been
-damaged and dented. He disturbed two trombone-players in order to search
-the floor, and in a few seconds he had found a flattened bullet, which
-he put in his pocket.
-
-“Number two,” he said sharply, going to his desk and tapping it.
-
-Number two was the lullaby. No more striking contrast to the march could
-have been found. It was so delicate, so softly stealing, that you
-could scarcely hear it; and yet you could hear it--you could hear it
-everywhere. Carpentaria drew sweetness out of his band with the gestures
-of a conjurer drawing an interminable roll of coloured paper from his
-mouth, previously shown to be empty. It was the daintiest thing, swaying
-in the air like gossamer. It brought tears to the orbs of mothers,
-and made strong men close their eyes. Such was the versatility of
-Carpentaria.
-
-The applause amounted to a furore.
-
-“I give you my word of honour, ladies and gentlemen,” said Carpentaria,
-coming to the rail of the stand and stilling the cheers with a gesture,
-“at halfpast three this afternoon not a note of the little piece was
-composed.”
-
-His demeanour gave no sign of agitation. But at the close of the
-concert, no more bullets having arrived, he wiped his brow with relief.
-Most of the band did the same.
-
-He walked about on the river terrace for over an hour, calming his
-spirit, which had been through so many excitements, artistic and
-otherwise, during the afternoon and evening. And he meditated, now on
-the bullet, and now on Ilam. He could scarcely realize how nearly he had
-escaped quarrelling with Ilam in the balloon; their relations hitherto
-had been invariably amicable, at any rate on the surface; and he had
-done so much for Ilam; he had put a second fortune in Ilam’s pocket.
-The dazzling success of the day of inauguration was the success of
-Carpentaria’s ideas. And yet Ilam hated him. He felt that Ilam hated
-him. He almost shuddered as he remembered the moment when he had sat on
-the dizzy edge of the balloon-car, and Ilam had threatened him, and then
-laughed.
-
-The Oriental Gardens were empty and dark. The gay crowd had departed;
-the lights were extinguished. Only the light in Ilam’s drawing-room
-shone across the expanse as it had shone through all the evening.
-Carpentaria’s own bungalow was dark. He wondered what Juliette was
-doing.
-
-At length he set off home through the gardens. And just as he was
-entering his front-door he recollected that he had given no instructions
-about the drunken man in the enclosure. He turned back down the steps,
-and went into the enclosure and struck a match. The man was lying on the
-ground, no doubt asleep.
-
-“Well, this is a caution!” he muttered.
-
-A notion occurred to him, one of his fanciful pranks. He picked up the
-unconscious man, who held himself stiff and did not even groan, and
-carried him, not with too much difficulty--for Carpentaria was extremely
-powerful--to the side-door of Ilam’s residence; he placed the form
-against the door. Every night for weeks past Ilam had come out by that
-door about midnight to take a final stroll of inspection. He felt that
-he owed Ilam a grudge. Then he retired into the shadow and waited.
-
-Presently the door opened, and Ilam fell over the man, as Carpentaria
-hoped he would, and picked himself up with oaths and struck a match and
-gazed at the form.
-
-At the same instant a woman’s figure passed Carpentaria in the dark. He
-was surprised to recognize Juliette. He touched her.
-
-“Oh!” she cried softly, starting back.
-
-“Why do you start like that?” he demanded.
-
-“You--you--frightened me,” she said.
-
-He escorted her into their house. When he came out again Ilam was
-descending the steps by the side door. Nothing lay near the door.
-
-“Seen anything of a drunken man?” Carpentaria called out.
-
-“No,” said Ilam, after a pause.
-
-“Not near your door?”
-
-“No. Why?”
-
-“Oh, nothing. Only I thought I saw one.”
-
-“Good night,” growled Ilam, but instead of taking the air he returned
-abruptly to the house.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI--The Black Burden
-
-Curious! Carpentaria meditated as he retired to his abode. “Having
-fallen over a man lying drunk on his steps, why should my friend and
-partner, Mr. Josephus Ilam, totally deny that he has seen a drunken man?
-With my own eyes I saw him tumble. Now this mishap must have made Mr.
-Josephus Ilam angry, because he is just the sort of person who does get
-angry upon the provocation of a pure accident. Yet, so far as I could
-judge in the gloom, there was no trace of anger in his demeanour when he
-answered my question. On the contrary, he appeared to be rather subdued.
-
-“And further--what has become of my friend the drunken man? The drunken
-man must exist somewhere. Is he in Ilam’s house? And, if so, why is he
-in Ilam’s house? Neither Josephus nor his mother is precisely a type of
-the Good Samaritan. And if he is not in Ilam’s house, has he suddenly
-recovered and walked away on his legs unaided? Impossible! I was once
-drunk, and I say, impossible. Then, has Josephus carried him somewhere?
-And where has he carried him, and why?”
-
-Carpentaria unlocked his front-door and entered the hall of his
-dwelling, and then locked and bolted the door. He was not in the habit
-of either locking or bolting his front-door; the idea of so securing
-a house which stood in the middle of half a square mile of private
-property, well guarded at all its gates, seemed ridiculous. Nevertheless
-he did it, and he could have given no reason for doing it. He imagined
-that he heard footsteps in the passage leading from the hall to the
-kitchen, and he quickly turned on the electric light and looked down the
-passage. But there was nothing. He decided that he was very nervous and
-impressionable that night. The servants had, doubtless, long since
-gone to bed. He extinguished the light and made his way upstairs to his
-study, and sat down in his chair--the famous chair in which he composed
-his famous melodies. The faint illumination of the May night made the
-principal objects in the room vaguely visible. He could discern the pale
-square of the framed autograph letter from President McKinley which
-hung on the opposite wall. He tried to collect his ideas and think in a
-logical sequence.
-
-Then, again, he fancied that he heard footsteps, and that he saw a dim
-form near the door.
-
-“Who’s that?” he cried sharply.
-
-“It’s only me,” answered a woman’s voice, and the electricity was at the
-same instant switched on.
-
-Juliette stood there.
-
-“Why are you sitting in the dark, Carlos?” she demanded.
-
-Carlos was her pet name for him.
-
-“I don’t know,” he said lamely.
-
-“My poor dear,” she smiled, approaching him. “I haven’t said good-night
-to you.”
-
-She put her long and elegant hands on his shoulders, as was her wont
-each evening, and kissed him on both cheeks in her French fashion. The
-affection between Carlos and his half-French half-sister was real
-and profound. He liked her for her Parisian daintiness, and for the
-eminently practical qualities which she possessed in common with most
-Frenchwomen, and also because she regarded him as a genius. To-night he
-thought she was sweeter and more sisterly than ever.
-
-“Good-night,” she said, and her voice trembled, and a slight humidity
-glistened in her eyes.
-
-“Good-night,” he responded.
-
-And she tripped off, swinging the perfect skirt of her black
-_mousseline_ dress round the edge of the door.
-
-“She’s mightily excited to-night,” he murmured to himself; and he
-reflected, as all men reflect from time to time, that women are strange
-and incomprehensible, a device invented by Providence to keep the wit of
-man well sharpened by constant employment.
-
-He passed into his bedroom, and went out on to the wooden balcony of
-the bedroom, which commanded a view of Ilam’s side-door. A light showed
-through the glass above the door, and Carpentaria noticed at length
-that the door was slightly ajar. He stepped back into the bedroom,
-extinguished all his own lights, and returned to the balcony to watch.
-He determined to watch as long as Ilam’s door remained ajar. He sat down
-in a cane chair provided for repose on the balcony, and his one regret
-was that the glow of a cigarette or a cigar would betray him.
-
-He grew calmer. The frenzy into which music always threw him had quite
-worn itself away. He was able to think clearly. He did not, however,
-think so much upon the incident of the drunken man as upon the incident
-of the bullet; and this was perhaps natural. He was astounded now that
-he could have remained in the bandstand, so utterly careless of
-danger, after the arrival of the bullet. He was astounded, too, at the
-sang-froid of his musicians. But, then, their ears had not been grazed,
-and his had. He saw that he was at the mercy of any homicidal maniac
-who, on a dark night, with a good rifle and a sure aim, chose to secrete
-himself in some deserted alley of the vast Oriental Gardens, and shoot
-at him during a loud burst of music. And he said: “Well, if I am to die,
-I am to die, and there’s an end of it. Assuming that a given man A
-has really determined to kill another given man B, and A is obstinate,
-nothing will ultimately save B. I am B. Hence I must be philosophical.”
-
-But who was A?
-
-He thought of all the enemies he had made, all the rivals he had
-defeated, but the process of their enumeration was perfunctory. For out
-of the depths of his mind rose persistently one name, again, and again,
-and again, and yet again, like a succession of bubbles, all alike,
-rising to the surface of a pond and breaking there. And that name was
-the name of Ilam. He forbade the name to rise, but it rose. With the
-simplicity which marked some of his mental processes, he could not
-understand why Ilam should hate him murderously. But the episode of the
-balloon had magically and terribly cast a new and searching light on the
-recesses of Ham’s character. He felt that hitherto he had been mistaken
-in Ilam, and that Ilam was not a person with whom it was wise to have
-interests in common. And the unknown designs of Ilam seemed to surround
-him in the night like the web of a gigantic spider, and to bind him
-tighter and tighter.
-
-Then his reflections were interrupted by a sound somewhere below the
-balcony.
-
-It was the sound of his own side-door being very cautiously opened. He
-could hear it perfectly clearly in the still night; but whether the door
-was being opened from the outside or the inside he could not tell. He
-remembered that, though he had bolted and locked the front-door, he had
-utterly forgotten the side-door. He leaned over the balcony as far as
-he dared, but even so he could catch no glimpse of anything in the
-obscurity beneath.
-
-And then there were steps on the gravel, and he saw a white blur moving
-on the top of a dark mass. In another moment he perceived that the
-apparition was Juliette, with a white shawl wrapped round her head. What
-was she doing there, and why had she opened the door so cautiously? Had
-she some secret? He decided to watch her. She moved to the middle of the
-avenue between the two houses and hesitated. And then the great clock in
-the tower of the Exposition Palace tolled the hour of twelve solemnly,
-as it were warningly, over the immense extent of the sleeping City of
-Pleasure.
-
-The appeal of the clock seemed to Carpentaria to be almost dramatic. He
-felt strongly that he could not spy upon Juliette, that he could not be
-disloyal to this affectionate companion of his life, and honourably he
-called out to her:
-
-“Juliette, what are you doing?”
-
-His own voice startled him. It was so clear and penetrative in the
-gloom.
-
-There was a slight pause. Then Juliette replied: “Carlos, you seem bent
-on frightening me tonight. I thought you were in bed and asleep. You’ll
-take cold on that balcony. I only came out to get a little air.”
-
-The notion struck him that her head was turned directly to Ham’s house,
-and yet she made no comment on the light there and the door ajar.
-
-“Go in, there’s a good girl,” said Carpentaria. “It’s you who’ll be
-taking cold.”
-
-“I’m going in,” she answered.
-
-And she went in.
-
-He had yet another alarm. Something moved on the balcony itself, near a
-row of flower-pots. Then he felt a pressure against his leg.
-
-“Ah, Beppo!” he whispered, suddenly relieved, smiling at his nervous
-timidity. A great Angora cat leaped on to his knees, and began clawing
-at the superb pile of his purple trousers. He stroked the animal, and
-Beppo purred with a volume of sound equal to that of many sawmills.
-“Don’t purr so loud, Bep,” he advised the cat; but the cat, under the
-impression that it was the centre of importance in the best of all
-possible worlds, purred with undiminished vigour.
-
-Five minutes, ten minutes, a quarter of an hour passed so, and then
-Carpentaria heard heavy footsteps in the avenue from the direction of
-the Central Way. He jumped up, shattering the illusions of Beppo, and
-listened intently. A man presently appeared, walking slowly. He wondered
-who it could be; but when the figure paused at Ilam’s steps, mounted
-them, and pushed open the unlatched door, he saw that it was Ilam
-himself, and that Ilam was holding in his arms a bundle of what looked
-like black cloth. The vision of him was but transient, for Ilam
-closed the door at once. Ilam, then, must have left his house before
-Carpentaria had come on to the balcony. The watcher on the balcony felt
-his heart beating rapidly. His calm had vanished. The frenzy of the
-music, the perturbation caused by the bullet, had passed, only to give
-way to another and perhaps a more dreadful excitation. What could these
-secret journeys of Ilam portend? He clutched fiercely the rail of the
-balcony in his apprehensive anxiety.
-
-After a time--not a very long time--the door opened again, and for at
-least five seconds Josephus Ilam stood plainly silhouetted against a
-light within the house, and over his shoulders, which were bent, he
-carried an enormous limp burden, draped in black. He looked back into
-the house once, then turned awkwardly, because of his burden, to shut
-the door behind him, and with excessive deliberation descended the steps
-and came out into the avenue. The figure and its burden were now nothing
-but a shape in the gloom.
-
-Carpentaria decided in the fraction of a second what he would do. He
-slipped into his bedroom, took off his boots, put on a pair of felt
-slippers, scurried downstairs, opened the side-door, and gently slipped
-out. Ilam, tramping slowly with clumsy footsteps, had reached the arch
-leading to the Central Way.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII--The Cut
-
-Carpentaria dogged him with all the precautions of silence as he turned
-to the right down the Central Way. The great thoroughfare of the City
-of Pleasure was, of course, absolutely deserted. Its fountains were
-stilled; its pretty cable-cars had disappeared; its flags had been
-hauled down. The meagre trees rustled chilly in the night-wind. Its vast
-and floriated white architecture seemed under the sombre sky to be
-the architecture of a dream. The one sign of human things was the
-illuminated face of the clock over the Exposition Palace, which showed
-twenty-five minutes past twelve. Of the two thousand souls employed
-in the City, more than half had gone to their homes in the other city,
-London, and several hundreds slept in the dormitories that had been
-built for them at the southern extremity of the Central Way. The
-remaining hundred or so were dispersed in various parts of the City,
-either watching or asleep. Some had the right to sleep at their posts.
-But the men of the highly-organized fire service would be awake and
-alert.
-
-Yet there happened to be no living creature on the Way, except its two
-chiefs. Ilam crossed the Way, and turned off it through an avenue that
-lay between the lecture hall and the menagerie. Carpentaria followed
-at a safe distance, hiding in the thick shadows as he went. From the
-interior of the menagerie came the subdued growls and groans of the wild
-beasts therein, suffering from insomnia, and longing for the jungle.
-Among the treasures of the menagerie was a society of twenty-seven
-lions, who went through a performance twice a day under their trainer,
-Brant, the king of lion-tamers, as he was called on the City of Pleasure
-programmes, and as he, in fact, was. There were also a celebrated
-sanguinary tiger, that had killed three men in New York, and various
-other delicate attractions. The nocturnal noises of these fearsome
-animals were sufficiently appalling. And when Ilam stopped before
-a little door in the south façade of the menagerie building, a cold
-perspiration froze the forehead and the spirit of Carpentaria. Was the
-man going to yield his mysterious black-enveloped burden to the
-lions and the tigers, the jackals and the hyenas, of that inestimable
-collection of African and Asiatic fauna?
-
-But Ilam struggled onwards. And next they passed the electricity works,
-which was in full activity, for the manufacture of light went on night
-and day in the City of Pleasure. Ilam slunk along the front of the
-workshops, increasing his pace. Fortunately for him, the windows were
-seven feet from the ground, so that he could not be observed from
-within. The whirr of the wheels revolving incessantly in front of
-gigantic magnets filled the air, and from the high windows shone a
-steely-blue radiance, chequered by the flying shadows of machinery.
-
-Ilam turned again, and entered the Amusements Park, and, threading his
-way among chutes, switchbacks, slides, and ponds, he crossed it from end
-to end.
-
-“Where is he going?” Carpentaria muttered.
-
-And then, suddenly, it occurred to Carpentaria where Ilam was going.
-
-Behind the Amusements Park, and abutting on the confines of the City
-territory, was a large waste piece of ground which had been used for
-excavations and for refuse. In the tremendous operation of levelling the
-site of the City, digging foundations, and gardening in the landscape
-manner, much earth had been needed in one spot, and much earth had
-had to be removed in another. The waste piece of ground was the
-clearing-house of this business. In certain parts it was humped like
-a camel’s back, and in others it was hollowed into pits. Immense
-quantities of soil lay loose, and there were, besides, barrows and
-spades in abundance.
-
-Arrived in the midst of this sterile wilderness, Ilam unceremoniously
-dropped his burden near a miniature mountain, which raised itself by the
-side of a miniature pit. He then found a spade, and, having tested
-the looseness of the soil, took up the black mystery and slipped it
-carefully into the pit. Then he climbed with the spade on to the summit
-of the hillock, and began to push the soil from the hillock into the
-pit. It proved to be the simplest thing in the world. In five minutes
-the burden of Ilam lay under several feet of soil.
-
-Carpentaria, favoured by the nature of the spot, had crept closer.
-
-“Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust!” he heard Ilam reciting.
-Amazing phenomenon! But nothing can be more amazing than the behaviour
-of an utterly respectable man when he is committing a crime!
-
-The affair finished, Ilam departed, passing within a few feet of
-Carpentaria, who stretched himself flat on the ground to avoid
-detection.
-
-And when Ilam had vanished out of sight, Carpentaria jumped up
-feverishly, seized the spade, leapt into the pit and began to dig--to
-dig with a fury of haste. Fate helped him, for the black mass was
-uncovered in less time than had been taken to cover it. He dragged it
-slowly out of the pit, and slowly, almost reluctantly, unwrapped it. He
-had been sure at the first touch that it was the body of a man, and he
-was not mistaken. In the gloomy night he could see the white patches
-made by the face and the hands. The body was not yet stiff. He
-hesitated, and then struck a match. He hoped the wind would blow it out,
-but the wind spared it; it flared bravely, and lighted the face of the
-corpse, and the corpse was that of the mysterious drunken man.
-
-A thousand unanswerable questions fought together for solution in
-Carpentaria’s brain.
-
-He knew himself to be in the presence of a crime, of a murder. His legal
-duty, therefore, was to fetch justice in the shape of a policeman. But
-he reflected that no battalion of policemen and judges could undo the
-crime, bring the dead to life, make innocent the guilty. He reflected
-also upon the clumsiness of State justice, and the inconveniences
-attaching to it, and upon the immeasurable harm its advent might do to
-the opening season of the City of Pleasure. Moreover, he had a horror
-of capital punishment, and he was a bold and original man, though an
-artist. He settled rapidly in his mind that he himself would probe the
-matter to its root, and that the justice involved should be the private
-justice of Carpentaria, not the public justice of the realm.
-
-And a few minutes later he had discovered a long, flat barrow, and was
-wheeling away the burden that had bent the back of Josephus Ilam. He
-brought it circuitously and gently by way of the Sports Fields round
-again to the Central Way, and so to the neighbourhood of his own house.
-The night had now grown darker than ever, and a few drops of rain began
-to fall.
-
-Suddenly, as he was approaching the two bungalows, he stopped and
-listened. He thought he heard footsteps; but no sound met his ear, and
-he raised the handles of the barrow again. By this time he was midway
-between the bungalows and about to turn to the side-entrance of his
-own. Once more he stopped; he distinctly did hear footsteps crushing the
-gravel.
-
-“What is that? Anyone there?” cried a voice.
-
-And it was Ilam’s voice, full of fear. Carpentaria crept away to the
-shelter of his own wall, leaving the barrow that had become a bier in
-the midst of the path. Vaguely and dimly he saw the form of Ilam coming
-down the avenue, saw it stop uncertainly before the barrow, saw it bend
-down, and then he heard a shriek--a shriek of terror--loud, violent, and
-echoing, and Ilam fled away. Carpentaria heard him mount the steps of
-his house and fumble with the door, and then he heard the bang of the
-door.
-
-With all possible speed he rushed to the barrow, wheeled it into his
-garden, and thence to an outhouse, of which he carefully fastened the
-padlock.
-
-He stood some time hesitant in the avenue, wondering whether any further
-singular phenomenon would proceed from the Ilam house that night. His
-curiosity was rewarded. A most strange procession emerged presently
-from the bungalow. First came old Mrs. Ilam, dressed in a crimson
-dressing-gown, a white nightcap on her head, and carrying a lamp with an
-elaborate drawing-room shade. Carpentaria could see that the lamp shook
-in her trembling hand. Her hands always trembled, but her head never.
-She came down the steps with the deliberation of extreme old age,
-peering in front of her, and she was followed, timorously, by her son.
-The lamp threw a large circle of yellow light on the ground, and at
-intervals Mrs. Ilam held it up high so that it illuminated the faces
-of mother and son. They came into the middle of the avenue. It was now
-seriously raining.
-
-“I knew it wouldn’t be there,” Ilam whispered, in an awed tone. “It
-isn’t the sort of thing that stays. But I saw it--I saw the cloth and I
-saw a bit of its face.”
-
-Mrs. Ilam looked about her.
-
-“Nonsense, Jos,” she upbraided him, fixing her eyes on him in a sort of
-reproof. “It’s your imagination.”
-
-“It isn’t,” said Josephus. “I saw it; and what’s more, it was on a bier.
-That’s the worst--it was on a bier. Mother, he will haunt me all my
-life!”
-
-“Don’t talk so loud, child,” put in Mrs. Ilam. “You’d better go to bed.”
-
-“What’s the good of going to bed?” he inquired. “What! I took him and I
-buried him as safe as houses. I left him there, and I came straight back
-here, except that I was stopped by a watchman at the stables, who told
-me the horses seemed to be all frightened. And I had a talk to the
-fellow; and I find _it_ on a bier here, right in my path. And now it’s
-gone again.”
-
-“Come in,” said Mrs. Ilam.
-
-“And why were the horses frightened? That shows----”
-
-“Come in,” Mrs. Ilam repeated. “I’ll get you some hot milk, and you must
-try to sleep.”
-
-“Sleep!” he murmured. “Mother, you mustn’t leave me.”
-
-And the procession re-entered the house, and the door was closed, but a
-light burned upstairs through the remainder of the night.
-
-Carpentaria himself had little sleep; he scarcely tried to sleep. He
-arose at seven o’clock, and dressed and went out on to the balcony. The
-rain had ceased, and the Sunday morning was exquisitely calm and sunny.
-The whole scene was so bright and clear that the events of six hours ago
-appeared fantastic and impossible. Yet Carpentaria knew only too well
-that the unidentified corpse lay in the outhouse. He meant first to
-examine the corpse himself, and then to confide in a certain official of
-the city whom he knew that he could trust. What he should do after that
-he could not imagine. Decidely some process of burial would be speedily
-imperative.
-
-All the blinds of the Ilam bungalow were drawn. He guessed that at least
-the upper ones would remain so, and he was somewhat taken aback when
-Mrs. Ilam herself appeared at a window and opened it. He was still more
-taken aback to see Mrs. Ilam a moment later open the door, and with much
-stateliness cross the avenue to his own dwelling. He knew that she
-was friendly with Juliette, and that Juliette liked her. He, too, had
-admired her, but only because she was so old and so masterful, such a
-surprising relic. That she should be accessory to a crime did not seem
-strange to him. He esteemed her to be a woman capable of anything. He
-would have to warn Juliette.
-
-At eight o’clock a servant brought up the French breakfast with which,
-under Juliette’s influence, he compromised with hunger till lunch-time;
-and with the breakfast came, as usual, the cat Beppo. The breakfast
-consisted of a two-handled bowl of milk and a fresh roll and a pat of
-butter. Beppo seemed determined to share the breakfast without delay.
-Carpentaria, as was his frequent practice, took the roll off its plate
-and poured on the plate as much milk as it would hold. And Beppo, to
-whom milk was the answer to the riddle of the universe, leapt on to the
-table and began to lap in his gluttonous masculine way. He had taken
-exactly four laps when he ceased to lap. He looked up at his master,
-and there was a disturbed and pained expression in his amber eyes.
-This expression changed in an instant to one of positive fright. He was
-evidently breathing with difficulty, and he was rather at sea, for
-he groped about on the table and put both his forepaws into the bowl,
-splashing the milk in all directions. He then gave a fearful shriek;
-his pupils dilated horribly in spite of the strong sunshine, and he went
-into convulsions. His breath came quick and short. Finally, he fell off
-the table.
-
-He was dead.
-
-Less than three minutes previously he had been a cat full of power, of
-romance, and of the joy of life, with comfortable views on most things.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII--Disappearance of Juliette
-
-People may read about crimes in newspapers all their lives, and yet
-never properly realize that crime exists. To appreciate what crime is,
-one must be brought to close quarters with crime, as Carpentaria was.
-Twelve hours ago murder to him had been nothing but a name. Now he knew
-the horror that murder inspires. And with the corpse of the cat Beppo
-lying at his feet, he felt that horror far more keenly even than in the
-night as he unearthed the corpse of the mysterious drunken man. He
-had actually seen the cat done to death, and had it not been for the
-greediness of Beppo, he himself would have lain there, stretched out in
-eternal quiet.
-
-He looked at the half-empty bowl of milk and at the splashes of milk
-on the round painted table, reflecting that each splash was no doubt
-sufficient to kill a man.
-
-He wondered what he must do, how he must begin to disentangle himself
-from the coil of danger that was surrounding him. He was not afraid.
-He was probably much too excited to be afraid. He was angry, startled,
-grieved, and puzzled, and nothing more. His mind turned naturally to
-Juliette--Juliette, his comforter and companion. He did not like the
-idea of frightening her by a recital of what had occurred, but he knew
-that he would be compelled to do so. He must talk confidentially to some
-one who understood him and admired him. Now, at that hour in the morning
-the faithful Juliette, her dress ornamented by an extremely small and
-attractive French apron, was in the habit of personally dusting the
-writing-table in Carpentaria’s study adjoining the bedroom. No profane
-hand ever touched that table, and Juliette’s own hand never ventured
-to arrange its sublime disorder. There were three servants in the
-house--the parlourmaid, the cook, and a scullery-maid. There might have
-been a dozen had Juliette so wished. But Juliette was a simple person;
-her father, the second husband of Carpentaria’s mother, had belonged to
-the plain and excellent French bourgeoisie, who know so well how to cook
-and how to save money, and Juliette had inherited his tastes. Juliette
-was always curbing Carpentaria’s instinct towards magnificence. She did
-not want even three servants, and there were a number of delicate tasks,
-such as the dusting of Carpentaria’s table, that she would not permit
-them to do.
-
-Carpentaria touched nothing on the balcony. He went into the bedroom,
-fastened the window, and then hesitated. He could hear Juliette’s soft
-movements in the study. Ought he, could he, go to her and say bluntly:
-“Juliette, some one is trying to murder me, and you must take more care
-than you took this morning--you allowed my milk to be poisoned”?
-
-At last he opened the door of the study.
-
-But it was not Juliette dusting the sacred table. It was Jenkins, the
-parlourmaid!
-
-Such a thing had never before happened in the united domesticity of
-Carpentaria and Juliette! It was astounding. It unnerved Carpentaria.
-
-He locked the door of the bedroom, and put the key in his pocket.
-
-“What are you doing here?” he demanded gruffly of the parlourmaid.
-
-“Dusting your table, sir,” replied Jenkins, in a tone that respectfully
-asked to be informed whether Carpentaria was blind.
-
-“Who told you to dust my table?”
-
-“Mistress, sir.”
-
-“Where is your mistress?”
-
-“I don’t know, sir. She told me to come up and dust the room.” A pause.
-“I--er--really don’t know.”
-
-“Go and find her. Ask her to speak to me at once.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Half a minute, Jenkins. It was you who brought my milk up?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Where did you take it from?”
-
-“Mistress gave it me with her own hands, sir.”
-
-“And you brought it direct to me?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“No one else touched it?”
-
-“No, sir.”
-
-“Anybody called here this morning?”
-
-“Called, sir?” Jenkins seemed ruffled.
-
-“Yes. Anybody been to the house?”
-
-“No, sir,” said Jenkins, as though in asking if anybody had called
-Carpentaria was reflecting upon her moral character. And she blushed.
-
-“Very well. Go and find your mistress.”
-
-Jenkins departed, and came back in a surprisingly short space of time.
-
-“Mistress doesn’t seem to be about, sir,” said Jenkins.
-
-“What? She hasn’t gone out, has she?”
-
-“Not that I know of, sir. But I can’t find her.”
-
-“Have you looked in her bedroom?”
-
-“I knocked at the door, sir.”
-
-“And there was no answer?”
-
-“No, sir.”
-
-“When did you last see your mistress?”
-
-“When she told me to dust this room, sir, after I had brought up your
-milk.”
-
-“Where was she?”
-
-“In the dining-room, sir.”
-
-A fearful thought ran through the mind of Carpentaria, cutting it like a
-lancet. Suppose that Juliette had been poisoned! Suppose that an attempt
-had been made against her, as against him, but with more success! He
-hurried out of the room and knocked loudly at her bedroom-door.
-
-“Juliette! Are you there?”
-
-No answer.
-
-“Juliette, I say!”
-
-Again no answer. His heart almost stopped. He opened the door and
-entered the room. It was empty, but already the bed had been made and
-everything tidied. He penetrated to the dressing-room, which was equally
-neat and equally empty.
-
-Then he searched the house and the premises; he searched everywhere
-except in the little outhouse wherein was hidden the corpse of the
-drunken man. At length, after a futile cross-examination of the cook in
-the kitchen, he perceived that the scullery-maid, in the scullery was
-surreptitiously beckoning to him.
-
-This ungainly chit, Polly, whose person was only kept presentable by
-the ceaseless efforts of Juliette, had red hair, rather less red than
-Carpentaria’s, and she worshipped him afar off. She had that “cult” for
-him which very humble servants do sometimes entertain for masters who
-never even throw them a glance. And now she was beckoning to him and
-making eyes!
-
-He followed her through the scullery into the yard.
-
-“Do you want mistress, sir?” asked Polly in a whisper.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Well, she’s over the wye, sir.”
-
-“Over the way?”
-
-“Yes, sir, at Mr. Ilam’s. Mrs. Ilam’s been here this morning, sir. Don’t
-tell mistress as I told you, sir, for the love of heving!”
-
-Juliette was at Ilam’s! And he had twice found Juliette in the avenue
-during the night! And she had been strangely excited when she came to
-kiss him before going to bed.
-
-In something less than fifteen seconds he was rattling loudly at
-Ilam’s door. He received no answer. He heard no sound within the house.
-Wondering where the servants could be, he assaulted the door again, this
-time furiously. A man who was rolling a lawn in the Oriental Gardens
-glanced up at him. Still there was no reply. He was just deciding to
-break into the house by way of a window, when the door opened very
-suddenly, and as he was leaning upon it, he pitched forward into the
-hall and into the arms of old Mrs. Ilam, who, with her white cap, her
-black dress and her parchment face, seemed aggrieved by this entrance.
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria!” she protested, raising her shaking hands.
-
-But she was admirably and overpoweringly calm, and her extreme age
-prevented Carpentaria from taking the measures which he would have taken
-had she been younger, less imposing, less august, less like a dead woman
-who walked.
-
-“My sister is here, and I must see her at once.”
-
-“No, Mr. Carpentaria; your sister is not here.” Her tone startled him.
-It was so cold and positive. But after a few seconds he thought she was
-lying.
-
-“She has been here, then?”
-
-“No, Mr. Carpentaria. She has not been here.”
-
-“Really! But you have seen her this morning. You came to my house.”
-
-“No------”
-
-“Excuse me, Mrs. Ilam, I saw you from my----”
-
-“Ah!--from your balcony? You saw me cross the avenue, but you did not
-see me enter your house. You could not have seen that from your balcony,
-even if I had entered; and, as it happens, I didn’t enter.”
-
-“My servants say you came.”
-
-“Your servants probably say a good many things, Mr. Carpentaria,” she
-smiled humorously.
-
-The musician felt himself against a stone wall. “Can I see your son?” he
-asked at length of the imperturbable old woman.
-
-“My son is in bed and far from well,” said Mrs. Ilam.
-
-“Then I should like to talk to you instead,” said Carpentaria.
-
-She seemed to burst into welcome.
-
-“Come in, then, my dear man, do! Come in!” And she preceded him into the
-drawing-room, an apartment furnished in the richest Tottenham Court Road
-splendour. They sat down on either side of the hearth, where a fire was
-burning. He did not know exactly how to begin.
-
-“Now, Mr. Carpentaria,” she encouraged him.
-
-“Some very strange things have been happening, Mrs. Ilam,” said he.
-
-He deemed that he might as well go directly to the point. He would come
-to Juliette afterwards. So long as Juliette was not in Ilam’s house she
-was probably in no immediate danger.
-
-“To you?” asked the dame.
-
-“To me. I saw some very strange things with my own eyes last night, and
-within the last twelve Lours there have been two attempts to murder me.”
-
-A slight flush reddened the wrinkled yellow cheek of Mrs. Ilam. It
-seemed as though she tried to speak and could not. Her fingers worked
-convulsively.
-
-“You, too?” he murmured, with apparent difficulty.
-
-“Why do you say ‘you, too’?” Carpentaria demanded.
-
-She paused again.
-
-“It was the milk?” she seemed to stammer.
-
-“Yes, the second attempt; it was the milk,” admitted Carpentaria.
-
-She hid her face.
-
-“The same attempt has been made against Josephus,” she said. “And he was
-so frightened it has made him ill. That is why he is not feeling very
-well this morning.”
-
-“But does Mr. Ilam take milk for breakfast? I thought he always had ham
-and eggs?”
-
-“Never!” said Mrs. Ilam. “Hot bread-and-milk. Nothing else.”
-
-“And how did he find out that the milk was poisoned?” Carpentaria
-pursued.
-
-“I--I don’t know,” said Mrs. Ilam. “But he did. He’s very particular
-about his food, is Jos. And he suspected something. So he tried it on
-Neptune, the Newfoundland. And Neptune is dead. He says he thinks it
-must be prussic acid. Oh, Mr. Carpentaria, what is this plot against us
-all? What are we to do?”
-
-Carpentaria was reduced to muteness. The old lady had changed the trend
-of his thoughts. He had been secretly accusing Ilam, but if Ilam’s life
-also had been attempted, the case was very much altered. It was perhaps
-even more perilous. Still, Mrs. Ilam had done nothing to explain the
-extraordinary events of the night. He decided to be cautious.
-
-“I happened to see lights in your house very late last night, or rather,
-early this morning,” he said. “I was afraid that either you or Mr. Ilam
-might be ill.”
-
-His eyes sought hers and met them fully and squarely.
-
-“Oh!” she exclaimed sadly. “Jos had a dreadful night. He does have them
-sometimes, you know. Bad dreams. In many ways he is just like a child.
-There are nights when I think his dreams are more real to him than his
-real life. Now, last night he dreamed there was a corpse lying on a bier
-in the avenue, and nothing would satisfy him but that I should come out
-with him to see. Fancy it! at my age! However, there was nothing--of
-course.”
-
-Carpentaria said to himself that the old lady evidently was unaware of
-her son’s midnight escapade, and that he could get no further with her.
-The hope sprang up within him that Polly had been after all mistaken.
-Juliette might have gone out merely for a stroll and have returned ere
-then. He rose to take leave of Mrs. Ilam.
-
-“What are you going to do?” she asked him.
-
-“What about?”
-
-“Well, my dear man, about this attempted poisoning.”
-
-“I suppose we must inform the police,” he replied.
-
-“Yes, I suppose so,” she agreed. “But perhaps it would be well to wait
-until you had had a talk with Jos. He’ll be getting up during the day.”
-
-“We’ll see,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“It’s a good thing it’s Sunday and we’re free, isn’t it?” she remarked.
-
-He had got precisely as far as the drawing-room door, when a voice
-reached his ears from the upper story. “Mrs. Ilam! Mrs. Ilam! He’s eaten
-his ham and eggs. What about the marmalade?”
-
-Carpentaria dashed into the hall and looked up the stairs, and he saw
-the head of Juliette over the banisters.
-
-Behind him he heard a suppressed sigh from Mrs. Ilam.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX--The Dead Dog
-
-Carpentaria ran up the stairs. If he had not had flame-coloured hair,
-and the fiery temper that goes with it, he would probably have pursued
-the more dignified course of calling Juliette down and interrogating
-her in privacy. But he was Carpentaria. She knew his moods, and she fled
-before him into a sitting-room, where Ilam, a dressing-gown covering his
-suit of Sunday black, reclined in an easy-chair by the side of a small
-table bearing an empty plate and a knife and fork.
-
-She cowered down on the floor.
-
-“Oh, Carlos!” she exclaimed under her breath.
-
-Carpentaria made the obvious demand:
-
-“What are you doing in this house, Juliette?”
-
-There was a silence.
-
-“Look here, Carpentaria,” Ilam began, rising a little in a chair.
-
-“Silence!” cried Carpentaria angrily and threateningly.
-
-And at the noise the great dog Neptune, pride of the Ilams, emerged from
-behind the chair and growled.
-
-Juliette said at last:
-
-“Mrs. Ilam told me that Jos--that Mr. Ilam was unwell, and so I--I came
-to see how he was. That’s all.”
-
-“Really!” said Carpentaria. “Is that all? Your philanthropic interest
-in the sick and suffering, my girl, does you great credit. But as the
-invalid seems to be doing fairly well you’d better come home with me. I
-want to talk to you.”
-
-Juliette gave a look of appeal to Ilam.
-
-“I must tell him,” she whispered. “I must tell Carlos. Why did you
-want me to keep it a secret? Carlos, Mr. Ilam and I are engaged to be
-married. We love each other. We only want your consent, and Jos was
-afraid you mightn’t give it. He was afraid. We’ve been engaged three
-days now, haven’t we, Jos?”
-
-“My consent!” Carpentaria shouted bitterly. “My consent!” His wrath was
-dreadful, and yet to a certain extent he was controlling himself. “I
-suppose,” he addressed Juliette, “it’s your love for this estimable
-gentleman that leads you out into the gardens of a night, and I suppose
-you take beautiful romantic moonlight strolls together. My consent! Ye
-gods!”
-
-The dog continued to growl.
-
-Juliette gathered herself together, and moved to Ilam’s chair, and Ilam
-took her hand protectively.
-
-“My poor dear! Never mind!” murmured Ilam soothingly.
-
-Genuine affection spoke in those tones uttered by the stout and
-otherwise grotesque Mr. Ilam. Love itself unmistakably appeared in the
-attitude of the pair as they clasped hands in front of Carpentaria’s
-fury. And Carpentaria could not but be struck by what he saw. It sobered
-him, puzzled him, diverted his thoughts.
-
-“Come, Juliette,” he said in a quieter, more persuasive tone.
-
-He turned to leave the room, and Juliette obediently followed. Allowing
-her to pass before him, he stopped an instant and threw a glance at
-Ilam.
-
-“So they’ve been trying to poison you, Ilam.”
-
-“Poison me!” repeated Ilam, plainly at a loss.
-
-“Yes,” said Carpentaria with a sneer. “And you never have ham and eggs
-for breakfast. That’s the reason why that plate is streaked with yellow.
-You always have milk. Naturally, you eat it with a knife and fork. And
-you suspected the milk and gave some of it to Neptune, and he fell down
-dead. He looks dead, doesn’t he?”
-
-“I don’t know what you mean,” Ilam said.
-
-“You must ask mamma,” replied Carpentaria, departing.
-
-He saw now with the utmost clearness that the aged Mrs. Ilam had
-been indulging him with some impromptu lying, invented, and clumsily
-invented, to put him off the scent, were it only for a few hours.
-
-“She may be clumsy in her lying,” he thought as he descended the stairs
-in Juliette’s wake, “but she can act, the old woman can!”
-
-He remembered that her acting had been perfect, and if Juliette had not
-happened to disclose the fact of her presence, the lying of Mrs. Ilam,
-clumsy as it was, might have succeeded. It is so easy to poison a dog,
-and to arrange the remains of poisoned milk.
-
-He was capable of congratulating her on her acting, but she had utterly
-vanished from the ground-floor.
-
-When he had deposited Juliette safely in his study, she began to cry
-softly. It was impossible for him to maintain his anger against her.
-
-“Juliette,” he said, “why do you have secrets from me?”
-
-“Oh, Carlos, he wished it to be kept secret. He said he had reasons; and
-I love him. No one has ever loved me before, and I’m thirty.”
-
-“What about my affection?” asked Carpentaria.
-
-“Oh, that’s different!” she cried.
-
-Then he questioned her about Mrs. Ilam.
-
-“I was at the kitchen window, preparing your milk, and the window was
-open, and Mrs. Ilam came up outside, and told me that Jos was unwell,
-and wanted to see me.”
-
-“Did she touch the milk?”
-
-“Touch the milk? No; why should she touch the milk?”
-
-“Could she reach to touch the milk, supposing she had wished to?”
-
-“I dare say she could. Yes, she could. But why?”
-
-“Could you swear absolutely she didn’t?”
-
-“I couldn’t swear; but I’m nearly sure. Carlos, what do you mean?”
-
-“I’ll show you what I mean!” said Carpentaria.
-
-He unlocked the bedroom door and led her to the balcony.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X--A Pinch of Snuff
-
-Three hours later Carpentaria, whose thoughts had been bent upon some
-solution of the problem set by Juliette’s strange and incomprehensible
-love affair with Josephus Ilam, was obliged to devote his brains to
-other and not less disturbing matters. He received in his study, for the
-second time that day, young Rivers, the newly-admitted doctor who had
-been officially attached to the City of Pleasure. A medical cabinet and
-a pharmacy had been judged quite indispensable to the smooth running
-of the City, and the foresight which had provided them was entirely
-justified by the numerous small accidents, faintings, and indispositions
-that marked the opening day, when more than three hundred persons
-had patronized the pharmacy, and more than twenty had received the
-attentions of the ardent young doctor.
-
-Carpentaria had first met young Rivers when this youth was walking
-Bart’s, and the accession of Rivers to the brilliant and brilliantly
-remunerated position of physician and surgeon-in-ordinary to the City of
-Pleasure was due to Carpentaria’s influence. Rivers was grateful, very
-grateful. Moreover, he liked Carpentaria, thought him, in fact, the most
-wonderful man, except Lord Lister, that he had ever met.
-
-“Well,” said the fair youth of twenty-five, when Carpentaria had shut
-the study-door, “I’ve made the analysis. It comes out to just about what
-I expected.”
-
-“Prussic acid?”
-
-“Not exactly prussic acid. A soluble cyanide--cyanide of potassium. Have
-you by any chance got a photographic bureau concealed somewhere in the
-show?”
-
-“Why, of course,” said Carpentaria. “Didn’t you know? It’s next door
-to the lecture-hall.”
-
-“Then the cyanide of potassium was probably got from there. It’s used by
-photographers. Better make inquiries.”
-
-“We will,” Carpentaria agreed. “And do you mean to say cyanide of
-potassium will kill like that? How much prussic acid does it contain?”
-
-“Scarcely any. Not two per cent.--not one per cent.”
-
-“And poor Beppo was dead in a minute.”
-
-“My dear Mr. Carpentaria,” said Rivers excitedly. “The strongest
-solution of prussic acid known to commerce only contains four per cent,
-of pure acid. And in the anhydrous state----”
-
-“Anhydrous?”
-
-“That means without water. In the anhydrous state,” Rivers proceeded
-enthusiastically, “two grains will kill a man in a second of time. Like
-that! It’s an amazing poison!”
-
-Carpentaria shuddered.
-
-“By the way,” he said, as if casually, “I’ve got a corpse I want you to
-look at.”
-
-“A corpse?”
-
-“Keep calm, my young friend,” Carpentaria enjoined him. And he told
-him the history of the drunken man. “Naturally all this is strictly
-confidential,” he concluded.
-
-“I should think so,” said Rivers, aghast. “Can you not see that you have
-got yourself into a dreadful mess? You are an accessory after the
-fact. You have been guilty of a gross illegality. I don’t know what the
-penalty is; I’m not very well up in medical jurisprudence; but I know
-it’s something pretty stiff. Why, you might be accused of the murder.”
-
-“Yes, I am aware of all that,” answered Carpentaria. “But I was very
-curious; and I didn’t want any police meddling here.”
-
-“You are going just the way to bring them here.”
-
-“Not at all. When you have made your examination I shall simply put the
-body where I found it. No one will be the wiser.”
-
-“And theft?”
-
-“Then--we shall see. It will depend on your examination.”
-
-“But, really, Mr. Carpentaria, I cannot lend myself-----”
-
-“Not to oblige me?”
-
-Carpentaria smiled an engaging smile, and they descended together to the
-outhouse.
-
-The outhouse was not more than eleven feet square, and the barrow with
-its burden was stretched across it diagonally, so that when the two men
-were inside, the place was full and the door would scarcely close. A
-small window gave light.
-
-Rivers gently pulled the black cloth aside.
-
-“This is just such black cloth as photographers use,” he remarked.
-
-“So it is,” said Carpentaria.
-
-The eyes of the corpse were closed; he might have been a man asleep,
-this strange relic from which a soul had flown and which would soon
-resolve itself into its original dust.
-
-“Poor fellow,” thought Carpentaria. “Once he lived, and had interests,
-and probably passions, and thought himself of some importance in the
-universe.”
-
-The spectacle saddened Carpentaria, whereas the young doctor was not at
-all saddened, he was merely intensely interested.
-
-“A blow on the head among other things,” he observed, indicating to
-Carpentaria the top of the skull which showed an abrasion together with
-an extravasation of blood, now clotted.
-
-“Would that do it?” queried Carpentaria.
-
-“Don’t know. Might. By Jove, the rigor is extraordinarily acute.”
-
-“Rigor?”
-
-7.8
-
-“The stiffness that follows death. Great Scott!”
-
-The doctor assumed an upright position, and stared, first at the corpse
-and then at Carpentaria.
-
-“Great Scott!” he repeated.
-
-“What’s up?”
-
-The doctor made no reply, but tried to lift the left arm of the body. He
-could not, without raising the entire body.
-
-“This is most interesting,” he said.
-
-“What is?”
-
-Again Rivers did not answer. Instead, he took his watch from his pocket,
-and put it suddenly against the ear of the corpse.
-
-The corpse twitched; its head moved slightly; the eyelid lifted the
-eighth of an inch.
-
-“See that? You’re lucky! And so’s he!” said the doctor. “It’s catalepsy!
-that’s all--A sudden slight noise at the ear itself will often produce a
-change of position in catalepsy.”
-
-“Then he’s not dead!” exclaimed Carpentaria.
-
-“Dead? He’s no more dead than you are! It’s just catalepsy, induced
-probably by that blow. But he must have been very excited previously,
-and, no doubt, suffering from melancholia too. My dear Mr. Carpentaria,
-there is only one absolutely reliable symptom of death, and that
-is--putrefaction. Death is imitated by various diseases. But there are
-not many that will imitate the coldness of death as catalepsy will. Feel
-that hand; it’s like ice.”
-
-“And how long will he remain in this condition?” asked Carpentaria, full
-of joy and relief.
-
-“Till you go and bring me some snuff. Snuff is the best thing in these
-cases.”
-
-“And he’ll be perfectly well again?”
-
-“Yes, in a day or two.”
-
-“He’ll remember--things?”
-
-“Of course he will! Shall I go for that snuff, or will you?”
-
-“I will run,” said Carpentaria, and he ran.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI--The Return to Life
-
-It was half-past seven o’clock on Monday evening. More than thirty
-hours had elapsed since young Rivers first began his operations to
-restore life to the cataleptic patient, and he was only just succeeding
-in an affair which had proved extremely difficult and protracted. Young
-Rivers, in fact, had found out during the watches of Sunday night and
-the sunny morning of Monday that the disease (if catalepsy may be called
-a disease) has a habit of flatly defying the rules of medical text-books
-and the experience of even the youngest doctors. But ultimately he had
-triumphed, though not by means of the famous snuff, which Carpentaria
-had obtained, after exhaustive research, from a bass-fiddle player in
-his band.
-
-The patient reclined, alive, conscious, capable of movement and speech,
-but otherwise a prodigious enigma, in an arm-chair in Carpentaria’s
-bedroom. His existence was a profound secret from all except the doctor
-and the musician.
-
-And now these two, who had brought him back to earthly life, wanted
-him to talk, to explain himself, to unravel the mysteries of Saturday
-afternoon and Saturday night. And Carpentaria, dressed in his uniform,
-waited, watch in hand; for in half an hour the daily concert must
-commence in the Oriental Gardens. Nothing could interfere with
-Carpentaria’s presence in the gorgeous illuminated bandstand. He had
-sacrificed his interest in his half-sister, his curiosity about the
-doings of the Ilams, his inspection of the affairs of the City, and even
-a rehearsal, to the care of the recovering cataleptic, but the concert
-itself, with its audience of a hundred thousand or so, could not be
-sacrificed.
-
-“So you are Carpentaria?” murmured the patient, sipping at a glass of
-hot milk.
-
-His age now appeared to be fifty. He had grey hair and a short grey
-beard, rather whiter than the hair, and his eyes bore the expression of
-a man who has found that life bears no striking resemblance to a good
-joke. His hands moved nervously over the surfaces of the chair.
-
-“Yes,” Carpentaria admitted; “and you?”
-
-It was the first direct question that he had ventured to put to the
-enigma, and the enigma ignored it.
-
-“You say I was buried and you unburied me?” he pursued.
-
-“Yes,” said Carpentaria enthusiastically, and he described the journeys,
-the disappearances and the reappearances, of the body of the enigma on
-the opening night.
-
-“I suppose I should have died really, if I’d been left alone?” the
-enigma demanded of Rivers.
-
-“Undoubtedly,” said Rivers. “Undoubtedly,” he repeated.
-
-The enigma turned almost fiercely on Carpentaria.
-
-“Then why, in the name of common sense, couldn’t you have left me
-alone?” he cried.
-
-It was as though he owed Carpentaria a grudge which the most cruel
-ingenuity could not satisfy.
-
-“I--I thought----” Carpentaria stammered, too surprised to be able to
-argue well.
-
-“You thought you were doing a mighty clever thing,” snapped the enigma.
-
-“I merely----”
-
-“Or, rather,” the enigma proceeded, “you didn’t think at all.”
-
-Rivers and Carpentaria exchanged a glance, indicating to each other that
-the man was an invalid and must therefore be humoured.
-
-“Really, Mr.-----” Carpentaria began.
-
-“Call me Jetsam,” the invalid interrupted. “It isn’t my name, but it’s
-near enough.”
-
-“Well, Mr. Jetsam----”
-
-“Not at all,” said Mr. Jetsam, sitting up in the chair. “There I was,
-comfortably dead, blind and deaf for evermore to the stupidities,
-the shams, the crimes, and the tedium of this world, and you go and
-deliberately recreate me! Is your opinion of the earth, and particularly
-of England, so high that you imagine a man is better on it than off it?
-Have you reached your present position and your present age, without
-coming to the conclusion that a person once comfortably dead would never
-want to be alive again? It seems to me, that you took upon yourselves
-the responsibility, the terrible responsibility of putting me back into
-life without giving the matter a moment’s serious thought. And I do
-verily believe that you expected me to be grateful! Grateful!”
-
-“It was a question of duty----” Carpentaria ventured.
-
-“Yes, of course. It only remained for you to drag in that word; I
-anticipated it. And why was it your duty? Who told you it was your duty?
-What authority have you for saying it was your duty? None--absolutely
-none! The sole explanation of your conduct is that, like most human
-beings, you are an interfering busybody; you can’t leave a thing alone.”
-
-At length Carpentaria laughed. He was conscious of a certain liking for
-Mr. Jetsam.
-
-“I can but offer you my humble apologies,” he said. “They are of no
-avail; they will not undo what is done. But none the less I offer them
-to you. You see, when I last saw you alive, you were so drunk, so very
-drunk----”
-
-“I was not drunk at all,” said Mr. Jetsam. “And your inability to
-perceive the fact proves that, though you may be able to wear a very
-stylish uniform and to make a great deal of noise with a band, you are
-an infant as a detective. No, sir, I had certain plans to execute, and
-you, with that meddlesomeness that appears to characterize you, came
-along and interfered. In order that I might be left alone I pretended to
-be drunk. I have never been drunk in my life, which is conceivably more
-than you can say for yourself, or you, sir”--and he pointed to the young
-doctor, who had only recently finished being a medical student.
-
-“And those plans--may one inquire?” Carpentaria murmured.
-
-Mr. Jetsam covered his face with his hands.
-
-“Ah!” he sighed, evidently speaking to himself. “I had done with all
-that, and now I must begin again. My instincts will inevitably drive me
-to begin again. My dear people”--he surveyed his two companions with an
-acid and distant stare--“instead of saving life, you have only set in
-motion a chain of circumstances that will lead to the loss of it. Murder
-and the scaffold will probably be the net result of your officious
-zeal.”
-
-There was a rap on the bedroom door.
-
-“Five minutes to eight, sir,” called a voice.
-
-“Right,” said Carpentaria, getting up; and to Mr. Jetsam, “I will see
-you after the concert.”
-
-“I doubt it,” said Mr. Jetsam.
-
-“Why not?”
-
-“Because I shall be gone. I am feeling quite strong.”
-
-35
-
-“I should like to talk to you about certain people,” pursued
-Carpentaria.
-
-“Who?”
-
-“Well, Josephus Ilam.”
-
-“I know all about Josephus Ilam.”
-
-“And his mother. Perhaps you don’t know all about his mother.”
-
-Mr. Jetsam jumped to his feet with singular agility.
-
-“Mrs. Ilam! She’s been dead for years,” he said gravely.
-
-“She was very much alive this morning,” replied Carpentaria.
-
-“He told me she was dead,” Jetsam muttered.
-
-“He lied. She is in the bungalow opposite.”
-
-“Oh!” Jetsam breathed, and he seemed to breathe the breath out of his
-body. He swayed and fell back into the chair.
-
-“By Jove! He’s fainted!” exclaimed Rivers.
-
-“Look after him,” said Carpentaria, and flew downstairs and towards his
-bandstand.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII--On the Wheel
-
-The concert was over. If it had been as great a triumph as usual--and
-it had--the reasons were perhaps that nothing succeeds like success, and
-that the Carpentaria band was so imbued with the spirit of Carpentaria
-that it would have played in the Carpentaria manner even had the
-shade of Beethoven come down to conduct it. Certainly Carpentaria’s
-performances with the baton, though wild and bizarre, lacked that
-sincerity and that amazing invention which usually distinguished them.
-He had too much to think about. There was the possibility of getting
-shot as he stood there. There was the possibility of being poisoned at
-his next meal. There was the possibility of some fearful complication
-with Juliette and Ilam. There was the positive mystery of Ilam himself.
-There was the comparative mystery of Ilam’s mother. And there was the
-superlative mystery of Mr. Jetsam. Under these circumstances, with all
-these pre-occupations, the plaudits of a hundred thousand people did not
-particularly interest Carpentaria that night. His chief desire was to
-get back to Mr. Jetsam, and to extract Mr. Jetsam’s secrets out of Mr.
-Jetsam either by force, by fraud, or by persuasion. As he was bowing
-languidly for the nineteenth time, and the entire orchestra was bowing
-behind him, amid a hurricane of clapping, he thought to himself:
-
-“It’s a good thing I’m not in love! It would only need that, in addition
-to what I already have on my hands, to drive me crazy!”
-
-As a fact, he had never been in love. Art, particularly as expressed by
-brass instruments, was his mistress.
-
-He turned to descend the steps from the bandstand, when he perceived a
-tall African standing at attention at the bottom of the steps.
-
-“What do you want?” he asked the African.
-
-The man smiled the placid and infantile smile of his race, and handed a
-note to Carpentaria.
-
-“You from the Soudanese village?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-The inhabitant of the Soudanese village, which was one of the
-attractions of the hippodrome, stood about six feet four inches
-high, and he was in native costume, which consisted largely, but not
-exclusively, of beads and polish. To gaze, dazzled, at the polish on
-that man’s face, shoulders, chest, and calves, one would guess that the
-whole tribe must sit up at nights bringing his polish to such a unique
-pitch of perfection. In his cheek you could see yourself as in a mirror,
-and he had the air of being personally well satisfied with the splendour
-of his mahogany skin.
-
-Carpentaria opened the note. It read:
-
-“Please come to me at once.--Ilam.”
-
-Should he go? Or should he refuse this strange invitation, and hasten at
-once to Mr. Jetsam and the doctor?
-
-“Where is Mr. Ilam?” he demanded of the Soudanese.
-
-The Soudanese merely increased his smile, and pointed vaguely in the
-direction of the Amusement Park.
-
-“Over there?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“But where, man?”
-
-“Yes, sah!” He lifted an arm and pointed.
-
-The upper part of the illuminated rim of the giant wheel, a hundred feet
-higher than any other wheel in the world, could be seen over the roofs
-of the lofty white buildings in the Central Way. At this moment a
-rushing, roaring noise was heard to the east, and simultaneously the
-lights of the giant wheel were extinguished. Carpentaria glanced round.
-A rocket burst with a faint reverberation in the sky, a little colony of
-crimson stars floated for a few seconds amid the clouds--some stars
-had the shape of the letter I and others of the letter C--and then
-they expired, and the sky was black again. Cheers greeted the ingenious
-signal for the commencement of the first pyrotechnic display of the
-City of Pleasure, and a small crowd, which was beginning to form in the
-neighbourhood of the Soudanese, frittered itself suddenly away in a rush
-towards the Embankment. The fireworks were discharged from a plot of
-ground on the other side of the river--a plot specially leased for that
-sole purpose.
-
-“I’ll come with you,” said Carpentaria to the Soudanese. He had decided
-that an interview with Ilam could not do any harm, and there was always
-the chance that it might in some way prove decisive. As for Mr. Jetsam,
-he would deal with Mr. Jetsam later. Possibly Ilam might have determined
-to make a general confession to him.
-
-And he had his revolver.
-
-The Soudanese walked quickly, and he was several inches taller than
-Carpentaria. In something less than five minutes they had arrived at the
-entrance to the Amusements Park, which was closing for the night.
-
-“Where is Mr. Ilam?” Carpentaria asked again.
-
-The Soudanese smiled.
-
-They stood at the foot of the giant wheel, all of whose sixty cars were
-in darkness save one, and this car was at the bottom, and its door was
-open. Near the door stood a single official in the uniform of the City.
-
-Carpentaria began to be puzzled.
-
-“Mr. Ilam at the top?” he asked the official.
-
-“I think so, sir,” said the official, after hesitating.
-
-Carpentaria went into the car. The Soudanese shut the sliding door,
-remaining himself outside. The official blew a whistle, and the giant
-wheel began slowly to revolve with a terrific vibration and straining
-of chains and rods. The car was designed to hold sixty people--when the
-giant wheel was in full work it earned a hundred and eighty pounds per
-revolution--and Carpentaria felt lonely in it. “Is this some trap?” his
-thoughts ran; and he said to himself that he didn’t care whether it was
-a trap or not. As the car rose in the sky he had a superb view of the
-fireworks, which were now in full career--an immense and glittering
-tapestry of changing coloured flame, reflected hue for hue and tint
-for tint on the calm surface of the Thames beneath. And high above the
-pyrotechnics lightning was beginning to play. The day had been hot, even
-close, and it had been a pleasing surprise to the money-takers of the
-City that rain had not fallen.
-
-At last the wheel shuddered, shook, and stopped. The car was at the
-summit, three hundred and forty feet above the level of the earth. A
-figure appeared on the flying platform outside the car. The door was
-opened, and Ilam entered.
-
-“What’s the meaning of this?” Carpentaria demanded of him, standing up
-suddenly, and instinctively feeling the handle of his revolver with his
-right hand.
-
-“It means that I wish to talk to you in private,” answered Ham,
-emphasizing the last two words; “and there seems to me to be no place
-particularly private down below now,” he added.
-
-“What do you infer?”
-
-“Perhaps I don’t quite know what I infer,” said Ilam. “All I can tell
-you is that this City has been getting rather peculiar this last day or
-two.”
-
-“It has,” Carpentaria agreed pointedly.
-
-“And as you went to the trouble of taking me up in that thing”--he
-indicated overhead, where the captive balloon was darting a searchlight
-to and fro across the expanse of the grounds--“I thought I’d go to the
-trouble of bringing you up here. It’s safer.”
-
-Carpentaria noticed how pale the man was, how changed his visage, and
-how nervous his demeanour.
-
-“I hope it is,” said Carpentaria. “What do you want?”
-
-“Let’s sit down,” replied Ilam, clearing his throat, and they sat down
-on opposite sides of the car. “I’ll explain what I want in three words.
-How much will you take to clear out? I’m a plain man--how much will you
-take to clear out?”
-
-“Clear out of the City? I won’t take anything,” said Carpentaria.
-“All the gold of all the Rockefellers won’t clear me out. I’ve got the
-largest audience for my band that any bandmaster ever had, and I like
-it. It’s worth more than money to----”
-
-“Is it worth more than life to you?” asked the heavy President,
-gloomily.
-
-“No; but I reckon I can keep my life and my audience, too,” said
-Carpentaria. “At any rate, you’ve tried to have my life twice and
-failed, and that hasn’t frightened me. I’m less frightened than you are,
-even.”
-
-“I’ve not tried to kill you,” said Ilam.
-
-“You’ve tried to shoot me and to poison me. Why, I cannot imagine.”
-
-“I’ve not,” repeated Ilam.’
-
-And, in spite of himself, Carpentaria was impressed by the apparent
-truthfulness of Ilam’s tone.
-
-“Then who has?”
-
-“I’ve no idea,” said Ilam lamely. “I don’t know what you mean, what you
-are referring to. But I’ll give you fifty thousand a year for ten years
-to go--to go.”
-
-“No,” said Carpentaria. “I’m here. I stay.”
-
-“Then, you’ll take the consequences.”
-
-“I always take the consequences. But what consequences, my friend?”
-
-“Well,” Ilam coughed, “you say there have been attempts on your life.
-Suppose they are continued? What then? I should like to save you. And
-perhaps I can only save you by persuading you to vanish.”
-
-“Awfully good of you,” Carpentaria sneered. “But I assure you that these
-attempts on my life interest me enormously. I wouldn’t miss them for
-a fortune. I’m beginning rather to like them. One gets used to an
-atmosphere of mystery. No, Mr. President, I shall not go; but Juliette
-will go. I shall send Juliette away to-morrow.”
-
-Ilam bit his lip.
-
-“That remains to be seen,” said he. “She likes me. I should make her a
-good husband. Why do you object to me?”
-
-“Why do you court her in the dark? Why do you force her to have secrets
-from me?”
-
-“That’s neither here nor there,” said Ilam. “I should make her a good
-husband.”
-
-“But what sort of a mother-in-law would she have if she married you?”
- demanded Carpentaria.
-
-Ilam made no reply.
-
-“And,” continued Carpentaria, “I don’t think it’s a good thing for a
-woman to have a husband who is always seeing ghosts.”
-
-“Seeing ghosts?”
-
-“Don’t you see ghosts?” sneered Carpentaria. “N--no.”
-
-“Come down with me, and I’ll show you one, then,” said the bandmaster.
-
-He had conceived the idea of confronting Ilam with Mr. Jetsam.
-
-The shifting searchlight from the balloon fell dazzlingly across the
-car, and through the window Carpentaria saw plainly for the fraction of
-a second the polished face of the Soudanese. Then it disappeared.
-
-He rushed to the door, flung it open, and gazed downwards into the
-weblike tracery of the steel-work which shone dully in the white glare
-of the searchlight. A zigzag stairway, incomparably slender, stretched
-away towards earth along the face of the colossal wheel, and a dark
-figure slipped rapidly from rung to rung of the dizzy ladder. Then the
-light moved capriciously away, and all was indistinguishable blackness.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII--Performances of Mr. Jetsam
-
-Carpentaria slipped back into the car with a shiver, as it occurred
-to him that Ilam, had he so chosen, might have pushed him into three
-hundred and forty perpendicular feet of space. But Ilam had not moved.
-
-“I’ve had enough,” said Carpentaria. “We’ll descend. Ring the bell.”
-
-“No,” said Ilam. “I want to----”
-
-“We’ll descend,” Carpentaria insisted.
-
-“It’s about Juliette,” pleaded Ilam.
-
-“We’ll descend,” said Carpentaria a third time. “Ring the bell.”
-
-He sat down, took his revolver from his pocket, and put it
-ostentatiously on his knees.
-
-Ilam sighed, and pushed the white disc that communicated with the
-engine-house, and a few moments later a vibration went through the
-wheel, and it resumed its revolution. The car came down on the side
-nearest the river, and its occupants had a superb view of the final
-items of the display of fireworks. Among them were two portraits, in
-living flame, of the twin gods of the City of Pleasure, and under each
-headpiece was the name of its subject: “Ilam,” “Carpentaria.” The cheers
-of the immense multitude greeted their ears. Then there was another
-sound, but it came from above instead of from below. Ilam shrank as if
-afraid.
-
-“You needn’t be frightened,” said Carpentaria. “It isn’t the trumpet
-of the Day of Judgment, it’s only the beginning of a thunderstorm. It’s
-just come in nice time to soak everybody through on their way home.”
-
-Rain spattered viciously on the windows.
-
-When they reached the ground a strange sight met their eyes--the sight
-of seas and oceans of black, shining umbrellas, surging in waves from
-all directions towards the Central Way and the exits from the City, and
-as the umbrellas reached the covered footpaths of the Central Way they
-collapsed and showed human beings. And then, at all the exits from the
-City, all these umbrellas--and it was estimated that there were over
-a quarter of a million of them--sprang again into life, and hid their
-owners. The tempest was already at its height.
-
-“Come with me,” said Carpentaria, as Ilam sought to leave him, when they
-quitted the Amusements Park.
-
-“No,” said Ilam flatly.
-
-They stood side by side in the open, heedless of the rain, while shelter
-in the shape of the sidewalks of the Central Way was within a few yards
-of them.
-
-The searchlight from the balloon still swept about the grounds, but the
-fireworks were finished.
-
-“You shall come with me and see a ghost,” insisted Carpentaria angrily
-and obstinately, “or I will make such a scandal in this place as will go
-far to ruin it. Let me tell you that I know a great deal more than you
-think. I am in a position, for example, to ask you, Ilam, whether
-you spend your nights in bed or wandering about the grounds carrying
-mysterious burdens.”
-
-A group of visitors hurried past them.
-
-“What do you mean?” muttered Ilam. “I--you must be going off your head.”
-
-“Doubtless I’m a madman, eh? Well, come along with the madman.”
-
-Ilam sighed. They passed into the Central Way, and had to fight for
-progress against the multitudes that crowded the footpaths. No one
-recognized them.
-
-“I wish we could understand each other,” said Ilam.
-
-“We shall, rest assured of that,” returned Carpentaria. “In quite a few
-minutes we shall understand each other, or I am mistaken, and it may be
-you that will have to leave this City--and with considerably less than
-fifty thousand a year, my friend.” He pictured the moment when he should
-confront Ilam with the man whose corpse Ilam had buried. Vistas opened
-out before him. He saw the tables completely turned; he saw himself sole
-master of the City, and the wielder of such power over Ilam as would
-enforce obedience to his wishes. Then there would be no more insulting
-requests to abandon his music, no more ridiculous suggestions, and no
-fear of foolishness on the part of Juliette. It astonished him that he
-had not realized before the enormous latent power which his knowledge of
-Saturday night gave him over Ilam.
-
-“You will come with me to my house,” he said.
-
-“Who is there?” asked Ilam wearily.
-
-“Dr. Rivers--and the ghost.”
-
-“What is all this nonsense about a ghost?”
-
-“You shall see him first, and then, when you have seen him--before he
-has seen you--you shall tell me whether or not you would like to have a
-chat with him. It is a ghost warranted to talk.”
-
-Ilam said nothing. He was naturally at a complete loss.
-
-They entered the bungalow by means of Carpentaria’s latchkey, and they
-mounted to the first-floor, and they went into the study. The door of
-the bedroom was shut. Carpentaria led Ilam out on to the balcony of the
-study window, from which it was not difficult, even for Ilam, to climb
-into the balcony of the bedroom.
-
-“Now, you shall look into my bedroom,” said Carpentaria.
-
-And he himself looked first. It may be said that he was astounded.
-
-The room was lighted. There were no signs of Mr. Jetsam, but two chairs
-had been overturned, and young Rivers lay prone on the floor, his eyes
-shut, and some blood flowing from a wound in his forehead.
-
-Carpentaria sprang into the room, and, strange to say, Ilam followed
-him. The fact was that Ilam did really for the moment believe
-Carpentaria to be mad, and the bedroom to be the scene of some maniacal
-crime. .
-
-Just then Rivers came to his senses.
-
-“That you, Mr. Carpentaria?” he murmured, rubbing his eyes.
-
-“Yes. What’s happened? Where’s Jetsam, as he calls himself? You’re not
-seriously hurt, are you?”
-
-At the name of Jetsam, Ilam caught his breath and took hold of a
-bedpost.
-
-“Jetsam?” he repeated.
-
-“You evidently recognize the name of my ghost,” said Carpentaria,
-“though he isn’t here.”
-
-“He bashed me on the head with a chair,” said the doctor, sitting up and
-putting a handkerchief to his head, “and I suppose I must have---- It
-can’t be more than a minute or two since----”
-
-“But what was he doing? Where’s he gone?” inquired Carpentaria
-impatiently.
-
-“He recovered consciousness quite quickly,” answered Rivers, “and I gave
-him something to drink; then he asked me about Mrs. Ilam, and I told him
-she lived with Mr. Ilam here, and he grew very excited, and said he must
-go to her at once. I said he couldn’t; I said you wouldn’t allow that,
-and he pretended to agree; but it was only a pretence. He began to talk
-about other things, and then, all of a sudden, he sprang at me, and
-that’s as much as I remember.”
-
-Without a word Carpentaria ran out downstairs and into the avenue.
-The door of Ilam’s house stood wide open. He entered. In the hall he
-perceived that the door of the drawing-room was also wide open, and he
-entered the drawing-room..There was no light in the room save that of a
-match, and the match was held by Mr. Jetsam. Mr. Jetsam stood staring at
-Mrs. Ilam, and Mrs. Ilam sat motionless in her chair, apparently trying
-to articulate and not succeeding. An appalling fear shone in her eyes.
-No sound could be heard except the rattling of the rain on the French
-window.
-
-Mr. Jetsam turned, and in the same second he dropped the match. The room
-was in darkness. Then followed a crash of glass and splintering of
-wood, and then a heavy fall in the apartment itself. With some trouble,
-Carpentaria found the electric switch and turned on the light. Mrs.
-Ilam’s lips were still trembling in a vain effort to speak. Her son
-lay stretched and whimpering at her feet. Mr. Jetsam had vanished. The
-window was in ruins.
-
-Dr. Rivers appeared. He had bandaged his forehead.
-
-“She is paralysed!” said the doctor, when he had examined Mrs. Ilam.
-“She will never again have the use of her limbs or her organs of speech.
-She will be able to see and to hear, that’s all.”
-
-
-
-
-PART II--THE TWINS
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV--Entry of the Twins
-
-It is a singular fact that the secondary stage of the drama which I am
-relating was tremendously, vitally, influenced by the marriage of Mr.
-Luke Shooter, junior partner in Shooter’s, a firm of wholesale ribbon
-merchants in Cannon Street. Luke Shooter did not know it. Luke Shooter
-had nothing whatever to do with the drama; it is very, probable that he
-never even heard of it, except such trifling fragments as got into the
-newspapers. Nevertheless, by the mere fact of marrying, Luke Shooter
-unconsciously changed the course of events in the City of Pleasure. For
-he was a man of broad views, and he liked people to think well of him,
-and so it occurred that, at his suggestion, the multitudinous staff of
-Shooter’s was given a complete holiday on the day of his marriage, and
-that day happened to be Tuesday, May 4.
-
-So much for Mr. Luke Shooter.
-
-Many of the employés spent the latter half of the day in the City of
-Pleasure, which was now the rage, the craze, and the vogue of London,
-and among these were the twin sisters, Pauline and Rosie Dartmouth.
-Pauline and Rosie were typists in the house of Shooters. Their age was
-twenty-six. They were tall, and rather slim; only Rosie, the younger,
-was not quite so slim as Pauline. Pauline was dark; Rosie was inclined
-to fairness. In the partnership between them Pauline supplied the common
-sense, while Rosie supplied the gaiety; each supplied a considerable
-amount of beauty and charm, and a sum of thirty-five shillings a week.
-It is obvious that on a total income of three pounds ten a week, or a
-hundred and eighty-two pounds a year, two girls living together in a
-small flat, with sense and gaiety and full opportunity for acquiring
-ribbons at wholesale prices, may have a very good time and cut quite
-a pretty figure in the world. And this Pauline and Rosie certainly did
-manage to do.
-
-They were orphans, and had been for a very long time.
-
-They came to the City by the Tube from their flat in Shepherd’s Bush,
-and Pauline put a florin down for the two of them at the northern
-entrance gates, just as though they had been ordinary visitors; as, in
-fact, at that moment they were. A few persons noticed them, but quite
-casually, and only because they were dressed--and well dressed--almost
-exactly alike. There are so many beautiful young women in London
-that Londoners seldom turn their heads to look at one. It is left to
-Frenchmen to rave about the blond charm of the Anglo-Saxon “mees.” What
-exuberant adjectives the Frenchman would find to express his delight
-if he penetrated further north, into Staffordshire, Lancashire, and
-Yorkshire, where ugly faces and bad complexions are practically unknown,
-it is impossible to guess.
-
-The City of Pleasure met with the entire approval of Pauline and Rosie.
-As soon as they found themselves in the Central Way they began to get
-enthusiastic. The sun was shining, the flags were flying, the cable-cars
-were gliding, and thousands and thousands of visitors made gay the
-City. They had never before seen anything like the Central Way, with its
-colonnades, and its shops, and its coloured throngs, and its soaring,
-gleaming, white architecture.
-
-“It’s just as good as being abroad, isn’t it?” said Rosie.
-
-“Better,” said Pauline.
-
-But then they had never been beyond Boulogne.
-
-They stopped at shop windows, as much to regard jewellery and
-knick-knacks, as to observe whether their frocks and chiffons and hats
-were in that immaculate order which a sunny day and the presence of
-one’s fellow-creatures demand. It may be mentioned here that their
-dresses were of dark blue, with blue belts, bunchy knots of white
-muslin at the throat, white gloves, brown glacé kid boots, and large
-blue-and-black picture hats. It was plain, but it was perfect, and they
-knew it was perfect. The consciousness of perfection enabled them to
-sustain the judicial gaze of other women, and the passing glance of
-innumerable young men, with a supercilious stare. In truth they were
-secretly wild with the joy of life, and the attractiveness of the City,
-and the sensations of their holiday, but they did not show it. Oh, no!
-They did not show it. They were prim to the most advanced degree, as
-became them.
-
-“I should just love to go on one of those dear little cable-cars!”
- exclaimed Rosie.
-
-“Well, let’s,” Pauline agreed.
-
-“Aren’t they delicious?” said Rosie.
-
-And only in the girlish hop, skip, and jump, which landed them
-gracefully on a car, was there a hint of the pent-up vivacity which
-surged in their veins--a hint that vanished as rapidly as it had showed
-itself. As Rosie smoothed out her skirt, and as Pauline opened the purse
-in her gloved hand to give two pence to the conductor, they had the
-utter demureness of duchesses.
-
-The car was open to the sky, with crosswise seats, and, as it sailed
-rapidly down the Central Way, constantly passing other cars coming
-in the opposite direction, and passing fountains and flower-beds
-and elephants and camels, and all the strange world of the City, the
-pleasure became rather too keen for Rosie’s mercurial heart. She took
-Pauline’s hand and pressed it, sitting a little bit closer to her.
-
-“Suppose we meet him?” she whispered.
-
-“What? In this crowd? Never! Besides, he isn’t likely to be outside,”
- said Pauline.
-
-She was only a few minutes older than Rosie, but she could not have
-played the elder sister more completely had she been ten years older.
-
-“We might meet _her_, anyway!” murmured Rosie.
-
-“Nonsense, Rosie. You don’t imagine she’ll be here, do you?”
-
-“I don’t know,” said Rosie, lifting her chin. “But suppose we do meet
-him, or either of them.”
-
-“Well, then,” said Pauline wisely, “we meet them, that’s all.”
-
-“Shall you speak to them?” Rosie asked; “I shan’t.”
-
-“We’ll think about that when we see them,” said Pauline.
-
-“Oh!” cried Rosie.
-
-This exclamation had nothing to do with the foregoing chatter. It merely
-expressed some part of Rosie’s joy when the car came to the magnificent
-circular place half-way down the Central Way, with the façade of the
-Exposition Palace on the right, the stately entrance to the Oriental
-Gardens on the left, and the superb vista of the thoroughfare before and
-behind.
-
-“Oh!” cried Rosie again, for quite a different reason.
-
-Already she had forgotten the architectural and other beauties of this
-scene, and was eagerly directing Pauline’s attention to a tall man with
-vivid hair and an individual style, who had just crossed the rails in
-front of the car and was proceeding towards the Oriental Gardens.
-
-“There!” said Rosie, pointing frantically, yet primly. “Don’t you see
-him?”
-
-“Who? That man with the red hair?”
-
-“Yes; it’s Carpentaria, isn’t it?”
-
-“So it is, I do declare!” agreed Pauline, frankly as interested as her
-sister.
-
-It was.
-
-“Oh!” breathed Rosie regretfully, as the car swept them further from the
-figure of the popular hero. “Doesn’t he look lovely? He’s just like his
-portraits, only nicer, isn’t he?”
-
-“I--I couldn’t see him very well,” said the discreet Pauline.
-
-“Yes, you could,” Rosie corrected her sharply. “You know you adore him.
-But you’re always so mum.”
-
-Pauline smiled placidly.
-
-“I do wish we could meet him--be introduced to him I mean!” said Rosie.
-
-“My dear child,” Pauline reprimanded. “Don’t be silly. He’s frightfully
-rich.”
-
-“I know!” said Rosie sadly. “But he isn’t married. I think his hair’s
-beautiful.”
-
-In common with very many English and other girls, Rosie and Pauline were
-capable of displaying brazenly, for a man they had scarcely seen, an
-affection the tenth part of which certain males with whom they were
-intimately acquainted would have been delighted to receive. Their virgin
-hearts had never been touched, not even by the Apollos of the house of
-Shooter; they prided themselves on their unapproachableness; yet they
-could rave about Carpentaria, and openly profess that they were his
-slaves. In Carpentaria’s presence they would doubtless have behaved,
-even if they did not feel, differently.
-
-The car whirled them to the other end of the City, and they began
-systematically to do everything and to see everything that could be done
-and seen, from the captive balloon (not that they did that--they were
-content to see it) to the Soudanese native village, from the circus to
-the exhibition relating to Woman, from the cricket field to the Freak
-Show, and from the Art Galleries to the ladies’ afternoon-tea café. They
-were in the ladies’ afternoon-tea café and paying for two pots of tea,
-seven cakes, and an extra cream, just as the clock struck five. It then
-occurred to them that a concert of military music began at precisely
-five o’clock in the Oriental Gardens, and they decided to go and listen
-to it, even though, sad to say, Carpentaria never conducted in person
-till the evening.
-
-They crossed the Central Way, and were strolling along the avenue to the
-Gardens, when Pauline stopped.
-
-“Well, I never!” she exclaimed.
-
-“What is it?”
-
-Coming down the steps of Ilam’s bungalow was the great Ilam himself, and
-it was to Ilam she pointed.
-
-“What shall we do?” whispered Rosie. “He’s lots older, isn’t he?... And
-you said we shouldn’t meet him!”
-
-They walked on, irresolute and blushing, and just as they arrived
-opposite Ilam’s gate, with their eyes gazing studiously straight in
-front of them, Ilam called out:
-
-“Hi, there! Young ladies!”
-
-Now, the avenue was generously sprinkled with people, but Pauline and
-Rosie happened to be the only young ladies within hail, and to have
-ignored such a loud and unmistakable appeal as Ilam’s would have drawn
-down upon them more public attention than they desired. They therefore
-stopped, still blushing, but delightfully blushing, and smiling with
-that innate kindliness of heart which distinguished both of them. Rosie
-spoke first. She was a woman, and had positively stated that under the
-circumstances she should not speak. Hence, naturally, she spoke first.
-
-“Good afternoon, cousin,” said she.
-
-In her manner of pronouncing that word “cousin,” a non-committal manner,
-a more-than-meets-the-eye manner, a defensive manner--in a word, a
-family manner--she indicated a whole family history. When relatives who
-are distant in more senses than one meet after a considerable period,
-that particular manner is invariably employed by the one who speaks
-first.
-
-The history of the Dartmouths and the Ilams was quite simple--indeed,
-so usual as to be hardly worthy of record. Mrs. Dartmouth, mother of
-the twins, had been an Ilam. She was the orphan child of Josephus’ dead
-uncle, and therefore niece of Josephus’ father. And before her marriage
-she was understood to have “expectations” from that mighty and opulent
-soda-water manufacturer. However, heedless of these expectations, she
-went and married beneath her--to wit, a solicitor’s clerk. The niece of
-a rich soda-water manufacturer has no business to marry a solicitor’s
-clerk. The result was a complete estrangement. Mrs. Dartmouth gave all
-the Ilams to understand that she and her husband had no need of anyone’s
-money--that, in fact, they scorned the Ilam millions. Mrs. Dartmouth met
-Josephus at his father’s funeral. Ten years later Pauline and Rosie met
-Josephus at Mrs. Dartmouth’s funeral. They shook hands formally, and
-made it clear to Josephus that they would stoop to accept no gift from
-him, who had scorned their mother, even should he offer it.
-
-That was seven years ago, and Pauline and Rosie were now absolutely
-alone in the world, and, moreover, age had taught them tolerance, and
-their curiosity had been extremely excited by the news of their cousin’s
-partnership with the world-renowned Carpentaria, and the subsequent
-birth of the City of Pleasure. So that, in spite of anything they might
-have previously said to each other, they were rather pleased to meet
-their solemn cousin, who, after all, was a millionaire, and who really
-seemed less aloof and stiff than he appeared at funerals.
-
-“So you were going to cut me?” said Ilam, trying to smile.
-
-“No, cousin,” said Pauline. “How are you? You don’t look very well.”
-
-They shook hands over the gate.
-
-“I’m not,” said Ilam.
-
-“And Mrs. Ilam. She keeps pretty well, I hope,” put in Rosie decorously.
-
-“That’s just it. She doesn’t. She’s---- Won’t you come in?”
-
-And he opened the gate.
-
-“Do you live here?” cried Rosie. “Fancy living in the middle of
-this place! How jolly! And what a jolly house! Oh! what a delicious
-notion--living in the show!”
-
-And they disappeared into the bungalow.
-
-The historic family coolness looked as if it was going to warm itself
-into a sort of pleasant acquaintanceship.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV--Proposal of Josephus
-
-Yes, Ilam was saying when they came downstairs, “she has been like that
-since last night, and the doctors--I have had two--assure me that at her
-age no recovery is possible. She can take liquid food, and she can move
-her eyes slightly--you noticed how her eyes turn?--but otherwise she is
-incapable of movement, and, of course, she can’t articulate.”
-
-He had taken his young relatives upstairs to see his mother, and the
-picture of her, lying almost in the attitude of a corpse on the bed,
-with a uniformed nurse sitting motionless beside her, had made a deep
-impression on Pauline and Rosie. In fact, the whole house saddened
-them. It was spacious and luxurious, but it was far from reaching that
-standard of splendour which one might reasonably expect from the Ilam
-wealth. Ilam did not look like a wealthy man. He did not talk like a
-wealthy man, and both girls began to perceive, dimly, that wealth is
-useless to those who have not sufficient imagination to employ it.
-Certainly the City of Pleasure was an expression of the Ilam riches, but
-they knew, as all the world knew, that the imagination which had brought
-into being the City of Pleasure was Carpentaria’s. Hence, they felt
-sorry for Josephus Ilam, partly because of the calamity to his mother,
-and partly because of his forlorn and anxious air; they thought he
-wanted looking after, and that this heavy pompous man was greatly to be
-pitied, despite his opulence.
-
-“You haven’t told us how it happened, what caused it?” said Pauline
-sympathetically.
-
-“Oh!” said Ilam, “as to that, who can tell? Probably some fright, some
-shock. But we can’t say. She was alone when it happened. And as she
-can’t speak--can’t write--can’t---- Well, you see how it is.”
-
-“We are sorry for you,” murmured Rosie.
-
-“And here I am, alone as it were,” Ilam continued. “What am I to do?
-What can a man do by himself? I’ve got a nurse. I can get fifty nurses,
-if necessary. And there are the servants. But what are nurses and
-servants? You understand my position, don’t you?”
-
-“Yes, quite,” said Pauline.
-
-They were partaking of a second tea in the Ilam drawing-room. The
-appetite of Rosie for cakes seemed unimpaired, though she did her
-best to hide it, and to pretend that she was only eating cakes out of
-politeness.
-
-Ilam swallowed his tea in great gulps.
-
-“I’m utterly unnerved,” he said.
-
-“You must be,” said Rosie kindly.
-
-“There’s a vast amount of superintendence to do in the City, as you may
-guess. But what am I fit for, with my poor old mother lying up
-there? You can’t fancy what she was to me. I depended on her for
-everything--everything.”
-
-And then tears showed themselves in the little eyes of Josephus Ilam.
-The appearance of those tears in the eyes of a great strong man made
-Rosie feel very uncomfortable, so much so, that she was obliged to look
-out of the window.
-
-“I wish we could help you,” said Pauline, after a pause.
-
-“We’d do anything we could,” said Rosie.
-
-Ilam glanced up.
-
-“You can do everything,” he said. “I hesitated to ask you, but since
-you’ve mentioned it yourselves... and I’ll make it worth your while.
-Rely on that.”
-
-“But what?” demanded Pauline, startled, while Rosie put down a fresh
-piece of cake which she had just taken.
-
-“Come and live here,” said Ilam bluntly.
-
-“Both of us?”
-
-“Both of you.”
-
-“We couldn’t do that, really,” said Pauline.
-
-“No, of course not. But wouldn’t it be lovely?” added Rosie.
-
-“Why couldn’t you?” asked Ilam. “You are your own mistresses, aren’t
-you? What is there to prevent you?”
-
-“Well, you see,” said Pauline judicially, “we have our living to get,
-and then there’s our flat, and----”
-
-“I don’t know how much you earn,” Ilam cried. “But I’ll cheerfully
-undertake to give you treble, whatever it is.”
-
-“That would be five hundred and forty-six pounds a year, then,” said
-Rosie, who was specially good at arithmetic.
-
-“Let us say six hundred,” Ilam amended the figure with a tremendously
-casual air.
-
-The girls felt that, after all, perhaps he resembled a millionaire more
-than they had at first thought.
-
-“Come, now,” Ilam urged. “Say yes. It’s an idea that came to me all of
-a sudden, while I was talking to you. But it’s an idea that gets better
-and better the more I think about it.”
-
-“But we couldn’t give up our situations,” objected Pauline.
-
-“Why not?” Ilam asked.
-
-“I don’t know,” Pauline stammered. “It seems so queer. It’s so sudden.
-What would our duties be here?”
-
-“Your duties would be to act as mistresses of this house, and to look
-after my poor mother. Of course, there’d be a nurse as well. I don’t
-know how many servants there are--five or six.”
-
-“And we should have to manage everything?” said Pauline.
-
-“Everything domestic. Come, you agree?”
-
-“But suppose,” interpolated Rosie--“suppose we--you--we didn’t suit
-you?”
-
-What she meant was “Suppose you didn’t suit us?”
-
-“Come a month on trial,” said Ilam. “At the end of that time, if you
-want to leave, I’ll guarantee you a situation quite as good as you’re
-leaving. I can’t say fairer than that, can I?”
-
-There was a pause; the twins looked at each other.
-
-“Just think how I’m fixed!” pleaded Ilam.
-
-“What do you say, Rosie?” Pauline asked primly of her sister.
-
-“Well,” answered Rosie, “as cousin is in such a dilemma, and poor Mrs.
-Ilam so--so ill, perhaps----”
-
-“Good!” exclaimed Ilam; “you agree. Good! I’m very much obliged to you.
-You’re two really nice girls, and I can assure you you’ll have a free
-hand here.”
-
-“You decide for us,” said Pauline, smiling and reddening under Ilam’s
-appreciation.
-
-“We’ll begin at once, eh?” said Ilam. “Tonight.”
-
-“Oh, that’s quite out of the question,” objected Rosie. “We shall be
-obliged to give a month’s notice at Shooter’s.”
-
-“Nonsense!” said Ilam. “I’ll send ‘em a cheque for a month’s salary
-instead; then they can’t grumble.”
-
-“But to-morrow? How will they manage without us?” persisted Rosie.
-
-Ilam laughed--and it was not often that Ilam laughed. Either the humour
-of the thing must have appealed to him very strongly, or it was a
-symptom that his spirits had mightily improved.
-
-“They’ll manage without you,” he said.
-
-“It’s true they can get substitutes from the Typewriting Exchange,” said
-Pauline.
-
-Thus, it was arranged that Pauline and Rosie should take one of the City
-automobiles to their flat, and return with trunks and boxes during
-the evening. Before leaving the bungalow Pauline wrote to Shooter’s
-informing them of the blow that had fallen on Shooter’s, and Ilam filled
-in a cheque, and Rosie put it in the envelope and fastened the envelope.
-The automobile, ordered by telephone, came round to the door.
-
-“You’ll introduce us to Mr. Carpentaria, won’t you?” said Rosie
-smilingly, as she was getting into the carriage.
-
-Ilam frowned, and then cleared his face.
-
-“Do you want to know him?” he asked.
-
-“Why, of course!”
-
-“Very well, I suppose you must,” Ilam agreed.
-
-“Well, isn’t this the greatest fun?” Rosie whispered to Pauline when
-they drove off. “We can go where we like in the City. We can save at
-least five hundred a year, and perhaps we shall be his heiresses.”
-
-“Hush!” Pauline admonished her.
-
-And three hours later those two extremely practical twins were
-thoroughly installed in the Ilam bungalow. They had the air of
-having lived there all their lives as they chatted with Ilam in the
-drawing-room. Ilam himself was decidedly looking a little better.
-
-“I have been talking to nurse,” said Pauline importantly, “and I shall
-sleep on the couch in Mrs. Ham’s room to-night. Nurse needs rest. She
-says there is nothing to do, but some one should be there.”
-
-“I don’t want you to begin by tiring yourselves,” said Ilam, “but, of
-course----”
-
-They heard a violent ring at the front-door, and presently a servant
-entered. Ilam started.
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria,” said the servant.
-
-Ilam turned pale.
-
-“Show him in,” said Rosie calmly to the servant.
-
-“Yes, Miss Rose,” said the servant, who, in common with the other
-servants, had already been clearly informed of the names, position, and
-authority of the new-comers.
-
-“You are to introduce him to us, you know,” Rosie murmured sweetly to
-Ilam, “and I suppose we shall have to play hostesses now.”
-
-Carpentaria came in, evidently hot from his concert.
-
-“I say, Ilam----” he began.
-
-Then he perceived the twins, and Ilam clumsily performed the
-introductions. The girls were enchanted with his uniform and with him.
-He said little, and he was pale, but then he was so distinguished; all
-his movements were distinguished and magnificent.
-
-“We saw you this afternoon,” Rosie ventured timidly.
-
-“And I didn’t see you! The loss was mine,” he returned, gazing at
-Pauline.
-
-Ilam had sunk back heavily into a chair. Carpentaria caught sight of his
-face, and an awkward silence followed.
-
-“I came on a matter of business,” Carpentaria said to Ilam, “but I won’t
-trouble you now, it will do to-morrow. Good-night.”
-
-“We shall hope to see more of you,” said Rosie when Carpentaria had
-demonstrated that he really meant to go.
-
-“Yes indeed,” said Pauline very quietly, and the visitor bowed.
-
-And then Carpentaria, that glorious vision, had vanished.
-
-“Cousin’s nerves are simply all to pieces,” commented Rosie, as the
-girls were going upstairs; “even a casual visitor upsets him. Did you
-notice his face as soon as the bell rang?”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI--The Box
-
-Pauline had put the book down on the bed, and was bending over the fire
-pulling the coals together with the poker. She performed this homely,
-natural, everyday action more to reassure herself, to convince herself
-that she was in an everyday world, than because the fire needed
-attention. For the strange mystery of the speechless creature on the
-bed, helpless as though bound with chains and gagged by the devices of
-tortures, had seized and terrified her. She held the poker in the
-air and listened. Not a sound save the ticking of the clock on the
-mantelpiece! From all the sleeping house, not a sound. She might have
-been alone with the living corpse in the house, and yet she knew that
-Rosie, and Josephus Ilam, and the nurse, and the halfdozen servants,
-were in various rooms of it, perhaps sleeping, perhaps trying to sleep.
-
-There was a sudden sharp noise behind her, near the bed.
-
-She started violently and glanced round in fear. It was merely the
-book--the harmless and amusing “The Lady or the Tiger?”--which had
-slipped from the bed to the floor. Yet how could it have slipped? Had
-the paralytic, who was incapable of the slightest movement, after all
-twitched a limb and so shaken the book off the bed? Absurd. She had
-merely placed the book too close to the edge of the bed; that was all.
-Nothing more natural, nothing more probable. Her nervous fright was
-grotesque.
-
-She rose, picked up the book, and looked again at her charge. The
-burning, blazing eyes were still dropping tears, and the tears ran in a
-deep furrow down either cheek. Softly Pauline wiped them away, her own
-eyes moist. The tragedy of the life’s end of this old, old woman, whom
-every one had regarded as fierce and formidable, rendered helpless in
-a moment by no one knew what horrible visitation, chilled her heart’s
-core.
-
-“What can she want? What is troubling her?” thought Pauline frenziedly.
-
-And then she imagined that perhaps she had mistaken all the symptoms of
-those eyes, and that Mrs. Ilam had wished her to continue to read.
-She resumed the book, and read very slowly in a fairly loud voice. And
-instantly the eyes began to blink irregularly--fast, then slow--and
-the eyeballs themselves moved slightly from side to side. Obviously the
-patient was not content.
-
-Pauline put down the book again in despair.
-
-The eyeballs still moved slightly to and fro.
-
-“She wants something in the room. What can it be?”’ said Pauline to
-herself. “It may be she is thirsty.”
-
-She went to the night-table and poured a few drops of water into the
-invalid’s cup, and brought it near Mrs. Ilam’s lips. But the eyes seemed
-to close as if in refusal, and the face, which could only wear one
-expression--that of grief--to deepen its inexpressible melancholy.
-
-And then an idea occurred to Pauline, and shone on her brow like a
-light.
-
-“Listen,” she said kindly to the aged woman. “I will ask you some
-questions. The answers will be only yes or no. If you mean ‘no’ try to
-keep your eyelids still, but if you mean ‘yes’ blink them! as much as
-you can. Do you understand?”
-
-The eyelids blinked; and then they continued their terrible entranced
-stare at a spot on the ceiling exactly above their owner’s head.
-
-“Good,” said Pauline. “Are you in pain?”
-
-No movement of the eyelids.
-
-“Are you thirsty?”
-
-A slight flickering, which the patient clearly endeavoured to suppress.
-
-“You want something?”
-
-The eyes blinked.
-
-“Is it some person?”
-
-The eyelids were steady.
-
-“Something in this room?”
-
-A violent blinking.
-
-“Is it in a drawer?”
-
-The eyelids were steady.
-
-“Then I can see it as I stand here?”
-
-The eyes blinked again. Pauline set the cup down on the night-table, and
-gazed round the room. She went to the mantelpiece, and gave a list
-of the things on it: candlestick, clock, matches, vases, keys,
-medicine-bottle, a piece of crochet work, a long knitting-needle, a
-picture post-card. There was no response from the invalid.
-
-“How foolish I am!” murmured Pauline. “She cannot possibly want any of
-these things.” Then she saw a few old letters half-hidden behind the
-clock. “Is it there?” she asked, holding the letters near to Mrs. Ilam.
-
-But there was still no response. She put back the letters and went to
-the ottoman, on which was a large family Bible. But it was not the Bible
-that Mrs. Ilam wanted, nor a spectacle case that lay on the Bible. Then
-Pauline catalogued one by one the contents of the dressing-table, and
-then the contents of the washstand, still with no result. At last, she
-came to a chest of drawers, covered with a piece of white crewelwork,
-and bearing some wax flowers, two small vases, a black lacquered box,
-sundry folded linen, several books, and a few faded photographs. She
-described the photographs and the linen and the books, as these seemed
-to be the most likely objects, and then she came to the lacquered box.
-And suddenly, the eyes began to blink furiously.
-
-“You want this box?”
-
-The eyes continued to blink.
-
-She brought it to the bed: It was about eight inches square and three
-inches in depth, and beautifully inlaid with mother-of-pearl in a
-design to resemble a bunch of roses--just such a little cabinet as our
-grandmothers valued, such as was scorned as being Early Victorian during
-the aesthetic movement of the eighties and nineties, but such as we
-ourselves are beginning to recognize as beautiful. It had prominent
-brass hinges, and a keyhole, and it was locked.
-
-“Do you want me to open it? It’s locked.”
-
-The eyes were moderately still.
-
-“Then you wish it put somewhere else?”
-
-They blinked.
-
-“In a drawer?”
-
-No response.
-
-“On the dressing-table?”
-
-No response.
-
-“Near you?”
-
-The eyes blinked,
-
-“On the bed?”
-
-No response.
-
-“Under the bed?”
-
-No response.
-
-Pauline was at a loss.
-
-“Under your pillow?” she hazarded at length.
-
-The eyelids moved up and down, if not with joy, at any rate with
-satisfaction.
-
-And very carefully Pauline raised the pillow, and
-
-Mrs. Ilam’s head, and slipped the box underneath both the pillow and the
-bolster.
-
-“There; is that right?”
-
-The tragic eyes blinked, and a slight sigh emanated weakly from between
-those thin pale lips. But, slight as it was, it seemed to have come from
-the innermost depths of the stricken woman’s being. It might have been a
-sigh to indicate that her last wish was realized.
-
-“I shall lie down now,” said Pauline, and turning out all the electric
-lights except the tiny table lamp on the table, she stretched herself on
-the couch which stood at the foot of the great bed, and she drew a rug
-over her and shut her eyes and told herself that she must sleep. But
-she could not sleep. Her brain was as busy as the inside of a clock and
-electric lights seemed to be burning and fizzing in it, extinguishing
-themselves and relighting themselves. What strange house had she and
-Rosie wandered into? What was the hidden secret of this paralysis, and
-of Josephus Ilam’s worn and worried mien, and of the sudden arrival and
-equally sudden departure of Carpentaria? And, above all, what was the
-meaning of the old woman’s desire for the box. What was in the box?
-
-Do not imagine that Pauline regretted having come. She did not. Except
-under the passing influences of night and of the presence of illness,
-she was not a bit superstitious; nor was Rosie. They were not afraid of
-mysteries. They were intensely practical young women, incapable of being
-frightened or repulsed by what they did not understand. And that Pauline
-was a girl entirely without the timidity of the doe, she abundantly
-proved in the next few minutes. As she lay on the couch she could see,
-without moving her head, the French window. She fancied that the heavy
-crimson curtain was somewhat pulled aside in one place, at a height of
-about four feet from the ground, and she fancied that she could see the
-end of a finger on the end of the curtain. “No,” she said to herself,
-“this is ridiculous. There cannot possibly be a finger there. I must not
-be silly,” and she resolutely shut her eyes. The next time she opened
-them, the fire had blazed up a little and, more than ever, the something
-on the edge of the curtain resembled a finger.
-
-Her little heart beating, but courageously, she noiselessly rose up from
-the couch and approached the window.
-
-It was the end of a finger on the edge of the curtain--a finger with
-a rounded and very white finger-nail I Moreover, the curtain trembled
-slightly, as it would do if held by some one who was endeavouring not to
-move. Pauline remembered that the French window behind the curtain had
-purposely been left slightly open, and that it gave on to a balcony, as
-most of the windows of the bungalow did.
-
-She advanced resolutely, and drew aside the curtain.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII--The Man on the Balcony
-
-A man was standing behind it. The French window had been opened at
-least eight inches, and the man stood partly in the aperture and partly
-in the room. He did not flinch. He did not even seem scared, nor yet
-disturbed. He was a middle-aged man, with grey hair, and a worn, rather
-sad face, and he wore a blue suit of clothes, which showed earth-stains
-and other evidences of an exciting and violent life. He was, in fact,
-the man whom Ilam had buried, and who described himself to Carpentaria
-as Mr. Jetsam.
-
-“What are you doing here?” demanded Pauline, in a low, brave voice.
-“What do you want?”
-
-She mastered her fear, though her heart was beating madly. She
-determined that, just as she had proved equal to difficult situations in
-the past, she would prove equal to this one.
-
-“Now that you have seen me, I want to talk to you,” replied the man.
-
-“You climbed up by the balcony, didn’t you?” she asked.
-
-“Yes,” said the intruder. “Nothing more simple. I found a ladder.”
-
-“Then you had better go as you came--and quickly!” said the girl.
-
-“And the alternative?”
-
-“Of course, I must call the master of the house. In any event I shall do
-that.”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Jetsam. “For heaven’s sake don’t call Jos.”
-
-“Jos!” repeated Pauline, astounded at this familiarity.
-
-“I said ‘Jos,’” the man insisted firmly. “What do you take me for?”
-
-“Naturally I take you for a burglar. What else should you be?”
-
-“Now, do I look like a burglar?” Mr. Jetsam asked severely. “Examine me,
-and tell me whether I look like a burglar.”
-
-“Whatever you are,” said Pauline, in a tone of decision, “I cannot
-remain talking to you like this. I am in charge of an invalid here, and
-you must go.”
-
-The man gazed at her fixedly. She thought his eyes were very sad eyes,
-and yet dignified, too. They reminded her of the eyes of Mrs. Ilam. And
-presently, when they grew moist, they reminded her even more of the eyes
-of Mrs. Ilam.
-
-“Miss Dartmouth,” said the man, “I can easily prove to you that I am not
-a burglar.”
-
-“Then you know me?”
-
-“I know of you. I know your name. I know you by sight. I know that you
-and your sister have come into this stricken and fatal house from sheer
-goodness of heart!’
-
-“Do not talk like that,” said Pauline, whom any praise, save of her
-personal appearance, made extremely uncomfortable. She endeavoured to
-make her voice cold, forbidding, and accusatory, but she could not.
-The eyes of the grey-haired man seemed to hypnotize her, to rob her of
-initiative, and of the power to decide things for herself.
-
-“I will talk in any manner you like,” returned Mr. Jetsam, “provided you
-will let me come into the room and explain to you what I want.”
-
-“Impossible,” she replied.
-
-“Why impossible? It is, on the contrary, perfectly easy,” said Mr.
-Jetsam. “All I have to do is to close the window”--and he closed it--“to
-come into the room”--and he came in--“and to ask you to be good enough
-to listen.”
-
-He put down his felt hat on a chair.
-
-He now stood within the room, a couple of feet from Pauline, in the
-direction of the bed, but with his back to it.
-
-Pauline, with a sudden sharp movement, darted to the mantelpiece, by
-the side of which was the bell-push. In the same instant he, too, darted
-forward and clutched her wrist, just as she was about to touch the bell.
-They held themselves rigid for a moment, like statues.
-
-“I understand your feelings,” said Mr. Jetsam in a shaken voice. “I
-admire you. But before you ring that bell, let me assure you most
-solemnly that if you do ring it you will bring murder into this house.
-You will utterly ruin one family, if not two. Believe what I say; you
-cannot help but believe it. A man’s character for truthfulness shows
-itself in every accent of his voice, and by this time, you must be very
-well aware that when I speak, I speak the truth.”
-
-Pauline moved from the mantelpiece and he loosed her arm.
-
-“Well?” she said interrogatively.
-
-She did not know it, but she was breathing very rapidly through her
-nose, and her charming nostrils were distended. Still, she probably
-noticed the admiration in Mr. Jetsam’s glance.
-
-“Miss Dartmouth,” he began, and then stopped.
-
-Simultaneously they both thought of the invalid stretched moveless on
-the bed, and Pauline bent over that form. The eyes blinked irregularly,
-and always they stared up at the same point of the ceiling. They were
-dry, but Pauline noticed traces of tears on the rugged cheeks, and she
-wiped them away--it was her mission.
-
-“Ah!” she murmured. “You can’t advise me what I ought to do.”
-
-And then she faced Mr. Jetsam once more, still standing by the bed.
-The table-lamp, with the crimson silk shade, and the bright fire gave
-sufficient light.
-
-“Miss Dartmouth,” Mr. Jetsam recommenced, “a great crime was committed
-long ago in the Ilam family, one of the most cruel crimes conceivable.
-It can never be atoned for in full, or nearly in full: but, even now,
-after many, many years, it can be partially atoned for.”
-
-“Who committed this crime? and what was it? Murder?” gasped Pauline in a
-breath.
-
-“I cannot be sure who committed it,” replied the man; “and it was not
-murder. It was worse than murder.”
-
-“How do you know it was worse than murder? How does it concern you?”
-
-“I was the victim,” said the man quietly. And then he raised his voice
-and repeated: “I was the victim. I am the victim.”
-
-“Hush!” she warned him. “Not so loud.”
-
-He turned to the bed with a strange expression on his face.
-
-“Why not so loud?” he demanded. “She can hear, even if we speak in a
-whisper. She has heard everything, and she can do nothing.”
-
-He spoke bitterly, and held a pointing finger at the old woman. And her
-eyes remained ever fixed, blinking irregularly, regardless of the two
-beings near her.
-
-“You are cruel,” said Pauline. “You torture her.”
-
-“Far from being cruel,” said Mr. Jetsam, “I am kind. Justice is always
-kind, for it alone produces peace, and peace alone produces happiness.”
-
-“You would not talk like that if you had ever been happy,” said Pauline.
-
-“If I have not been happy, it is because justice has been denied me. If
-this old woman and her son have never been happy it is because they have
-denied me justice. But justice may now be done, and you yourself may be
-the first instrument of it.”
-
-“Tell me how,” said Pauline.
-
-“You will be the blind instrument,” he said.
-
-“Tell me how,” Pauline repeated.
-
-“I have been watching a long time at that window,” said the man, always
-with the utmost respect--“and what I saw convinces me that you know more
-of this affair than you care to seem to know.”
-
-“What do you mean?” demanded the girl defiantly.
-
-“Well,” said Mr. Jetsam, “Mrs. Ilam cannot talk, cannot give
-instructions of any kind. Yet I saw you take a particular box from off
-the chest of drawers, and hide it under the invalid’s pillow. In order
-to hide it, you actually disturbed the invalid. You lifted her head to
-enable you to conceal the box in the bed beneath it. That is strange,
-Miss Dartmouth. But I have no desire to pry into your secrets. You are a
-friend of the family, nay more, a relative, and you had the right to do
-all that you have done. But let me tell you at once that I have come
-in search of precisely that box. I hoped to get it while everybody was
-asleep; but I was prepared for emergencies. If your cousin Ilam had
-been here in your place I should have obtained possession of it without
-asking his leave. But you--well, I humbly ask you to give it to me.”
-
-Pauline gazed at the poor organism on the bed.
-
-“Is he to have the box?” she asked. “Is he to have the box, Mrs. Ilam?”
-
-The staring, sad eyes did not move. There was not the slightest flutter
-of the lids.
-
-“Why do you put questions to her?” asked Mr. Jetsam moodily.
-
-“She means that you are not to have the box,” said Pauline, and then she
-addressed Mrs. Ilam anew. “You mean that he is to go away without the
-box?”
-
-The eyelids wavered and then blinked rapidly.
-
-“That means ‘Yes.’ You must now go--at once. I have listened to you too
-long,” said Pauline.
-
-“It is impossible that you should refuse me,” argued the man.
-“Impossible! I don’t suppose that motion of the eyelids means anything,
-but even if it did, naturally she does not want me to have the box.
-Still, I must have it. Miss Dartmouth, everything depends on my
-obtaining that box. Its contents are essential to the bringing about of
-justice. I entreat you most urgently and most solemnly to give it to me.
-You cannot doubt my sincerity.”
-
-“I will admit frankly,” answered Pauline, “that I do not doubt your
-sincerity. But, all the same, you cannot have that box--at least from my
-hands. It belongs to Mrs. Ilam; she evidently treasures it highly. I put
-it under her pillow to satisfy her. Mrs. Ilam is helpless, and I am in
-charge of her. You must go, I repeat--and at once. We have talked too
-much.”
-
-“Suppose I take it by force?” suggested the man.
-
-“You would never dare,” said Pauline angrily, and she rushed again to
-the bell. “If you attempt to take it I will ring the bell, and I will
-hold you till some one comes, even if I die for it.”
-
-“Mad creature!” he exclaimed acidly. “I could kill you. It is almost
-worth while; but I won’t. You tell me to go, and I go; but my resources
-are not yet exhausted. Good-night. I can’t leave without expressing the
-opinion that you’ve got both sense and grit, and plenty of both. But
-you’ve made a mistake to-night. Good-bye.”
-
-And while she stood with her hand on the bell-push Mr. Jetsam passed
-very calmly out of the window, and the curtain fell in front of him and
-hid him.
-
-It was the most curious adventure of Pauline’s life, which, indeed, had
-hitherto been entirely free from the unusual and the mysterious. After
-a short period of hesitation she went to the window, drew aside the
-curtain boldly, and looked out into the night of the City. There was no
-sign of her late visitor, but the ladder rested against the balcony,
-a proof of his recent presence; otherwise, she might have persuaded
-herself that what she had been through was a dream. She shut the window
-and bolted it, and came back into the room. The old woman, with her dark
-burning eyes staring always at the same spot on the ceiling, seemed now
-somewhat easier. Pauline gazed at her, and, after having stirred the
-fire, lay down again on the couch.
-
-And as she closed her eyes, the strange enigma of Mrs. Ilam and her son
-and the nocturnal visitant filled her mind with distracting and futile
-thoughts. Who was this grey-haired man, at once so masterful, so
-dignified, and so desperate? What could be the justice that he demanded?
-what the contents of the lacquered box? She would have a real good talk
-with Rosie in the morning. That prospect comforted her. Rosie--Rosie----
-Suddenly she started, and gradually she perceived that she had been
-asleep a long time--two hours, perhaps--and that something, some
-presence, had wakened her. Looking round, she noticed that the door,
-which had been closed, was now open.
-
-She jumped up and went out of the room to the passage, but she could
-neither see nor hear anything. Then, as her eyes became accustomed to
-the obscurity, she detected a very faint, thin pencil of light at the
-other end of the passage, and on approaching it she found that it came
-from her sister’s room. She crept forward, pushed open the door and went
-in. Rosie, fully dressed, was sitting on a chair near the window, which
-was not quite closed, and her face was hidden in her hands, and she
-appeared to be crying.
-
-“Rosie,” exclaimed Pauline, “whatever’s the matter? Why aren’t you in
-bed and asleep?”
-
-And Rosie subsided into her sister’s arms, weeping violently.
-
-“I haven’t been to bed at all,” she said at last. “I’ve never slept in
-a room with a balcony before, and I couldn’t resist going out on to this
-balcony to see how beautiful the night was. And I began to think what a
-splendid time we were having, and I watched the stars, and I heard
-the clock strike in the tower over there, and the gardens looked so
-beautiful in the starlight, and a long, long time must have passed. And
-then I saw a man standing under my window. He was a man dressed in blue,
-with grey hair, and he began to talk to me.”
-
-“And why didn’t you tell him to go away, my dear?”
-
-“He seemed so sad, and he said such interesting things. Pauline,
-darling, there’s something very, very wrong in this house--some mystery!
-He told me. No one could help believing what he says, and he has such a
-beautiful voice. I cried, almost, in listening to him.”
-
-“But who was he?”
-
-“I think he must be some relative,” said Rosie. “I think so. He didn’t
-say. What he did say was that there was a black box which it was
-absolutely necessary he must have. Oh, Pauline, I’m sure he isn’t a
-thief! He’s a man who has suffered a great deal, and he asked me to get
-the box for him, and his face was so sad--well, I said I would. And he
-told me exactly where it was.”
-
-“Where did he say it was?”
-
-“He said it was under Mrs. Ilam’s pillow; and it was, true enough.”
-
-“How do you know?” cried Pauline, aghast.
-
-“I crept into your room, and lifted Mrs. Ilam’s head, and took the box.
-You were fast asleep. He asked me to see if you were asleep, and, if you
-were, not to wake you. So I came as quietly as a mouse.”
-
-“And you obeyed him like that?” murmured Pauline, astounded.
-
-“I couldn’t help it. I felt so sorry for him. And his voice was so----”
-
-“Rosie!” said Pauline. “You used to be sensible enough!”
-
-“I couldn’t help it!” moaned Rosie again.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII--An Arrangement for a Marriage
-
-Juliette D’Avray had a small sitting-room of her own in the Carpentaria
-bungalow. It was on the first floor, and it looked west, whereas
-Carpentaria’s study and bedroom both looked north, on the avenue. Three
-days after the affair of the black box, Carpentaria ran hastily up
-the stairs of his house and touched the knob of the door of Juliette’s
-sitting-room, and then he drew back his hand, nervous and hesitant. He
-was evidently perturbed, and he pulled his fine beard in a series of
-quick twitches, and then he rapped smartly on the door and coughed.
-
-“Juliette!” he cried. He was very much surprised to discover that he
-had not got complete control of his voice. It broke in the middle of his
-half-sister’s name. “I must do better than this,” he thought, trying to
-command himself.
-
-There was a pause.
-
-“Juliette!” he cried again, more firmly.
-
-The word was scarcely out of his mouth when the door opened wide, and
-Juliette stood before him. They gazed at each other for a fraction of a
-second, as if inimically.
-
-“Why don’t you come in, Carlos?” she murmured softly, and her eyes fell,
-“instead of knocking and making such a noise. What’s the matter?”
-
-Carpentaria was certainly astonished at the nature and tone of her
-remark. She seemed to wish to run away. Then he gathered himself
-together, with an immense show of force, as a man will when confronted
-by a woman who is helpless before him, but of whom he is afraid.
-
-“I don’t want to come in,” he said.
-
-“Why?” she demanded.
-
-“You know why,” he said.
-
-“Indeed I don’t,” she asserted; and she laughed--a curt laugh.
-
-“You promised me you wouldn’t see Ilam again at present,” said
-Carpentaria stoutly.
-
-Juliette tossed ever so little her charming head, with its admirable
-coiffure.
-
-“I did,” she admitted.
-
-“Well,” said Carpentaria, “he is at this moment in the sitting-room.”
-
-Juliette’s dainty nostrils began to dilate.
-
-“Carlos,” she said disdainfully, “do you know what you are saying? To
-me! Mr. Ilam is not here. I have already asked you to come in!”
-
-“Yes,” said Carpentaria, “but you don’t make way for me. You keep well
-in the doorway, Juliette!”
-
-She moved aside with a gesture of the finest feminine scorn.
-
-“Is there space for you to enter?” she said, bitterly sarcastic.
-
-Carpentaria stepped forward one pace. His foot was on the door-mat.
-
-“Stop a moment, Carlos,” she said warningly, lifting her arm. “I repeat
-that Mr. Ilam is not here. I cannot imagine what put the idea into your
-head. But whatever put it in, let me advise you to put it out again at
-once. Under the circumstances, if you come into this room, now that
-I have distinctly told you that Mr. Ilam is not here, it will be
-equivalent to calling me a liar. I could not suffer that, even from you,
-Carlos. I should leave you. We should quarrel for ever. Think what you
-are doing.”
-
-Tears stood in her eyes.
-
-Carpentaria shuffled his feet in an agony of uncertainty.
-
-“Come in if you doubt me,” Juliette continued. “But if you do, it will
-be the end.”
-
-Carpentaria turned slowly away, and passed down the corridor.
-
-“Of course I don’t doubt you,” he called out.
-
-Juliette made no response. She waited till her half-brother had
-descended the stairs, then she shut the door quietly, and ran to the
-Louis Quinze sofa, with its gilded borders, that stood a little way from
-the window.
-
-“You can come out,” she whispered.
-
-And from behind the sofa emerged the bulky form of Josephus Ilam.
-
-“Great heavens!” he muttered, searching in his pocket for a
-handkerchief.
-
-Juliette sat down on a chair and burst into tears. The contrast between
-their two handkerchiefs--Ham’s enormous, like himself, and Juliette’s a
-fragment of lace no larger than a piece of bread-and-butter--was one of
-those trifles which put an edge of the comical on the tragic stuff of
-life.
-
-“You are an astounding woman!” exclaimed Ilam, wiping his brow.
-
-“I have lied to him--I have deceived him. You heard what I said?”
- whimpered Juliette.
-
-“You behaved superbly,” said Ilam.
-
-“I behaved shamefully,” said the woman. “But I did it for you!”
-
-And she looked at him over her handkerchief, with wet eyelashes.
-
-Ilam would have gone through unutterable torture for her in that
-moment. It was a highly strange thing--this late coming of love into the
-existence of Josephus Ilam. It transformed him. It made him feel that,
-at fifty, he was only just beginning to grasp the meaning of life. It
-made him see that hitherto his days and his years had been wasted on
-vain things, and that the only commodity really worth having in this
-world was such a look as Juliette gave him out of her impassioned
-eyes. He could not understand what so bewitching and lively a woman as
-Juliette could see in a heavy, gloomy fellow like him. For the matter
-of that, probably no other person, save only Juliette, could understand
-that mystery. But then, when a woman loves a man, she sees him in a
-radiance shed from her own soul, and it changes him.
-
-“My poor friend,” said Juliette, composing herself, “why do you put
-me in such an awkward position, coming upstairs like this, and in the
-middle of the day, too? You must have bribed one of the servants.”
-
-“I did,” said Ilam.
-
-“Well, don’t tell me which,” Juliette put in quickly.
-
-He bent down and kissed her. Yes, this heavy and rather creaky person,
-who had laughed at love for several decades, bent down and kissed a
-pretty woman sitting on a Louis Quinze sofa; moreover, he put his arms
-round her. He did it clumsily, of course, but Juliette did not think so.
-
-“I was obliged to see you,” he told her. “I couldn’t go without seeing
-you. Why have you so persistently kept out of my way? You were so kind
-that morning--when Carpentaria surprised you. Has he been bullying you?”
-
-“Ah!” exclaimed Juliette, suddenly excited. “I cannot tell you what he
-said to me. You know I love him best in the world--next to--you. But he
-said such things to me--such things!”
-
-“He said--oh, my dearest!--he said his life was not safe--he said no
-one’s life was safe in this City--he said he had been shot at in the
-bandstand; and, you know, that business of the milk was dreadful. The
-strange thing is that Carlos won’t consult the police about it.”
-
-“But how does this affect us--affect you and me?” demanded Ilam
-bravely.
-
-“Dearest,” said Juliette, “poor Carlos thinks--he actually thinks----”
-
-“That I am trying to kill him?”
-
-“He thinks you have something to do with it.”
-
-“But why? Why should I want to kill your brother--your brother?”
-
-“Yes, indeed!” agreed Juliette. “And why should you want to kill
-anybody’s brother?” she added.
-
-“Of course,” he said hastily. “Why should I want to kill any person at
-all?”
-
-“Carlos says that he is not the only person you have tried to kill.”
-
-“Ha! And who is the other? Give me the full catalogue.”
-
-“I don’t know. He says you have buried a man in the grounds, and that he
-saw you do it.”
-
-“Juliette!” Ilam stepped backwards. Then he stopped. “Juliette,” he
-repeated, “I swear to you most solemnly that I have never tried to kill
-anyone.”
-
-“Dearest, you shouldn’t have said that!” she remonstrated. “You
-shouldn’t have sworn to me. It is an insult to my love. Do you imagine
-that I believed Carlos for a single instant? Do you imagine it?”
-
-She looked at him proudly, gloriously.
-
-“How splendid you are!” muttered Josephus Ilam, son of the soda-water
-manufacturer. The admiration was drawn out of him. He had not guessed
-that women could be so fine. And then he perceived that he, too, must
-be splendid, that he must be worthy of her; and so he proceeded:
-“Nevertheless, it is true that I did bury a man in the grounds a few
-nights ago.”
-
-The perspiration stood afresh on his brow as he made the confession.
-
-“You!” she murmured.
-
-“I thought he was dead,” said Ilam, speaking quickly. “I thought I
-should be accused of his murder. And so I--the fact is, I was mad. I was
-off my head. I must have been. Until yesterday I actually fancied I was
-being haunted by his ghost. Yes! me! me--thinking a thing like that! But
-I did; and yesterday I was in that big crush, during the shower, in the
-Court of the Exposition Palace, and he, too, was in the crowd. I saw
-him; I touched him; he didn’t see me, thank Heaven! Then I knew that
-what I had buried was not a corpse.”
-
-“Who is this man?” asked Juliette calmly.
-
-“My angel!” said Ilam, driven to poetry by the stress of his emotion,
-“you mustn’t inquire; there are some things I can’t tell you--at least,
-not yet. When we are married, when matters are settled a bit, I will
-tell you everything, but not now.”
-
-“Why not now?” she persisted.
-
-“Look here,” he said, “if you persist I shall simply go and kill
-myself.”
-
-She paused.
-
-“My friend,” she resumed, “you do not love me as much as I love you. The
-measure of love is trust, and you do not trust me completely.”
-
-“I love you in my way,” said Ilam doggedly; “men are not like women.”
-
-“That is true,” she admitted philosophically.
-
-“I would tell you everything if I was free to do so,” he said.
-
-“Dearest”--she addressed him in quite a new tone--“you know something
-about those attacks on Carlos’ life.”
-
-She spoke with an air of absolute certainty.
-
-“I have had nothing to do with them,” he said.
-
-“But you know something about them.”
-
-“Why do you think so?”
-
-“I can tell from your manner,” she said triumphantly.
-
-“I know nothing for certain, nothing precise,” said Ilam--“nothing that
-I can tell you--nothing that I dare tell you.”
-
-“Dearest,” she remarked, with a faint acidity, “it seems to me that you
-have come here to-day in order not to tell me things.”
-
-He deprecated her tone with an appealing gesture.
-
-“I can tell you, at any rate, this,” he said, “that your brother’s life
-is no longer in danger--of that I am sure.”
-
-“You are atoning,” she smiled.
-
-“Which is more than can be said of my life,” Ilam proceeded, not heeding
-her smile.
-
-“Your life is in danger?” she questioned, rushing to him as though she
-would protect him.
-
-Ilam, without a word, led her to the window, from the corner of which a
-glimpse of the avenue could be caught, and walking to and fro there in
-the avenue was the Soudanese.
-
-“You see that man?” said Ilam. “It’s the fellow they call ‘Spats’ in
-the native village. I don’t know why. He is devoted to me; he is fully
-armed; he follows me everywhere. I have only to blow this whistle”--and
-Ilam produced a whistle from his pocket.
-
-“Darling”--and Juliette clung to him--“is it so bad as that? Who is it
-that threatens you?”
-
-“The man that I buried,” said Ilam quietly.
-
-“But what are you going to do?”
-
-“Well,” said Ilam, “I’m come here to see you. We must get your brother
-on our side.”
-
-“I’ll force him to understand at once,” cried Juliette.
-
-“No,” said Ilam, “perhaps you would fail, as things are, but if you were
-my wife, you would not fail then. Carpentaria, once the thing was done,
-would do everything in his power to protect your husband; he likes
-you well enough for that. He might be angry at first, but he would see
-reason.”
-
-“Dearest, you want me to marry you secretly?”
-
-“I merely want you to go with me to the registry office at Putney.”
-
-“Is that what you came for?”
-
-“That is what I came for.”
-
-“My love!” she murmured.
-
-Yet, with that cold and penetrating insight which women have, she saw
-clearly that, though Ilam’s idea of getting Carpentaria’s assistance in
-a moment of grave danger was doubtless quite serious, it was somewhat
-fanciful, and that Ilam’s professed reason for their instant marriage
-was also fanciful, and was not a real reason, but only an excuse. He
-merely wanted to marry her at once, that was all, and although his life
-was threatened, he thought little of that. She loved him the more.
-
-“I can make the arrangements pretty quick,” said Ilam. “You will agree,
-my angel?”
-
-And she nodded, and the compact was sealed. They heard a scurrying in
-the passages of the house.
-
-“Juliette! Juliette!”
-
-It was Carpentaria’s voice, and other voices mingled with it
-indistinctly--the voices of the servants. “Yes!” she answered loudly
-and, whispering to Ilam, “Get out of the window; whistle softly for your
-Soudanese. You can get on to the roof of the outhouse. He will help
-you.”
-
-And noiselessly she opened the window, and Ilam, struck by her
-tremendous resourcefulness, passed out. She heard his low whistle, and
-then she ran to the door and into the passage.
-
-“The house is on fire,” said Carpentaria, meeting her.
-
-“Is it?” she answered calmly. “Are the firemen come? where’s the
-fire?”--She sniffed--“Yes,” she said, “I can smell it.”
-
-She was amazingly calm. “No woman with a man concealed in her
-sitting-room,” said Carpentaria to himself, “could behave so calmly upon
-being informed that the house was on fire. Her first thought would have
-been to secure the hidden man’s safety.” And Carpentaria ran downstairs
-with a great show of activity. He was baffled, disappointed, for he had
-deliberately set fire to his own house in order to drive Ilam from the
-sitting-room, where he felt sure Ilam was. And the trick had failed.
-After all, he had been mistaken. He had been convinced of his sister’s
-deception, and lo! she had not deceived him. Carpentaria could have
-killed himself.
-
-Happily the fire was of no importance, and it was extinguished before it
-had done more than about five pounds’ worth of damage and alarmed more
-than about five thousand visitors to the City.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX--The Heart of the City
-
-The situation of the heart of the City was one of the secrets of the
-City. It was not located, perhaps, exactly where you might have expected
-it to be, and for a very good reason. The magnificent building which
-housed the managerial, clerical, and inspectorial staff of the City was
-near the south end of the Central Way. It comprised four floors, and
-more than a hundred clerks spent seven hours a day there. On the first
-floor was the President’s Parlour, where Ilam held consultations with
-Carpentaria and with the heads of departments, from the department of
-catering to the department of road-cleaning. On the floor above was the
-Manager’s and Musical Director’s Parlour, where the august Carpentaria
-held consultations with Ilam and with the heads of other departments,
-from that of music, with its subsections (a) open-air bands, (b) theatre
-and other bands, (c) restaurant bands, (d) vocal music, (e) pianolas,
-gramophones, and mechanical orchestras, to the procession and fêtes
-department. But the heart of the City was nowhere in this building.
-
-There were also scattered about the immense grounds, various other
-executive buildings of a smaller size, where sectional managers,
-viceroys of Ilam and Carpentaria, held their mimic sway. But the heart
-of the City was not in any of these, either.
-
-Very few persons, even among those on the salary-list of the City, did
-know where the heart was; for it was not talked about. Talking about it
-was discouraged; the hearts of such places are never talked about. And
-it is a most singular thing that visitors to the City scarcely gave a
-thought to the question of the situation of the heart of the City. The
-most interesting of all the many secrets of the City seldom aroused
-public curiosity, so strange is the public.
-
-The heart of the City, as I propose to reveal, was situated beneath the
-Storytellers’ Hall, near the northern end of the Central Way, on
-your left hand as you passed down from the north entrance-gates. The
-Storytellers’ Hall was an invention of Carpentaria’s--one of his best.
-Between two o’clock and four, between five o’clock and seven, and
-between half-past eight and closing-time you could pay sixpence to go
-into the Storytellers’ Hall and listen to a succession of American and
-Irish and English performers, whose sole business it was to sit in
-an armchair on the diminutive stage and tell funny stories. The
-entertainment consisted in nothing else. It was the simplest thing in
-the world, and yet one of the completest successes of the City. It was
-a success from the very first hour of its existence. The little hall was
-nearly always crowded, chiefly by men. One is bound to admit that women
-were not enchanted by it; either they laughed in the wrong places, or
-they turned to their husbands, sweethearts, uncles, nephews, at the end
-of the story, and asked if that really was the end of the story, and,
-if it was, would their husbands, sweethearts, uncles, nephews kindly
-explain the joke to them.
-
-Well, the heart of the City was beneath that gay and mirthful structure.
-While storytellers told stories above the level of the ground, the most
-serious business of the City was being transacted a few feet away, below
-the level of the ground. Let me explain.
-
-Take an average intelligent visitor to the City. He approaches, say, the
-northern entrance, and among the twenty patent turnstiles which confront
-him he chooses the nearest one that is empty. He puts a shilling on
-the iron table of the turnstile; an official in the livery of the City
-scrutinizes the coin to make sure that it is what it pretends to be,
-and then pushes it down a little hole. The shilling disappears--not only
-from the sight, but from the thoughts of the visitor.
-
-It is a highly remarkable fact--as he squeezes through the turnstile he
-actually forgets all about his shilling, forgets it for evermore!
-
-Yet shillings are being poured in a continuous stream into the mouth of
-that turnstile and into the mouths of scores of similar turnstiles, all
-day. What becomes of them? Surely this question ought to interest the
-average intelligent visitor! What becomes of them? The turnstiles won’t
-hold an unlimited number of shillings; nevertheless, shillings are
-falling into them eternally and they are never emptied; they are
-never even moved; they could not be moved, since they are imbedded in
-concrete. Here _is_ a puzzle for the average intelligent visitor.
-
-It will occur to anyone that when four hundred thousand people have each
-paid a shilling entrance, quite a nice little lot of money must have
-accumulated somewhere in the City by nightfall; for, besides the
-entrance shillings, there is the vast expenditure of the visitors after
-they have entered.
-
-The nice little bit of money runs to the heart of the City. That is what
-the heart of the City is for; that is why it is called the heart.
-
-Now, the heart was a long, wide, and low apartment, lighted by
-electricity, and lined with concrete. In the centre, its top level with
-the floor, was a huge safe, which by hydraulic power could be raised
-till its top was nearly level with the ceiling, and its doors bared to
-the persuasions of keys. Round about were large wooden tables, furnished
-with large and small balances, copper scoops, bags, and steel coffers. A
-few chairs completed the apparatus of the apartment.
-
-The shillings of the clients of the City dropped through the mouths of
-the turnstiles right down to a small subterranean chamber, which could
-only be reached from a tunnel beneath each entrance. Thus, the officials
-in charge of the turnstiles had no control whatever over the coins once
-they had been slipped into the orifices. The coins were checked and
-collected by an entirely separate set of officials, who visited the
-underground chambers every three hours and brought back the booty,
-enclosed in coffers, in specially constructed insignificant-looking
-carriages, to the solitary door of the heart. And the door of the heart
-was by no means in the Central Way; it gave on a back entry running
-parallel to the Way and just wide enough to permit the passage of one
-carriage. The coffers were received, and receipted for, by an official
-of the heart, and handed by him into the interior. Neither he nor the
-collectors were ever allowed to enter the heart.
-
-On the evening of the day of the secret interview between Juliette and
-Ilam, the inconspicuous door of the heart was guarded, not by its usual
-official, but by a tall Soudanese, and waiting close to him was an
-automobile with chauffeur on board. The automobile was one of several
-employed specially to transport the riches of the City to the head
-offices of the London and West-End Bank in King William Street. The
-journeys were made at night, twice a week, and the offices of the London
-and West-End were specially opened to receive the coin. Automobiles
-laden with vast wealth are less apt to be remarked when they travel at
-night.
-
-Within the heart itself were three people--Ilam; a middle-aged man named
-Gloucester, who spent all his days in counting and weighing gold and
-silver, and who was the presiding genius of the heart; and, thirdly, a
-clerk from the London and West-End Bank.
-
-Gloucester was weighing sovereigns, the clerk was counting coffers and
-piling them up in a corner near the door, and Ilam was idly inspecting
-the doors of the huge safe, which had been raised out of its well and
-stood open and empty.
-
-During that day and the previous two days, what with a monster Y.M.C.A.
-fête then in progress, and what with the weather, over a million
-shillings had been taken at the turnstiles. Now, a new shilling weighs
-eighty-seven grains, and about seven thousand average current shillings
-go to the hundredweight. A million shillings, or fifty thousand pounds
-in silver, will weigh, therefore, something like seven tons. Nearly
-the whole of this treasure had already started on its way to the famous
-vaults of the London and West-End Bank; only a few coffers remained. But
-there was, in addition, about ten thousand pounds in gold, which weighed
-about a couple of hundredweight, and it was chiefly for this gold that
-the last automobile was waiting.
-
-“Seven coffers of silver, Mr. Gloucester,” said the clerk; “two of
-gold.”
-
-“I shall be ready with the others in a few minutes,” replied Mr.
-Gloucester.
-
-“Then I’ll be making out the check-sheets,” said the clerk.
-
-“Do so,” said Mr. Gloucester, who was a formal old person, and wore
-steel-rimmed spectacles. And he continued his weighing of the gold.
-
-At this interesting and dazzling juncture, the unique door of the
-apartment, an affair of solid Bessemer steel, swung slowly on its
-hinges, and disclosed the figure of a man in a blue suit, with grey hair
-under his soft hat. Mr. Gloucester, being just a little short-sighted
-and just a little hard of hearing, neither saw nor heard the visitor.
-Nor did Mr. Ilam, who was actually within the safe, measuring
-its-shelves. But the bank-clerk, who was quite close to the door, most
-decidedly did see the man. And the clerk started, whether with fear,
-surprise, or mere nervousness, will probably never be known.
-
-The man shut the door.
-
-“What----” began the clerk.
-
-“Go to the other end of the room,” said the man commandingly.
-
-“Mr. Ilam!” the clerk called out respectfully, alarmed.
-
-“Go to the other end of the room,” repeated the man.’
-
-The clerk perceived then that he had a revolver. Mr. Gloucester also
-perceived the man and his revolver, and Mr. Ilam came out of the safe
-rather like a jack out of a box.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX--What Jetsam Wanted
-
-
-Hullo, Jos! said the intruder in a light, careless and rather scornful
-tone.
-
-It was a stroke of genius on his part to address Mr. Ilam as “Jos.” That
-curt and familiar monosyllable, directed like a bullet at the formidable
-Ilam, the august President of the City, made such an impression upon
-both Mr. Gloucester and the L. and W. E. Bank-clerk that they took
-no part whatever in the immediately subsequent proceedings. They were
-astounded into silence. They trembled lest lightning should descend and
-utterly destroy the intruder.
-
-And Ilam himself was plainly at a loss. He was about to say to the
-intruder: “You have no right to speak to me in such a way,” and to order
-him out of the place, when the ridiculousness of protesting and the
-futility of ordering presented themselves vividly to his mind.
-
-Besides, there was the revolver.
-
-So Mr. Ilam said merely, in a sort of pained surprise:
-
-“Jetsam!”
-
-“Exactly,” said Jetsam.
-
-And the imperturbable fellow, with his grey hair and his shabby suit
-and his weary eyes, nonchalantly sat down on the edge of one of the
-counting-tables, his legs dangling, and his body leaning forward.
-
-The two employés were by this time convinced that the new-comer must be
-either the Shah of Persia in disguise, or else some extremely intimate
-and life-long friend of Ilam’s, perhaps richer than Ilam himself. The
-bank-clerk knew by sight several chairmen of banks who were quite as
-badly dressed as the man on the table. Nevertheless, they did not carry
-revolvers. The revolver was certainly rather disquieting. However, they
-bent to their work, as though both eyes of the Recording Angel were upon
-them.
-
-Ilam closed the door of the safe.
-
-“The doorkeeper let you pass?” he ventured.
-
-“No, not at all,” replied Jetsam.
-
-“He isn’t at his post?”
-
-“Not just at the moment. I’ve had him removed for a bit. He’ll doubtless
-return as soon as I’ve gone. I thought it would be simpler to have my
-own doorkeeper.”
-
-“What did the Soudanese say, though?”
-
-“Which Soudanese?”
-
-“The Soudanese who is outside the door.”
-
-“Oh, him? He didn’t say anything.”
-
-“This is a serious breach of rules for you to be here, you know,” said
-Ilam. “And I must ask you to go.”
-
-“I really can’t go just yet,” said Jetsam.
-
-“What are you doing here?”
-
-“Nothing,” said Jetsam; “except nursing this revolver. I’m going to do
-something soon.”
-
-Both the bank-clerk and Mr. Gloucester looked up. They even went so
-far as to glance at their employer for instructions; but their employer
-seemed to avoid the eyes of the underlings. Then Mr. Gloucester spoke
-in a low tone to the clerk, and the clerk replied, and some bags of gold
-were bundled into a coffer and the coffer locked and double-locked, and
-the bank-clerk murmured respectfully:
-
-“These are the lot, sir. Shall I take them and go?”
-
-“Yes,” said Ilam.
-
-“Will you help me?” said the clerk to Mr. Gloucester.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Gloucester.
-
-And Mr. Gloucester and the clerk each picked up several coffers.
-
-“Good-night, sir,” said the clerk.
-
-“Good-night,” said Ilam.
-
-“Stop that!” Jetsam exclaimed, turning his head slowly behind him to
-follow the movements of the pair.
-
-“I beg pardon?” murmured the clerk interrogatively.
-
-“I thought I told you to go to the other end of the room,” thundered
-Jetsam.
-
-“But Mr. Ilam----”
-
-“Go to the other end of the room, up there at that corner,” Jetsam
-commanded sternly, adding, “or I’ll blow your idiotic brains out! Do you
-hear?”
-
-The clerk was in love with a girl who lived with her mother in a pretty
-little semi-detached villa at Weybridge. He thought of her; he thought
-of all the evenings he had spent with her; he conjured her up in all her
-different dresses; he heard her voice in all its tones--and all this
-in the fraction of a second. Then he put down the boxes and discreetly
-betook himself to the corner indicated by Mr. Jetsam, thinking obscurely
-and slangily that to be a bank-clerk was not all jam.
-
-“And you, too!” ordered Jetsam, raising a finger to Mr. Gloucester.
-
-Mr. Gloucester was not in love with a charming young thing at Weybridge.
-He never had been in love; he had never lived with anyone except
-himself and a bull-terrier; but he was fond of playing chess at night at
-Simpson’s; and he suddenly saw Simpson’s and the chess-boards, and
-the foamy quart, and the bull-terrier lying under the table. Life and
-Simpson’s seemed infinitely precious to him in those instants. And he
-put down his boxes and followed the bank-clerk to the suggested corner.
-
-“I must really----” he began protestingly.
-
-“Silence!” exploded Mr. Jetsam; and there was silence.
-
-You must picture the large, low room, with its concrete lining and its
-half-dozen sixteen candle-power electric lights burning in the ceiling;
-and underneath these lights the four men--Ilam leaning against
-the gigantic safe which rose out of the floor in the middle of the
-apartment; Jetsam still nonchalantly swinging his legs as he sat on
-the table, facing him directly; and the democracy, somewhat scared and
-undecided, in a corner. Jetsam had his back to the door, and since the
-two piles of coffers were near the door they were out of his field of
-vision.
-
-Jetsam winked at Ilam--deliberately winked at him.
-
-“Simple as a, b, c, isn’t it?” he pleasantly remarked.
-
-“What?” demanded Ilam.
-
-“What I’m doing now--holding up a strong room and its staff.”
-
-“You’ll suffer for this,” said Ilam.
-
-“That remains to be seen,” was the reply. “I gravely doubt if I shall
-suffer for it. Up to now, what have I done? I have asked those gentlemen
-to go into a corner and not to indulge in desultory and disturbing
-conversation; and they have been good enough to humour my caprice; and I
-have winked at you, Jos. Is there anything illegal in winking at you? A
-few days ago you did more than wink at me--you nearly killed me!”
-
-“I must go,” said Ilam. “I have an appointment--I----”
-
-He moved slightly.
-
-“Let me advise you not to move,” Jetsam warned him, raising the revolver
-an inch or so. “It mightn’t be very good for your constitution. You must
-grasp, the fact that you are being held up. A worn-out operation, you
-will say--a trick lacking in novelty! Yes; but one, nevertheless, based
-on the fundamental human instincts, and therefore pretty certain to
-succeed. Indeed, I am surprised how simple it is. You might fancy from
-my easy bearing that I had devoted a lifetime to holding people up. Not
-in the least. I have never held anyone up before. And yet, how well I am
-succeeding! The thing works like a charm; merely because you can see in
-my eye that I mean to be obeyed.”
-
-“I suppose you want money?” said Ilam savagely.
-
-“I don’t want impudence!” retorted Jetsam. “Apologize, if you please, my
-friend!”
-
-“What have I said?”
-
-“It isn’t what you said--it’s your manner of saying it that was unworthy
-of you. You mean to apologize for wounding my feelings, don’t you?”
- Jetsam smiled. “No, don’t move; merely express your regret!”
-
-“I’m sorry,” muttered Ilam.
-
-“There--you see!” cried Jetsam to the men in the corner. “Let that be
-a lesson to you. And remember, that only great men like Mr. Ilam have
-sufficient moral force, when they are in the wrong, to admit the fact.
-Well, Jos, I accept your apology in the cheerful and generous spirit in
-which you offer it; and I shall not deny that I do want money. That is
-part of what I came for.”
-
-“How much do you want?” asked Ilam.
-
-“Well,” said Jetsam. “How much have you got handy?”
-
-Mr. Ilam intimated that there was a small sum in gold.
-
-“A thousand in gold?” queried Jetsam.
-
-Ilam nodded.
-
-“Probably more,” Jetsam commented. “But a thousand will suffice me. If
-I need a fresh supply I can always come again, can’t I? And besides, all
-that is yours is mine, eh?”
-
-Ilam maintained silence.
-
-“Eh?” repeated Jetsam persuasively.
-
-“Yes,” growled Ilam, and his eye caught the eye of the young bank-clerk
-by pure accident.
-
-At that moment the young bank-clerk, fired by martial valour, a thirst
-for glory, and the thought of what a splendid thrilling tale he would
-have to tell to the charming young thing at Weybridge, sprang furiously
-forward in the direction of Jetsam.
-
-“Stop!” said Jetsam, slipping off the table and facing the youth,
-revolver ready.
-
-The youth hesitated for the fifth of a second.
-
-“No,” said the youth, and came on.
-
-Jetsam fired almost point-blank at the hero’s face, and the hero started
-back and sank to the ground. And there was a great hush in the room and
-a smell of powder and a little smoke. The youth lay still.
-
-“Get up!” said Jetsam fiercely. “Get up, or I’ll kick you up!”
-
-And, strange to relate, the youth discovered the whereabouts of his
-limbs and got up, and returned to the corner.
-
-“A singular example of what imagination will do!” commented Jetsam. “The
-first chamber of this revolver was loaded with blank. I expected to have
-to use it for theatrical effect, to begin with, and I was not wrong. Let
-me add that the other five chambers are most carefully loaded, and that
-I once earned my living in a music-hall by shooting the pips out of
-cards with this revolver.” He then addressed Mr. Gloucester. “Now, old
-man,” he said, “how much gold is there in one of those boxes?”
-
-“Two thousand five hundred!” answered Mr. Gloucester politely.
-
-“And it weighs?”
-
-“About sixty pounds.”
-
-“It isn’t worth while breaking into it,” said Jetsam smoothly, looking
-at Ilam. “I’ll take the lot. In our final settlement it shall be brought
-into account.” His glance shifted to Gloucester. “Thank you,” he added,
-“for this information so courteously given.
-
-“Perhaps you are satisfied now!” said Ilam.
-
-“Why don’t you go? You think you won’t get caught, but you will.”
-
-“Surely, you won’t give me away, Jos!” protested Jetsam. “I’m convinced
-you won’t; because you see, if you begin to talk about me I should
-probably begin to talk about you, and think how dreadful that would be.”
-
-“Keep it up! Keep it up!” said Ilam.
-
-“Hence,” Jetsam proceeded, ignoring the interruption, “I shall
-confidently rely on you to see that these excellent gentlemen here in
-the corner keep their elegant mouths shut. I shall rely on you for that.
-You understand, gentlemen, Mr. Ilam wishes you not to prattle, even in
-the privacy of your own homes.”
-
-“Are you going?” said Ilam doggedly.
-
-“Yes,” said Jetsam; “and so are you.”
-
-“Me!”
-
-“Yes, you. The money is a mere incidental. What I came for was your
-distinguished self.”
-
-“I’m not coming with you. I haven’t the slightest intention of coming
-with you.”
-
-“You may not have much intention, but you are coming,” said the suave
-Jetsam. “Besides, who is going to carry this box outside for me? I can’t
-carry the box and a revolver, too. Obviously Providence has designated
-precisely you to carry this box. Come.”
-
-“Not I!” Ilam defied him.
-
-“Come!” repeated Jetsam. “I have a vehicle awaiting outside, and we
-shall see what we shall see.”
-
-“No!” insisted Ilam.
-
-Mr. Jetsam advanced two paces.
-
-“Listen!” said he angrily and yet calmly. “If you don’t come, I’ll shoot
-you where you stand. You ought to be able to perceive that I mean what I
-say.”
-
-Ilam’s reply was a mute surrender. He dropped his eyes, and the next
-moment the two underlings had the spectacle of the corpulent Mr.
-Ilam lifting a sixty-pound weight and struggling with it to the door,
-followed by the revolver and Mr. Jetsam behind the revolver.
-
-“Stop in the doorway a second,” ordered Jetsam. He addressed the clerks
-again. “If I were you, I shouldn’t hurry out of here. You might catch
-cold.”
-
-And then they saw Ilam disappear, the box in his arms, and Mr. Jetsam
-follow him. Mr. Jetsam closed the door. The clerks were alone.
-
-“Well, of all the----!” exclaimed the younger man.
-
-“I wonder how soon it will be safe for us to leave!” said Mr.
-Gloucester.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI--Interrupting a Concert
-
-That evening the nightly concert of the “Carpentaria Band” was held
-in the great court of the Exposition Palace, partly because the weather
-was threatening, and partly because the Y.M.C.A. wished it so. The
-stalwart members of the Y.M.C.A. were prominent and joyous, and they
-pervaded the City to the number of some fifty thousand. They were nearly
-all young, and they were all, without exception, enthusiastic. They had
-taken possession of practically the whole of the tables on the three
-tiers of balconies that surrounded the court, and there was also
-a considerable sprinkling of them on the ground floor. They liked
-Carpentaria; they liked his music; they liked his way of conducting.
-They admired him when he split the drums of their ears, and they equally
-admired him when he wooed those organs with a hint of sound that was
-something less than a whisper. They violently cheered his marches, and
-with the same violence they cheered his serenades and his cradlesongs.
-
-Consequently Carpentaria was content. He was more than content--he
-glowed with pleasure. He was the centre of the vast illuminated court,
-with its ornate architecture, and its wonderful roof, and its serried
-rows of lights. All eyes were centred on him. He swayed not only his
-band, but the multitude, by a single movement of the slim baton--that
-magic bit of ivory which he held in his hand. He said to himself that he
-had never had a better, a more appreciative and enthusiastic audience in
-the whole of his glorious career. The result was, that-he conducted in
-his most variegated and polychromatic manner. He did things with his
-wand that no conductor had ever done with a wand before; he performed
-gyrations, contortions, and acrobatics beyond all his previous exploits.
-In a word, he surpassed himself.
-
-He was in the very act of surpassing himself, in his renowned “Cockney
-Serenade,” when he observed, out of the tail of his eye, a middle-aged
-man, who was forcing his way at all costs across the floor of the hall
-towards the bandstand.
-
-When seven thousand people are packed on chairs on a single floor, it
-is not the quietest task in the world to penetrate through them. And
-the middle-aged man was not doing it quietly, in fact, he was making
-decidedly more noise than the “Cockney Serenade,” and attracting quite
-as much attention.
-
-A number of ardently musical young men on the grand balcony leaned over
-the wrought-iron parapet and advised the middle-aged man to lie down
-and die, in a manner unmistakably ferocious. (It is extraordinary how
-ferocious a youth can be on mere lemonade.) But the middle-aged man
-continued his course, and he arrived at the bandstand, despite official
-and unofficial protests, simultaneously with the conclusion of the
-serenade.
-
-Gales of applause swept about the court, and Carpentaria bowed, and
-bowed again--bowed innumerably, all the time regarding the middle-aged
-man with angry and suppressed curiosity. The middle-aged man had lifted
-up a hand and pulled the triangle-player by the belt of his magnificent
-uniform, and the triangle-player had bent down to speak to him.
-
-“What is it? What is it?” asked Carpentaria, his nerves on edge.
-
-“A person insists on speaking to you, sir,” replied the triangle-player.
-
-“He cannot,” snapped Carpentaria.
-
-“He says he shall,” said the triangle-player.
-
-“I’ll----” Carpentaria began an anathema, and then stopped. He went to
-the rail of the bandstand and leaned over to the middle-aged man.
-
-“At your age,” he said grimly, “you ought to know better than to
-interrupt my concerts in this way. Who are you? What do you want?”
-
-“My name is Gloucester, sir,” was the answer. “Doubtless you recollect.”
-
-“I do nothing of the kind,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“I’m in charge of the--er----” Here Gloucester stood up on tiptoe in
-an endeavour to whisper directly into Carpentaria’s ear--“the
-strong-rooms.”
-
-“Well,” asked Carpentaria, “what do you want?”
-
-“Been robbed, sir.”
-
-“Great Heavens, man!” Carpentaria exploded. “You come to interrupt my
-concert because the strong-rooms have been robbed!”
-
-“Two thousand five hundred pounds, sir.”
-
-“I don’t care if it’s two thousand times two thousand five hundred
-pounds. Go away! Go and worry Mr. Ilam.”
-
-“That’s just it, sir. Mr. Ilam has been taken, too.”
-
-By this time the multitudinous eyes of the audience were fixed on
-Carpentaria and his interlocutor, and everybody was sapiently saying to
-everybody else that something extraordinary must have occurred.
-
-“What do you mean--Mr. Ilam been taken?” Carpentaria demanded.
-
-“He’s been carried off--he carried the money off--he was forced to, sir.
-Revolver, sir. Can’t you come, sir?”
-
-“Can I come? Ye gods! Man, do you know what a concert is? Can I come? Of
-course I can’t come!”
-
-“Mr. Ilam may be dead, sir.”
-
-“We shall have leisure to bury him after the concert,” said Carpentaria.
-“Go away. Go and consult Lapping, head of the police department. Or,
-rather, don’t. You’ll upset the audience making your way out. Sit
-down. Sit right down there, and don’t move. We’re going to play my new
-arrangement of the ‘Glory Song’ with variations. You’ll see it will
-bring the house down. It will be something you’ll remember as long as
-you live.”
-
-“But, sir,” pleaded Mr. Gloucester pathetically.
-
-“Sit down--and listen,” Carpentaria repeated sternly.
-
-He returned to the centre of his men. He rapped the magic wand on his
-desk, and the next moment the band had burst deliriously into the now
-famous orchestral arrangement of the “Glory Song.” The audience was
-thrilled by the waves of sound that emanated from the instruments,
-especially when the variations began. So the entertainment continued,
-while Mr. Gloucester, consuming his middle-aged impatience as best he
-could, ruminated upon the strange caprices of employers. He had been an
-employé all his life; he had never commanded; and his conclusion, at
-the age of fifty odd, was to the effect that the nature of employers is
-incomprehensible, and that you never know what they will do next.
-
-“Excuse me, sir.” He timidly touched Carpentaria when the concert was
-over.
-
-Carpentaria, it appeared, in the rush and fever of the music, had
-forgotten all about him, and was on the point of leaving the court
-deafened by applause.
-
-“Ah, yes!” said Carpentaria. “That thief. Two thousand five hundred
-pounds. And you say that Mr. Ilam has been carried off. Tell me all
-about that. Come this way. Come into the street--it is always the most
-private place.”
-
-And in the Central Way, near the fountain, upon which coloured
-lights were reflected from below, Mr. Gloucester related in detail to
-Carpentaria the episode of the theft.
-
-“You say it was a man dressed in blue, with grey hair?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“And there were three of you, including Mr. Ilam, and you could not
-manage to disarm him?”
-
-“It might have meant death for the first of us, sir.”
-
-“Well,” said Carpentaria absently, “what if it did?”
-
-Mr. Gloucester grunted.
-
-“You said I was to consult Mr. Lapping, sir. Shall we go there?”
-
-“No,” said Carpentaria, “not yet. I will look into it myself first. The
-principal mystery is that of the doorkeeper. What is his name?”
-
-“Wiggins.”
-
-“And he has disappeared?”
-
-“He was not there when I left, sir. And he could not have been there
-when the thief entered.”
-
-“Why not?”
-
-“Because he would not have allowed the thief to enter, sir. He has
-strict orders.”
-
-“Humph! Come along.”
-
-They hastened up the Central Way, in a northerly direction. The rain had
-kept off, and the illuminations, which were superb, evidently met with
-the ecstatic approval of the Y.M.C.A. adherents, who paraded to and fro,
-and filled the flying cars, with the hectic enjoyment of people who
-feel that closing time is near. The progress made by Carpentaria and his
-companion was therefore not of the quickest.
-
-“It’s more than an hour since,” said Mr. Gloucester, daring to show his.
-discontent.
-
-“What is?” asked Carpentaria.
-
-“Since the crime occurred.”
-
-“The fellow must have calculated on my concert,” replied Carpentaria.
-“He probably knew that everybody in this City runs to me when the
-slightest thing goes wrong.”
-
-“The slightest thing!” repeated Mr. Gloucester bitterly--but not aloud,
-only in his secret soul.
-
-They hurried round by the side of the Storytellers’ Hall, and so to
-the passage at the back. And standing at the entrance to the vaults,
-underneath a solitary jet of electric light, was Wiggins, the doorkeeper
-of the heart of the City. He was a man aged about thirty-five, six feet
-two high, and not quite so broad.
-
-“So you’re here!” exclaimed Carpentaria.
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Where have you been since--since Mr. Ilam arrived here?”
-
-“I did what you told me, sir,” said Wiggins, with an air of
-independence. Wiggins was not a Mr. Gloucester.
-
-“What was that?” demanded Carpentaria, mystified.
-
-“Why, your note, sir.”
-
-“What note?”
-
-Wiggins pulled a crumpled paper from his pocket and handed it to
-Carpentaria, who read:
-
-“Come to me in my office at once. If I am not there, wait for me. The
-bearer will take your duties meanwhile.
-
-“C. Carpentaria.”
-
-“Oh!” said Carpentaria. “And who brought this?”
-
-“A Soudanese, sir.”
-
-“Which Soudanese?”
-
-“I don’t know. They’re all alike to me.”
-
-“And it didn’t occur to you that this note was forged?”
-
-“No, sir. Why should it?”
-
-“It didn’t occur to you,” Carpentaria continued, “that I was conducting
-my concert, and that therefore I couldn’t possibly be in my office?”
-
-“I didn’t know anything about any concert, sir. I’m doorkeeper here----”
-
-“Not know about my concert!” cried Carpentaria. Then he calmed himself.
-“Mr. Ilam came before the Soudanese brought the note to you?”
-
-“Yes, sir, but only a few seconds before. He had but just gone in when
-the Soudanese came. I was talking to the driver of the motor-car as was
-waiting, sir, here in front of the door.”
-
-“Oh. So there was a motor-car?”
-
-“Yes, sir. It was one of the City cars. No. 28, sir. To take the money
-away, sir.”
-
-“Good. Who was the driver? Do you know his name?”
-
-“I think his name’s Pratt, sir.”
-
-“Then you left immediately and went to my office and waited for me, and
-then?”
-
-“Then I got tired of waiting and I came back here, sir.”
-
-“Good,” said Carpentaria. “Mr. Gloucester, the garage is indicated as
-our next resort.”
-
-The immense garage of the City was close to the northern entrance gates.
-And it, too, was guarded by a doorkeeper, hidden in a little box near
-the double-wooden doors.
-
-“I want to know if Car No. 28 has come in,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“Yes, sir,” was the reply. “Came in twenty minutes ago.”
-
-“Did you see it?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said the doorkeeper.
-
-“Who was driving it?”
-
-“I didn’t notice, sir.”
-
-“Show us the car, if you please.”
-
-They passed into the desert expanse of the garage, where a few men were
-cleaning cars. Car No. 28 was in its place. In shape it was rather like
-a police-van, but smaller. Carpentaria noticed that its wheels were very
-dirty.
-
-“Open it,” said he.
-
-The key was found, and the interior of the car exposed to the light of
-a lantern. And at the extremity of the car could be seen a vague mass, a
-collection of limbs and clothes on the floor.
-
-“Get in,” said Carpentaria, “and see what that is.”
-
-The next moment two men were dragged out of the car in a state of
-stupor. One was the Soudanese entitled “Spats,” who had become Ilam’s
-bodyguard, and the other wore the uniform of an automobile driver.
-
-“Who is this?” Carpentaria asked.
-
-“It looks precious like Pratt, the man as usually drives this car, sir,”
- answered the doorkeeper.
-
-All the attendants in the place had now gathered round.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII--Carpentaria as Detective
-
-You will now relate to me, as accurately as you can,” said Carpentaria
-somewhat peremptorily to Pratt the chauffeur, “exactly what were the
-circumstances which led to your ceasing to be master of your car.”
-
-Carpentaria had had Pratt and the Soudanese carried to the strong-room,
-the heart of the City, where a chemist and Dr. Rivers had united to
-treat them for the effects of the narcotic which had evidently, by some
-means, been administered to them. Rivers repeated that, so far as he
-could judge, the narcotic employed was chloral hydrate, a drug more
-powerful than morphine, more effective in its action on the heart, and
-less annoying to other functional parts of the body. When Rivers and
-the chemist had finished their ministrations, Carpentaria had
-politely intimated to them that he did not absolutely insist on their
-remaining--a piece of information which surprised the doctor, who,
-having been let into one of his director’s secrets, expected, with the
-confidence of youth, to be let into all of them. The three men, two
-white and one Ethiop, were thus alone together in the chamber.
-
-“Well, sir,” said Pratt, who was a fair man, talkative, with, just at
-present, a terrific sense of his own importance as the central hero of a
-mysterious drama. “It was like this: After I’d had the drink----”
-
-“What drink?” demanded Carpentaria sharply. “The drink the other driver
-offered to me, sir.”
-
-“What other driver?”
-
-“There came up another driver, sir.”
-
-“In the City uniform?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Who was he? What was his name?”
-
-“No idea, sir. I seemed to remember his face, like, but I couldn’t
-recollect his name. I asked him his name, and he said: ‘Don’t try to be
-funny, Pratt; you’ve had a drop too much.’”
-
-“And had you?”
-
-“Not I, sir--of course I hadn’t. I’d made two journeys to the Bank with
-full loads, and the next one was to be the last, and----”
-
-“And you hadn’t had anything to drink at all?”
-
-“Nothing to speak of, sir. A glass of port at Short’s as I was coming
-back the first time, and a pint of beer--or it might have been a pint
-and a half--at the Redcliffe as I was coming back the second time.”
-
-“That was absolutely all?”
-
-“Yes, sir, except a drop of whisky which was left in my flask.”
-
-“But how came the other driver to be in a position to offer you drink?
-Was he carrying casks and other things about with him?”
-
-“No, sir, only a flask. Every chauffeur has a flask. Necessary, sir.
-Cold work, sir. And you’ll recollect it hasn’t been exactly sultry
-to-night.”
-
-“What did he say? Are you in the habit of accepting drinks from men
-whose names you can’t call to mind?”
-
-“He was in the profession, sir, and in the uniform; besides, he said
-he’d got a new cordial, fresh from Madeira, that would keep anyone warm,
-even in the depth of winter, for at least two hours.”
-
-“But this isn’t the depth of winter.”
-
-“No, sir; but, as the cordial was handy, I thought I might as well try
-it.”
-
-“And when you had tried it?”
-
-“I felt rather jolly, sir. I never felt better in my life, and thinks I
-to myself: ‘I’d better write down the name and address of this cordial
-before I forget it.’ So I says: ‘What’s-your-name,’ I says, meaning the
-other driver, ‘what’s the name and address of this cordial, before I
-forget it?’ And I was just taking a pencil out of my pocket to write
-it down when I felt a bit less jolly and the pencil wouldn’t stop in my
-hand.”
-
-“You were on your driving seat?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“And that is all you remember?”
-
-“Yes, sir. Except that once, dreamy like, I thought I was in prison for
-exceeding the legal limit, and that all the lights in the prison were
-turned out, and an earthquake was going on.”
-
-“The other driver stood in the road by the car, eh?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“How was he dressed?”
-
-“I’ve told you, sir. This uniform. Blue and white cap, same as this, and
-long overcoat.”
-
-“You couldn’t see what he wore underneath the overcoat?”
-
-“No, sir.”
-
-“And you?” Carpentaria turned swiftly on the Soudanese. “Did you drink
-too?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-Spats smiled.
-
-“And after you had drunk?”
-
-Spats shook his head, still smiling.
-
-“You remember nothing?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“What?”
-
-“He means he doesn’t remember anything,” Pratt explained.
-
-“You mean you remember nothing?” Carpentaria questioned.
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“Why did you drink?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-The Soudanese looked at Pratt, smiling.. “Because Pratt drank?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“You have been waiting on Mr. Ilam lately, haven’t you?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“When he came to the outer door there, and entered in here, did he tell
-you to wait outside?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“You can both go,” said Carpentaria. “Come to me at eight o’clock
-to-morrow, Pratt, in case I should want you.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Pratt. “Yes, sah,” said the Soudanese.
-
-“No, not you,” Carpentaria explained.
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“One moment,” said Carpentaria to the Ethiopian. “Did Mr. Ilam or any
-other person give you a note to hand to the doorkeeper outside there?”
- The Soudanese shook his fierce and yet amiable head.
-
-“What!” cried Pratt, addressing him in surprise, “didn’t you come up
-and give a note to Wiggins and then go away again, and return a second
-time?” The Soudanese shook his head once more.
-
-“Then there must have been two of ’em, sir,” said Pratt to
-Carpentaria. “This chap’s honest enough.”
-
-“Me have brother,” said the Soudanese, “same me.”
-
-“Where is your brother?”
-
-The Soudanese shook his head.
-
-“In the native village?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“Go and fetch him,” ordered Carpentaria.
-
-And the next moment he was alone in the great chamber, and he felt
-tempted simply to go to the regular police, of whom a few were
-constantly employed by the City, and tell them what had happened, and
-leave the whole affair entirely in their hands. And then the strange
-attraction which always emanates from a mystery appealed to him so
-strongly that he determined to probe a little further into the peculiar
-matter of Ilam’s disappearance, without the aid of professional
-detectives. He didn’t imagine for an instant that Ilam was dead. He was
-capable of believing that Ilam had disappeared willingly; and yet such
-a theory, having regard to the recitals of Mr. Gloucester and of the
-bank-clerk (by this time doubtless on his way to Weybridge, and the
-young thing) was to say the least exceedingly improbable.
-
-He unlocked the door and went outside. Wiggins was at his post, actuated
-by the exaggerated alertness which characterizes one who has been caught
-napping.
-
-“Anything happened, Wiggins?”
-
-“No, sir. Nothing whatever.”
-
-“I shall return soon. If the Soudanese comes, keep him.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-He passed into the Central Way, which was almost deserted. The last
-visitor, the very last stalwart of the Y.M.C.A., had departed, and
-the sole signs of life in the great thoroughfare were a lamplighter
-extinguishing the gas-lamps which were provided in case of a sudden
-failure of electricity, and a road-sweeper in charge of a complicated
-machine with two horses. The clock in the tower of the Exposition Palace
-showed half an hour after closing time. The moon was peeping over the
-eastern roofs.
-
-Carpentaria went to the garage, and, not without difficulty, for it
-was shut up, made his way into the interior and procured some light. He
-wished to make a thorough examination of the car which had been employed
-as the instrument of the plot. He had it drawn out to the centre of
-the garage, under the full flare of an electric chandelier. A sleepy
-attendant hovered in the background.
-
-“Get a ladder and see if there’s anything on the roof of the van--any
-tyres or boxes or anything,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“There’s only this, sir,” replied the attendant when he had climbed up,
-and he produced a cap and overcoat of the City uniform.
-
-“Well, I’m----!” exclaimed Carpentaria, and a notion struck him.
-
-“Doorkeeper gone to bed?” he queried.
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Wake him and tell him I want him.”
-
-While waiting for the doorkeeper, Carpentaria scrutinized attentively
-the wheels of the vehicle; those wheels, even on his first visit, had
-put an idea into his head. Then the doorkeeper arrived, not quite as
-spruce and perfect as a doorkeeper ought to be.
-
-“No one can enter this garage except under your observation?”
- Carpentaria asked him.
-
-“No one,” said the doorkeeper, positively.
-
-“But you don’t keep such a careful eye on the people who go out?”
-
-“Naturally not, sir. They can’t go out till they’ve been in, and if
-they’ve been in they’re all right.”
-
-“Just so. Now try to remember. Soon after this car returned to the
-garage to-night, did any one leave the garage who was unfamiliar to
-you?”
-
-“I don’t remember, sir. You see, sir----”
-
-“Exactly. I see. I am not blaming you. Your theory, though defective, is
-a natural one. Now, do you remember, for instance, a man in a blue suit,
-with grey hair, going out?”
-
-“Upon my soul, I believe I do, sir.”
-
-“You are certain?”
-
-“Oh, no, sir. I’m not certain. But I have a sort of a hazy idea----”
-
-“Look at these wheels,” Carpentaria cut him short. “That’s clayey mud,
-isn’t it?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Where could the car have been to get that?”
-
-“There’s that passage down under the embankment, sir, that way as leads
-to the river.”
-
-“Doorkeeper,” said Carpentaria, “you are brilliant. I also have thought
-of that spot, where just such clay exists. But why should the car go
-down there?”
-
-“Ah,” said the doorkeeper. “There you beat me, sir.”
-
-“Then perhaps you are not so brilliant after all,” said Carpentaria.
-
-And having minutely examined the interior of the car, with no result, he
-left the garage, and returned to the strong room.
-
-The Soudanese was awaiting him at the door, and there were evident
-signs of a quarrelsome temper on the part of Wiggins. Wiggins had not
-forgotten the colour of the messenger who had handed him the forged
-note.
-
-“Well?” Carpentaria asked of the Soudanese. “Where’s your brother?”
-
-The man shook his head, but not smilingly.
-
-“Has he gone?”
-
-“Yes, sah.”
-
-“No one knows at the village where he’s gone?”
-
-Spats shook his head.
-
-“Wiggins,” said Carpentaria. “Is this the man who brought you the note?”
-
-Wiggins hesitated.
-
-“No, sir,” he said at length’, resentfully. “But they’re all alike, them
-folk are.”
-
-“H’m!” murmured Carpentaria. “Since there is nothing to guard here, you
-may as well go, Wiggins. You, too, Spats.”
-
-Two minutes later he was crossing the Oriental Gardens in the direction
-of the Thames. And when he had travelled two hundred yards or so he
-heard footsteps behind him, light, rapid, irregular. He turned quickly,
-his hand on the revolver in his pocket, to face his pursuer. His
-pursuer, however, was Pauline Dartmouth and no other. So he left the
-revolver where it was.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII--The Talk in the Garden
-
-She was so out of breath that at first it seemed as if she could not
-speak. He could hear her hurried breathing, almost like the catch of a
-sob, and in the moonlight he could see fairly clearly her flushed face,
-under the hat, and her tall, rather imperious figure. But he could
-not make out the expression of her eyes. Nevertheless, as he peered
-curiously into them, the thought suddenly struck him: “She is angry with
-me.”
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria, I want to have a word with you,” she said at length,
-stiffly.
-
-“My dear Miss Dartmouth,” he answered in his courtly and elaborate
-manner, “I shall be delighted. What can I do for you? I regret very much
-that you should have had to run after me like this.”
-
-“I’ve been following you up for quite a long time,” she remarked, in a
-more friendly tone. It appeared as if his attitude and greeting had
-made some impression on her, in spite of herself. “First I went to
-your office. Then to the strong-rooms, then to the garage, then to the
-strong-rooms again, and now I’m here. I saw you crossing the gardens.
-Nobody seemed to be inclined to give me any information about you.”
-
-“No?” he murmured, in a cautious interrogative. “Now tell me; how can I
-be of service to you?”
-
-She scanned his features. They were alone together in the midst of the
-immense gardens. A hundred yards away was the bandstand, the scene of
-the greatest triumphs of his life. And yet in that moment his triumphs
-seemed nothing to him as he stood under her gaze. Her personality
-affected him powerfully. He said to himself that no woman had ever
-looked at him like that. There was no admiration in her glance, no
-prejudice either for or against him; nothing but a candid and judicial
-inquiry. “I hope I shall come well out of this scrutiny,” his thoughts
-ran. And the masculine desire formed obscurely in his breast to make
-this girl think favourably of him, to make her admire him, love him,
-worship him. He felt that to see love in these calm, courageous,
-independent eyes of hers would be a recompense and a reward for all he
-had suffered in the forty years of his existence. In a word she piqued
-him. He little knew that up to that very evening she had worshipped him
-afar off as women do worship their heroes.
-
-“Nobody ill, I hope,” he ventured.
-
-She ignored the observation, and said:
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria, what have you done with Cousin Ilam?”
-
-“What?” he cried, amazed both by the question, and by the cold firmness
-with which it was put.
-
-“I think you heard what I said,” she replied. “What have you done with
-Cousin Ilam? Where is he?”
-
-“Miss Dartmouth, do you imagine for one instant that I know where Mr.
-Ilam is? I should only like to know where he is. I’m looking for him
-now. But I was not aware that the fact of his disappearance was known.
-Indeed, I meant it to be kept as secret as possible. I----”
-
-“No, no,” she interrupted him. “I was hoping you would be frank. I
-thought you had an honest face, Mr. Carpentaria, and it is because of
-that that I have come--like this. I have just left your poor sister.
-She is in despair. She has told me all.” Carpentaria did not reply
-immediately. At last he repeated:
-
-“Told you all? All what? You have soon become fast friends, you and
-Juliette.”
-
-“It is possible,” said Pauline drily. “I have met your sister three
-times, but in seasons of distress we women are obliged to cling to each
-other. As for Miss D’Avray and me, we live next door to each other. What
-more natural than that I should call on her this evening? And finding
-her in a condition of--shall I say?--despair, what more natural than
-that I should ask her what was the matter, and what more natural, seeing
-that she has no women friends here, and is of a nature that demands
-sympathy, than that on the spur of the moment she should confide in me?”
-
-“I assure you, Miss Dartmouth,” said Carpentaria, “that I was entirely
-unaware of my sister’s despair--as you call it. What precisely has she
-confided to you?”
-
-“Why, about her engagement to Cousin Ilam, and your opposition.”
-
-“Pardon me, there has been no engagement,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“Pardon me,” said Pauline, “there has been an engagement, because my
-cousin and your half-sister made it. Is there anybody better qualified
-than them to make an engagement?”
-
-She lifted her chin.
-
-“Well,” said Carpentaria. “Let us assume that there was an engagement.”
-
-“They were to be married to-morrow,” remarked Pauline calmly.
-
-“To-morrow!” Carpentaria exclaimed, aghast. “Secretly?”
-
-“Why do you pretend to be surprised? As for the secrecy, your opposition
-has forced them to secrecy, because your sister is afraid of you.”
-
-“And now that your cousin has disappeared, of course, they can’t be
-married to-morrow,” mused Carpentaria. “Hence this woe.”
-
-“Why have you taken such extreme measures, such cruel measures, such
-wicked measures?” asked Pauline, full of indignation. “I can understand
-well enough that you, as a great artist, cannot be expected to behave
-like other people; I can understand you doing mad things, original
-things. I can understand you defying the law, and taking the most
-serious risks on yourself. But I can’t understand you being so cruel to
-your sister, and so utterly beside yourself, as to carry off Mr. Ilam by
-force.”
-
-Her cheeks had flushed.
-
-“By force?” murmured Carpentaria.
-
-Then he laughed loudly, violently, magnificently, after his manner. His
-laugh resounded through the deserted gardens.
-
-“Juliette thinks I have removed her betrothed by force?” he queried.
-
-“Naturally she does!” said Pauline. “The most extraordinary rumours are
-about. It is even said that you have had a quarrel and killed him.”
-
-“Tut-tut!” said Carpentaria, and after clearing his throat he proceeded:
-“Miss Dartmouth, will you kindly fix your eyes on mine. I tell you I
-have had nothing whatever to do with your cousin’s disappearance,
-and that I was entirely unaware of his intention to marry Juliette
-to-morrow.”
-
-She gazed at him doubtfully.
-
-“On your honour?”
-
-“No,” he said proudly, “not on my honour. When I talk to a person as I
-am talking to you, if I say a thing is so, it is so. I decline to back
-my assertions with my honour.”
-
-“I believe you,” she whispered softly, and her eyes fell.
-
-“Thanks!” he said. “Will you shake hands?”
-
-And she gave him her hand loyally. And he thought it was a very slim and
-thrilling hand to shake.
-
-“Do you know,” he said, “it was exceedingly naughty of you to go and
-credit me with being such a monster.”
-
-“Well,” she replied, “perhaps I never did really believe it.” She smiled
-at him courageously. “But I was angry with you for objecting to the
-match. I suppose you won’t deny that you have objected to the match.”
-
-“No,” he said, “I shan’t deny that.”
-
-“And your reasons?”
-
-“I could not disclose them to Mr. Ilam’s cousin,” he answered. “And
-perhaps they are not as strong as they were. I am beginning to think
-that just as you accused me wrongly, so I have accused your cousin
-wrongly. But I can assure you I had better reason than you. Ah, Miss
-Dartmouth,” he added, “it may well occur that you will infinitely regret
-ever having come into the City.”
-
-“Never!” she said positively.
-
-“That’s very polite,” he commented.
-
-“We are getting away from the point,” she remarked in a new tone. “I
-have left your sister in a pitiable state. If you have not had anything
-to do with the disappearance of Cousin Ilam, who has?”
-
-“He may have disappeared voluntarily,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“Impossible!” she replied.
-
-“I think so too.” Carpentaria agreed. “At first I was capable of
-believing that he had played an enormous comedy in order to disappear in
-the most effective manner. But really the comedy grows too enormous to
-be any longer a comedy. It may be a tragedy by this time.”
-
-“And whom do you suspect?” queried Pauline impatiently.
-
-“If I were you,” was Carpentaria’s strange response, “I should ask your
-sister, Miss Rosie.”
-
-“Rosie!”
-
-“Rosie.”
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria, what on earth do you mean?”
-
-“I mean that your sister probably knows something of the affair. Where
-is she at the present moment?”
-
-“She is watching Mrs. Ilam, in place of the nurse.”
-
-“I gravely doubt it,” said Carpentaria with firmness.
-
-“But I have seen her there.”
-
-“It is conceivable,” said Carpentaria. “But I gravely doubt if she is
-still there.”
-
-“I shall be compelled to think that after all you are a little mad,”
- Pauline observed coldly.
-
-“We are all more or less mad,” said Carpentaria. “Otherwise your sister,
-for instance, would not hold long conversations with a highly suspicious
-character every night from the window of her room.”
-
-Pauline, in the light of her knowledge of what had taken place in and
-about the Ilam bungalow on the first night of her residence there, could
-scarcely affect not to understand, at any rate partially, Carpentaria’s
-allusion.
-
-“I don’t quite----” she began, lamely.
-
-“Do you mean to say,” he interrupted her at once, “do you mean to say,
-dear lady, that you are entirely unaware of the surreptitious visits of
-a certain mysterious person to Mr. Ilam’s house?”
-
-“I am not entirely unaware of them,” she said frankly! “I saw the man
-myself one night. I spoke to him. My sister also--also spoke to him. But
-I have not seen nor heard of him since. Nor has Rosie.”
-
-“Of that you are sure?”
-
-“Yes, I think I may say I am sure.”
-
-“Then I must undeceive you,” Carpentaria spoke firmly. “I also have
-acquired a certain curiosity as to that strange individual. And to
-satisfy my curiosity I have kept a considerable number of vigils. And
-I am in a position to state that, not only on the first night of your
-arrival, but every night your sister has had speech with that person
-from the window of her room.”
-
-“Who is he? What can he want?” demanded Pauline, nervously.
-
-“That is a question that I meant to put to you,” said Carpentaria in
-reply.
-
-“As for me, I know nothing.”
-
-“When you spoke to him, as you admit you did, did he not ask you to do
-something?”
-
-“Yes, and I refused his request.”
-
-“But your sister? What did she do?”
-
-“Oh! Mr. Carpentaria,” murmured Pauline, “can I trust you?”
-
-“You know that you can.”
-
-She related to him all the details of the episode of the black box.
-
-“And after that,” Carpentaria commented, “your sister continues to have
-stolen interviews with this man.”
-
-“I can’t help thinking you are mistaken. Rosie would never keep such a
-secret from me.”
-
-“It will be very easy to throw some light on the matter,” said
-Carpentaria. “Let us go to your house and see whether Miss Rosie is in
-Mrs. Ilam’s room as you imagine her to be, and as I imagine her not
-to be. I may tell you quite openly my opinion that Miss Rosie has had
-something to do with the disappearance of Mr. Ilam. I am convinced,
-indeed I know, that he has been spirited away, together with a trifling
-amount of money, by our mysterious visitor, and since our mysterious
-visitor talks to Miss Rosie each night, she on her balcony and he
-beneath it--well, I leave the inference to yourself.”
-
-Pauline started back.
-
-“Yes,” she said, in a low voice, “let us go and see.”
-
-And they went, walking side by side in silence across the gardens.
-
-“I will wait here,” said Carpentaria, when they arrived at the side-door
-of the Ilam bungalow. “You can ascertain whether anything unusual has
-occurred in the house, and particularly if your sister is still at her
-post, and then you will be kind enough to come back and report to me. I
-will watch here.” Without replying Pauline passed into the house. In a
-few minutes she returned. Tears stood in her eyes.
-
-“Well?” queried Carpentaria.
-
-“Rosie is not in the house,” she answered. “Mrs. Ilam is alone. Happily
-she is asleep. Everything is quiet. But Rosie----!”
-
-A sob escaped her.
-
-
-
-
-PART III--JETSAM
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV--The Boat
-
-Carpentaria and Pauline continued to stand motionless outside the
-house, both of them hesitant, recoiling before the circumstances which
-faced them. The night remained clear, almost brilliant.
-
-“The entire situation is changed,” said Carpentaria at length. “A new
-factor has entered into it.”
-
-“What factor?” Pauline demanded.
-
-“Why, your sister, of course!” he replied, with a slight smile that
-disclosed momentarily the quizzical male person in him. “Consider how
-it complicates the affair. If I had to deal only with the mysterious
-individual with grey hair and a blue suit--perhaps you do not know
-that he calls himself Jetsam?--I could go to work in a simple masculine
-fashion, and in the end one of us would suffer, probably he. But with a
-woman in the case----”
-
-“How can you be sure,” Pauline interrupted him, “that Rosie is in the
-case?”
-
-“Can you doubt it?”
-
-“I cannot understand why she should behave so!”
-
-“Perhaps she knew him before,” Carpentaria hazarded.
-
-“Never,” said Pauline positively--“never.”
-
-“Then he has certainly been able to exercise a most remarkable influence
-over her.”
-
-“Not a hypnotic influence, or anything of that kind?”
-
-“Perhaps an influence of quite another kind--quite another kind.”
-
-“But Rosie is scarcely half his age.”
-
-“Do these things depend on age?” cried Carpentaria. “They depend on
-glances, sympathies, and trifles even more subtle than sympathies.
-Besides, she is more than half his age.”
-
-“Oh,” murmured Pauline, with a sudden wistful appeal in her voice, “I
-shall trust you to help me, Mr. Carpentaria. Rosie may be in danger; she
-may be doing something very foolish, mixing herself up like this in the
-kidnapping of poor Cousin Ilam. What is to be done?”
-
-“She is decidedly doing something very foolish,” said Carpentaria,
-“foolish, that is, from a mere ordinary common-sense point of view. But
-I don’t think she is in any danger. I don’t think that either she or you
-are the sort of woman that gets into danger without very good cause.
-As to what is to be done, I have an idea. Mrs. Ilam will be all right
-alone?”
-
-“Yes; for a few hours, at any rate.”
-
-“Then will you come with me to the river? I have some investigations to
-make.”
-
-“Certainly,” said Pauline.
-
-And as they crossed the Oriental Gardens for the second time that night,
-he told her what he knew about the use, or rather the abuse, of the
-automobile.
-
-The marble parapet of the immense terrace of the gardens stood a dozen
-feet above the level of high tide. The terrace was continuous from end
-to end, but in several places it formed a viaduct over paths that ran
-from the gardens at a steep slope down to the bed of the river. It was
-one of these paths, a specially clayey one, at the point where it ran
-under the terrace, that Carpentaria suspected the automobile of having
-taken. Assuming his suspicion to be correct, the automobile could only
-have descended to the Thames, and then, if the tide gave room, turned
-round and returned; or, if the tide did not give room, backed out
-without turning.
-
-“Its sole purpose,” said Carpentaria, as they talked the matter over,
-“could have been to pass something to a boat. Don’t you think so?”
-
-“Yes,” Pauline agreed, and then she added, “unless they merely wanted to
-throw something into the river.”
-
-“What!” He cried; “a corpse?”
-
-“No,” she said calmly. “I was thinking of the two thousand five hundred
-pounds in gold that you told me had been stolen.”
-
-He paused.
-
-“This is really very clever of you,” he said. “But why should they throw
-it into the river.”
-
-“Well,” she said, “it’s high tide, or rather it was, about an hour and
-a half ago. They might have sunk the money, intending to recover it at
-their leisure during the night when the tide sank.”
-
-“Yes, I must repeat,” he said; “this is really very clever of you.”
-
-They were already beginning to descend the broadest of the three paths
-which led from the level of the gardens to the level of the river,
-and the wheelmarks of an automobile were clearly visible thereon, when
-Carpentaria halted.
-
-“Suppose,” he whispered, “they are there now?”
-
-“Who? Mr. Jetsam and my sister?”
-
-“No, not your sister. Mr. Jetsam and his--other accomplices--whoever
-they may be. I do not imagine that your sister has been concerned in the
-actual--er--affair. Indeed, she was at home with you at the time. But
-if Jetsam, for instance, should be down there now, alone or with others,
-there might be a row on my appearance. I will therefore ask you to stay
-where you are, Miss Dartmouth.”
-
-She shook her head.
-
-“I have begun,” she said, “and I will go through with it. Besides,
-what danger could there be? People don’t go shooting and killing
-promiscuously like that.”
-
-“Oh, don’t they!” Carpentaria exclaimed.
-
-“Moreover, I have no fancy to be left alone here now,” she added. “And
-most likely there isn’t anyone there at all.”
-
-“Hush!” said Carpentaria. “Can’t you hear the splash of an oar? Listen!”
-
-They listened.
-
-“Yes,” she murmured. “And is not that the noise of a boat crunching on
-the beach?”
-
-The path disappeared mysteriously before them under the terrace; they
-could not see the end of it. But the sound-waves came clearly enough
-through the little tunnel.
-
-“We will go back,” said Carpentaria, “and slip on to the terrace. Behind
-the parapet we can see anything that may happen to be going on. But
-quietly, quietly, dear lady.”
-
-In a few moments they were creeping across the broad terrace.
-Simultaneously they bent down, side by side, under the parapet and
-looked between its squat, rounded pillars at the water below.
-
-Pauline gave a slight smothered cry, which Carpentaria, with an
-imperious gesture, bade her check.
-
-“Not a word,” he whispered in her ear.
-
-Rosie--Rosie and no other--was manoeuvring a boat off the shore. Her
-face, her dress, her hat, were plainly visible in the moonlight. She
-stood up in the boat, and by means of a boat-hook hooked to a large
-oblong stone, drew the boat to the shore. She then seized the painter
-and jumped lightly out.
-
-The curious thing was that she went directly to the large oblong stone,
-and with a great effort, lifted it up in her arms, tottered with it to
-the boat, and deposited it therein. Carpentaria perceived then that the
-stone was not a stone, but one of the coffers in which was kept the gold
-of the City of Pleasure. He perceived also that, attached to the coffer,
-was a dozen feet or so of rope with a cork float at the end. Rosie
-followed the coffer into the boat, pushed off, and then, at a distance
-of a few yards from the shore, pitched the coffer into the river. This
-done, she landed, made fast the painter of the boat to an iron ring
-in the wall of the embankment and departed; and she did it all rather
-neatly.
-
-Immediately she had disappeared under the terrace, Pauline cried,
-starting up:
-
-“I must go to her--I must ask her what she means by doing such things.”
-
-“Pardon me,” said Carpentaria; “you must do nothing of the kind. I most
-seriously beg you to do nothing of the kind. By interfering now you may
-spoil the coup which we may ultimately make.”
-
-“I don’t quite comprehend you,” Pauline observed. “Miss Dartmouth,” he
-addressed her excitedly, “there can be no doubt in your mind now that
-your sister is concerned in this plot, whatever it is. I am perfectly
-convinced that her motives are good, honourable, kind-hearted. But she
-is concerned in it. We must, therefore, so far as we can, treat her as
-one of the conspirators----”
-
-“But surely----”
-
-“Always with profound respect,” said Carpentaria. “Had the person in the
-boat been any other than your sister, should we have revealed ourselves?
-Certainly not! We should have followed the plot to its next development,
-with this advantage--that we knew something which the conspirators
-imagined to be a secret. The fact that the person in the boat was your
-sister must not alter our course of conduct. And permit me to add, Miss
-Dartmouth, that you first approached me on behalf of _my_ sister. We owe
-something to her, do we not?”
-
-“Yes,” said Pauline in a low voice. “Then what do you mean to do next?”
-
-“I suggest that we go back to your house, to see whether your sister has
-returned. May I ask whether, when you last spoke to her, she gave you to
-understand that she meant to stay with Mrs. Ilam?”
-
-Pauline breathed a reluctant affirmative.
-
-“No hint that she was going out?”
-
-“None. And----”
-
-“And what?”
-
-“Oh, dear!” Pauline sighed. “Must I tell you? Yes, I must! I’m sure
-Rosie is acting for the best, but really it was not her turn to watch
-Mrs. Ilam to-night.”
-
-“Whose turn was it?”
-
-“The nurse’s.”
-
-“And your sister changed the rotation?”
-
-“Yes. She said the nurse needed a holiday, and told her she could go
-away for twenty-four hours, and that she would take her place.”
-
-“What time was that?”
-
-“About six o’clock this evening, I think.”
-
-“And where has the nurse gone?”
-
-“The nurse has gone to a concert at Queen’s Hall, and will sleep at the
-house of some friends at Islington.”
-
-“And does your sister imagine you to be in bed?”
-
-“I expect so,” said Pauline.
-
-They slowly returned to the neighbourhood of the bungalows. Carpentaria
-wanted to hurry, but it seemed as though Pauline was being held back by
-some occult force. As a matter of fact, she dreaded the moment when she
-should re-enter the house. But at length, they stood once again by the
-doorstep of Josephus Ilam.
-
-“What am I to do?” Pauline demanded sadly. “What do you think will be
-the best thing to do?”
-
-“We have not seen your sister in the gardens,” said Carpentaria. “She
-has most probably returned. She would not be likely to leave Mrs. Ilam
-for very long, would she? Go and see if she has returned, if she is in
-Mrs. Ham’s room. And if she is, question her.”
-
-“But how? What am I to say? Am I to ask her if she has been out?”
-
-“By no means!” said Carpentaria promptly. “You are to pretend that you
-know nothing. You must approach her diplomatically. Either she will tell
-the truth or she will----”
-
-“Lie! Lie!” cried Pauline. “Say it openly! Say the word! Admit that you
-are persuading me to behave despicably to the creature who is dearest to
-me in all the world.”
-
-“If there is duplicity,” Carpentaria answered, “you, at any rate, did
-not begin it. We are convinced of your sister’s good intentions. What
-else matters? In a few days, perhaps to-morrow, all will be explained.
-Let me entreat you to go at once. I will await your report.”
-
-She shook her head sadly, opened the door with her latchkey, and was
-just about to shut it when Carpentaria stopped her.
-
-“One moment,” he said. “You have told me your sister believes you to be
-in bed.”
-
-“I say ‘probably.’”
-
-“It is important that she should not be undeceived. I need not insist.
-You can easily make it appear that, having been awakened by some noise,
-you have got up. Eh?” And he smiled.
-
-She tried to smile in return, and disappeared from his view. Within the
-house, she crept upstairs, and into her bedroom, feeling like a
-thief. When she emerged therefrom she had put on a _peignoir_, and her
-_coiffure_ was disarranged. She went to the door of Mrs. Ham’s room, and
-listened intently. There was not a sound. If she was to obey Carpentaria
-she must enter, and she must wear a false mask: to that sister to whom
-she had all her life been as sincere as it is possible for one human
-being to be to another. Well, she could not enter--she could not enter!
-Her legs would not carry her through the doorway. And so, instead of
-going in, she called:
-
-“Rosie!”
-
-But her voice was so weak that she scarcely even heard it herself.
-
-No reply came from the interior. And she called again, this time quite
-loudly:
-
-“Rosie, dear!”
-
-Then she opened the door an inch or two. There was a rush of skirts
-across the room, and Rosie appeared. She was evidently in a state of
-extreme excitement.
-
-“What’s the matter? Are you ill?” asked Rosie.
-
-“I--I was wakened by some noise or other,” said Pauline painfully, and
-it appeared to her that Carpentaria was whispering in her ear the words
-that she must say. “And--and--I--I thought perhaps something had gone
-wrong here.”
-
-“No,” was Rosie’s reply. “But how queer you look, darling! You must have
-had a nightmare. You have quite startled me.”
-
-Pauline did not answer at once.
-
-“You aren’t undressed! You haven’t lain down,” she said at length. “I
-thought you could always sleep very well on that sofa.”
-
-“So I can,” said Rosie. “But I’ve been reading. And besides--it’s rather
-upsetting about Cousin Ilam. I wonder where he can be.”
-
-“Oh!” Pauline remarked summarily, “he’s pretty certain to turn up
-to-morrow. I expect he’s gone into town.”
-
-Rosie yawned.
-
-“Yes,” she agreed.
-
-“Well, good-night, darling,” said Pauline, and took Rosie’s hand. .
-
-“Good-night.”
-
-“How cold your hand is!” Pauline observed, with an inward tremor. “Have
-you been out?”
-
-“Been out? What do you mean?”
-
-“Outside on to the balcony?”
-
-“No. I haven’t stirred from my chair, darling. Bye-bye.”
-
-They stared at each other for an instant, each full of dissimulation,
-and yet also of love, and then they kissed one another passionately, and
-Pauline departed. They were women.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV---A Wholesale Departure
-
-Having retired to her bedroom and divested herself of the deceitful
-_peignoir_, Pauline made her way, with all the precautions of secrecy,
-downstairs again, and so to the door which gave on the avenue.
-Carpentaria was not in view when she timorously put her head out of
-the door, and she was in a mind to rush back to her sister in order
-to confide in her absolutely, and to demand in return her entire
-confidence. She allowed herself to suspect for a brief instant that,
-after all, Carpentaria had not been behaving openly with her; but just
-then the musician arrived--he had evidently been watching the other side
-of the house.
-
-“You were right,” she whispered, before he had time to ask a question.
-
-“Your sister denies that she has been out?”
-
-Pauline nodded.
-
-“Does this help us?” she inquired, as it were, bitterly. “Are we any
-better off, now that I have lied to Rosie, and forced Rosie to lie to
-me?”
-
-“I think so,” he said.
-
-“I don’t,” Pauline retorted. “And I have passed the most dreadful five
-minutes of all my life.”
-
-She seemed to be desolated, to be filled with grief.
-
-“I’m so sorry, so very sorry,” he murmured.
-
-“No, no,” she said quickly. “You have been quite right. We find
-ourselves in the centre of a mystery, and I have no excuse for being
-sentimental. My trust in Rosie remains what it always was. Still, facts
-are facts, and I am ready to do whatever you instruct me to do.”
-
-“Well,” he said, “your sister must have had some reason for insisting
-on watching Mrs. Ilam out of her turn; and that reason is not connected
-with the little matter of the boat. If she had merely wished to go
-unobserved to the boat she would have gone to bed as usual and said
-nothing, wouldn’t she?”
-
-Pauline nodded.
-
-“It is obvious, therefore, that there is something else to be done, or
-to occur--probably in Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom. For if it is not to happen
-in Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom, why should your sister have voluntarily tied
-herself up there?”
-
-“But what could possibly happen in Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom?” demanded
-Pauline, with a nervous start of apprehension.
-
-“How do I know?” Carpentaria replied. “I can only point to certain
-indications, which lead to certain conclusions. You will oblige me by
-watching, Miss Dartmouth.”
-
-“Where?”
-
-“The landing and the stairs of your house. Is there a view of the stairs
-from your room?”
-
-“Yes,” said Pauline.
-
-“Then you can watch from there. Do not burn a light.”
-
-“And if anything strange does occur?”
-
-“Go to your balcony, and tie a white handkerchief to the railings.”
-
-“And you?” queried Pauline.
-
-At that moment there was the sound of a window opening in Carpentaria’s
-bungalow across the avenue, and a voice called plaintively:
-
-“Carlos, is that you?”
-
-“It is I,” he answered, as low as he could.
-
-“Go to her. Comfort her,” Pauline enjoined him.
-
-“I am coming to you,” he obediently called in the direction of the
-window.
-
-Both of them could see the vague figure of Juliette, framed in the
-window.
-
-“Poor thing!” murmured Pauline.
-
-“Afterwards,” said Carpentaria hurriedly, “I shall come out again and
-watch the outside of your house. With you inside and me outside, it will
-be very difficult for anything peculiar to occur without our knowledge.”
-
-And he left her, impressed by her common sense and her self-control, and
-withal her utter womanliness.
-
-The hall of his own house was dark, and all the rooms of the
-ground-floor deserted. He mounted to the upper story. Juliette, hearing
-his footsteps, had come to the door of the study, from whose window she
-had hailed him, and she stared at him with a fixed and almost stony gaze
-as he approached. Her figure was silhouetted against the electric light
-in the study.
-
-“Turn that light out instantly,” he said, with involuntary sternness.
-
-She did not move, and, obsessed by the importance of giving to anyone
-who might be spying the impression that all the occupants of the house
-had retired for the night, he pushed past her and turned off the switch.
-
-“Oh, Carlos,” Juliette sighed, “how cruel you are?”
-
-He now saw her indistinctly in the deep gloom of the chamber, and her
-form seemed pathetic to him, and her sad, despairing voice even more
-pathetic. He went up to her impulsively and took her hand.
-
-“Juliette,” he said, “can you believe it of me?”
-
-“Miss Dartmouth has spoken to you?” she asked, a glimmer of hope in her
-tone.
-
-“Yes,” he said. “Can you believe that I have--have caused anything to be
-done to Ilam?”
-
-“Have you not?” she demanded eagerly.
-
-And he told her what he had previously told Pauline.
-
-She thanked him with an affectionate kiss.
-
-“Carlos,” she said, and the words fell in a little torrent from her
-mouth, “I told you a falsehood this morning. I acted a part. He was in
-my sitting-room all the time. Can you forgive me?”
-
-“I was sure of it,” said Carpentaria calmly, “and I can forgive you,” he
-added.
-
-“You do not know what it is to love,” she said. “You have never cared
-for anyone--in that way. I hadn’t--until I met----”
-
-“Who says I don’t know what it is to love!” he stopped her. “Perhaps I
-am learning. But tell me, when did you last see Ilam? Have you seen him
-since this morning?”
-
-“Yes,” she said.
-
-“Where?”
-
-“At his offices this evening.”
-
-“He gave no hint that he was in any danger?”
-
-“No immediate danger. Oh, Carlos, he is not what you think him to be.
-He is an honest man, and I am so sorry for him, and I love him. Where is
-he? What has happened to him?”
-
-“I can’t tell you now,” was Carpentaria’s reply, “but before morning we
-shall know more, or I am mistaken.”
-
-“It is for the crimes of others that he is suffering,” said Juliette.
-
-“He told you so?”
-
-“No, but I guess; I am sure. I know all his faults--all of them. I do
-not hide one of them from myself. Why should I, since he loves me and I
-love him?”
-
-“My child,” said Carpentaria abruptly, “you might have trusted me more.”
-
-“I should have trusted you absolutely,” answered Juliette, “but he is
-afraid of you. He would not let me. I could not disobey him. Sometime,
-somehow, you must have said something to frighten him and, though he is
-so big and strong, he is timid; he has timid eyes. It was because of his
-eyes that I first began to like him. Carlos, what are you going to do?”
-
-“I am going to watch,” was the response.
-
-“A man came to the back-door not long since, and asked whether you were
-at home.”
-
-“A man came to the back-door?” repeated Carpentaria sharply, every nerve
-suddenly on the strain. “Who was it? What did you say to him?”
-
-“At first I thought it was one of the night-staff, and then the man’s
-face made me suspicious; I imagined it might be a thief--you know what a
-state I am in, Carlos--and so I told him you had just gone to bed, and
-I shut the door in his face. I didn’t want him to think there were
-only women in the house. But, of course, it couldn’t have been a
-burglar--here----”
-
-“That is the wisest thing you have done this day, Juliette,” Carpentaria
-remarked; and then he questioned her as to the appearance of the
-mysterious inquirer.
-
-“Are you going to leave me?” cried Juliette, when Carpentaria picked up
-his hat, which had fallen from a chair to the floor.
-
-“Yes,” he said; “you must try to rest.”
-
-And then they were both startled by a strange noise on the window-pane.
-They listened. The noise was repeated.
-
-“Is it rain?” asked Juliette.
-
-“No,” said Carpentaria, “it’s gravel.”
-
-He went out on to the balcony. A form was discernible in the avenue
-below.
-
-“Is that you, Miss Dartmouth?” he whispered.
-
-“Yes,” came the reply. “I----”
-
-“Hush!” he warned her. “I’ll be with you in a second.”
-
-With a brief explanation to Juliette, he hastened downstairs and let
-himself out of the house. Pauline was already standing at the door.
-
-“Anything happened?” he questioned her.
-
-“Nothing has happened,” said Pauline, “but there is something extremely
-curious, all the same, in our house. It is a most singular thing that
-the housemaid, who never forgets anything, forgot just to-night to leave
-some milk in my room--a thing which I had specially reminded her to
-remember, so I rang the bell for her. There is a bell that communicates
-direct with her room--it used to be in Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom, but we have
-had it changed--there was no answer. I rang again. No answer. You
-know, I’m the sort of person that can’t stand that sort of thing from
-servants, so I went upstairs to her. She was not in her room. There
-are two beds in that room, the second one for the cook. Both beds were
-empty; they had neither of them been slept in. I went into the rooms of
-the other servants. They are all empty. Rosie and I and Mrs. Ilam are
-alone in the house.”
-
-Carpentaria paused.
-
-“Did you tell your sister?”
-
-“No, I came straight here.”
-
-“That was very discreet of you,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“I am beginning to get frightened,” Pauline added. “What can it mean?
-All the servants gone----”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI--The Empty Bedroom
-
-Within the bungalow of the Ilams there remained only two persons who
-were legally entitled to be there, and those persons were Mrs.
-Ilam, motionless for ever, but with her bright, tragic eyes staring
-continually at the same point in the ceiling, and Rosie Dartmouth. These
-two women, however, were decidedly not alone in the house. It was a
-large house, a bungalow more by the character of its architecture and
-its many balconies, than by its size and shape. Most bungalows are long
-and low; this one was long without being low. On the ground floor were
-the reception rooms and kitchen offices; on the first floor were the
-principal bedrooms; and above these was a low-ceiled floor of servants’
-bedrooms. Nor was that all; for the steeply-sloping roof had been
-utilized by an architect who hated to waste space as a miser hates to
-waste money, and hence, above even the servants’ floor was a vast attic,
-serviceable for storage. The attic was reached by a little flight of
-stairs of its own, and it was lighted by two panes of glass let into the
-roof, one on either side.
-
-The ground-floor and the servants’ floor were now dark and uninhabited.
-On the first floor the only occupied room was the bedchamber of Mrs.
-Ilam, where Rosie stood nervously by the mantelpiece in an attitude
-of uneasy expectation. The sole illumination was given by the small
-rose-shaded lamp, which threw a circle of light on the white cloth of
-the invalid’s night-table; all else, including Rosie, was in gloom.
-
-Rosie was evidently listening--the door was ajar--and after a few
-moments she stepped hastily outside on to the landing, and glanced up
-the well of the staircase. At the summit of the staircase she saw the
-door of the great attic open, and a figure emerge; the figure, which
-was carrying a small electric lantern, carefully locked the door of the
-attic behind it, and then, with some deliberation, descended the narrow
-attic stairs, and, more quietly, the stairs from the servants’ floor to
-the first floor.
-
-The figure was that of Mr. Jetsam, clothed in his eternal suit of blue
-serge.
-
-The stairs and landing were quite dark, save for his lantern and the
-faint glimmer that came from Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom. Mr. Jetsam had moved
-without a sound, for he was wearing thick felt slippers. He did not
-immediately notice Rosie on the landing, and when the light of his
-lantern caught and showed her dress, he started back slightly. Rosie
-made no move.
-
-“I did not expect you to be there,” he whispered.
-
-She regarded him with steady eyes, and then, without a word, motioned
-him to proceed further downstairs to the ground-floor.
-
-“You want to talk to me?” he whispered again.
-
-He had a voice which was curiously capable of being almost inaudible,
-and yet at the same time distinct.
-
-She nodded.
-
-He pointed to the open door of Mrs. Ilam’s room, but Rosie shook her
-head.
-
-“Why not?” he demanded.
-
-She shook her head once more, and they went downstairs to the
-dining-room, both silently creeping. With infinite precautions he opened
-the dining-room door, and shut it when they had entered.
-
-“It would have been better to remain upstairs,” he said mildly. “The
-least possible movement is dangerous enough. At this stage a creaking
-stair might spoil the whole business.”
-
-“I cannot talk there,” she said.
-
-“But, since Mrs. Ilam is utterly helpless,” he protested, “what can it
-matter what she hears? She cannot talk.”
-
-“The fact that she hears is more than enough to upset me,” said Rosie.
-“I am like that, you see. I know it is silly, but I can’t help it. I
-wanted to tell you that I have just had a dreadful scene with Pauline.”
-
-“A dreadful scene! You’ve not quarrelled?” he demanded anxiously.
-
-“Oh, no! But I’ve lied to her--I’ve lied to her in the most shocking
-way, and, what is worse, I fancy she didn’t quite believe me.”
-
-“She suspects something?”
-
-His tone sounded apprehensive in the gloom.
-
-“I don’t know; I hope not. In any case, what can she suspect? She’s been
-in bed all the time.”
-
-“True,” said Mr. Jetsam reflectively. “True! You have behaved
-magnificently, Miss Rosie. Never, never, in this world, shall I be able
-to thank you. I had not thought that such a woman as you existed.
-You have given me the first sympathy I have ever had. Yes, the
-first!--without you I could never have succeeded. I could scarcely have
-begun. And now I shall succeed. Listen to me--I shall succeed! A
-wrong will be righted. Justice will be done. If it isn’t, I shall kill
-myself.”
-
-He finished grimly, as it were, ferociously.
-
-“Don’t say that,” pleaded Rosie.
-
-He laughed. Then he lifted the little lantern and threw its ray on her
-face. She did not flinch. “You are very pale,” he remarked softly.
-
-“What do you expect?” she answered. “You have gone much further--very
-much further than I ever dreamt of. You have led me on.”
-
-“No,” he said, “it is your own kindness of heart, your sympathy with the
-unfortunate that has led you on. I assure you I was never so bold before
-I met you, before I appealed to you that night when you stood on your
-balcony. Do you regret? If you tell me to stop, to abandon my plans and
-depart--well, I will depart.”
-
-She smiled sadly.
-
-“I do not want you to do that,” she said. “Nevertheless, I tremble for
-what you have done.”
-
-“Do not tremble,” he said coaxingly. “If I am not safe here, where am I
-safe? Is not this the very last place where anyone would expect to find
-me and my--my booty?”
-
-“But, then, sending the servants away,” she exclaimed.
-
-“Nothing simpler,” he commented.
-
-“I don’t know how I did it,” she mused, as if aghast at the memory of
-what she had achieved; “and as for to-morrow, how I shall explain it to
-Pauline I really can’t imagine!”
-
-“To-morrow,” he said, “everything will be over one way or the other; you
-will be able to resume your habit of speaking the truth. By the way,” he
-went on, in a tone carefully careless, “you managed to do what I asked
-you with the boat?”
-
-“Yes,” she replied.
-
-“Did you meet anyone?”
-
-“Not a soul.”
-
-“And you pulled the plug out and cut the boat: adrift?”
-
-“Pulled the plug out and cut the boat adrift!” she repeated after him,
-amazed. “No; you never told me to do that!”
-
-“Pardon me,” he said, “that was the most important thing of all. It is
-essential that there should be no trace of the boat.”
-
-“I didn’t understand,” she faltered. “I’m so sorry. I never heard----”
-
-“I regret I didn’t make myself more clear,” he remarked. “You see, at
-intervals during the night the watchmen do their patrols, and I know
-there is a regular inspection of the terrace. Supposing the boat is
-seen?”
-
-“I really don’t remember, that you asked me to do that,” she persisted.
-
-“Anyhow,” he said politely, “what you have done deserves all my praise
-and gratitude. But----”
-
-“You would like me to go and sink the boat, wouldn’t you?”
-
-“I hesitate to ask you. It is really too much----”
-
-“Yes, yes,” she said passionately. “I will go and do it--alone.” Then
-she paused. “But suppose I meet the patrol?”
-
-“You are you,” was Jetsam’s response. “You are the President’s cousin.
-You have the right to amuse yourself with a boat, at no matter what hour
-of the day or night.”
-
-“Just so,” she admitted. “I will go now. I shall be back quite soon.
-Shall you be ready by the time I return?”
-
-“Yes,” he said.
-
-“Everything is all right?” She seemed to question him anxiously.
-
-“Quite all right,” he said; “Let me thank you again.”
-
-With an impulsive movement he took her hand and kissed it. She blushed
-and trembled. Then he opened the door and they passed out into the hall.
-
-“I will unfasten the front-door for you,” he whispered. “I think I can
-do it more quietly than you. It may be left on the latch till you come
-back;” and he unfastened the front-door. Through its panes a faint light
-entered the hall.
-
-“I must get my hat,” she said.
-
-They went upstairs.
-
-“I’ll leave you,” he whispered. “You can manage?”
-
-She nodded. He put the light on a bracket on the landing and ascended to
-the upper parts of the house. Rosie went into her bedroom. When she
-came out, wearing a hat, she noticed for the first time that the door of
-Pauline’s bedroom was not shut. She pushed it open very carefully,
-and peered in. A feeble reflection of the moonlight redeemed it from
-absolute obscurity, and Rosie perceived that the bed was unoccupied,
-that it had not even been slept in. Instantly her mind became full of
-suspicions. Had Pauline lied to her as she had lied to Pauline? Was her
-part in the plot of Mr. Jetsam discovered? No, impossible! And yet--Then
-she recollected having heard, or having thought that she had heard,
-the distant ringing of one of the service-bells in the house some time
-before Mr. Jetsam came downstairs. She had forgotten to mention this
-disturbing fact to Mr. Jetsam. Evidently he had not heard the ringing,
-or he would have questioned her about it. Supposing they were being
-watched, after all? And in any case where was Pauline? Pauline had given
-her to understand that she had retired to rest, and lo! the bed had not
-been touched! Full of tremors, she silently shut the door on the empty
-room.
-
-She remembered Jetsam’s threat of what he should do if his plans failed,
-and she hesitated.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII--The Photograph
-
-Mr. Jetsam, having with an attentive ear heard the vague sound of the
-shutting of a door, came out a second time from the mysterious attic
-and descended the stairs. He was a man to omit no precautions, and every
-door that he passed he locked on the outside, not only on the servants’
-floor, but on the first floor. He penetrated then to the ground-floor,
-and fastened not merely every door, but every window. At last he arrived
-at the front door.
-
-“It’s a pity to lock her out,” he murmured to himself; “but what can
-I do? It would be madness to let her assist at the scene I have to go
-through. She expects to, but I must disappoint her.”
-
-And he noiselessly bolted and locked the front door.
-
-The fact was that Mr. Jetsam’s plans had been slightly deranged. He had
-hoped to get through his great scene--the scene to which all his efforts
-had tended--during Rosie’s first absence on the river. He relied on
-Rosie; he had been amazed at her goodness and her fortitude; he had been
-still more amazed at his singular influence over her; and he naturally
-told her a great deal. But he did not tell her quite everything. He
-feared to frighten her. Hence proceeded one of his reasons for sending
-her to the boat, with the object of sinking the coffer further in the
-river as the tide fell. But she had dispatched the business with such
-extraordinary celerity, and he, on his part, had been so hindered by
-such an unexpected contretemps, that she was back again before even he
-had begun.
-
-Thus, he had been obliged to invent a new errand for her, and he
-flattered himself that he had invented the errand, and dispatched her on
-it, with a certain histrionic skill--and he had the right so to flatter
-himself. It desolated him to deceive her, to hoodwink her; but he saw no
-alternative.
-
-Having secured the house, he ascended again, this time taking less care
-to maintain an absolute silence, to the first floor. The affair was
-fully launched now, and no one could interrupt him. If Pauline awoke
-in her locked bedroom and heard things, so much the worse for her, he
-reflected. She could not go out on to her balcony because he had seen
-long ago to the fastening of the window. Therefore she might cry as much
-as she liked. He laughed as he thought of this, not having the least
-idea that he had so elaborately fastened the door and the window of an
-empty room.
-
-He went into Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom with a slight swagger, and shut the
-door. A fire was burning in the grate. He cast a single glance at the
-bed and its mute and helpless occupant, and putting his little lantern
-on the mantelpiece, he walked round the room, inspecting its arrangement
-and its corners. Then, suddenly remembering his own burglarious exploit
-of forcing an entrance into the room by the window, he approached the
-window, flung it wide open and stepped outside on to the balcony.
-Far across the expanse of the Oriental Gardens, in the moonlight, he
-discerned a figure vaguely moving in the direction of the river. It was
-a woman’s figure.
-
-“There she is,” he murmured. “Admirable creature! Why did I not meet
-such a woman when I was younger?”
-
-Then he came in again, shut and fastened the window, and drew the heavy
-curtains across it, taking care that no chink was left through which
-light could be seen. Then he began to whistle softly, and he turned on
-all the electricity in the apartment; there were a cluster of lamps
-in the ceiling, and two lights over’ the dressing-table, besides the
-table-lamps, and his own trifling gleam of a lantern. The room was
-brilliantly, almost blindingly, lit, and every object stood revealed.
-
-He stepped towards the bed, and deliberately gazed into the eyes of
-the stricken old woman. Mrs. Ilam’s burning orbs blinked at intervals.
-Otherwise she gave no sign of volition or of life. Jetsam placed
-his eyes in the fixed line of her gaze, so that they were obliged to
-exchange a glance. She appeared to be unconscious of it. Only a scarcely
-perceptible trémulation ran along her arms, which lay stretched, as
-usual, outside the coverlet, like the arms of a corpse.
-
-“Well,” said Jetsam, “here I am at last, you see. Do you recognize me?
-I’ve changed, haven’t I, old hag? But you can’t be mistaken in me.”
-
-The pent-up bitterness of a lifetime escaped from him in the tones of
-his voice. But the old woman showed no symptom that the terrible past
-was thus revisiting her in its most awful form.
-
-“You thought I was dead, didn’t you?” Jetsam continued. “For over forty
-years you have been sure that I was dead, and that your crime was one of
-the thousands of crimes which go unpunished. And look here,” he went on;
-“if you have any doubt, murderess, as to my identity, look at this. I’ll
-make you look at it, by heaven!”
-
-He bent down, drew up the trouser of his left leg to the knee, and
-pushed the sock into his boot, so that the calf of the leg was
-exposed. On the fleshy part of the calf could be plainly seen a large
-birth-stain. With the movement of an acrobat he raised that leg over
-the bed, over the eyes of Mrs. Ilam, and held it there during several
-seconds. Then he dropped it.
-
-“There!” he exclaimed. “That’s to show you who it is you have to deal
-with.”
-
-His voice was cruel, icy, and inexorable. He had no pity, no trace
-of mercy, for the woman who, whatever the enormity of her sins, was
-entitled to some respect by reason of her extreme age, her absolutely
-defenceless condition, and her suffering.
-
-“They tell me you can answer ‘yes’ or ‘no,’” he said, “by your eyelids.
-Blinking means ‘yes,’ and no movement means ‘no.’ I am going to put some
-questions to you. Did you take the photograph out of the box? Answer.”
-
-Mrs. Ilam closed her eyes and kept them closed.
-
-“What does that mean?” Jetsam grumbled. “Open your eyes again,
-murderess.”
-
-But Mrs. Ilam did not open her eyes again. She obstinately kept them
-closed; and she might have been asleep, except that now and then a tear
-exuded from under the lids.
-
-“I’ll make you open them,” cried Jetsam.
-
-His hand approached the old woman’s eyes, but even his implacable and
-cruel bitterness recoiled from the coward villainy of touching that
-stricken and helpless organism. He drew back his hand, and some
-glimmering sense of the dreadfulness of the scene which he was acting
-reached his heart. The thought ran through his brain that it was a good
-thing Rosie had not been present.
-
-“Very well,” he said, “as you like. Only I know that you, or one of you,
-must have taken that photograph out of the box, and I have every reason
-to believe that it is in this room. In any case I mean to know very
-shortly whether it is or not.”
-
-So saying, he went abruptly out of the room, shutting the door, and
-climbed once more to the attic.
-
-“Jakel” he called quietly.
-
-And a Soudanese, the brother of Ilam’s protector, “Spats,” obediently
-appeared.
-
-“I am ready,” said Jetsam. “Come, pass in front of me. I will lock the
-door myself.”
-
-They went together to Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom.
-
-“You know how to search, Jake?” Jetsam instructed him. “Everything in
-this room has to be searched to find a photograph--a photograph, you
-know--the same sort of thing as this.” And he pointed to a portrait of
-Josephus Ilam that stood on the mantelpiece.
-
-The Soudanese nodded.
-
-“Begin with the chest of drawers,” he said.
-
-In a quarter of an hour the room was in such a state of havoc as might
-have resulted from the passage through it of a cyclone. Every drawer in
-every piece of furniture had been ransacked and emptied. The Soudanese
-had even climbed on a chair in order to inspect the top of the wardrobe,
-and had dislodged therefrom a pile of cardboard boxes. Every book had
-been torn to pieces. Piles of letters lay scattered about. The floor was
-heaped up with Mrs. Ilam’s private possessions. Chairs were overturned.
-One or two vases with narrow necks and wide bases had been smashed in
-order the better to search their interiors. The place was wrecked. But
-the mysterious photograph which Jetsam wanted had not been discovered.
-The Soudanese had found dozens of photographs, but not the right one.
-
-The bed of the invalid was alone undisturbed. Among all the ruins of the
-chamber it remained untouched, white, apparently inviolate, and the
-old woman’s arms lay ever in the same position, and her eyes, open and
-blazing now, gazed ever at the same spot in the ceiling.
-
-“I have it!” exclaimed Jetsam suddenly. “The bed--the bed! The box was
-hidden under the bed, but I got it. The photograph is hidden under the
-bed, and I will get it.”
-
-He hesitated. Dare he search the bed? Dare he disturb its helpless
-burden? He wondered. He was ready for anything. He was capable of
-slaughter, but he wavered and retreated before the idea of searching for
-the photograph in the place where the box had been.
-
-Then he suddenly decided.
-
-“Take firm hold of the bed itself, not the mattress,” he ordered the
-Soudanese, “and I will take hold on this side. Be very gentle. Do not
-disarrange the clothes. We will lift it over the foot of the bedstead
-and place it on the floor. Carefully now--carefully!”
-
-And with the utmost delicacy the two men lifted the bed bodily and laid
-it very gently on the floor, and Mrs. Ilam’s gaze was directed to a new
-point: of the ceiling.
-
-“That will be a change for you,” said Jetsam, with a touch of
-compunction in his voice. “I was obliged to do it. We’ll put you back
-presently.”
-
-And he searched thoroughly the mattress and the bedstead, but there was
-no photograph.
-
-He paused and wiped, his brow. The Soudanese stood at attention by the
-side of the bed. Jetsam looked at Jake.
-
-“Go and fetch him down,” he said peremptorily to the Soudanese.
-
-And Jake vanished.
-
-“One way or another this shall end,” he murmured, gazing at the old
-woman in her lowly position among the heaped confusion of the floor; and
-he waited, eyeing at intervals the door.
-
-At length the door opened, and the Soudanese came in, and he was leading
-by the hand Josephus Ilam. Jetsam stepped quickly behind them and shut
-and locked the door.
-
-“Now then, Ilam,” said he, “sit down. Make him sit down, Jake.”
-
-And quite obediently Ilam sat down on a chair, near the night-table.
-He made no remark; he scarcely looked round; his senses seemed to be
-dulled; it was as though his mind had retired to some fastness from
-which it refused to emerge.
-
-“What do you want?” Ilam demanded gloomily. “What have you been doing?”
-
-“I’m going to make one last appeal to you, Ilam,” said Jetsam. “I
-kidnapped you for this, I may tell you. I was determined to confront the
-mother and the son if necessity should arise. But you nearly did for me
-by swallowing too much of that blessed opiate. You are clumsy, even
-when you are a victim. However, you’ve got over it nicely, haven’t you?
-Pretty notion, wasn’t it,” he continued, “to conceal you in your own
-attic, where no one would ever think of looking for you? But it wanted
-doing, my weighty friend--it wanted doing.”
-
-“What are you after?” Ilam asked again, as if in the grip of one fixed
-idea. “You’ve got the money--what else do you want?”
-
-“You know perfectly well what I want,” said Jetsam. “My case is complete
-except for that photograph, and I’ve secured as much money as will keep
-me on my pins till I’ve forced you to see reason. But the photograph is
-lacking; you are aware of that. It’s certainly rather hard lines on you
-that you should be forced to give up the very thing whose possession by
-me will ruin you. But what would you have? I am desperate, and no one
-knows better than you and this sad creature here that my cause is just.
-Tell me where the photograph is.”
-
-“I don’t know what you mean,” said Ilam doggedly.
-
-Jetsam turned to Mrs. Ilam.
-
-“Listen, murderess,” he said, and Ilam shuddered at that word: “if you
-do not answer my questions I will kill your son before your eyes. Does
-Ilam know where the photograph is?”
-
-Once again the old woman obstinately shut her eyes and refused to give
-any indication.
-
-Ilam, who seemed mentally to be quickly regaining his normal state,
-stood up and moved to the fireplace.
-
-“Stand!” said Jetsam angrily, and he drew his revolver from his pocket.
-“I will know where that photograph is or I will hang for you. I shall
-not be the first man who has died in a good cause. Now, where is that
-photograph? Did you or your mother take it out of the box?”
-
-He lifted the revolver.
-
-“I took it out of the box,” snarled Ilam--“I--I--I--and my mother knew
-nothing.”
-
-“And where is it?” asked Jetsam, smiling triumphantly.
-
-“It is here,” Ilam cried, and he took a faded photograph from his breast
-pocket. “You never thought of searching me, eh? Ass!”
-
-“Give it me,” said Jetsam quietly.
-
-“No,” said Ilam; and with a sudden movement he stuck it in the fire.
-
-The flame destroyed it in an instant.
-
-Jetsam sprang towards him, and then fell back as if stunned. Jetsam was
-beaten, after all. He gave a sort of groan and walked to the other side
-of the room, as if in a dream. He had failed, and he meant to commit
-suicide. All his trouble, all his risks, had gone for nothing. He raised
-the revolver again, and no one in the room quite guessed the tragedy
-that was preparing for them. His finger was on the trigger.
-
-Immediately behind him was a draught-screen, and the draught-screen
-began mysteriously to sink forward. It lodged lightly on his shoulders.
-He turned, the revolver at his temple; and round the screen, from behind
-it, appeared Rosie.
-
-“Don’t do that,” she said calmly, and she took the revolver out of his
-unresisting hand.
-
-Jetsam turned round, saw that the person who had so mysteriously
-interfered was Rosie herself, and sank down on a chair.
-
-“You have done me an evil turn,” he breathed, at the same time with a
-gesture ordering the Soudanese to leave the room.
-
-“I have saved your life,” she said simply.
-
-“Yes,” he replied, with a trace of bitterness. “That is what I mean. You
-are not the first who has saved my life. And if the first saviour had
-refrained we should all have been happier now.”
-
-“Do not say that,” she whispered. “I----”
-
-“You--you would never have met me,” he said curtly.
-
-“I am glad I have met you,” she retorted, bravely facing him.
-
-“Ah!” he sighed. “And yet you play tricks on me! Yet you make promises
-to me and break them!”
-
-“No, no,” she cried. “I only promised to go to the boat, and I would
-have gone to the boat afterwards.”
-
-“Why did you not go at once?”
-
-She told him how she had gone by accident into Pauline’s bedroom and
-found it empty, and how thus all her suspicions were aroused.
-
-“I was afraid your plans might fail,” she said; “and you had threatened
-to kill yourself if they failed; and I thought something dreadful
-might happen during my absence. And so--so--I hid myself here--without
-thinking. I’m so sorry.”
-
-And tears came to her eyes.
-
-“A few minutes ago I might have been seriously perturbed by what you
-have told me,” said Jetsam. “But what does it matter now? If your
-sister is against me, if the house is surrounded by spies, it makes no
-difference. I wanted to kill this man here. I should have killed him;
-but I thought of the annoyance it would give you. Yes,” he smiled, “I
-did really. Not to mention the futile trouble it would cause me. And on
-the whole I regarded it as simpler and neater to kill myself. But you
-have stopped that. Will you oblige me by putting down that revolver? It
-is at full cock.”
-
-“You will not touch it?” she demanded.
-
-“I will not touch it,” he replied.
-
-She laid it at the foot of the bed, and then bent down inquiringly to
-old Mrs. Ilam, who rested with closed eyes.
-
-“She is asleep,” murmured Rosie.
-
-“Through all this?”
-
-“Yes, thank heaven! She sleeps very heavily sometimes. Will you not put
-the bed back in its place? I do not like to see it here. It is painful,
-very painful, in spite of all you have told me about her, to see this.
-She is very old and very helpless.” During the conversation Ilam had
-remained in a sort of stupor. It was as though the effort of putting the
-photograph in the fire, and then the shock of Rosie’s sudden appearance,
-had exhausted the energies which he had managed with difficulty to
-collect as the results of the narcotic passed away; it was as though
-the narcotic had resumed its sway over him for a time. But now he came
-brusquely forward, taking two long steps across the room, and stood
-between Rosie and Jetsam, and he put his face quite close to Rosie’s
-face, as an actor does to an actress on the stage.
-
-“Are you this scoundrel’s accomplice?” he asked hoarsely.
-
-“Cousin,” said Rosie, “Mr. Jetsam is not a scoundrel, and I am nobody’s
-accomplice.”
-
-“He has nearly killed me, and he has robbed me of two thousand five
-hundred pounds,” pursued Ilam. “If that is not being a scoundrel, what
-is? Tell me that. You are his accomplice. You came into this house to
-serve his ends.”
-
-“Indeed, I did not,” protested Rosie, “I came into this house with my
-sister at your urgent request.”
-
-“Yes,” sneered Ilam. “That is what you made me believe, you chit! You
-worked it very well; but I know different now.”
-
-“Until I came here I had never seen Mr. Jetsam,” said Rosie.
-
-“You have come to understand each other remarkably well in quite a few
-days.”
-
-“Perhaps we have,” admitted the girl. “But if you object you have a
-simple remedy.”
-
-“What is that?”
-
-“You say he is a thief and almost a murderer. You say that I am his
-accomplice; we are criminals therefore. Bring us to justice. Have the
-entire affair thrashed out, Cousin Ilam.”
-
-“You know that I cannot do that,” said Ilam.
-
-“I am well aware that you dare not,” said Rosie. “The scandal would be
-intolerable. Think of Pauline’s feelings.”
-
-“But suppose Pauline, too, is in the conspiracy?”
-
-“There would always be the scandal. It would ruin the City.”
-
-“It is neither the scandal nor the City that you are thinking of, Cousin
-Ilam,” said Rosie. “It is merely yourself or your mother. If it is your
-mother, well and good.”
-
-Ilam retired a couple of paces, uncertain what to say in reply, and
-possibly fearing some attack from Mr. Jetsam, who stood behind him.
-There was a silence, and then Ilam murmured:
-
-“Ah! my poor mother, sleeping there in the midst of all this!”
-
-It was a cry from the strange man’s heart, and another silence ensued.
-The situation had reached such a point as baffled all the parties to it
-to discover a solution.
-
-It was Jetsam who broke the silence.
-
-“I will leave you,” he said in a low voice.
-
-“Good-bye,” he said, as no one replied.
-
-“Where are you going to?” asked Rosie.
-
-“I am merely going,” answered Jetsam.
-
-“But you will tell me where?” she insisted.
-
-“It is vague,” he replied. “Out of your life--that is all I can say. It
-was too much to hope that at the end of a career which has been one long
-and uninterrupted misfortune the sun of happiness should shine on me.
-I was destined to failure from the beginning. You do not know all
-my story; but you know some of it--enough to enable you, perhaps, to
-forgive me. Good-bye!”
-
-He moved to the door.
-
-“You will not leave me like that,” said Rosie. “You dare not leave me
-like that. You are going to kill yourself.”
-
-“No,” he said. “I have got over that caprice, I think. I shall drag out
-my existence to its natural end.”
-
-“Give me your address,” Rosie said doggedly.
-
-He shook his head.
-
-“You are cruel,” she whimpered. “After----”
-
-She was interrupted by Ilam himself, who said:
-
-“Rosie, go downstairs. I have two words to speak to this fellow. Go
-downstairs. Leave us.” His tone was cold and acid.
-
-“Yes,” Jetsam agreed after a moment. “Leave us; we have to speak to each
-other.”
-
-“You will not go without seeing me?” asked Rosie.
-
-“I will not,” replied Jetsam, and the next instant the two men were
-alone together in the room, save for the unconscious form of Mrs. Ilam.
-
-The door had been locked again, this time by Ilam.
-
-“She is in love with you,” Ilam shouted fiercely. “You have imposed on
-her; you have taken advantage of her ignorance of life, and she is in
-love with you! It is infamous. I am stronger than you, and unless you
-promise me----”
-
-“Idiot!” Jetsam stopped him. “What are you raving about? You must be
-mad. You must have forgotten--as your mother forgets. As for this poor
-girl being in love with me-----” He stopped with a hard laugh. “What has
-that to do with you?”
-
-“It has everything to do with me,” cried Ilam, and, as if transported
-by fury, he suddenly sprang on Jetsam, who was all unprepared, and,
-clasping him in a murderous embrace, threw him to the ground. “I’ve had
-enough of you,” he ground out the words through his teeth. “And if I
-finish you, I can easily show that it was in self-defence.”
-
-And he had scarcely spoken when his hands fell lax in astonishment
-and alarm, for immediately outside the window, or so it seemed, there
-sounded four notes of a trombone, brazen, clear, and imposing in the
-night. No one who has heard Beethoven’s greatest symphony will ever
-forget the four notes--commonly called the notes of fate--with which the
-most tremendous of musical compositions opens. It was these notes which
-the trombone had given forth. There was a silence, and the instrument
-repeated them, and in the next pause that followed, the two men who an
-instant before had been joined in a dreadful struggle, lay moveless,
-listening to their own breathing; and a third time the trombone sounded.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII--The Dead March
-
-When Pauline, standing outside Carpentaria’s bungalow, had communicated
-to Carpentaria the fateful fact that all Ilam’s servants had disappeared
-from their rooms, and had given expression to the vague and terrible
-fear that was beginning to take possession of her, the musician said in
-reply:
-
-“You have every reason to be afraid, and yet I shall ask you to try to
-calm your apprehensions. Whether the servants are there or not, nobody
-can get into your house without our knowing it, and when anybody starts
-to attempt to get in, there will be plenty of time for you to alarm
-yourself then.”
-
-“But Rosie alone there with poor Mrs. Ilam!” sighed Pauline.
-
-“Mrs. Ilam can’t do her any harm, at any rate,” said Carpentaria
-comfortingly.
-
-And with that he commenced a cautious perambulation of the exterior of
-Ilam’s house, Pauline following him.
-
-“I wish you would go to my sister until I have something to report,”
- he murmured. “You will take cold, and you will work yourself up into a
-fever, and do no good to anybody.”
-
-“I shall not work myself up into a fever,” replied Pauline firmly. “I
-am capable of being just as calm as you are yourself. Let us go at once
-into the house--let us go to Rosie.”
-
-“What!” expostulated Carpentaria, “and spoil whatever scheme is going
-on? No, my dear young lady, we have gone so far that we must go a
-little further. We must catch the schemers red-handed. If we do not, our
-night’s work will have been wasted.”
-
-The idea of weakly and pusillanimously changing a course of conduct
-at the very moment when that course promised the most interesting
-adventures shocked all the artist in him.
-
-They stared blankly at the house, whose form was clearly revealed in the
-misty moonlight, but none of whose windows showed the slightest glimmer
-of light. It was an extremely modern tenement, and its architecture was
-in no way startlingly original; nevertheless, in those moments it
-seemed to both of them the strangest, the most mysterious, the most
-insubstantial house that the hand of man had ever raised.
-
-Suddenly Pauline clutched his arm.
-
-“I hear some one walking somewhere in the grounds,” she said.
-
-They both listened. In the stillness of the night regular steps sounded
-plainly from a distance.
-
-“It is the patrol on the terrace,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“It is assuredly on the terrace--the sound of heavy boots on stone
-flags, isn’t it?”
-
-“Yes,” Pauline agreed, loosing his arm.
-
-They were twenty or thirty yards from the house.
-
-“I want you to be brave and to do something for me.”
-
-Carpentaria turned to her.
-
-“What is it?”
-
-“Go to the patrol, and tell him I have sent you, and that he is to
-remain within sight of the boat there, until further orders, keeping as
-much in the background as possible. Will you go?”
-
-“Alone?”
-
-“Alone. There is no danger. Besides, one of us must remain here, and one
-person can more easily keep out of sight than two. My fear is that the
-boat may be used again. The patrol is not to prevent the boat
-being used. He is not to show himself; he is merely to observe. You
-understand?”
-
-“Then you insist on my going?”
-
-“No, I entreat you to go.”
-
-And without more words she went. It was her figure, and not the figure
-of Rosie, that Mr. Jetsam had seen in the gardens when he peeped out of
-the window of Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom.
-
-Carpentaria, now alone, recommenced from a fresh spot his vigil over
-the closed house. He argued with himself with much ingenuity as to
-what point the persons who wished to enter it would choose for their
-appearance, but he could decide nothing. They might, he thought, come by
-the avenue, or round by the back from the other side of the buildings of
-the Central Way, or even through the gardens. He was growing impatient
-of a delay apparently interminable, and then his glance happened to
-wander upwards to the roof of the house. He could not see the roof
-itself, because he was now too near the wall, but it appeared to him
-that he detected a phenomenon above the roof which was somewhat unusual.
-He walked carefully away from the house until the expanse of roof became
-visible; and, indeed, he had not been mistaken. There was a radiance
-there. The small square pane of the attic, flat with the surface of the
-roof itself, was illuminated, and sent up a faint shaft of light into
-the sky.
-
-Instantly he saw his own shortcomings as a counter-schemer against
-schemers. He had assumed that the schemers were not already in the
-house, whereas he had had no grounds for such an assumption. The
-schemers were most obviously in the house, and they had most obviously
-been there for a considerable time, since no one could have recently
-entered it without his knowledge. He was angry with the schemers, and he
-was more angry with himself, and one of those wild ideas seized him--one
-of those ideas which could only occur to a Carpentaria. He would
-catch these schemers himself, by his own devices, and he would do it
-leisurely, dramatically, and effectively. He would make such a capture
-as never had been made before. He did not know precisely who the
-schemers were, nor their numbers, nor their nefarious occupations in
-the house; and he did not care. When once he was in the toils of a
-grand romantic idea he cared for nothing except the execution of it. He
-laughed with joy.
-
-“Why do you laugh?” said a voice behind him.
-
-It was Pauline, who had returned. She had given the instructions to the
-patrol.
-
-“An idea,” he replied--“a notion that appealed to me.” And then
-he perceived that he must at all costs get rid of Pauline, and he
-continued: “My sister is extremely disturbed,” he said. “Will you not,
-as a last favour, go and stay with her? Do not refuse me this. I will
-find some one to assist me in my work here--one of my trombone-players
-on whom I can rely. I--I really do not care for you to be out here like
-this. The strain is too much for you.”
-
-“But Rosie----” she objected again.
-
-“Rosie is all right,” he reassured her. “I will answer for Rosie’s
-safety with my life; and when I say that, I mean it.”
-
-“I will do as you wish,” said Pauline at length.
-
-“Let me see you into the house,” he murmured, enchanted.
-
-He unlocked his front-door for her, and called out softly, “Juliette!”
-
-“Is that you, Carlos?” said a voice in the darkness at the top of the
-stairs.
-
-“Yes,” he said. “Here is Miss Dartmouth come to keep you company. Do not
-use a light--at least, use as little light as possible, until you hear
-some music.”
-
-“Hear some music? What music?”
-
-“Never mind what music. If you should hear some music you will know that
-you are at liberty to turn on all the lights you like. Miss Dartmouth
-will tell you why I want darkness at present. Here are the stairs, Miss
-Dartmouth. Cling to the rail. _Au revoir._”
-
-“But----” faltered Pauline.
-
-“_Au revoir_, I said,” he whispered insistently.
-
-Before leaving the house he rushed into the kitchen, found a long
-clothes-line, of which he seemed to know exactly the whereabouts, and
-appropriated it.
-
-The next minute he was tying the handle of Ilam’s front-door firmly to
-the railing, so that it would be impossible to open the door from the
-inside. He secured in the same manner the side-door and also the gate
-in the wall of the kitchen yard. He then fixed pieces of rope under
-windows, in such a manner that a person endeavouring to leap from a
-window to the ground would almost certainly be caught in the rope, and
-break a leg or an arm, if not a neck or so.
-
-“Cheerful for them!” he murmured maliciously. “I only hope it won’t be
-Miss Rosie who tries to make her exit by the window. I have answered for
-her. However, I must take the risks.”
-
-He glanced finally round the house, throwing away some short unused
-pieces of rope, but keeping two long pieces. He surveyed the house with
-satisfaction.
-
-“I think I can safely leave it for five minutes or so now,” he said to
-himself; and he shut his penknife with a vicious snap and put it in his
-pocket.
-
-Then he ran off at a great speed in the direction of the Central Way.
-At the southern end of the Central Way, nearly opposite to the general
-offices of the City, was an elegant building known as the band-house.
-Here dwelt the majority of the members of Carpentaria’s world-renowned
-orchestra. Some members, being married to women instead of married to
-their art, had permission to possess domestic hearths in London and the
-suburbs, but these were few. The edifice was a very large one, as it.
-had need to be. A peculiar feature of it was the rehearsal-room on the
-top floor, constructed, like the finest flats in New York, in such a
-manner as to be absolutely sound-proof.
-
-Carpentaria rang the electric bell at the portals of the band-house, and
-the portals were presently opened by a sleepy person whose duty it was
-to admit bandsmen returning after late leave.
-
-“Look ’ere,” said the porter, “this is a bit thick, this is. Do you
-know as the hour is exactly----”
-
-“Hold your tongue, you fool!” Carpentaria stopped him briefly, “and go
-and bring Mr. Bruno to me at once; it’s very important. Let’s have some
-light.”
-
-“I beg pardon, sir,” said the porter, astounded by this nocturnal
-apparition of the autocrat of the band. “Mr. Bruno is asleep, sir. He
-had two whiskies to make him sleep, and went to bed afore midnight,
-sir.”
-
-“I know he’s asleep. Do you suppose I thought he was standing on his
-head waiting for the dawn? Go and waken him--and quicker than that!
-Here, I’ll go with you.”
-
-The two men went upstairs together, and Mr. Bruno, principal
-trombone-player of the band, was soon sitting up in bed, awaking to the
-presence of his chief.
-
-“Bruno, my lad,” said Carpentaria, “give me your trombone.”
-
-“My trombone, sir?”
-
-“Yes,” said Carpentaria. “Mendelssohn once remarked that the trombone
-was an instrument too sacred to use often, but I think the supreme
-occasion has arrived for me to use it to-night.”
-
-“It’s there, in the corner, sir,” said Bruno, wondering vaguely what was
-this latest caprice of Carpentaria’s.
-
-Carpentaria rushed to the thing, took it out of its case, and put it to
-his mouth.
-
-“H’m!” he murmured, after he had sounded a note gently. “I can do it,
-I think. Listen, Bruno! The occasion is not only supreme; it is
-unique. You are to rouse all the men; you are to dress, and take your
-instruments; and you are to go out quietly and surround the bungalow of
-our honoured President, Mr. Josephus Ilam. You are to make no noise of
-any kind until you hear me give the first bars of a tune, either with my
-mouth or with this instrument. You are then to join in that tune.”
-
-“What tune, sir?”
-
-“You will hear.”
-
-“Where shall you be, sir?”
-
-“You will see. Get up, now; don’t lose a second.” Carpentaria was off
-again. He returned to Ilam’s house, and climbed to the balcony of the
-window of Mrs. Ilam’s bedroom. It was fortunate that he had preserved
-the rope, for he could not have climbed with the trombone in his arms.
-His method was to leave the trombone on the ground, the rope tied to
-it; he kept the other end of the rope in his hand, and drew the trombone
-after him.
-
-Then it was that he sounded on the trombone the terrible phrase of
-Beethoven’s, which put a period to the struggle between Ilam and Jetsam.
-
-He felt for the handle of the French window, and, finding the window
-fastened on the inside, adopted the simple device of leaning with his
-full weight against the window-frame. The whole thing gave way, and
-through a crashing of glass, a splintering of wood, and the tearing of
-curtains he backed into the room, the trombone held precariously in one
-hand and his revolver very firmly in the other.
-
-The scene that confronted him was sufficiently surprising. Amid the
-extraordinary disorder of the chamber he found its three occupants all
-stretched on the floor. The old woman was apparently oblivious, but the
-two men, releasing each other, gazed at him for all the world like two
-schoolboys caught in an act contrary to discipline.
-
-“Did I startle you? I hope so,” said Carpentaria, when he had found his
-bearings. “I meant to.”
-
-Jetsam was the first to rise.
-
-“You with the red hair!” cried Jetsam. “You are trying to save my life
-again!”
-
-“Never mind my red hair,” said Carpentaria, ruffled. “I am not trying
-to save anybody’s life. I’m here on a mission of inquiry. No one leaves
-this room until I have had a full explanation of everything. I have
-stood just about as much as I can stand of the mystery that has been
-hanging over this City for a week past. Ilam, let me beg you to get up
-and take a seat over there in that corner. Thanks!”
-
-He relinquished the musical instrument as Ilam clumsily resumed his feet
-and obeyed.
-
-“As for you, Mr. Jetsam,” continued Carpentaria, “you know, from
-accounts which have reached me, the precise moral effect of a loaded
-revolver such as I am now pointing at you. Go into the other corner.”
-
-“I won’t,” said Jetsam. “You can fire if you like. As a matter of fact,
-you daren’t.”
-
-“You propose to leave the room and defy me?”
-
-“I propose to leave the room.”
-
-“Listen,” said Carpentaria.
-
-He took the trombone and blew on it loudly a few notes which neither
-Jetsam nor Ilam immediately recognized. But the musicians, who had
-by this time surrounded the house, recognized them. And at once there
-entered by the smashed window the solemn and moving strains of the Dead
-March in “Saul.” The house seemed to be ringed in a circle of awful
-melody.
-
-Jetsam shuddered.
-
-“Now kindly stay where you are,” said Carpentaria.
-
-And Jetsam stayed where he was, at the foot of the bed, his back to Mrs.
-Ilam’s prone figure.
-
-The playing continued.
-
-“What foolery is this?” demanded Ilam slowly.
-
-“It is part of a larger piece of foolery that has rescued you, Ilam,”
- Carpentaria replied, and he was crossing the room to approach Ilam,
-when he saw something in the looking-glass over the mantelpiece, and he
-started back.
-
-Mrs. Ilam, the paralytic, roused in some strange way, either by the
-violence of the scenes at which she had assisted, or by the inexplicable
-influence of the music, was almost erect in her bed, and her trembling
-parchment hands had seized the revolver which Rosie had left on the
-floor, and she was endeavouring to point it between Jetsam’s shoulders.
-The other two men turned and saw the fatal and appalling movement of
-the aged creature, who was evidently in the grip of some tremendously
-powerful instinct--the kind of instinct that only dies with death.
-
-Carpentaria alone retained his self-possession. With a swift and yet
-gentle movement he disarmed the terrible old woman, and she sank back,
-with streaming eyes, helpless and moveless as before. The incident was
-over in a few seconds.
-
-“And now,” said Carpentaria, “I will hear your story, Mr. Jetsam. But
-first, we must lift this bed back to its proper-position.”
-
-“Very well,” replied Jetsam, trembling in spite of himself. “You shall
-hear my story.”
-
-The music ceased.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX--Mr. Jetsam’s Recital
-
-
-We will go downstairs,” said Carpentaria, when a certain amount of
-order had been restored to the room. “We shall be more at ease there.”
-
-“No,” cried Jetsam, and there was a note of passion in his voice. “This
-old woman shall hear my tale. I tell it in her presence, or I tell
-it not at all.” Carpentaria gazed at Mrs. Ilam’s eyes, which made no
-response. Her bed was now replaced in its proper position, and those
-strange burning eyes perused their old spot in the ceiling. After the
-brief and terrible return of activity to that stricken body, it seemed
-to have sunk back into a condition of helplessness more absolute even
-than before. The eyes burned, but not quite with their former disturbing
-brilliance.
-
-“Very well,” Carpentaria agreed.
-
-Ilam was already seated, apparently half-comatose. The other two men
-each seized a chair. And then there was a timid but insistent knocking.
-
-“What is that?” demanded Carpentaria of Jetsam. “You ought to know; you
-have been master here for some hours.”
-
-“It is Miss Rosie, I imagine,” Jetsam answered. “Your singular music has
-startled her.”
-
-Carpentaria walked rapidly to the door, unlocked it, and opened it.
-Rosie it indeed was who stood there.
-
-“Ah, my dear young lady,” he said lightly, without giving her an
-opportunity even to express her astonishment. “I would like you to go to
-your sister, who is in my house over the way. But I fear you cannot
-open any of the doors. Won’t you retire and rest a little, after your
-complicated labours?” He smiled a little grimly. “Everything is all
-right here, and should your aged relative need your ministrations you
-may rely on me to call you. In the meantime, your cousin and I, and your
-particular friend Mr. Jetsam, must have a chat on business matters.”
-
-He bowed, covering the aperture of the door with his body so that Rosie
-could not see inside the room. As for Rosie, she hesitated.
-
-“I entreat you,” he insisted, “go and rest, and don’t have anything more
-to do with boats; you might drown yourself. And believe me when I say
-that nothing further will be done in secret. The moment I am free I will
-endeavour to free the doors.”
-
-Rosie moved reluctantly away down the landing. She had not spoken a
-word. Carpentaria closed the portal softly and retired to his chair.
-
-“You have my attention,” he remarked significantly to Mr. Jetsam.
-
-“Well,” said Jetsam, after a moment’s pause. “It goes back a very long
-time, this affair does, Mr. Carpentaria. It certainly began before you
-were born--down at Torquay. Torquay, according to what they tell me, was
-not the place then that it is now, not by a considerable distance; but
-it was fashionable. It had got a bit of a name as a good place to go and
-get fat in. Perhaps that was why a certain soda-water manufacturer went
-there to spend a year or so. He was a very wealthy man, and he rented
-a villa there. It’s one of those villas on the top of the hill between
-Union Street and the sea, and it still exists. His age was about fifty,
-and he was supposed to be worth half a million or so--all made out of
-gas and splutter, you see. Being supposed to be worth half a million
-or so, of course he soon had the entire population of Torquay knocking
-at his door and throwing cards into his card-basket. He made a wide
-circle of friends in rather less than no time, and being a simple,
-decent creature, though not faultless, he was pretty well pleased with
-himself. Now among the friends that he made was a certain widow,
-age uncertain--but in the neighbourhood of thirty, and her name was
-Kilmarnock.”
-
-At this time Mr. Jetsam stood up, and bending over Mrs. Ham’s bed with
-his smile so ruthlessly cruel, he repeated, staring at the invalid:
-
-“Her name was Kilmarnock, wasn’t it?”
-
-Mrs. Ilam made no sign. Mr. Jetsam resumed his chair.
-
-“A pretty woman, I believe she was, with magnificent black eyes; the
-most wonderful eyes in the West Country, people said,” Mr. Jetsam
-proceeded. “Husband dead some little time. Anyhow, she had gone out of
-mourning, and her dresses were the amazement of the town. They’d look
-pretty queer nowadays, I reckon, because that was before 1860. However,
-her dresses have got nothing to do with it, especially as the
-soda-water manufacturer--have I happened to mention that his name was
-Ilam?--especially as Mr. Ilam couldn’t see them very well. Mr. Ilam was
-beginning to suffer from a cataract; both his eyes were affected, and
-the disease was making progress rapidly. You must remember that oculists
-didn’t know as much about cataract then as they do now. Well, Mr. Ilam
-was himself a widower--a widower with one child, aged three years. He
-had been a widower for two years when he first met Mrs. Kilmarnock. He
-liked Mrs. Kilmarnock. She seemed to have in her the makings of a good
-nurse, and one of the things that Mr. Ilam wanted was a faithful, loving
-nurse. He was certainly in an awkward predicament. He also wanted a
-mother for his child; and Mrs. Kilmarnock took a tremendous fancy to the
-child--a simply tremendous fancy. He was a man who talked pretty freely
-and openly, Mr. Ilam was, and he made no secret of the fact that, though
-he preferred to marry a widow, he would never permit himself to marry
-a widow who had children of her own. And one day he said to Mrs.
-Kilmarnock that, since he had never heard her mention a child, he
-assumed that she had no children.
-
-“She replied that his assumption was correct, and that she continually
-regretted being childless, as she adored children, and felt very
-severely the need of something to give her a real interest in life.
-A month later Mr. Ilam asked Mrs. Kilmarnock to marry him, and she
-consented like a bird. Three months later they were married. Everybody
-said kind things; for you must know that Mrs. Kilmarnock was not
-penniless herself. Oh, no! She lived in very good style in Torquay, and
-gave dinners that Torquay liked. And Torquay is a good judge of dinners.
-Her husband had been a Scottish writer to the Signet, she said. So the
-marriage was celebrated amid universal plaudits, and there was quite
-three-quarters of a column about it in the _Western Morning News_.”
-
-At this juncture Carpentaria ventured to interrupt the speaker.
-
-“You appear,” he said, “to be remarkably well informed about matters
-which occurred long before you were of an age to take an intelligent
-interest in them. At the time of this marriage you surely were not in
-the habit of reading newspapers?”
-
-“I was not,” answered Jetsam drily. “I had attained the mature age
-of three years. If I am well informed it is because I have taken the
-trouble to inform myself. You see, I was interested, and I have spared
-no pains during this last year or two to acquire all the circumstantial
-details of the case.”
-
-“I perceive,” said Carpentaria. “But how were you interested?”
-
-“You will understand presently,” said Jetsam. “To continue. This Mrs.
-Kilmarnock, whom we must now call Mrs. Ilam, used, both before and after
-her second marriage, to pay visits to the town of Teignmouth, and these
-visits were, not to put too fine a point on it, of an extremely discreet
-nature; they were, in fact, strictly secret. Mrs. Ilam fell into the
-habit of telling her husband that she was going to Exeter to shop, but
-instead of going to Exeter she went only as far as Teignmouth. She was
-always dressed very simply indeed for these Teignmouth visits. She used
-to walk through the town from the station, and, having taken the ferry
-across the Teign, she walked up the right bank of the river till she
-came to a cottage that stood by itself in the marshy land thereabouts.
-At the cottage an old man and woman and a little boy would meet her. And
-the strange thing was that the old man spoke French; he could not speak
-English. You may possibly not be aware that onion-boats from the coast
-of Brittany are constantly arriving at the smaller Devonshire ports,
-such as Torquay and Teignmouth. The old man was a Breton peasant,
-with all the characteristics of a Breton peasant, who had arrived at
-Teignmouth once in an onion-boat, and forgotten to go back again because
-he fell in love with an Englishwoman--a Devonshire lass with a soft
-drawling accent. So Mrs. Ilam used to talk to the Breton peasant in
-French, and to his wife in English, and to the boy in baby language. She
-would cover the boy with kisses; she would call him by pet names, and
-she saw him at least once a week.”
-
-“He was her son?” Carpentaria put in interrogatively.
-
-“You have naturally guessed it,” Jetsam responded. “He was her son.”
-
-“But if she was really a widow, and this was really her son, why did
-she----”
-
-“Oh,” cried Jetsam, “I think she was really a widow, and there is not
-the slightest shadow of doubt that this was really her son. Perhaps she
-kept him a secret from Torquay because she felt that he might prove an
-obstacle to the achievement of her desires in Torquay. Anyhow, she loved
-him passionately. Her son was, beyond question, the greatest passion of
-her life.” He turned abruptly again to the old woman, “Wasn’t he?” he
-demanded.
-
-And the aged creature’s burning eyes were filled with tears.
-
-“I think perhaps it might be as well to leave Mrs. Ilam out of the
-conversation,” suggested Carpentaria.
-
-“Impossible to leave her out of the conversation,” said Jetsam quickly,
-“because the conversation is almost exclusively about her. However, I
-will not trouble her any more for confirmation of what I say. Well, for
-nearly a year after her second marriage these clandestine visits of Mrs.
-Ilam to the cottage on the banks of the Teign continued with the most
-perfect regularity, and then something extremely remarkable happened.”
-
-“What was that?”
-
-“First, I must tell you that soon after the marriage Mr. Ilam’s cataract
-got rapidly worse. In six months he could only distinguish objects
-vaguely. He could not read anything except shop signs. In Mrs. Ilam
-he found an admirable nurse and companion. Except for her shopping
-excursions to Exeter she never left his side. She was a model wife,
-and all Torquay admitted the fact. Even when Mr. Ilam’s impaired vision
-rendered him captious, querulous, and indeed unbearable, she remained
-sweetness itself; and Mr. Ilam would not admit anyone but her to his
-presence. He even took a dislike to his child, his only son, and the
-infant was left in the charge of servants and governesses, except that
-Mrs. Ilam saw him as frequently as she could.”
-
-“But this is not very remarkable,” said Carpentaria, “such things are
-constantly happening.”
-
-“I am coming to the remarkable part,” replied Jetsam, with a certain
-solemnity of manner. “One day the old Breton fisherman told Mrs. Ilam
-that a relative had left him property in his native district, and that
-he had persuaded his wife to go with him to France so that they might
-end their days there. Mrs. Ilam was extremely disturbed by this piece
-of news, because she did not know what to do with the boy. She asked the
-Frenchman how soon he proposed to leave, and the Frenchman said in about
-three weeks. She left and said she would come back again in a few
-days. It is at this point that the remarkable begins. Within a week all
-Torquay was made aware that Mr. Ilam, at the solicitation of his wife,
-had decided to go to Paris to consult a great specialist there.”
-
-“I see,” breathed Carpentaria, while Ilam’s face wore at length a look
-of interest.
-
-“I doubt if you do see,” said Jetsam. “You think that Mrs. Ilam was
-arranging to go to Paris in order to be nearer her son. Well, she was,
-but not at all in the way you imagine. They departed from Torquay almost
-at once, and in a somewhat remarkable manner, for Mrs. Ilam dismissed
-every servant, even her own maid and Mr. Ilam’s man, and the child’s
-nurse--all were dismissed in Torquay itself--and Mr. Ilam and his wife
-and child left Torquay railway station entirely unaided, except by
-porters and the domestics of a hotel. Mrs. Ilam would certainly have all
-her work cut out to conduct the expedition, for you must remember that
-at this period Mr. Ilam was practically blind. Well, they had to change
-at Exeter and catch the Plymouth express, and at Exeter the old French
-peasant was waiting on the platform, evidently by arrangement, and he
-held Mrs. Ilam’s own little boy by the hand, and Mrs. Ilam and the
-peasant had a long talk by themselves, and then the express came in, and
-the Ilams got into it, and the express started off again for London, and
-the French peasant was left standing on the platform holding the little
-boy by the hand. You see?”
-
-“No,” said Carpentaria bluntly.
-
-“Well,” proceeded Jetsam. “It was not the same little boy that the
-peasant held by the hand. Mrs. Ilam had taken her own child with her,
-and left behind her step-child.”
-
-“Great heavens!” murmured Carpentaria. “Exactly,” said Jetsam. “Only
-the heavens didn’t happen to interfere. This was no common case of
-substitution at birth, it was a monstrously ingenious change which
-Mrs. Ilam, out of her passionate love for her own son, had planned and
-carried out in a manner suggested to her by the facts of the situation.
-Consider. The two boys were the same age--about three years--and they
-were dressed alike, Mrs. Ilam had seen to that. Mr. Ilam is nearly
-blind, certainly he could not distinguish one child of three from
-another child of three, even if they had been dressed differently.
-Moreover, Mr. Ilam is not interested in the child. He is wrapped up in
-his own complaint, a ferocious egotist, like most sufferers. Probably
-the child sleeps during the journey to London--probably Mrs. Ilam gives
-him something to make him sleep. The party arrive at Paddington, and
-are met by a new set of servants whom Mrs. Ilam has engaged. She left
-Torquay with a child; she arrived at Paddington with a child. Who,
-except the old French peasant, is to know that there has been a change
-_en route?_ The new child is kept entirely out of Mr. Ilam’s presence.
-He is taught his new name; he is taught to forget his past on the banks
-of the Teign; and he readily succeeds in doing so. His new nurse is
-suitably discreet. During their brief stay in London the Ilams stop at
-a hotel. They do not visit friends, on the plea of Mr. Ilam’s complaint.
-Then they leave London for Paris.”
-
-“The thing was perfect,” observed Carpentaria, astounded.
-
-“It was fatally perfect,” Jetsam agreed. “Even had Mr. Ilam been cured
-at once, the danger would have been but slight, because he had never
-seen his own child clearly. However, Mr. Ilam was not cured at once, for
-it happened that the famous oculist whom they meant to consult died on
-the very day they entered Paris. It was seven years before Mr. Ilam got
-himself cured; but in the end he was cured almost completely. The boy
-was then aged ten years. What possible chance was there of a discovery
-of the fraud? Even had Mr. Ilam ever seen his child clearly, what
-resemblance is there between an infant of three and a boy of ten? None;
-none whatever. Mrs. Ilam had triumphed: she had deposed the authentic
-heir of Mr. Ilam and had put her own son on the throne in his stead.”
-
-“And the other boy?” Carpentaria queried.
-
-Jetsam paused, his eyes bent downwards.
-
-“Do you know the Breton peasantry?” he demanded suddenly, at length.
-
-“Not in the least,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“Ah, well; that doesn’t matter! When you hear the sequel of the story
-you will be able to imagine what a Breton peasant is capable of. He is
-the equal of the Norman peasant, and no French novelist has ever yet
-dared to write down the actual! truth about the Norman peasant. I told
-you that Mrs. Ilam and the old Frenchman had a chat on Exeter platform.
-She told him that she was giving him a new charge, preferring to take
-the other boy herself. It was arranged that the new charge should
-accompany the Breton to France, and live with him as his foster-child.
-Terms were fixed up, no doubt to the entire satisfaction of the peasant.
-Then Mrs. Ilam ventured to play her great card. She informed the
-Frenchman that his new charge was a very delicate plant, frequently ill,
-and not apparently destined to long life. This, by the way, was grossly
-untrue. ‘Of course, if he were to die,’ she said in effect to the
-peasant, ‘you would lose the income which I shall pay to you for looking
-after the child, and to compensate you for that loss I will promise
-to give you, if he dies, the sum of five hundred pounds.’ I expect she
-managed to put a peculiar and sinister emphasis on these words. Anyhow,
-the Frenchman understood. That was just the kind of thing that you might
-rely on a Breton peasant to comprehend without too much explanation.
-Five hundred pounds is five hundred pounds; it is over twelve thousand
-francs, and twelve thousand francs to a Breton peasant is worth
-anything--it is worth eternal torture.”
-
-“And so, in due course, Mrs. Ilam received news of her stepson’s death?”
-
-“In due course she received news of her stepson’s death,” said
-Jetsam. “It took a considerable time--six years, in fact--‘but it was
-accompanied by legal proof, and when she received it Mrs. Ilam must have
-been as happy as the day is long, especially as her own boy was growing
-up strong and well, and Mr. Ilam had taken quite a fancy to him. So
-all trace of the crime--would you call it a crime, or only a pleasing
-manifestation of a mother’s love?--all trace of the crime was lost,
-for the French peasant died; the English wife of the French peasant had
-expired a long time before.”
-
-And Jetsam paused again.
-
-“I am accepting all that you say as gospel,” said Carpentaria. “Because
-somehow it impresses me vividly as being true.” Here he looked at
-Josephus Ilam, who avoided his glance. “But how does this matter concern
-yourself, and in what way did you come upon the traces of the crime?”
-
-“I’ll tell you,” Jetsam recommenced. “It was like this. The boy was not
-dead.”
-
-“Not dead?”
-
-“No. He had run away. He had had a pretty hard time before the death of
-the peasant’s wife. Afterwards, his existence was a trifle more exciting
-than he could bear. He was starved and he was beaten. But that was not
-all. On board fishing boats he was forced to accept dangers and risks of
-such a nature that the continuance of his life was nothing less than a
-daily miracle. So he ran away. He was aged nine, and he had a perfect
-knowledge of two languages as his stock-in-trade.”
-
-“But the legal proof of his death?”
-
-“Nothing simpler. The foster-father was a great friend of the village
-schoolmaster, and the schoolmaster, as you may know, is always the
-secretary of the mayor in a French village. He it is who makes out
-all certificates, and transacts every bit of the routine business of
-population-recording. The foster-father suggested to the schoolmaster
-that in exchange for a certificate of the boy’s death, the schoolmaster
-should receive a note of the Bank of France for a thousand francs. This
-was more than half a year’s salary to the schoolmaster, and the result
-was that the foster-father got the certificate. No fear of discovery!
-None knew of the issue of the certificate except these two men. And the
-lady for whose benefit the certificate was issued would be extremely
-unlikely to visit a remote French fishing village.”
-
-“And what occurred to the boy?”
-
-“The principal thing that occurred to the boy is that he is now sitting
-here and telling you his story,” said Jetsam, calmly.
-
-“I guessed it,” said Carpentaria, with equal calmness, “as soon as you
-mentioned that the boy was not dead.”
-
-Josephus Ilam maintained a stony silence.
-
-“I knocked about for nine or ten years,” continued Jetsam, “both in
-England and France, chiefly fishing. Then I suddenly became respectable.
-I got a place in a house-agency in Cannes, chiefly on the strength of my
-knowledge of French and English. Of course, that only lasted during the
-winter season. But my employer had a similar agency in Ostend during
-the summer. It was in Ostend that I became gay. I joined a theatrical
-troupe. I travelled a great deal. I did everything except make money.
-And after ten years of that I settled down again as a house-agency
-clerk. I really was rather good at that, much better than as a
-music-hall performer with revolvers, for instance. And in various
-‘pleasure cities’ of Europe I acted as a clerk for over twenty years.
-Think of it--twenty years! And me growing older and narrower and more
-gloomy every year in the service of ‘pleasure.’ I never saved any money
-to speak of, even though I remained single, perhaps because I remained
-single. And then one day, finding myself at St. Malo, I thought I would
-go and have a look at that fishing village which I had fled from over
-thirty years before. My delightful foster-father was, of course, dead;
-so was the schoolmaster; but one or two people remembered me, and among
-them was an old woman who had been a charming young girl when I left. It
-appeared that my old foster-father had fallen deeply in love with her
-in a senile way, and at her parents’ instigation she had married him for
-his money. He had confided to her, once when he thought he was dying,
-the secret of the substitution on Exeter platform. And now she told me.
-She had always liked me. You should have heard her pronounce ‘Exeter.’
-It was the funniest thing.”
-
-Mr. Jetsam laughed hardly.
-
-“So that was how you got on the track?” said Carpentaria.
-
-“Yes. I then pursued my inquiries in Torquay, and I found my old
-nurse. She told me that the real child of Mr. Ilam had a large crimson
-birthmark on the calf of his left leg. I had that mark. She also told me
-that there existed a photograph--one of the old daguerreotypes--of me as
-a child in the arms of my step-mother, my father standing close by, and
-that the mark on my leg was most clearly visible on this photograph.
-And that was the only real solid piece of information that I obtained,
-except that the photograph used to be kept in an old lacquered box.
-I had an instinct that the photograph had been preserved. And it was
-preserved--until to-night! I relied on the photograph. I could dimly
-recollect Torquay and Exeter platforms, but of what use would my
-assertions be without some proof, some tangible proof? When I thought of
-my wasted and spoiled and miserable life--and of what it might have been
-had I not been hated by a woman, I was filled with hatred and with--with
-such sorrow as you can’t understand.”
-
-A sob escaped from Mr. Jetsam, and Carpentaria got up and took his hand.
-
-“It is not too late for justice,” said Carpentaria.
-
-“That woman has always hated me,” Jetsam murmured. “And even to-night
-her hatred still burned so fiercely that she tried to kill me. Even if
-she could speak, would she admit the truth? And she cannot speak.”
-
-“I think I can cause her to communicate with us,” said Carpentaria. “You
-will see in a moment.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX--The Words of Mrs. Ilam
-
-
-Carpentaria bent over the old woman, as if to search ‘her eyes and find
-some kindness there.
-
-And it seemed to him, indeed, that the character of her gaze had
-somewhat changed, though those brilliant orbs, famous in Torquay fifty
-years ago for their splendour, showed no trace of humidity.
-
-Carpentaria himself was moved. It would have been impossible for anyone,
-least of all an artist of romantic instincts such as he, to listen
-to Jetsam’s recital without emotion. And now, when the narrative was
-finished, Jetsam sat silent and preoccupied, the figure of grief and of
-failure. One felt, in observing him, the immense tragedy of his life--a
-life which would not have been a tragedy, but merely a little slice of
-the commonplace, had he not by chance learned the sinister secret of his
-origin. One understood how the discovery of that secret had completely
-changed his view of existence, how it had filled him with ideas of
-frantic hope, frantic revenge, and frantic regret at the long drab
-irrecoverable years which the past had swallowed up. One penetrated, as
-it were, into his brain, and watched how he was continually contrasting
-what his career actually had been with what it might have been--with
-what it would have been but for the ruthless action of the woman on the
-bed.
-
-And then there was the burly, smitten figure of Josephus Ilam, too,
-equally pathetic in its way. For love of this strong, heavy man, who
-once had been a little boy in a sailor suit standing on Exeter platform,
-the woman on the bed had committed a crime which was certainly worse
-than murder. She had made one life and she had marred another. And now
-she herself was stricken, withered, about to appear before the ultimate
-tribunal. It was incontrovertible that, if she had sinned, she had
-sinned magnificently, in the grand manner.
-
-Carpentaria glanced at the two men, and then back again at the aged
-mother.
-
-“I understand, Mrs. Ilam,” he began in a voice strangely soft and
-persuasive, “that you can indicate ‘yes’ or ‘no’ by a slight movement.
-Miss Dartmouth told me the other day. Is this so? I entreat you to
-answer me.”
-
-With a sudden jerk Josephus Ilam rose from his chair and rushed to the
-bedside.
-
-“Answer him, mother.”
-
-Mother and son exchanged a long gaze, and then Mrs. Ilam’s eyelids
-blinked. It was the affirmative sign.
-
-“Thank you,” said Carpentaria simply. “Now it seems to me, if you are
-not too tired, that we can quite easily carry on a conversation upon
-this basis. It will be slow, but it will be none the less sure. By
-successively choosing letters out of the alphabet you can make up words,
-and so form sentences. You can choose the letters thus: I will run
-through the alphabet, and when I come to the letter you want, you will
-blink. Do you comprehend my scheme?”
-
-The eyes blinked.
-
-“And are you willing to try it?”
-
-There was a considerable pause, but in the end the eyes blinked.
-
-“Very good,” said Carpentaria. “Now, quite probably you will want to
-begin with the letter ‘I,’ eh?”
-
-The eyes blinked.
-
-“Excellent! Your first word is ‘I.’ Let us go to the next word. A, B, C,
-D--------”
-
-At “D” the eyes blinked again.
-
-With infinite patience, Carpentaria continued to help Mrs. Ilam to
-express herself, and though that mouth was incapable of speech and those
-hands would never write again, the woman transmitted her first thought
-to the outer world, and it went thus:
-
-“_I do not regret_.”
-
-There was something terrible, something majestic, in that unrepentant
-enunciation. It illustrated the remorseless character of the aged
-creature, whose spirit nothing apparently could conquer. Josephus
-Ilam moved away from the bed and hovered uncertainly between the
-dressing-table and the window. Jetsam got up from his chair and, taking
-Ilam’s place, examined the features of the woman who had ruined his
-life and cheated him out of all that was his. And even Jetsam could not
-forbear an admiring exclamation.
-
-“You are tremendous,” he murmured. “I could almost like you.”
-
-Carpentaria waved him aside.
-
-“Has Mr. Jetsam told us the truth, dear madam?” he interrogated her.
-
-And the eyes blinked. It was as though they blinked joyously, defiantly.
-
-“Do you agree that restitution should be made, so far as restitution is
-possible?” Carpentaria asked.
-
-There was no movement of the eyelids.
-
-“You object to restitution, even now?”
-
-Still there was no movement of the eyelids. But Josephus Ilam’s legs
-could be heard shuffling on the floor.
-
-“You wish to speak, then? A, B, C, D----------”
-
-Carpentaria went on to “W” before Mrs. Ilam signified that the sentence
-was to commence. The words ran:
-
-“Why named Jetsam?”
-
-The woman’s mind was evidently exploring, in a sort of indifferent
-curiosity, the side-issues, the minor scenes, of the terrific drama
-which she had started and of which she now witnessed the climax.
-
-She appeared to have no sense at all of her own responsibility.
-
-“It was a name I gave myself when I first found out who I was,” said
-Jetsam bitterly. “Something chucked overboard and forgotten, you see.”
-
-A slight smile seemed to illuminate the woman’s face.
-
-“Do you agree that restitution should be made?” Carpentaria repeated
-patiently.
-
-The eyes of the paralytic made no sign until Carpentaria began again to
-go through the alphabet. Then, letter by letter, the message came:
-
-“If my son wishes.”
-
-“Mother,” Ilam murmured, averting his face from the bed, “of course I
-wish. I nearly killed him myself the other day. You thought I had been
-dreaming--till you saw him yourself, and, and----”
-
-He stopped; he broke down.
-
-And then Mrs. Ilam proceeded, with Carpentaria’s help:
-
-“My son must tell me about that.”
-
-“No,” Jetsam put in authoritatively; “I will tell you about that.
-Ilam--or rather I should say Kilmarnock--is in no condition to make
-speeches. When I first came to this place to begin my struggle for what
-was mine, I really had not got much of a plan in my head. It was so
-difficult to make a start. It may seem to you quite a simple thing”--he
-turned away from Mrs. Ilam and addressed Carpentaria--“to go up to a
-person and say to him, ‘Look here, you are standing in my shoes, and
-your mother has committed an act foully criminal!’ But in practice it
-isn’t quite as easy as it seems. You want a gigantic nerve to make a
-statement like that as if you meant it--although you do mean it. It
-sounds rather wild, you see. And then I met my supplanter rather before
-I was ready for him. The truth is that he came into that little place
-where I was hiding in just the same way as you came in, Mr. Carpentaria.
-He caught me like you did--a trespasser; and, of course, I was at a
-disadvantage. He spoke to me very roughly, and then angered me----”
-
-“How could I know who you were?” demanded Ilam.
-
-“Exactly. You couldn’t know. But the effect on me was the same. Put
-yourself in my place, Mr. Kilmarnock. I had been cheated out of my whole
-career. You were in unlawful possession of it; and on the top of that
-you came along, and behaved to me as if I were a dog. Well”--here Jetsam
-addressed his stepmother again--“I told him who I was, and pretty quick
-too, and I could see from his manner that he knew the history of our
-origin, and the substitution on Exeter platform.”
-
-“I knew,” Ilam admitted with a certain sadness. “My mother had once told
-me--I came across traces of a mystery, and she told me.”
-
-“And you did nothing?” queried Jetsam. “It was not on your conscience?”
-
-“You must recollect that we had the legal proof of your death. What was
-there to be done? I could not have made restitution to the dead, even
-had my mother permitted.”
-
-“But when I told you who I was,” rejoined Mr. Jetsam, “unless I am much
-mistaken, you believed what I said.”
-
-“I did,” Ilam agreed. “Moreover, you bear a most distinct likeness to a
-portrait of my stepfather, painted when he was about your age.”
-
-“You believed me, and your answer was to try to kill me?” Jetsam
-sneered.
-
-The two men, the son and the stepson, were now opposite to one another,
-on either side of the bed, while Carpentaria, intently listening, stood
-at the foot.
-
-“I did not try to kill you,” answered Ilam.
-
-“You pretty nearly succeeded,” said Jetsam.
-
-“I thought I had killed you,” Ilam said gravely. “But I had no intention
-of doing so. You said something very scathing about my mother----”
-
-“I said nothing that was not justified.”
-
-“You insulted my mother. I lost my temper. I hated you. We always hate
-those whom we have wronged. I struck you. You fell, and you must have
-knocked your head against the pile of planks lying in the enclosure;
-you never moved. I examined you. I could have sworn you were dead--I was
-afraid--I thought of inquests. I knew the whole truth would come out. I
-had not meant to kill. So I took you and buried you temporarily, while
-I considered what I should do afterwards. I went back to the house
-and told my mother. She would not believe me. She thought I had been
-dreaming. I do frequently have bad nightmares. And certain things that
-occurred afterwards made even me suspect that after all I had been
-dreaming. It was not until you came again that I----”
-
-“And even your mother believed then, eh?” said Jetsam. “Your mother
-believed too suddenly. She saw me and she believed! And the result was
-paralysis! I ought to have broken it to her more gently. That would have
-been perhaps better for all of us--perhaps better!”
-
-There was a pause. And Jetsam added, as if communing with himself:
-
-“How she hated me! How she hates me still! even to-night, if some one
-had not interfered in time----”
-
-He could not get away from the amazing tenacity of Mrs. Ilam’s purpose.
-
-“You wish to speak?” said Carpentaria, who had been observing the
-woman’s eyes; the eyes were blinking nervously.
-
-He began the alphabet again, and her message ran thus:
-
-“I do not hate him; but I love my son. To-night I thought Josephus was
-in danger. That was why--revolver. I always acted for my son. I love
-him!”
-
-These sentiments, so unmistakably clear in their significance, took some
-time to transmit. Mrs. Ilam appeared to be exhausted. But after a few
-moments she continued:
-
-“Where is Rosie? She helped him. I want to know why.”
-
-The men exchanged glances.
-
-“Why did she help you?” Carpentaria asked of Jetsam.
-
-“Better ask her!” replied Jetsam curtly.
-
-Carpentaria did not hesitate an instant. He went to the door, opened
-it, and called Rosie, and his voice resounded through the well of the
-staircase and the empty rooms. And then Rosie came from; downstairs,
-like an apparition. She had been crying.
-
-“Mrs. Ilam wants you to explain why you have been helping Mr. Jetsam,”
- said Carpentaria, as she entered.
-
-“Helping him in what?” Rosie parleyed timidly.
-
-“In his plans----”
-
-“Against me,” Ilam added.
-
-“I only helped him in his plans for justice,” said Rosie.
-
-“But why?”
-
-“Because I was sorry for him. Because there is something in his
-tone--because--oh! if he has told you all, are you not all sorry for
-him? When I think of what his life has been----”
-
-She stopped and burst into tears.
-
-“But my hair is grey,” murmured Jetsam. “How can you possibly be
-interested in me? What does it matter what happens to me? My life is
-over.”
-
-“No it isn’t!” Rosie protested. “It hasn’t yet begun. It is just
-beginning. Mrs. Ilam and Cousin Ilam will be just to you. You will not
-bear them ill-will. The wrong is too old for that. You will forget it.
-You will forget all the past. Your hair may be grey, but I’m sure your
-heart isn’t. And your voice can influence even the Soudanese. The way
-that man obeyed you! The way he got the better of his brother just
-to please you! It seems strange, but I can understand it, because I
-have----”
-
-Again she stopped.
-
-Jetsam went up to her and took her hand, which she seemed willingly to
-release to him. And he held it.
-
-“How good you are!” he said steadily. “I am almost ashamed to have
-roused your sympathy so much.”
-
-The other two men watched.
-
-“I don’t know what Pauline will say,” Rosie stammered.
-
-Suddenly there was the sound of music. The band, which everybody in the
-room had forgotten, had begun to play, apparently of its own accord. And
-the melody it had chosen was, “See the Conquering Hero Comes.”
-
-Carpentaria rushed to the window. And then, as he drew the curtains, all
-noticed for the first time that the dawn had begun.
-
-“What are you making that noise for?” he demanded angrily from the
-balcony. The music ceased abruptly.
-
-“We’re saluting the sun, sir,” came the reply. “It’s morning. We
-imagined that possibly you had lost sight of the fact of our existence.”
-
-“I had,” said Carpentaria. “However, you can go!”
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria,” cried another voice--a woman’s, firm and imperious.
-“Open the front door immediately and let me in. I insist.”
-
-It was Pauline.
-
-“Certainly, Miss Dartmouth,” said Carpentaria obediently. “Kindly
-cut the rope which you will see tied to the handle. I will tell the
-Soudanese to admit you.”
-
-And he did so.
-
-And presently footsteps were heard on the stairs, and both Pauline and
-Juliette came in.
-
-“Rosie!” exclaimed Pauline. The sisters were clasped in each other’s
-arms.
-
-“Forgive me, dearest!” Rosie entreated; and they kissed.
-
-“But what have you----?” Pauline began, naturally mystified to the
-utmost.
-
-“Ah, Miss Dartmouth,” said Carpentaria, “I fear you must wait for
-enlightenment until you can hear the whole story.”
-
-“But the servants?” cried Pauline.
-
-“I sent them to sleep in the staff-dormitories. I said you wished it,”
- answered Rosie, smiling.
-
-“But why should I wish it?”
-
-“I don’t know,” said Rosie. “When they asked me that, I told them I
-didn’t know,” she smiled again faintly. “But Mr. Jetsam will explain it
-all to you. I--I tried to help him, and I have succeeded--I think.”
-
-During this conversation, Juliette, with that direct candour which
-frequently distinguishes women in a crisis, had gone straight to
-Josephus Ilam and seized his hand. She was assuring herself that he
-was not hurt, when Mrs. Ilam once more gave a sign with her eyelids.
-Carpentaria resumed his position as helper.
-
-“It was because I loved him,” Carpentaria spelt out for her, “that I
-tried to kill you--twice.”
-
-Carpentaria fell back. Then he regained his self-command and, pushing his
-fingers through his red-gold hair, he asked monosyllabically, “Why?”
-
-And then he interpreted for her the answer to his own question.
-
-“You worried Josephus. He wanted to get rid of you.”
-
-Josephus disengaged his hands from those of Juliette.
-
-“Mother!” he moaned sadly, and then added, “She is mad!”
-
-But through Carpentaria Mrs. Ilam said:
-
-“I am not mad. But my love has always been too strong.”
-
-“Did you know of this, Ilam?” Carpentaria asked his partner solemnly.
-
-“Of course I did not,” was the answer--“not till it was too late.”
-
-“Then, why did you warn me up in the wheel?”
-
-“Because I suspected. I suspected my poor mother was beginning to hate
-you, and I feared that---- I can’t say any more.”
-
-Carpentaria, powerfully moved, walked out of the room, and it was
-Pauline who followed him.
-
-Mrs. Ilam’s eyes were now shut.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI--Unison
-
-That summer was astoundingly fine and warm, not to say tropical. But
-since it remains clearly in the memory of all, especially of the London
-water-companies, as a unique caprice on the part of the English climate,
-there is no need to go into details of its beauty. Towards the end of
-September the weather was exceedingly lovely. And of course the City
-prospered accordingly. It had been thought that the record “gates”
- during the great fêtes of August would make the September returns look
-meagre and feeble. Such, however, was not the case. In the first week
-of September over a million people paid fifty thousand pounds at the
-turnstiles to enjoy the charms of the City. And a water-famine in
-most other parts of London did not impair their pleasure, for Ilam and
-Carpentaria had sunk their own Artesian wells, and they had sunk them
-deep enough. Consequently, the glorious lawns of the Oriental Gardens
-and the turf of the cricket field kept a vivid green through that
-solitary summer.
-
-The consumption of multi-coloured liquids in the cafés dotted about the
-gardens exceeded the most sanguine estimates. It was stated that during
-one of Carpentaria’s concerts twelve thousand pints of Pilsen beer
-(the genuine article, imported daily in casks from the Erste Pilsen
-Actien-Brauerei, Pilsen) were consumed within sight of the bandstand.
-
-“This,” said Carpentaria emphatically, “is success. No
-composer-conductor,” he added, “has ever before been able to say that he
-was listened to by an audience that put away Pilsen beer at the rate of
-a hundred pints a minute.”
-
-And he was right. Success was written large all over the place. Success
-shone on the faces of the entire staff, and it shone particularly on the
-face of Carpentaria, though he tried to pretend that it was nothing to
-him. It was, naturally, a great deal to him. He was the lion of London,
-and he knew it. All his previous triumphs were nothing in comparison
-with this triumph, which was the triumph of his ideas as well as a
-personal triumph.
-
-Fifty amusement-mongers in London were asking themselves why they had
-not thought of building a City of Pleasure--and they were not getting
-satisfactory replies to the conundrum!
-
-One evening, towards the middle of September, after a more than usually
-effective concert, Carpentaria laid down his baton on the plush cushion
-provided for its repose, and bowed and bowed and bowed again, in
-response to the enthusiastic plaudits, but with a somewhat pre-occupied
-mien.
-
-“What’s up with the old man?” a French-horn player whispered to his
-mate.
-
-“Dashed if I know!” replied the second French-horn-player. “Unless he’s
-in love.”
-
-“Well, he is,” said the first. “Everybody knows that.”
-
-They called him the old man, no doubt, because his age was barely forty
-and because he looked younger than any of them.
-
-Carpentaria descended from his throne, smiling absently at the applause
-of his band as he made his way through them to the steps leading down
-from the bandstand to the level of the gardens. He had only to move a
-few paces in order to be lost in the surging crowd. But before he could
-do this, he heard a voice:
-
-“Mr. Carpentaria.”
-
-He turned sharply. It was a woman’s voice. It was more--it was Pauline’s
-voice. Had she come to meet him? Impossible! That would have been too
-much happiness. However, he determined to ascertain, and he ascertained
-in his usual direct manner.
-
-“Did you come specially to meet me?” he demanded.
-
-And she replied, in a low voice:
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“That was extremely kind of you,” he said, trembling with joy.
-
-“No,” she protested. “I had something to tell you--and------” She
-hesitated, and then stopped.
-
-“Suppose we take a little stroll,” he suggested.
-
-And she said, quite naturally:
-
-“I should love to.”
-
-“This woman is simply the divinest creature,” he told himself. “She is
-not like other women. She would like to go for a stroll with me, and
-she does not pretend the contrary. I am a great man, but I have done
-nothing, absolutely nothing, to deserve her goodness.”
-
-They crossed the gardens, with difficulty, in the direction of the
-terrace. And around were the light and laughter of the City--the
-brilliant illuminated cafés and the sombre trees for a background, and
-thousands of pretty toilettes and thousands of men gazing at the pretty
-toilettes, so attractive in the gloom under the starry sky. A burst of
-minor music would come now and then from some little café-orchestra, or
-the sound of the popping of guns from a distant shooting-gallery or the
-roar of a lion, forced unwillingly to go through its performance in the
-menagerie. Then, every woman in the gardens gave a little start or
-a little shriek at the noise of the great cannon which signalled the
-commencement of the fireworks, and the rush to the terrace, where the
-best view was to be obtained, became a stampede.
-
-“Do you mean to go on to the terrace?” asked Pauline.
-
-“No, madam,” said Carpentaria, teasingly. “I mean to go on to the
-foreshore of the river. The tide is low--we shall be alone--we shall
-see both the crowd and the fireworks; and we shall be secure from
-interruption.”
-
-With one of his pass-keys he unlocked a gate giving access to a tunnel
-leading down to the river. They passed through, and he locked the gate
-again. They arrived at the edge of the stream just as the first
-cluster of rockets was expanding itself in the firmament. The scene was
-impressive, and the roaring cheers of the serried crowd behind and above
-them did not detract from its impressiveness.
-
-“So you have something to tell me?” he remarked, tapping his foot idly
-against a stone. “I also have something to tell you.”
-
-“Really?” she answered.
-
-He examined her face and figure. She was dressed in mourning, for Mrs.
-Ilam had died within two days of the events set down in the previous
-chapter, and Carpentaria thought that black had never suited any woman
-so well as it suited Pauline.... There was something about her face...
-In short... Well, those who have been through what Carpentaria was going
-through will readily understand.
-
-“And what are you going to tell me?” he queried.
-
-“It’s a message from Cousin Ilam,” said Pauline. “You haven’t seen him
-to-day, have you?”
-
-“No. I’ve been very much alone to-day. Juliette’s been away all day--I
-suppose preparing for the wedding--there’s only a few days left now.”
-
-“Well,” said Pauline, “Cousin Ilam told me to tell you they aren’t going
-to be married next week.”
-
-“What!” cried Carpentaria, “after all? Why not?”
-
-“Because they were married this morning. They’re already on their
-honeymoon.”
-
-“And Juliette has played this trick on me?” murmured Carpentaria.
-
-“In any case, the marriage would have had to be very quiet,” said
-Pauline. “I fancy Cousin Ilam didn’t particularly care for your notion
-of having a section of your band to play at the church. Anyhow,
-he wanted the affair absolutely quiet. You know how nervous and
-self-conscious he is.”
-
-“Now I come to think of it,” Carpentaria said, “Juliette did kiss me
-this morning rather fervently, and I wondered why.”
-
-“You wonder no longer,” observed Pauline, smiling. “It was just a little
-plot.”
-
-“Extraordinary! Most extraordinary!” Carpentaria exclaimed.
-
-“I don’t think it’s quite so extraordinary as all that!” said Pauline.
-
-“You don’t know what I mean,” Carpentaria replied. “I also have a
-message--for you. It is from our friend Mr. Jetsam Ilam and your sister.
-Have you seen Miss Rosie since this morning?”
-
-“No,” said Pauline; “she went with Juliette.”
-
-“Exactly. She went with Juliette. And she has done what Juliette has
-done. I was asked by Mr. Jetsam Ilam to inform you that instead of
-marrying your sister next week he has married her this week. He is very
-sorry. He has a perfect horror of publicity. In fact they chose the
-registry office.”
-
-“What a shame!” cried Pauline. “What a shame!”
-
-“Ah,” said Carpentaria, “you didn’t mind them deceiving me! But when it
-comes to deceiving you----! It must have been a united plot on the part
-of those two pairs of people to deceive us two; and, I must say, they
-managed the thing pretty well. Don’t you think so?”
-
-“I think they’ve been horrid,” said Pauline.
-
-“And we two are quite alone, for one solid week--you in your house, and
-I in mine,” said Carpentaria.
-
-There was a pause, and then he heard a sob.
-
-“You aren’t really crying, are you?” he demanded.
-
-Pauline made no answer.
-
-In crying she had lost herself. She had given herself away--she had
-precipitated a crisis which, in any event, could not have been long
-postponed. In a word, he tried to comfort her. You may guess how he did
-it. You may guess whether she objected. You may guess if he succeeded.
-In a quarter of an hour she was telling him that she had always liked
-him, that, formerly, she and Rosie used to worship him--Rosie even more
-than she--but that that sort of worship was nothing compared to the
-feelings which she at present entertained--_et seq_.
-
-And the fireworks and the applause of the vast crowd provided the kind
-of setting that Carlos Carpentaria loved.
-
-
-THE END
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CITY OF PLEASURE ***
-
-***** This file should be named 55115-0.txt or 55115-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/1/1/55115/
-
-Produced by David Widger from page images generously
-provided by the Internet Archive
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/55115-0.zip b/old/55115-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 7ba408f..0000000
--- a/old/55115-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55115-h.zip b/old/55115-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 385ec86..0000000
--- a/old/55115-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55115-h/55115-h.htm b/old/55115-h/55115-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index a7840df..0000000
--- a/old/55115-h/55115-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11284 +0,0 @@
-<?xml version="1.0" encoding="utf-8"?>
-
-<!DOCTYPE html
- PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd" >
-
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett</title>
- <meta content="pg2html (binary v0.17)" />
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css" xml:space="preserve">
-
- body { margin:5%; background:#faebd0; text-align:justify}
- P { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: .75em; margin-bottom: .75em; }
- H1,H2,H3,H4,H5,H6 { text-align: center; margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 15%; }
- hr { width: 50%; text-align: center;}
- .foot { margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%; text-align: justify; font-size: 80%; font-style: italic;}
- blockquote {font-size: 97%; font-style: italic; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;}
- .mynote {background-color: #DDE; color: #000; padding: .5em; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-family: sans-serif; font-size: 95%;}
- .toc { margin-left: 10%; margin-bottom: .75em;}
- .toc2 { margin-left: 20%;}
- .xx-small {font-size: 60%;}
- .x-small {font-size: 75%;}
- .small {font-size: 85%;}
- .large {font-size: 115%;}
- .x-large {font-size: 130%;}
- .indent5 { margin-left: 5%;}
- .indent10 { margin-left: 10%;}
- .indent15 { margin-left: 15%;}
- .indent20 { margin-left: 20%;}
- .indent30 { margin-left: 30%;}
- .indent40 { margin-left: 40%;}
- div.fig { display:block; margin:0 auto; text-align:center; }
- div.middle { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; }
- .figleft {float: left; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 1%;}
- .figright {float: right; margin-right: 0%; margin-left: 1%;}
- .pagenum {position: absolute; right: 1%; font-size: 0.6em;
- font-variant: normal; font-style: normal;
- text-align: right; background-color: #FFFACD;
- border: 1px solid; padding: 0.3em;text-indent: 0em;}
- .side { float: left; font-size: 75%; width: 15%; padding-left: 0.8em;
- border-left: dashed thin; text-align: left;
- text-indent: 0; font-weight: bold; font-style: italic;
- font-weight: bold; color: black; background: #eeeeee; border: solid 1px;}
- .head { float: left; font-size: 90%; width: 98%; padding-left: 0.8em;
- border-left: dashed thin; text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0; font-weight: bold; font-style: italic;
- font-weight: bold; color: black; background: #eeeeee; border: solid 1px;}
- p.pfirst, p.noindent {text-indent: 0}
- span.dropcap { float: left; margin: 0 0.1em 0 0; line-height: 0.8 }
- pre { font-style: italic; font-size: 90%; margin-left: 10%;}
-
-</style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: The City Of Pleasure
- A Fantasia on Modern Themes
-
-Author: Arnold Bennett
-
-Release Date: July 15, 2017 [EBook #55115]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CITY OF PLEASURE ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David Widger from page images generously
-provided by the Internet Archive
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- <div style="height: 8em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h1>
- THE CITY OF PLEASURE
- </h1>
- <h3>
- A Fantasia on Modern Themes
- </h3>
- <h2>
- By Arnold Bennett
- </h2>
- <h4>
- Author Of &ldquo;The Old Wives&rsquo; Tale,&rdquo; &ldquo;Clayhanger,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Old Adam,&rdquo; Etc.
- </h4>
- <h4>
- New York: George H. Doran Company
- </h4>
- <h3>
- 1907
- </h3>
- <p>
- <br /><br /><a name="linkimage-0001" id="linkimage-0001"> </a>
- </p>
- <div class="fig" style="width:50%;">
- <img src="images/0001.jpg" alt="0001 " width="100%" /><br />
- </div>
- <h5>
- <a href="images/0001.jpg"><img src="images/enlarge.jpg" alt="" /> </a>
- </h5>
- <p>
- <br /><br /><a name="linkimage-0002" id="linkimage-0002"> </a>
- </p>
- <div class="fig" style="width:50%;">
- <img src="images/0007.jpg" alt="0007 " width="100%" /><br />
- </div>
- <h5>
- <a href="images/0007.jpg"><img src="images/enlarge.jpg" alt="" /> </a>
- </h5>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <p>
- <b>CONTENTS</b>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_4_0001"> <b>THE CITY OF PLEASURE</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br />
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_PART"> <b>PART I&mdash;CARPENTARIA</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0001"> CHAPTER I&mdash;Over the City </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0002"> CHAPTER II&mdash;Interviewed </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0003"> CHAPTER III&mdash;Inspiration </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0004"> CHAPTER IV&mdash;Mrs. Ilam </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0005"> CHAPTER V&mdash;The Band </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0006"> CHAPTER VI&mdash;The Black Burden </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0007"> CHAPTER VII&mdash;The Cut </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0008"> CHAPTER VIII&mdash;Disappearance of Juliette </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0009"> CHAPTER IX&mdash;The Dead Dog </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0010"> CHAPTER X&mdash;A Pinch of Snuff </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0011"> CHAPTER XI&mdash;The Return to Life </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0012"> CHAPTER XII&mdash;On the Wheel </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0013"> CHAPTER XIII&mdash;Performances of Mr. Jetsam
- </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br />
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_PART2"> <b>PART II&mdash;THE TWINS</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0014"> CHAPTER XIV&mdash;Entry of the Twins </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0015"> CHAPTER XV&mdash;Proposal of Josephus </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0016"> CHAPTER XVI&mdash;The Box </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0017"> CHAPTER XVII&mdash;The Man on the Balcony </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0018"> CHAPTER XVIII&mdash;An Arrangement for a Marriage
- </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0019"> CHAPTER XIX&mdash;The Heart of the City </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0020"> CHAPTER XX&mdash;What Jetsam Wanted </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0021"> CHAPTER XXI&mdash;Interrupting a Concert </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0022"> CHAPTER XXII&mdash;Carpentaria as Detective </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0023"> CHAPTER XXIII&mdash;The Talk in the Garden </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br />
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_PART3"> <b>PART III&mdash;JETSAM</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0024"> CHAPTER XXIV&mdash;The Boat </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0025"> CHAPTER XXV&mdash;-A Wholesale Departure </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0026"> CHAPTER XXVI&mdash;The Empty Bedroom </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0027"> CHAPTER XXVII&mdash;The Photograph </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0028"> CHAPTER XXVIII&mdash;The Dead March </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0029"> CHAPTER XXIX&mdash;Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s Recital </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0030"> CHAPTER XXX&mdash;The Words of Mrs. Ilam </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0031"> CHAPTER XXXI&mdash;Unison </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_4_0001" id="link2H_4_0001"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h1>
- THE CITY OF PLEASURE
- </h1>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_PART" id="link2H_PART"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- PART I&mdash;CARPENTARIA
- </h2>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0001" id="link2HCH0001"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER I&mdash;Over the City
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria!
- </p>
- <p>
- One of the three richly-uniformed officials who were in charge of the
- captive balloon, destined to be a leading attraction of the City of
- Pleasure, murmured this name warningly to his companions, as if to advise
- them that the moment had arrived for them to mind their p&rsquo;s and q&rsquo;s. And
- each man looked cautiously through the tail of his eye at a striking
- figure which was approaching through crowds of people to the enclosure.
- The figure was tall and had red hair and a masterful face, and it was
- clothed in a blue suit that set off the red hair to perfection. Over the
- wicket of the enclosure a small enamelled sign had been hung:
- </p>
- <h3>
- &ldquo;CITY OF PLEASURE.
- </h3>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>President</i>: Josephus Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>Managing and Musical Director</i>: Charles Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>Balloon Ascents every half-hour after three o&rsquo;clock. Height of a
- thousand feet guaranteed. Seats, half-a-crown, including field-glass</i>.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The sign was slightly askew, and the approaching figure tapped it into
- position, and then entered the enclosure.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good afternoon,&rdquo; it said. &ldquo;Everything ready?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;&rsquo;d afternoon, Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said the head balloonist
- respectfully. &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The three men with considerable ostentation busied themselves among ropes,
- while a young man in gold-rimmed spectacles gazed with sudden
- self-consciousness into the far distance, just as if he had that very
- instant discovered something there that demanded the whole of his
- attention.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Going up, sir?&rdquo; inquired the head balloonist.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria. &ldquo;Mr. Ilam and I are going up together. We have
- time, haven&rsquo;t we? It&rsquo;s only half-past two.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria examined the vast balloon, which was trembling and swaying and
- lugging with that aspiration towards heaven and the infinite so
- characteristic of well-filled balloons. He ignored the young man in
- spectacles.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where&rsquo;s the parachutist?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- A parachutist was to give éclat to the first public ascent of the silken
- monster by dropping from it into the Thames or somewhere else. His
- apparatus hung beneath the great circular car.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;ll be here before three, sir,&rdquo; said the head balloonist.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s been here once, sir,&rdquo; added the second balloonist, anxious to prove
- to himself that he also had the right to converse with the mighty
- Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- A few seconds later the august President arrived. Mr. Josephus Ilam was
- tall, like his partner, but much stouter. He had, indeed, almost the
- inflated appearance which one observes constantly in the drivers of
- brewers&rsquo; drays; even his fingers bulged. His age was fifty, ten years more
- than that of Carpentaria, and it was probably ten years since he had seen
- his own feet. Finally, he was clean-shaven, with areas of blue on his chin
- and cheeks like the sea on a map, and his hair&mdash;what remained of it&mdash;seemed
- to be hesitating between black and grey.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter?&rdquo; he asked of Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, I thought I would just like to make the first ascent with you alone,&rdquo;
- Carpentaria answered, and added, smiling, &ldquo;I have something to show you up
- there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His hand indicated the firmament, and his peculiar smile indicated that he
- took Ilam&rsquo;s consent for granted.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam sighed obesely, and agreed. He did not care to argue before members
- of the staff. Nevertheless, the futility of ascending to the skies on
- this, the opening day, when the colossal organism of the show cried aloud
- for continual supervision on earth, was sufficiently clear to his mind. He
- climbed gingerly over the edge of the wickerwork car, which had a
- circumference of thirty feet, with a protected aperture in the middle, and
- Carpentaria followed him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let go,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, gleefully. &ldquo;Let go!&rdquo; he repeated with
- impatience, when the balloon was arrested at a height of about ten feet.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Right sir,&rdquo; responded briskly the head balloonist. There appeared to have
- been some altercation between the balloonists.
- </p>
- <p>
- The day was the first of May, but the London spring had chosen to be
- capricious and unseasonable. Instead of the snow and frost and east wind
- which almost invariably accompany what is termed, with ferocious irony,
- the merry month, there was strong, brilliant sunshine and a perfect calm.
- The sun glinted and glittered on the upper surfaces of the balloon, but of
- course the voyagers could not perceive that. They, in fact, perceived
- nothing except that the entire world was gradually falling away from them.
- The balloon had ceased to shiver; it stood as firm as consols, while the
- City of Pleasure sank and sank, and the upturned faces of more than fifty
- thousand spectators grew tinier and tinier.
- </p>
- <p>
- It would be interesting and certainly instructive to unfold some of the
- many mysteries and minor dramas which had diversified the history of the
- making of the City of Pleasure, from the time when Carpentaria, having
- conceived the idea of the thing, found the necessary millionaire in the
- person of Josephus Ilam, to the hurried and tumultuous eve of the opening
- day; but these are unconnected with the present recital. It needs only to
- remind the reader of the City&rsquo;s geography. Towards the lower left-hand
- corner of any map of London not later than 1905, may be observed a large,
- nearly empty space in the form of an inverted letter &ldquo;U.&rdquo; This space is
- bounded everywhere, except across the bottom, by the Thames. It is indeed
- a peninsula made by an extraordinary curve of the Thames, and Barnes
- Common connects if with the mainland of the parish of Putney. Its
- dimensions are little short of a mile either way, and yet, although
- Hammersmith Bridge joins it to Hammersmith at the top, it was almost
- uninhabited, save for the houses which lined Bridge Road and a scattering
- of houses in Lonsdale Road and the short streets between Lonsdale Road and
- the reservoir near the bridge. The contrast was violent; on the north side
- of the Thames the crowded populousness of Hammersmith, and on the south
- side&mdash;well, possibly four people to the acre.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam and Carpentaria, with Ilam&rsquo;s money, bought or leased the whole of the
- middle part of the peninsula&mdash;over three hundred acres&mdash;with a
- glorious half-mile frontage to the Thames on the east side. They would
- have acquired all the earth as far as Barnes Common but for the fact that
- the monomaniacs of the Ranelagh Club Golf Course could not be induced to
- part with their links, even when offered a fantastic number of thousand
- pounds per hole. They obtained the closing of the Bridge Road, which cut
- the peninsula downwards into two halves, and the omnibus traffic between
- Hammersmith and Barnes was diverted to Lonsdale Road&mdash;not without
- terrific diplomacy, and pitched battles in the columns of newspapers and
- in Local Government offices. They pulled down every house in Bridge Road,
- thus breaking up some seventy presumably happy English homes, and then
- they started upon the erection of the City of Pleasure, which they
- intended to be, and which all the world now admits to be, the most
- gigantic enterprise of amusement that Europe has ever seen.
- </p>
- <p>
- As the balloon rose the general conformation of the City of Pleasure
- became visible. Running almost north and south from Hammersmith Bridge was
- the Central Way, the splendid private thoroughfare which had superseded
- Bridge Road. It was a hundred feet wide, and its surface was treated with
- westrumite, and a service of gaily coloured cable-cars flashed along it in
- either direction, between the north and the south entrances to the City.
- It was lined with multifarious buildings, all painted cream&mdash;the
- theatre, the variety theatre, the concert hall, the circus, the panorama,
- the lecture hall, the menagerie, the art gallery, the story-tellers&rsquo; hall,
- the dancing-rooms, restaurants, cafés and bars, and those numerous shops
- for the sale of useless and expensive souvenirs without which the
- happiness of no Briton on a holiday is complete. The footpaths, 20 feet
- wide, were roofed with glass, and between the footpaths and the roadway
- came two rows of trees which were industriously taking advantage of the
- weather to put forth their verdure. Footpaths and road were thronged with
- people, and the street was made gay, not only by the toilettes and
- sunshades of women, but also by processions of elephants, camels, and
- other wild-fowl, bearing children of all ages in charge of gorgeous
- Indians and Ethiops. From every roof floated great crimson flags with the
- legend in gold: &ldquo;City of Pleasure. President: Ilam; Director:
- Carpentaria.&rdquo; Add to this combined effect the music of bands and the
- sunshine, and do not forget the virgin creaminess of the elaborate
- architecture, and you will be able to form a notion of the spectacle
- offered by the esplanade upon which Ilam and Carpentaria looked down.
- </p>
- <p>
- Midway between the north and south entrances, the Central Way expanded
- itself into a circular place, with a twenty-jetted bronze fountain in the
- middle. To the west was the façade of what was called the Exposition
- Palace, an enormous quadrangular building, containing a huge covered court
- which, with its balconies, would hold twenty thousand people on wet days.
- The galleries of the palace were devoted to an exhibition of everything
- that related to woman, from high-heeled shoes to thrones; it was
- astonishing how many things did relate to woman. North of the Exposition
- Palace stretched out the Amusements Park, where people looped the loop,
- shot the chute, wheeled the wheel, switched the switchback, etc.; and here
- was the balloon enclosure. South of the palace lay the Sports Fields,
- where a cricket match was progressing.
- </p>
- <p>
- Finally, and most important of all, to the east of the circular place in
- Central Way rose the impressive entrance to the Oriental Gardens, the
- pride of Ilam and Carpentaria. The Oriental Gardens occupied the entire
- eastern side of the City, and they sloped down to the Thames. They formed
- over a hundred acres of gardens, wood, and pleasaunce, laid out with
- formal magnificence. Flowers bloomed there in defiance of seasons. On
- every hand the eye was met by vistas of trees and shrubs, and by lawns and
- statues, and lakes and fountains. In the middle was Carpentaria&rsquo;s own
- special bandstand. A terrace, two thousand five. hundred feet long,
- bordered the river, and from the terrace jutted out a pier at which
- steamers were unloading visitors.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0002" id="link2HCH0002"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER II&mdash;Interviewed
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>he occupants of
- the balloon could see everything. They saw the debarcation from the
- steamers; they saw the unending crowd of doll-like persons thrown up out
- of the ground by the new Tube station at the south end of Hammersmith
- Bridge; they saw the heavy persistent stream of vehicles and pedestrians
- over the bridge; they saw the trains approaching Barnes on the
- South-Western Railway; they saw the struggles for admittance at all the
- gates of the City; they even saw flocks of people streaming Cityward along
- the Barnes High Street and the Lower Richmond Road. It was not for nothing
- that advertisements of the City of Pleasure had filled one solid page of
- every daily paper in London, and many in the provinces, for a week past.
- Visitors were now entering the city at the rate of seventy thousand an
- hour, at a shilling a head.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a gentle tug beneath the car. The thousand feet of rope had been
- paid out, and the balloon hung motionless.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then a faint noise, something between the crackling of musketry and the
- surge of waves on a pebbly beach, ascended from the city.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They&rsquo;re cheering,&rdquo; said Josephus Ilam. &ldquo;What for?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cheering us, of course,&rdquo; answered Carpentaria excitedly. &ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it
- immense?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Immense?&rdquo; said Ilam heavily. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s hot. What did you want to show me up
- here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria, pointing below to the city with a superb
- gesture. &ldquo;And that!&rdquo; he added passionately, pointing with another gesture
- to the whole of London, which lay spread out with all its towers and
- steeples and its blanket of smoke, tremendous and interminable to the
- east. &ldquo;That is our prey,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;our food.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he began to sing the Toreador song from &ldquo;Carmen,&rdquo; exultantly launching
- the notes into the sky.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said Josephus Ilam, with unexpected bitterness, &ldquo;is
- this your idea of a joke? Bringing me up here to see London and our show,
- as if I didn&rsquo;t know London and our show like my pocket!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam&rsquo;s concealed, hatred of Carpentaria, which had been slowly growing for
- more than a year, as a fire spreads secretly in the hold of a ship, seemed
- to spurt out a swift tongue of flame in the acrimony of his tone.
- Carpentaria was startled. Even then, in a sudden flash of illumination, he
- grasped to a certain extent the import of Ilam&rsquo;s attitude towards him, but
- he did not grasp it fully. How should he?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why,&rdquo; he said to himself, &ldquo;I believe the old johnny dislikes mel What on
- earth for?&rdquo; He could not understand all Ilam&rsquo;s reasons. &ldquo;Pity!&rdquo; he
- reflected further. &ldquo;If the managers of a show like this can&rsquo;t hit it off
- together, there may be trouble.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In which supposition he was infinitely more right than he imagined.
- </p>
- <p>
- He balanced himself lightly on the edge of the car, his left leg dangling,
- and seized one of the field-glasses which hung secured by thin steel
- chains round the inside of the wicker parapet, and putting it to his eyes,
- he gazed down at the Oriental Gardens. He must have seen something there
- that profoundly interested him, for the glasses remained glued to his eyes
- for a long time.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I repeat,&rdquo; said Ilam firmly, standing up, &ldquo;is this your idea of a joke?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He was close to Carpentaria, and his glance was vicious.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My friend,&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria, dropping the glasses. &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the
- matter with you is that you aren&rsquo;t an artist, not a bit of one. You are an
- excellent fellow, with a splendid head for figures, and I respect you
- enormously, but you haven&rsquo;t the artistic sense. If you had you would share
- the thrill which I feel as I survey our creation and that London over
- there. You would appreciate why I brought you up here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m a business man&mdash;a plain business man, that&rsquo;s what I am,&rdquo; said
- Ilam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve never pretended to be an artist, and I don&rsquo;t want to be an
- artist. Let me tell you that I ought to be in the advertisement
- department, and not canoodling my time away up here, Mr. Carpentaria.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear sir,&rdquo; said Carpentaria hastily, &ldquo;accept my apologies. Let us
- descend at once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And while I&rsquo;m about it,&rdquo; pursued Ilam unheedingly&mdash;his irritation
- was like a stone rolling down a hill&mdash;&ldquo;while I&rsquo;m about it, I&rsquo;ll point
- out that your objection to having advertisements on the walls of the
- restaurants is fatuous.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, my dear Ilam,&rdquo; Carpentaria protested, &ldquo;people don&rsquo;t care to have to
- read advertisements while they&rsquo;re at their meals. It puts them off. For
- instance, to have it dinned into you that G. H. Mumm is the only champagne
- worth drinking when you happen to be drinking Heidsieck, or to have Wall&rsquo;s
- sausages thrust down your throat while you are toying with an ice-cream&mdash;people
- don&rsquo;t like it. We must think of our patrons. And, besides, it&rsquo;s so inarti&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rubbish!&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;One way and another these ads. would be worth a
- hundred&rsquo; a week to us.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, and what&rsquo;s a hundred a week?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the interest on a hundred and twenty thousand pounds,&rdquo; Ilam replied
- vivaciously. &ldquo;And there&rsquo;s another thing. It would be much better if you
- employed more time in inspection instead of rehearsing and conducting your
- precious band. Any fool can conduct a band. Give me a stick and I&rsquo;d do it
- myself. But inspection&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My precious band!&rdquo; stammered Carpentaria, aghast.
- </p>
- <p>
- His very soul was laid low; and considering that Carpentaria&rsquo;s Band had
- been famous in the capitals of two continents for twelve years at least,
- it was not surprising that his soul should be laid low by this terrible
- phrase.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve had enough of it.&rdquo; His shoulder touched
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s, and his eyes&mdash;little, like a pig&rsquo;s&mdash;shot arrows
- of light. &ldquo;Supposing I shoved you over? I should have the concern to
- myself then, and no foolish interference.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He twisted his face into a grim laugh.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have a sense of humour, after all, Ilam,&rdquo; responded gaily the man on
- the edge of the car, fingering his long red moustache, and he, too,
- laughed, but he got down from his perch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;d just like you to comprehend&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Ilam began again.
- </p>
- <p>
- But at that instant a head appeared above the edge of the central aperture
- of the car, and Ilam stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the head of the young man in spectacles&mdash;gold-rimmed
- spectacles.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m Smithers, of the <i>Morning Herald</i>,&rdquo; said the young man brightly
- and calmly, &ldquo;and I took this opportunity of seeing you privately. Your men
- objected when I got into the parachute attachment, but you told &lsquo;em to let
- go, and so they let go. I&rsquo;ve had some difficulty in climbing up here off
- the parachute bar. Dangerous, rather. However, I&rsquo;ve done it. I dare say
- you heard the crowd cheering.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So it was him they were cheering,&rdquo; muttered Ilam, and then looked at
- Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam was not a genius in the art of conversation. He could only say what
- he meant, and when the running of the City of Pleasure demanded the art of
- conversation he relied on Carpentaria, even if he was furious with him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the game?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Smithers politely, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t you think I deserve an interview?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know we have absolutely declined all interviews.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, that&rsquo;s why the <i>Herald</i> wants one so badly; that&rsquo;s why I&rsquo;m
- dangling a thousand feet above my grave.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria and Ilam exchanged glances. Each read the thought of the other&mdash;that
- the spectacled Smithers might have overheard their conversation, and
- should therefore be handled with care, this side up. &ldquo;Leave it to me,&rdquo;
- said the eyes of Carpentaria to the eyes of Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Smithers, of the <i>Herald</i>&rdquo;&mdash;Carpentaria blossomed into the
- flowers of speech&mdash;&ldquo;we heartily applaud your courage and your
- devotion to duty in a profession full of perils, but you are trespassing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me, I&rsquo;m not,&rdquo; said Smithers. &ldquo;You can only trespass on land and
- water, and this isn&rsquo;t a salmon river or a forbidden footpath. Besides,
- I&rsquo;ve got my press season-ticket. Come now, talk to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are talking to you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I mean, answer my questions, for the benefit of humanity. I&rsquo;m the father
- of a family with two penniless aunts, and the <i>Herald</i> will probably
- sack me if I fail in this interview. Think of that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I prefer not to think of it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;However, we will answer
- any reasonable questions you care to put to us, on one condition.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Name it,&rdquo; snapped Smithers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will name it afterwards,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, looking at Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;All right,&rdquo; sighed Smithers, &ldquo;I agree, whatever it is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You look like an honourable man. I shall trust you,&rdquo; Carpentaria
- remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Journalists are always honourable,&rdquo; said Smithers. &ldquo;It is their employers
- who sometimes&mdash;however, that&rsquo;s neither here nor there. You may trust
- me. Now tell me. Why this objection to interviews? That&rsquo;s what&rsquo;s puzzling
- the public. You&rsquo;re a business concern, aren&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just the reason,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;We aren&rsquo;t a star-actor or a
- bogus company. We&rsquo;re above interviews, we are. Do you catch Smith and Son,
- or Cook&rsquo;s, or the North-Western Railway, or Mrs. Humphry Ward having
- themselves interviewed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not much,&rdquo; ejaculated Ilam glumly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;People who refuse to be interviewed have a status that other people can
- never have. Our business is our business. When we want the public to know
- anything, we take a page in the <i>Herald</i>, say, and pay two hundred
- and fifty pounds for it, and inform the public exactly what we do want &rsquo;em
- to know, in our own words. We do not require the assistance of
- interviewers. There&rsquo;s the whole secret. What next?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That seems pretty straight,&rdquo; Smithers agreed. &ldquo;Another thing. Why have
- you gone and called this concern the City of Pleasure?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because it is the City of Pleasure,&rdquo; growled Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. But it seems rather a fancy name, doesn&rsquo;t it?&mdash;rather too
- poetical, highfalutin?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s merely because you journalists never have any imagination,&rdquo;
- Carpentaria explained. &ldquo;You aren&rsquo;t used to this name yet. It was you
- journalists who cried out that the Crystal Palace was a too poetical and
- highfalutin name for that glass wigwam over there&rdquo;&mdash;and he pointed to
- the twin towers of Sydenham in the distance&mdash;&ldquo;but you&rsquo;ve got used to
- it, and you admit now that it is the Crystal Palace and couldn&rsquo;t be
- anything else.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers laughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good!&rdquo; said he. &ldquo;All that&rsquo;s nothing. Let me come to the core of the
- apple. Do you expect this thing to pay? Do you really mean it to pay, or
- is it only a millionaire&rsquo;s lark? You know all the experts are saying it
- can&rsquo;t pay.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; ejaculated Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall take fifteen thousand pounds at the gates to-day,&rdquo; said
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;The highest attendance in any one day at the Paris
- Exhibition of 1900 was six hundred thousand. Do you imagine we can&rsquo;t equal
- that? We shall surpass it, sir. Wait for our August fêtes. Wait for our
- Congress of Trade Unions in September, and you will see! The average total
- attendance at the last three Paris exhibitions has been forty-five
- millions. We hope to reach fifty millions. But suppose we only reach forty
- millions. That means two million pounds in gates alone; and let me remind
- you that the minor activities of this show are self-supporting. Why, the
- Chicago Exhibition made a profit of nearly a million and a half dollars.
- Do you suppose we can&rsquo;t beat that, with a city of six million people at
- our doors, and the millions of Lancashire and Yorkshire within four hours
- of us?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Chicago was State-aided,&rdquo; Mr. Smithers ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;State-aided!&rdquo; cried Ilam. &ldquo;Chicago was the worst-managed show in the
- history of shows, except St. Louis. If the State came to me I should&mdash;I
- should&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Offer it a penny to go away and play in the next street.&rdquo; Carpentaria
- finished his sentence for him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You interest me extremely,&rdquo; said the journalist. &ldquo;And now, as to the
- number of your employés.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He chuckled to himself with glee at the splendid interview he was getting
- out of Carpentaria and Ilam as they obligingly responded to his queries.
- It was Ilam who at last revolted, and insisted that he must descend.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now for my condition,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let&rsquo;s have it,&rdquo; said the journalist.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You asked us to talk to you and we have talked to you. The condition is
- that you regard all you have heard up here as strictly confidential&mdash;mind,
- all! You tell no one; you print nothing..Remember, you are an honourable
- man.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But this is farcical,&rdquo; Smithers expostulated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all,&rdquo; said Carpentaria sweetly. &ldquo;Do you imagine that because you
- have an inordinate amount of cheek, a family and two penniless aunts, we
- are going to break the habits of a life-time? For myself, I have never
- been interviewed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is this your last word?&rdquo; the journalist demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; said the journalist, and his head disappeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let us descend,&rdquo; said Ilam, savagely pleased. And he waved the descent
- flag.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shan&rsquo;t descend just yet,&rdquo; the journalist informed them, popping up his
- head again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And pray, why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I&rsquo;ve cut the rope.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, always calm when art was not concerned, tore a fragment of
- paper from an envelope in his pocket and threw it out of the car. It sank
- away rapidly from the balloon. Moreover, it was evident, even to the eye,
- that their distance from the earth was vastly increasing.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I withdraw my promise now this moment,&rdquo; said the journalist, climbing
- carefully into the car. &ldquo;Everything that you say henceforward will be
- printed. We shall have quite an exciting trip. We may even get to France.
- Anyhow, I shall have a clinking column for Monday&rsquo;s <i>Herald</i>. You
- evidently hadn&rsquo;t quite appreciated what the new journalism is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then there was silence in the mounting balloon.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam bent his malevolent eyes longingly upon the disappearing scene below.
- The glory of the sunshine was nothing to him. He wanted to be in the
- advertisement department, arranging future contracts for spaces on the
- programmes. He reflected that it was another of the mad caprices of
- Carpentaria that had got him into this grotesque scrape. And he was so
- angry that he forgot even to think of the danger to which he was exposed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So here we are!&rdquo; said the journalist. &ldquo;And you can&rsquo;t do anything!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0003" id="link2HCH0003"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER III&mdash;Inspiration
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">P</span>ermit me to say,
- Mr. Smithers,&rdquo; Carpentaria remarked at last, &ldquo;that your knavery is futile.
- The resources of civilization are not yet exhausted. We are, in fact,
- already descending.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He held tightly in his hand the end of a rope, which reached up high above
- them and was lost in the mass of cordage. He had opened the valve to its
- widest.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t venture to move,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;or Mr. Ilam will break your head for
- you. This affair will cost us nothing but a few thousand cubic feet of gas
- at a half-a-crown a thousand. What it will cost you, I shall have to
- consider.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And without saying anything further for the moment, he unloosed a very
- thin cable that was wound round a windlass in the car itself, and, tying a
- white flag at the end of it, he began to lower it rapidly over the edge of
- the car.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thanks to the perfect calm which reigned, the balloon was still well over
- the Amusements Park.
- </p>
- <p>
- Soon the voyagers could perceive the excited movements of the crowds
- below, and then the white flag touched earth, and was seized by the eager
- hands of the balloonists, and slowly the balloon, in a condition bordering
- on collapse, subsided to the ground with the gentleness of a fatigued
- British workman falling asleep. And great cheers, for the second time that
- day, filled the air.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You might have been sure,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when they were ten feet off
- safety, &ldquo;that in a show like this due precautions would be taken against
- accidents and idiots!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers, nearly as limp as the balloon, made no reply. Josephus Ilam
- glared over him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s nothing, it&rsquo;s nothing!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria to the staff, who besieged
- the party with questions. &ldquo;Fill her up as quick as you can, attach the
- rope, and get ready for your public. Don&rsquo;t bother me!&rdquo; And he leapt out of
- the car and was running, literally running, away, when Ilam called out:
- &ldquo;Hi! wait a minute. What&rsquo;s to be done with this maniac here?&rdquo; And Ilam
- muttered to himself, &ldquo;Why does he run away like that? What&rsquo;s his next
- caprice going to be?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was forgetting,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, stopping. &ldquo;Young man&rdquo;&mdash;and he
- addressed Smithers severely&mdash;&ldquo;follow me, and no nonsense!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers obediently followed, pushing after Carpentaria through the
- curious crowds. They came at length to the Central Way, and Carpentaria
- halted and took Smithers by the coat collar.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen!&rdquo; said he. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re much too busy to trouble with police-court
- proceedings. And besides, there&rsquo;s your brace of penniless aunts. Cut!
- Clear out! Hook it! I rather admire you. See?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers saw, and vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria hastened on, rushing across the Central Way, scarcely avoiding
- cable-cars, and so, by a private passage between two shops, into the
- Oriental Gardens. Now, just within the Oriental Gardens, on either side of
- the grand entrance to them, were two spacious houses, built in the
- bungalow style, with enclosed gardens of their own. One of these was
- occupied by Josephus Ilam and his mother, and the other by Carpentaria and
- his half-sister, Juliette D&rsquo;Avray. Between the house of Ilam and the back
- of the shops in Central Way was one of those small waste trifles of ground
- which often get left in planning a vast exhibition or show. It was
- skilfully hidden from the view of the public by wooden palisades, and in
- this palisading was a door, painted so as to escape detection. The plot of
- ground, about three yards by two, was already being utilized for lumber.
- Carpentaria entered by the door and shut it after him. A man&mdash;a
- middle-aged man, in a blue suit of rather shabby appearance&mdash;was
- seated on some planks. He started up, and then seemed to sway.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo; Carpentaria curtly demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look &rsquo;ere,&rdquo; said the man, swaying towards Carpentaria, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m aw ri&rsquo;&mdash;you&rsquo;re
- aw ri&rsquo;&mdash;eh? I&rsquo;m a gemman. Come here to re&rsquo;&mdash;rest. You leave me
- &rsquo;lone&mdash;I leave you &rsquo;lone. Stop, I give you my car&rsquo;.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The man was obviously inebriated and Carpentaria was in no mood to spend
- precious minutes in diplomacy with a victim of Bacchus. He departed,
- shutting the door, and leaving the victim fumbling with a card-case. He
- meant to send some one to eject the man, but he forgot.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Say!&rdquo; cried the drunkard after him, &ldquo;how ju know I wazz &rsquo;ere? Mus&rsquo;
- been up in a b&rsquo;loon&mdash;I repea&rsquo;&mdash;b&rsquo;loon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In another moment Carpentaria was in the study of his bungalow, panting.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Quick!&rdquo; he said to Juliette, an extremely natty little woman of thirty or
- so.
- </p>
- <p>
- He sank into the chair before his desk. Juliette placed some music-paper
- in front of him and put a pen in his hand, and he scrawled across the top
- of the page &ldquo;The Balloon Lullaby,&rdquo; and began to scribble notes&mdash;quavers,
- crotchets, semibreves, and some other strange wonders&mdash;all over the
- page.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It came to me all of a sudden,&rdquo; he murmured, &ldquo;while we were up in the
- balloon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t talk, dear,&rdquo; said Juliette. &ldquo;Write.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he wrote.
- </p>
- <p>
- When it was finished Carpentaria wiped his brow and drank a whisky and
- milk which Juliette had prepared for him. He sighed with content and
- exhaustion. The creative crisis was over.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Play it,&rdquo; he ejaculated.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Juliette sat down at the piano near the window overlooking the
- magnificent gardens, and played softly the two hundred and forty-seventh&rsquo;
- <i>opus</i> of Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is lovely,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he admitted. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a classy little thing. Came to me just like
- that!&rdquo; He snapped his fingers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your best ones always do,&rdquo; Juliette smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll have that performed this very night,&rdquo; he stated.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0004" id="link2HCH0004"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER IV&mdash;Mrs. Ilam
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">S</span>omewhat later on
- the same afternoon, in the drawing-room of the house opposite, Josephus
- Ilam was drinking tea with his mother. The aged Mrs. Ilam, who was very
- thin and not in the least tall&mdash;her son would have made a dozen of
- her&mdash;sat tremendously upright in her chair, while Josephus lolled his
- great bulk in angry attitudes on a sofa, near which the tea-table had been
- placed. Mrs. Ilam wore widow&rsquo;s weeds, though it was many years since she
- had lost her husband, a man who had made a vast fortune out of soda-water&mdash;in
- the days when soda-water <i>was</i> soda-water. She had a narrow, hard
- face, with intensely black eyes, and intensely white hair, and when she
- directed those eyes upon her son, it became instantly plain that her son
- was at once her idol and her slave. She lived solely for this man of
- fifty, who had scarcely ever left her side. For her this mass of fifteen
- stone four was still a young child, needing watchful care and constant
- advice. Certainly she spoilt him; but, just as certainly, he went in awe
- of her. The fact that by judicious investments in hotel and public-house
- property he had more than doubled the fortune which his father left, did
- not at all improve his standing with the antique dame; it only made him in
- her view a clever boy with financial leanings. Moreover, every penny of
- the Ilam fortune was legally hers during her lifetime. Even Ilam&rsquo;s share
- in the City of Pleasure was hers. When Carpentaria had discovered him, he
- had had to decide whether or not he should put more than a million pounds
- into the enterprise, and it was his mother who decided, who listened to
- everything, and then briefly told him that he would be a fool to leave the
- thing alone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she said, in her high quavering voice, as she passed him a cup of
- tea&mdash;the cup rattled on the saucer in her blue-veined parchment hand&mdash;&ldquo;so
- you are not getting on with Carpentaria? I was afraid you wouldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He won&rsquo;t listen to reason about the advertisements,&rdquo; said Ilam crossly,
- stirring his tea.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And he&rsquo;s absolutely mad about his music. He&rsquo;s spent ten hours in
- rehearsing these last two days. All the work, I&rsquo;ve had to do myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And then, to crown his exploits, he takes me up in the balloon, mother&mdash;wastes
- a solid hour.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the balloon!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam recounted the incident of the balloon.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And, after all, he lets that impudent journalist go free&mdash;absolutely
- free!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jos,&rdquo; said his mother, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s a wonder you&rsquo;re alive, my dear.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a pity Carpentaria&rsquo;s alive,&rdquo; rejoined Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- His mother&rsquo;s burning eyes met his.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just what I&rsquo;ve been thinking,&rdquo; she piped calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Her son&rsquo;s gaze dropped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Since when?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Since you began grumbling about him, last week but one, my pet.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s no use now,&rdquo; Ilam grumbled. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ve carried out all his ideas, and
- it&rsquo;s simply a matter of business, and Carpentaria doesn&rsquo;t know the meaning
- of the word &lsquo;business.&rsquo; Just think of his argument about those ads.!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind that, Jos,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam put in.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s only in the way now,&rdquo; Jos proceeded gloomily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose he wouldn&rsquo;t retire,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam suggested.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Retire? Of course he wouldn&rsquo;t retire&mdash;nothing would induce him to
- retire. He enjoys it&mdash;he enjoys annoying me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anyway,&rdquo; said the mother, &ldquo;you&rsquo;ll have the satisfaction of a very great
- success.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She looked out of the window at the gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; growled Ilam. &ldquo;And he gets half the profits. I&rsquo;ve found all the
- money, and he hasn&rsquo;t found a cent. But he gets half the profits. What for?
- A few ideas&mdash;nothing else. He pretends to direct, but he&rsquo;ll direct
- nothing except his blessed band. And I reckon we shall clear a profit of
- ten thousand a week! Half of ten is five.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He only gets half the profits as long as he lives, Jos,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- &ldquo;After that&mdash;nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing,&rdquo; agreed Jos, biting cruelly into a hot scone. &ldquo;But as long as he
- lives he&rsquo;s costing me, say, five thousand a week, besides worry.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He mayn&rsquo;t live long,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam ventured. &ldquo;No, but he may live
- fifty-years.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Supposing he died very suddenly, Jos,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam pursued calmly; &ldquo;he
- wouldn&rsquo;t be the first person that was inconvenient to you who had
- disappeared unexpectedly.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother!&rdquo; Ilam almost shouted, starting up. &ldquo;But would he?&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam
- persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, he wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; muttered Josephus, and his voice trembled.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam blew out the spirit-lamp under the kettle as though she was
- blowing out Carpentaria. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m off,&rdquo; said Josephus nervously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wait a moment, child. Ring the bell for me.&rdquo; A servant entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Bring me your master&rsquo;s knitted waistcoat,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, mother, I shan&rsquo;t want it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you will, Jos. There&rsquo;s no month more treacherous than May. You&rsquo;ll
- put it on to please me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He obeyed, bent down to kiss his terrible parent, and departed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Think it over,&rdquo; she called out after him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And then, what about his sister?&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t mix up two quite
- separate things,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam responded. &ldquo;Besides, she isn&rsquo;t his sister.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0005" id="link2HCH0005"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER V&mdash;The Band
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hat night the City
- of Pleasure was illuminated. Eighty thousand tiny electric lamps hanging
- in festoons from standard to standard lighted the Central Way alone; the
- façades of all the places of amusement were outlined in fire; the shops
- glittered; and the cable-cars, as they flashed to and fro, bore the
- monogram I.C. in electricity on their foreheads. At eight o&rsquo;clock the
- thoroughfare was crowded with visitors, and the stream of arrivals was
- stronger than ever. In the superb restaurants, at all prices (no matter
- what the price, they were equally superb in decoration), five thousand
- diners were finishing five thousand dinners, their eyes undisturbed by the
- presence of advertisements on the walls. The theatre, the music-hall, the
- circus, the menagerie, the concerts, and the rest of the entertainments,
- were filling up. In the Amusements Park people shot down railways into
- water, slid down smooth slopes into mattresses, circled in great wheels,
- floated in the latest novelties of merry-go-rounds, ascended in the
- balloon, and practised all the other devices for frittering away eternity,
- just as though night had not fallen. In the vast court of the Exposition
- Palace a band was swelling the strains of the newest waltzes to three
- storeys of loungers and sitters at café-tables, while within the interior
- of the building men and women wandered about examining the multifarious
- attractions of the Woman&rsquo;s Exhibition.
- </p>
- <p>
- But the chief joy was the Oriental Gardens, wherein a multitude of over
- fifty thousand persons had gathered together. The Oriental Gardens were
- illuminated, but in a different manner from the Central Way. Chinese
- lanterns were suspended everywhere in the budding trees, giving the
- illusion of magic precocious flowers that had blossomed there in a single
- hour, in all the tints of the rainbow and many others entirely foreign to
- the rainbow. The bandstand alone was picked out in electricity. It blazed
- in the centre of the gardens like a giant&rsquo;s crown, and, although yet
- empty, it formed the main object of attention. Overhead stretched a
- dark-blue sky, silvered with stars, and the wind had a warm and caressing
- quality which encouraged sightseers to expose themselves to it to such an
- extent that the fifteen cafés of the Oriental Gardens, some sheltered,
- some quite open, but each a centre of light and laughter, were every one
- crowded with guests. The four thousand chairs surrounding the bandstand
- were occupied, and also the six thousand other chairs dispersed in various
- parts of the gardens. The murmur of conversation, the rustle of dresses,
- the tinkle of glasses, the rumour of uncountable footsteps, rose on the
- air. The faces of pretty women could be observed obscurely in the
- delicious gloom, and the glowing scarlet of cigars bobbed mysteriously
- about like aspecies of restless glow-worm.
- </p>
- <p>
- And everybody was conscious of the sensation of the extraordinary and
- amazing success of the great show. The evening papers had carried the news
- of the wonderful thing to each suburb of London. These papers gave from
- hour to hour the number of the persons who had passed the turnstiles, and
- calculated the number of tons of shillings that Ilam and Carpentaria would
- have to bank on Monday morning. But the principal thing that struck the
- evening papers was the complete readiness of the City of Pleasure. No
- detail of it was unfinished, and all agreed that this phenomenon stood
- unique in the history of the art of amusing immense crowds. All felt that
- a new era of amusement enterprise had been ushered in by Ilam and
- Carpentaria, that everything was changed, and that in the future an
- enlightened and excessively exacting public would not be satisfied with
- what had pleased it in the past. And the owners of the old-fashioned
- resorts trembled in their shoes, and hated Ilam and Carpentaria, while the
- myriad patrons of Ilam and Carpentaria on that first day flattered
- themselves that they had personally assisted at the birth of the grand
- innovation, and thought how they would say to their grandchildren: &ldquo;Yes, I
- was present at the opening of the City of Pleasure, and a marvellous
- affair it was,&rdquo; and so on, in the manner of grandparents.
- </p>
- <p>
- All were expecting Carpentaria, the lion of the show.
- </p>
- <p>
- His band was due to perform from eight o&rsquo;clock to ten, and special bills,
- posted on the sides of the gilded bandstand and in the cafés, announced:
- &ldquo;Carpentaria&rsquo;s band will play the Balloon Lullaby, the latest composition
- of Carpentaria, composed this afternoon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At ten minutes before eight the members of the band, sixty in number, and
- clad in the imperial purple uniform, marched in Indian file across the
- gardens to the stand. At a distance of ten paces from the end of the
- procession came Carpentaria, preceded by a small page bearing his baton on
- a cushion of purple velvet. Carpentaria always did things with
- overwhelming style and solemnity. Superior persons laughed at the style
- and solemnity, but the vast majority did not laugh; they cheered; they
- appreciated. Whether they were right or wrong, the indubitable fact is
- that these things came naturally to Carpentaria; they were the expression
- of his exceedingly theatrical soul, the devices of a man who believes in
- himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- At eight o&rsquo;clock precisely Carpentaria faced the fifty thousand from his
- bandstand, and, after having bowed elaborately thrice, turned to the band,
- and lifted the sacred stick.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a dramatic moment, the real inauguration of the City of Pleasure.
- </p>
- <p>
- Cheers and hurrahs rolled in terrific volumes of sound across the gardens,
- and they did not cease; and people not acquainted with the fame and renown
- of Carpentaria perceived what it was to be a favourite of capitals, a
- leading star in the galaxy of stars that the public salutes and
- recognizes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria preserved the immobility of carven stone until the plaudits
- had ceased; they lasted for exactly five and a half minutes. Consequently
- the concert was exactly five and a half minutes late in commencing.
- Carpentaria himself was never late, but his public had a habit of delaying
- him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly he brought rown his baton with a surprising shock. The carven
- stone had started into life, and &ldquo;God save the King&rdquo; was under way.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now to see Carpentaria conduct was one of the sights of the world. He
- conducted not merely with his hand and eye, but with the whole of his
- immortal frame and his uniform. It was said that he was capable of
- conducting the Eroica Symphony of Beethoven with his left foot&mdash;and
- who shall deny it? &ldquo;God save the King&rdquo; was child&rsquo;s play to him. Moreover,
- he showed a certain reserve in handling it. He merely conducted it as
- though in conducting it he himself were literally saving the King. That
- was all. But with what snap, what dash, what <i>chic</i>, what splash and
- what magnificent presence of mind did he save the King! The applause was
- wild and ample.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next item was &ldquo;The City of Pleasure March,&rdquo; composed by Carpentaria.
- Indeed, Carpentaria conducted nothing but national hymns, his own
- compositions, and, as a superlative concession, Wagner and Beethoven. &ldquo;The
- City of Pleasure&rdquo; was in Carpentaria&rsquo;s finest style, and it was planned to
- give him the fullest scope in conducting it. He had already made it famous
- in a triumphal tour through the United States in the previous year. It
- began with the utmost possible volume of sound. It had a contagious and
- infectious lilt to it, and both the lilt and the volume of sound were
- continued without the slightest respite during the whole composition. In
- the course of this masterpiece Carpentaria performed physical feats that
- would have astounded Cinquevalli and the Schaffer Troupe. In the frenzy of
- self-expression he all but stood on his head. The bandstand was too small
- for him; he needed a planet on which to circulate. By turns his baton was
- a sceptre, a pump-handle, a maypole, a crutch, a drumstick, a flag, a
- toothpick, a mop, a pendulum, a whip, a bottle of soothing-syrup, and a
- scorpion. By turns he whipped, tortured, encouraged, liberated,
- imprisoned, mopped up, measured, governed, diverted, pushed over, pulled
- back, and turned inside out his band, and whenever their enthusiasm seemed
- likely to lead them into indiscretions, he soothed them with the
- soothing-syrup. By turns the conducting of the piece was a march, a
- campaign, a house on fire, the race for the Derby, the forging of a
- hundred-ton gun, a display of fireworks, a mayoral banquet, and a mother
- scolding a numerous family.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was colossal.
- </p>
- <p>
- At the close, as sudden as the shutting of a door, there was a vast
- strange silence, and then the applause, as colossal as the piece, broke
- out like a conflagration.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria bowed; the entire band bowed; Carpentaria bowed again. Lastly
- he indicated a flute-player with his baton, and the flute-player came
- forward and shared the glory of Carpentaria. Why a flute-player, no one
- could have guessed. Forty flutes could not have been heard in that
- terrific concourse of brass and drums. But Carpentaria was Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did any of you hear the sound of a shot?&rdquo; Carpentaria said in a low voice
- to his band.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Shot? No, sir. No, sir,&rdquo; came from a dozen mouths. &ldquo;Why, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because a bullet has just grazed my ear. It was in the fourth bar from
- the end.&rdquo; He put his hand to his ear and showed blood on his finger. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s
- nothing, nothing,&rdquo; he quieted them. &ldquo;I shall expect you to behave as
- though nothing had occurred, as soldiers in fact.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly, sir,&rdquo; replied the intrepid band.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria gazed at one of the iron supports of the roof of the
- bandstand. In a line with his head the surface of the pillar had been
- damaged and dented. He disturbed two trombone-players in order to search
- the floor, and in a few seconds he had found a flattened bullet, which he
- put in his pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Number two,&rdquo; he said sharply, going to his desk and tapping it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Number two was the lullaby. No more striking contrast to the march could
- have been found. It was so delicate, so softly stealing, that you could
- scarcely hear it; and yet you could hear it&mdash;you could hear it
- everywhere. Carpentaria drew sweetness out of his band with the gestures
- of a conjurer drawing an interminable roll of coloured paper from his
- mouth, previously shown to be empty. It was the daintiest thing, swaying
- in the air like gossamer. It brought tears to the orbs of mothers, and
- made strong men close their eyes. Such was the versatility of Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- The applause amounted to a furore.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I give you my word of honour, ladies and gentlemen,&rdquo; said Carpentaria,
- coming to the rail of the stand and stilling the cheers with a gesture,
- &ldquo;at halfpast three this afternoon not a note of the little piece was
- composed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His demeanour gave no sign of agitation. But at the close of the concert,
- no more bullets having arrived, he wiped his brow with relief. Most of the
- band did the same.
- </p>
- <p>
- He walked about on the river terrace for over an hour, calming his spirit,
- which had been through so many excitements, artistic and otherwise, during
- the afternoon and evening. And he meditated, now on the bullet, and now on
- Ilam. He could scarcely realize how nearly he had escaped quarrelling with
- Ilam in the balloon; their relations hitherto had been invariably
- amicable, at any rate on the surface; and he had done so much for Ilam; he
- had put a second fortune in Ilam&rsquo;s pocket. The dazzling success of the day
- of inauguration was the success of Carpentaria&rsquo;s ideas. And yet Ilam hated
- him. He felt that Ilam hated him. He almost shuddered as he remembered the
- moment when he had sat on the dizzy edge of the balloon-car, and Ilam had
- threatened him, and then laughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Oriental Gardens were empty and dark. The gay crowd had departed; the
- lights were extinguished. Only the light in Ilam&rsquo;s drawing-room shone
- across the expanse as it had shone through all the evening. Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- own bungalow was dark. He wondered what Juliette was doing.
- </p>
- <p>
- At length he set off home through the gardens. And just as he was entering
- his front-door he recollected that he had given no instructions about the
- drunken man in the enclosure. He turned back down the steps, and went into
- the enclosure and struck a match. The man was lying on the ground, no
- doubt asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, this is a caution!&rdquo; he muttered.
- </p>
- <p>
- A notion occurred to him, one of his fanciful pranks. He picked up the
- unconscious man, who held himself stiff and did not even groan, and
- carried him, not with too much difficulty&mdash;for Carpentaria was
- extremely powerful&mdash;to the side-door of Ilam&rsquo;s residence; he placed
- the form against the door. Every night for weeks past Ilam had come out by
- that door about midnight to take a final stroll of inspection. He felt
- that he owed Ilam a grudge. Then he retired into the shadow and waited.
- </p>
- <p>
- Presently the door opened, and Ilam fell over the man, as Carpentaria
- hoped he would, and picked himself up with oaths and struck a match and
- gazed at the form.
- </p>
- <p>
- At the same instant a woman&rsquo;s figure passed Carpentaria in the dark. He
- was surprised to recognize Juliette. He touched her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; she cried softly, starting back.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you start like that?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&mdash;you&mdash;frightened me,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- He escorted her into their house. When he came out again Ilam was
- descending the steps by the side door. Nothing lay near the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Seen anything of a drunken man?&rdquo; Carpentaria called out.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam, after a pause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not near your door?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, nothing. Only I thought I saw one.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good night,&rdquo; growled Ilam, but instead of taking the air he returned
- abruptly to the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0006" id="link2HCH0006"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VI&mdash;The Black Burden
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>urious!
- Carpentaria meditated as he retired to his abode. &ldquo;Having fallen over a
- man lying drunk on his steps, why should my friend and partner, Mr.
- Josephus Ilam, totally deny that he has seen a drunken man? With my own
- eyes I saw him tumble. Now this mishap must have made Mr. Josephus Ilam
- angry, because he is just the sort of person who does get angry upon the
- provocation of a pure accident. Yet, so far as I could judge in the gloom,
- there was no trace of anger in his demeanour when he answered my question.
- On the contrary, he appeared to be rather subdued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And further&mdash;what has become of my friend the drunken man? The
- drunken man must exist somewhere. Is he in Ilam&rsquo;s house? And, if so, why
- is he in Ilam&rsquo;s house? Neither Josephus nor his mother is precisely a type
- of the Good Samaritan. And if he is not in Ilam&rsquo;s house, has he suddenly
- recovered and walked away on his legs unaided? Impossible! I was once
- drunk, and I say, impossible. Then, has Josephus carried him somewhere?
- And where has he carried him, and why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria unlocked his front-door and entered the hall of his dwelling,
- and then locked and bolted the door. He was not in the habit of either
- locking or bolting his front-door; the idea of so securing a house which
- stood in the middle of half a square mile of private property, well
- guarded at all its gates, seemed ridiculous. Nevertheless he did it, and
- he could have given no reason for doing it. He imagined that he heard
- footsteps in the passage leading from the hall to the kitchen, and he
- quickly turned on the electric light and looked down the passage. But
- there was nothing. He decided that he was very nervous and impressionable
- that night. The servants had, doubtless, long since gone to bed. He
- extinguished the light and made his way upstairs to his study, and sat
- down in his chair&mdash;the famous chair in which he composed his famous
- melodies. The faint illumination of the May night made the principal
- objects in the room vaguely visible. He could discern the pale square of
- the framed autograph letter from President McKinley which hung on the
- opposite wall. He tried to collect his ideas and think in a logical
- sequence.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then, again, he fancied that he heard footsteps, and that he saw a dim
- form near the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who&rsquo;s that?&rdquo; he cried sharply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s only me,&rdquo; answered a woman&rsquo;s voice, and the electricity was at the
- same instant switched on.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette stood there.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why are you sitting in the dark, Carlos?&rdquo; she demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carlos was her pet name for him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; he said lamely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My poor dear,&rdquo; she smiled, approaching him. &ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t said good-night to
- you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She put her long and elegant hands on his shoulders, as was her wont each
- evening, and kissed him on both cheeks in her French fashion. The
- affection between Carlos and his half-French half-sister was real and
- profound. He liked her for her Parisian daintiness, and for the eminently
- practical qualities which she possessed in common with most Frenchwomen,
- and also because she regarded him as a genius. To-night he thought she was
- sweeter and more sisterly than ever.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night,&rdquo; she said, and her voice trembled, and a slight humidity
- glistened in her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night,&rdquo; he responded.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she tripped off, swinging the perfect skirt of her black <i>mousseline</i>
- dress round the edge of the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She&rsquo;s mightily excited to-night,&rdquo; he murmured to himself; and he
- reflected, as all men reflect from time to time, that women are strange
- and incomprehensible, a device invented by Providence to keep the wit of
- man well sharpened by constant employment.
- </p>
- <p>
- He passed into his bedroom, and went out on to the wooden balcony of the
- bedroom, which commanded a view of Ilam&rsquo;s side-door. A light showed
- through the glass above the door, and Carpentaria noticed at length that
- the door was slightly ajar. He stepped back into the bedroom, extinguished
- all his own lights, and returned to the balcony to watch. He determined to
- watch as long as Ilam&rsquo;s door remained ajar. He sat down in a cane chair
- provided for repose on the balcony, and his one regret was that the glow
- of a cigarette or a cigar would betray him.
- </p>
- <p>
- He grew calmer. The frenzy into which music always threw him had quite
- worn itself away. He was able to think clearly. He did not, however, think
- so much upon the incident of the drunken man as upon the incident of the
- bullet; and this was perhaps natural. He was astounded now that he could
- have remained in the bandstand, so utterly careless of danger, after the
- arrival of the bullet. He was astounded, too, at the sang-froid of his
- musicians. But, then, their ears had not been grazed, and his had. He saw
- that he was at the mercy of any homicidal maniac who, on a dark night,
- with a good rifle and a sure aim, chose to secrete himself in some
- deserted alley of the vast Oriental Gardens, and shoot at him during a
- loud burst of music. And he said: &ldquo;Well, if I am to die, I am to die, and
- there&rsquo;s an end of it. Assuming that a given man A has really determined to
- kill another given man B, and A is obstinate, nothing will ultimately save
- B. I am B. Hence I must be philosophical.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But who was A?
- </p>
- <p>
- He thought of all the enemies he had made, all the rivals he had defeated,
- but the process of their enumeration was perfunctory. For out of the
- depths of his mind rose persistently one name, again, and again, and
- again, and yet again, like a succession of bubbles, all alike, rising to
- the surface of a pond and breaking there. And that name was the name of
- Ilam. He forbade the name to rise, but it rose. With the simplicity which
- marked some of his mental processes, he could not understand why Ilam
- should hate him murderously. But the episode of the balloon had magically
- and terribly cast a new and searching light on the recesses of Ham&rsquo;s
- character. He felt that hitherto he had been mistaken in Ilam, and that
- Ilam was not a person with whom it was wise to have interests in common.
- And the unknown designs of Ilam seemed to surround him in the night like
- the web of a gigantic spider, and to bind him tighter and tighter.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then his reflections were interrupted by a sound somewhere below the
- balcony.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the sound of his own side-door being very cautiously opened. He
- could hear it perfectly clearly in the still night; but whether the door
- was being opened from the outside or the inside he could not tell. He
- remembered that, though he had bolted and locked the front-door, he had
- utterly forgotten the side-door. He leaned over the balcony as far as he
- dared, but even so he could catch no glimpse of anything in the obscurity
- beneath.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then there were steps on the gravel, and he saw a white blur moving on
- the top of a dark mass. In another moment he perceived that the apparition
- was Juliette, with a white shawl wrapped round her head. What was she
- doing there, and why had she opened the door so cautiously? Had she some
- secret? He decided to watch her. She moved to the middle of the avenue
- between the two houses and hesitated. And then the great clock in the
- tower of the Exposition Palace tolled the hour of twelve solemnly, as it
- were warningly, over the immense extent of the sleeping City of Pleasure.
- </p>
- <p>
- The appeal of the clock seemed to Carpentaria to be almost dramatic. He
- felt strongly that he could not spy upon Juliette, that he could not be
- disloyal to this affectionate companion of his life, and honourably he
- called out to her:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette, what are you doing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His own voice startled him. It was so clear and penetrative in the gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a slight pause. Then Juliette replied: &ldquo;Carlos, you seem bent on
- frightening me tonight. I thought you were in bed and asleep. You&rsquo;ll take
- cold on that balcony. I only came out to get a little air.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The notion struck him that her head was turned directly to Ham&rsquo;s house,
- and yet she made no comment on the light there and the door ajar.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go in, there&rsquo;s a good girl,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s you who&rsquo;ll be taking
- cold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m going in,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she went in.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had yet another alarm. Something moved on the balcony itself, near a
- row of flower-pots. Then he felt a pressure against his leg.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, Beppo!&rdquo; he whispered, suddenly relieved, smiling at his nervous
- timidity. A great Angora cat leaped on to his knees, and began clawing at
- the superb pile of his purple trousers. He stroked the animal, and Beppo
- purred with a volume of sound equal to that of many sawmills. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t purr
- so loud, Bep,&rdquo; he advised the cat; but the cat, under the impression that
- it was the centre of importance in the best of all possible worlds, purred
- with undiminished vigour.
- </p>
- <p>
- Five minutes, ten minutes, a quarter of an hour passed so, and then
- Carpentaria heard heavy footsteps in the avenue from the direction of the
- Central Way. He jumped up, shattering the illusions of Beppo, and listened
- intently. A man presently appeared, walking slowly. He wondered who it
- could be; but when the figure paused at Ilam&rsquo;s steps, mounted them, and
- pushed open the unlatched door, he saw that it was Ilam himself, and that
- Ilam was holding in his arms a bundle of what looked like black cloth. The
- vision of him was but transient, for Ilam closed the door at once. Ilam,
- then, must have left his house before Carpentaria had come on to the
- balcony. The watcher on the balcony felt his heart beating rapidly. His
- calm had vanished. The frenzy of the music, the perturbation caused by the
- bullet, had passed, only to give way to another and perhaps a more
- dreadful excitation. What could these secret journeys of Ilam portend? He
- clutched fiercely the rail of the balcony in his apprehensive anxiety.
- </p>
- <p>
- After a time&mdash;not a very long time&mdash;the door opened again, and
- for at least five seconds Josephus Ilam stood plainly silhouetted against
- a light within the house, and over his shoulders, which were bent, he
- carried an enormous limp burden, draped in black. He looked back into the
- house once, then turned awkwardly, because of his burden, to shut the door
- behind him, and with excessive deliberation descended the steps and came
- out into the avenue. The figure and its burden were now nothing but a
- shape in the gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria decided in the fraction of a second what he would do. He
- slipped into his bedroom, took off his boots, put on a pair of felt
- slippers, scurried downstairs, opened the side-door, and gently slipped
- out. Ilam, tramping slowly with clumsy footsteps, had reached the arch
- leading to the Central Way.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0007" id="link2HCH0007"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VII&mdash;The Cut
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria dogged
- him with all the precautions of silence as he turned to the right down the
- Central Way. The great thoroughfare of the City of Pleasure was, of
- course, absolutely deserted. Its fountains were stilled; its pretty
- cable-cars had disappeared; its flags had been hauled down. The meagre
- trees rustled chilly in the night-wind. Its vast and floriated white
- architecture seemed under the sombre sky to be the architecture of a
- dream. The one sign of human things was the illuminated face of the clock
- over the Exposition Palace, which showed twenty-five minutes past twelve.
- Of the two thousand souls employed in the City, more than half had gone to
- their homes in the other city, London, and several hundreds slept in the
- dormitories that had been built for them at the southern extremity of the
- Central Way. The remaining hundred or so were dispersed in various parts
- of the City, either watching or asleep. Some had the right to sleep at
- their posts. But the men of the highly-organized fire service would be
- awake and alert.
- </p>
- <p>
- Yet there happened to be no living creature on the Way, except its two
- chiefs. Ilam crossed the Way, and turned off it through an avenue that lay
- between the lecture hall and the menagerie. Carpentaria followed at a safe
- distance, hiding in the thick shadows as he went. From the interior of the
- menagerie came the subdued growls and groans of the wild beasts therein,
- suffering from insomnia, and longing for the jungle. Among the treasures
- of the menagerie was a society of twenty-seven lions, who went through a
- performance twice a day under their trainer, Brant, the king of
- lion-tamers, as he was called on the City of Pleasure programmes, and as
- he, in fact, was. There were also a celebrated sanguinary tiger, that had
- killed three men in New York, and various other delicate attractions. The
- nocturnal noises of these fearsome animals were sufficiently appalling.
- And when Ilam stopped before a little door in the south façade of the
- menagerie building, a cold perspiration froze the forehead and the spirit
- of Carpentaria. Was the man going to yield his mysterious black-enveloped
- burden to the lions and the tigers, the jackals and the hyenas, of that
- inestimable collection of African and Asiatic fauna?
- </p>
- <p>
- But Ilam struggled onwards. And next they passed the electricity works,
- which was in full activity, for the manufacture of light went on night and
- day in the City of Pleasure. Ilam slunk along the front of the workshops,
- increasing his pace. Fortunately for him, the windows were seven feet from
- the ground, so that he could not be observed from within. The whirr of the
- wheels revolving incessantly in front of gigantic magnets filled the air,
- and from the high windows shone a steely-blue radiance, chequered by the
- flying shadows of machinery.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam turned again, and entered the Amusements Park, and, threading his way
- among chutes, switchbacks, slides, and ponds, he crossed it from end to
- end.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is he going?&rdquo; Carpentaria muttered.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then, suddenly, it occurred to Carpentaria where Ilam was going.
- </p>
- <p>
- Behind the Amusements Park, and abutting on the confines of the City
- territory, was a large waste piece of ground which had been used for
- excavations and for refuse. In the tremendous operation of levelling the
- site of the City, digging foundations, and gardening in the landscape
- manner, much earth had been needed in one spot, and much earth had had to
- be removed in another. The waste piece of ground was the clearing-house of
- this business. In certain parts it was humped like a camel&rsquo;s back, and in
- others it was hollowed into pits. Immense quantities of soil lay loose,
- and there were, besides, barrows and spades in abundance.
- </p>
- <p>
- Arrived in the midst of this sterile wilderness, Ilam unceremoniously
- dropped his burden near a miniature mountain, which raised itself by the
- side of a miniature pit. He then found a spade, and, having tested the
- looseness of the soil, took up the black mystery and slipped it carefully
- into the pit. Then he climbed with the spade on to the summit of the
- hillock, and began to push the soil from the hillock into the pit. It
- proved to be the simplest thing in the world. In five minutes the burden
- of Ilam lay under several feet of soil.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, favoured by the nature of the spot, had crept closer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust!&rdquo; he heard Ilam reciting.
- Amazing phenomenon! But nothing can be more amazing than the behaviour of
- an utterly respectable man when he is committing a crime!
- </p>
- <p>
- The affair finished, Ilam departed, passing within a few feet of
- Carpentaria, who stretched himself flat on the ground to avoid detection.
- </p>
- <p>
- And when Ilam had vanished out of sight, Carpentaria jumped up feverishly,
- seized the spade, leapt into the pit and began to dig&mdash;to dig with a
- fury of haste. Fate helped him, for the black mass was uncovered in less
- time than had been taken to cover it. He dragged it slowly out of the pit,
- and slowly, almost reluctantly, unwrapped it. He had been sure at the
- first touch that it was the body of a man, and he was not mistaken. In the
- gloomy night he could see the white patches made by the face and the
- hands. The body was not yet stiff. He hesitated, and then struck a match.
- He hoped the wind would blow it out, but the wind spared it; it flared
- bravely, and lighted the face of the corpse, and the corpse was that of
- the mysterious drunken man.
- </p>
- <p>
- A thousand unanswerable questions fought together for solution in
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s brain.
- </p>
- <p>
- He knew himself to be in the presence of a crime, of a murder. His legal
- duty, therefore, was to fetch justice in the shape of a policeman. But he
- reflected that no battalion of policemen and judges could undo the crime,
- bring the dead to life, make innocent the guilty. He reflected also upon
- the clumsiness of State justice, and the inconveniences attaching to it,
- and upon the immeasurable harm its advent might do to the opening season
- of the City of Pleasure. Moreover, he had a horror of capital punishment,
- and he was a bold and original man, though an artist. He settled rapidly
- in his mind that he himself would probe the matter to its root, and that
- the justice involved should be the private justice of Carpentaria, not the
- public justice of the realm.
- </p>
- <p>
- And a few minutes later he had discovered a long, flat barrow, and was
- wheeling away the burden that had bent the back of Josephus Ilam. He
- brought it circuitously and gently by way of the Sports Fields round again
- to the Central Way, and so to the neighbourhood of his own house. The
- night had now grown darker than ever, and a few drops of rain began to
- fall.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly, as he was approaching the two bungalows, he stopped and
- listened. He thought he heard footsteps; but no sound met his ear, and he
- raised the handles of the barrow again. By this time he was midway between
- the bungalows and about to turn to the side-entrance of his own. Once more
- he stopped; he distinctly did hear footsteps crushing the gravel.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that? Anyone there?&rdquo; cried a voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- And it was Ilam&rsquo;s voice, full of fear. Carpentaria crept away to the
- shelter of his own wall, leaving the barrow that had become a bier in the
- midst of the path. Vaguely and dimly he saw the form of Ilam coming down
- the avenue, saw it stop uncertainly before the barrow, saw it bend down,
- and then he heard a shriek&mdash;a shriek of terror&mdash;loud, violent,
- and echoing, and Ilam fled away. Carpentaria heard him mount the steps of
- his house and fumble with the door, and then he heard the bang of the
- door.
- </p>
- <p>
- With all possible speed he rushed to the barrow, wheeled it into his
- garden, and thence to an outhouse, of which he carefully fastened the
- padlock.
- </p>
- <p>
- He stood some time hesitant in the avenue, wondering whether any further
- singular phenomenon would proceed from the Ilam house that night. His
- curiosity was rewarded. A most strange procession emerged presently from
- the bungalow. First came old Mrs. Ilam, dressed in a crimson
- dressing-gown, a white nightcap on her head, and carrying a lamp with an
- elaborate drawing-room shade. Carpentaria could see that the lamp shook in
- her trembling hand. Her hands always trembled, but her head never. She
- came down the steps with the deliberation of extreme old age, peering in
- front of her, and she was followed, timorously, by her son. The lamp threw
- a large circle of yellow light on the ground, and at intervals Mrs. Ilam
- held it up high so that it illuminated the faces of mother and son. They
- came into the middle of the avenue. It was now seriously raining.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knew it wouldn&rsquo;t be there,&rdquo; Ilam whispered, in an awed tone. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t
- the sort of thing that stays. But I saw it&mdash;I saw the cloth and I saw
- a bit of its face.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam looked about her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nonsense, Jos,&rdquo; she upbraided him, fixing her eyes on him in a sort of
- reproof. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s your imagination.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Josephus. &ldquo;I saw it; and what&rsquo;s more, it was on a bier.
- That&rsquo;s the worst&mdash;it was on a bier. Mother, he will haunt me all my
- life!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t talk so loud, child,&rdquo; put in Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;You&rsquo;d better go to bed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the good of going to bed?&rdquo; he inquired. &ldquo;What! I took him and I
- buried him as safe as houses. I left him there, and I came straight back
- here, except that I was stopped by a watchman at the stables, who told me
- the horses seemed to be all frightened. And I had a talk to the fellow;
- and I find <i>it</i> on a bier here, right in my path. And now it&rsquo;s gone
- again.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And why were the horses frightened? That shows&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam repeated. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll get you some hot milk, and you must
- try to sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Sleep!&rdquo; he murmured. &ldquo;Mother, you mustn&rsquo;t leave me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And the procession re-entered the house, and the door was closed, but a
- light burned upstairs through the remainder of the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria himself had little sleep; he scarcely tried to sleep. He arose
- at seven o&rsquo;clock, and dressed and went out on to the balcony. The rain had
- ceased, and the Sunday morning was exquisitely calm and sunny. The whole
- scene was so bright and clear that the events of six hours ago appeared
- fantastic and impossible. Yet Carpentaria knew only too well that the
- unidentified corpse lay in the outhouse. He meant first to examine the
- corpse himself, and then to confide in a certain official of the city whom
- he knew that he could trust. What he should do after that he could not
- imagine. Decidely some process of burial would be speedily imperative.
- </p>
- <p>
- All the blinds of the Ilam bungalow were drawn. He guessed that at least
- the upper ones would remain so, and he was somewhat taken aback when Mrs.
- Ilam herself appeared at a window and opened it. He was still more taken
- aback to see Mrs. Ilam a moment later open the door, and with much
- stateliness cross the avenue to his own dwelling. He knew that she was
- friendly with Juliette, and that Juliette liked her. He, too, had admired
- her, but only because she was so old and so masterful, such a surprising
- relic. That she should be accessory to a crime did not seem strange to
- him. He esteemed her to be a woman capable of anything. He would have to
- warn Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- At eight o&rsquo;clock a servant brought up the French breakfast with which,
- under Juliette&rsquo;s influence, he compromised with hunger till lunch-time;
- and with the breakfast came, as usual, the cat Beppo. The breakfast
- consisted of a two-handled bowl of milk and a fresh roll and a pat of
- butter. Beppo seemed determined to share the breakfast without delay.
- Carpentaria, as was his frequent practice, took the roll off its plate and
- poured on the plate as much milk as it would hold. And Beppo, to whom milk
- was the answer to the riddle of the universe, leapt on to the table and
- began to lap in his gluttonous masculine way. He had taken exactly four
- laps when he ceased to lap. He looked up at his master, and there was a
- disturbed and pained expression in his amber eyes. This expression changed
- in an instant to one of positive fright. He was evidently breathing with
- difficulty, and he was rather at sea, for he groped about on the table and
- put both his forepaws into the bowl, splashing the milk in all directions.
- He then gave a fearful shriek; his pupils dilated horribly in spite of the
- strong sunshine, and he went into convulsions. His breath came quick and
- short. Finally, he fell off the table.
- </p>
- <p>
- He was dead.
- </p>
- <p>
- Less than three minutes previously he had been a cat full of power, of
- romance, and of the joy of life, with comfortable views on most things.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0008" id="link2HCH0008"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VIII&mdash;Disappearance of Juliette
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">P</span>eople may read
- about crimes in newspapers all their lives, and yet never properly realize
- that crime exists. To appreciate what crime is, one must be brought to
- close quarters with crime, as Carpentaria was. Twelve hours ago murder to
- him had been nothing but a name. Now he knew the horror that murder
- inspires. And with the corpse of the cat Beppo lying at his feet, he felt
- that horror far more keenly even than in the night as he unearthed the
- corpse of the mysterious drunken man. He had actually seen the cat done to
- death, and had it not been for the greediness of Beppo, he himself would
- have lain there, stretched out in eternal quiet.
- </p>
- <p>
- He looked at the half-empty bowl of milk and at the splashes of milk on
- the round painted table, reflecting that each splash was no doubt
- sufficient to kill a man.
- </p>
- <p>
- He wondered what he must do, how he must begin to disentangle himself from
- the coil of danger that was surrounding him. He was not afraid. He was
- probably much too excited to be afraid. He was angry, startled, grieved,
- and puzzled, and nothing more. His mind turned naturally to Juliette&mdash;Juliette,
- his comforter and companion. He did not like the idea of frightening her
- by a recital of what had occurred, but he knew that he would be compelled
- to do so. He must talk confidentially to some one who understood him and
- admired him. Now, at that hour in the morning the faithful Juliette, her
- dress ornamented by an extremely small and attractive French apron, was in
- the habit of personally dusting the writing-table in Carpentaria&rsquo;s study
- adjoining the bedroom. No profane hand ever touched that table, and
- Juliette&rsquo;s own hand never ventured to arrange its sublime disorder. There
- were three servants in the house&mdash;the parlourmaid, the cook, and a
- scullery-maid. There might have been a dozen had Juliette so wished. But
- Juliette was a simple person; her father, the second husband of
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s mother, had belonged to the plain and excellent French
- bourgeoisie, who know so well how to cook and how to save money, and
- Juliette had inherited his tastes. Juliette was always curbing
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s instinct towards magnificence. She did not want even three
- servants, and there were a number of delicate tasks, such as the dusting
- of Carpentaria&rsquo;s table, that she would not permit them to do.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria touched nothing on the balcony. He went into the bedroom,
- fastened the window, and then hesitated. He could hear Juliette&rsquo;s soft
- movements in the study. Ought he, could he, go to her and say bluntly:
- &ldquo;Juliette, some one is trying to murder me, and you must take more care
- than you took this morning&mdash;you allowed my milk to be poisoned&rdquo;?
- </p>
- <p>
- At last he opened the door of the study.
- </p>
- <p>
- But it was not Juliette dusting the sacred table. It was Jenkins, the
- parlourmaid!
- </p>
- <p>
- Such a thing had never before happened in the united domesticity of
- Carpentaria and Juliette! It was astounding. It unnerved Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- He locked the door of the bedroom, and put the key in his pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo; he demanded gruffly of the parlourmaid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dusting your table, sir,&rdquo; replied Jenkins, in a tone that respectfully
- asked to be informed whether Carpentaria was blind.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who told you to dust my table?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mistress, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is your mistress?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know, sir. She told me to come up and dust the room.&rdquo; A pause. &ldquo;I&mdash;er&mdash;really
- don&rsquo;t know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go and find her. Ask her to speak to me at once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Half a minute, Jenkins. It was you who brought my milk up?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where did you take it from?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mistress gave it me with her own hands, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you brought it direct to me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one else touched it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anybody called here this morning?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Called, sir?&rdquo; Jenkins seemed ruffled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. Anybody been to the house?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir,&rdquo; said Jenkins, as though in asking if anybody had called
- Carpentaria was reflecting upon her moral character. And she blushed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well. Go and find your mistress.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Jenkins departed, and came back in a surprisingly short space of time.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mistress doesn&rsquo;t seem to be about, sir,&rdquo; said Jenkins.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What? She hasn&rsquo;t gone out, has she?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not that I know of, sir. But I can&rsquo;t find her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you looked in her bedroom?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knocked at the door, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And there was no answer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When did you last see your mistress?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When she told me to dust this room, sir, after I had brought up your
- milk.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where was she?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the dining-room, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A fearful thought ran through the mind of Carpentaria, cutting it like a
- lancet. Suppose that Juliette had been poisoned! Suppose that an attempt
- had been made against her, as against him, but with more success! He
- hurried out of the room and knocked loudly at her bedroom-door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette! Are you there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette, I say!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again no answer. His heart almost stopped. He opened the door and entered
- the room. It was empty, but already the bed had been made and everything
- tidied. He penetrated to the dressing-room, which was equally neat and
- equally empty.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he searched the house and the premises; he searched everywhere except
- in the little outhouse wherein was hidden the corpse of the drunken man.
- At length, after a futile cross-examination of the cook in the kitchen, he
- perceived that the scullery-maid, in the scullery was surreptitiously
- beckoning to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- This ungainly chit, Polly, whose person was only kept presentable by the
- ceaseless efforts of Juliette, had red hair, rather less red than
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s, and she worshipped him afar off. She had that &ldquo;cult&rdquo; for
- him which very humble servants do sometimes entertain for masters who
- never even throw them a glance. And now she was beckoning to him and
- making eyes!
- </p>
- <p>
- He followed her through the scullery into the yard.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you want mistress, sir?&rdquo; asked Polly in a whisper.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, she&rsquo;s over the wye, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Over the way?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir, at Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s. Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s been here this morning, sir. Don&rsquo;t
- tell mistress as I told you, sir, for the love of heving!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette was at Ilam&rsquo;s! And he had twice found Juliette in the avenue
- during the night! And she had been strangely excited when she came to kiss
- him before going to bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- In something less than fifteen seconds he was rattling loudly at Ilam&rsquo;s
- door. He received no answer. He heard no sound within the house. Wondering
- where the servants could be, he assaulted the door again, this time
- furiously. A man who was rolling a lawn in the Oriental Gardens glanced up
- at him. Still there was no reply. He was just deciding to break into the
- house by way of a window, when the door opened very suddenly, and as he
- was leaning upon it, he pitched forward into the hall and into the arms of
- old Mrs. Ilam, who, with her white cap, her black dress and her parchment
- face, seemed aggrieved by this entrance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria!&rdquo; she protested, raising her shaking hands.
- </p>
- <p>
- But she was admirably and overpoweringly calm, and her extreme age
- prevented Carpentaria from taking the measures which he would have taken
- had she been younger, less imposing, less august, less like a dead woman
- who walked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My sister is here, and I must see her at once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, Mr. Carpentaria; your sister is not here.&rdquo; Her tone startled him. It
- was so cold and positive. But after a few seconds he thought she was
- lying.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has been here, then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, Mr. Carpentaria. She has not been here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really! But you have seen her this morning. You came to my house.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me, Mrs. Ilam, I saw you from my&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&mdash;from your balcony? You saw me cross the avenue, but you did not
- see me enter your house. You could not have seen that from your balcony,
- even if I had entered; and, as it happens, I didn&rsquo;t enter.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My servants say you came.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your servants probably say a good many things, Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; she
- smiled humorously.
- </p>
- <p>
- The musician felt himself against a stone wall. &ldquo;Can I see your son?&rdquo; he
- asked at length of the imperturbable old woman.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My son is in bed and far from well,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I should like to talk to you instead,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- She seemed to burst into welcome.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in, then, my dear man, do! Come in!&rdquo; And she preceded him into the
- drawing-room, an apartment furnished in the richest Tottenham Court Road
- splendour. They sat down on either side of the hearth, where a fire was
- burning. He did not know exactly how to begin.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now, Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; she encouraged him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Some very strange things have been happening, Mrs. Ilam,&rdquo; said he.
- </p>
- <p>
- He deemed that he might as well go directly to the point. He would come to
- Juliette afterwards. So long as Juliette was not in Ilam&rsquo;s house she was
- probably in no immediate danger.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To you?&rdquo; asked the dame.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To me. I saw some very strange things with my own eyes last night, and
- within the last twelve Lours there have been two attempts to murder me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A slight flush reddened the wrinkled yellow cheek of Mrs. Ilam. It seemed
- as though she tried to speak and could not. Her fingers worked
- convulsively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You, too?&rdquo; he murmured, with apparent difficulty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you say &lsquo;you, too&rsquo;?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- She paused again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was the milk?&rdquo; she seemed to stammer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, the second attempt; it was the milk,&rdquo; admitted Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- She hid her face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The same attempt has been made against Josephus,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;And he was
- so frightened it has made him ill. That is why he is not feeling very well
- this morning.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But does Mr. Ilam take milk for breakfast? I thought he always had ham
- and eggs?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never!&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;Hot bread-and-milk. Nothing else.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And how did he find out that the milk was poisoned?&rdquo; Carpentaria pursued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;But he did. He&rsquo;s very particular
- about his food, is Jos. And he suspected something. So he tried it on
- Neptune, the Newfoundland. And Neptune is dead. He says he thinks it must
- be prussic acid. Oh, Mr. Carpentaria, what is this plot against us all?
- What are we to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria was reduced to muteness. The old lady had changed the trend of
- his thoughts. He had been secretly accusing Ilam, but if Ilam&rsquo;s life also
- had been attempted, the case was very much altered. It was perhaps even
- more perilous. Still, Mrs. Ilam had done nothing to explain the
- extraordinary events of the night. He decided to be cautious.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I happened to see lights in your house very late last night, or rather,
- early this morning,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I was afraid that either you or Mr. Ilam
- might be ill.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His eyes sought hers and met them fully and squarely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; she exclaimed sadly. &ldquo;Jos had a dreadful night. He does have them
- sometimes, you know. Bad dreams. In many ways he is just like a child.
- There are nights when I think his dreams are more real to him than his
- real life. Now, last night he dreamed there was a corpse lying on a bier
- in the avenue, and nothing would satisfy him but that I should come out
- with him to see. Fancy it! at my age! However, there was nothing&mdash;of
- course.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria said to himself that the old lady evidently was unaware of her
- son&rsquo;s midnight escapade, and that he could get no further with her. The
- hope sprang up within him that Polly had been after all mistaken. Juliette
- might have gone out merely for a stroll and have returned ere then. He
- rose to take leave of Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you going to do?&rdquo; she asked him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What about?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, my dear man, about this attempted poisoning.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose we must inform the police,&rdquo; he replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I suppose so,&rdquo; she agreed. &ldquo;But perhaps it would be well to wait
- until you had had a talk with Jos. He&rsquo;ll be getting up during the day.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll see,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a good thing it&rsquo;s Sunday and we&rsquo;re free, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; she remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had got precisely as far as the drawing-room door, when a voice reached
- his ears from the upper story. &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam! Mrs. Ilam! He&rsquo;s eaten his ham
- and eggs. What about the marmalade?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria dashed into the hall and looked up the stairs, and he saw the
- head of Juliette over the banisters.
- </p>
- <p>
- Behind him he heard a suppressed sigh from Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0009" id="link2HCH0009"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER IX&mdash;The Dead Dog
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria ran up
- the stairs. If he had not had flame-coloured hair, and the fiery temper
- that goes with it, he would probably have pursued the more dignified
- course of calling Juliette down and interrogating her in privacy. But he
- was Carpentaria. She knew his moods, and she fled before him into a
- sitting-room, where Ilam, a dressing-gown covering his suit of Sunday
- black, reclined in an easy-chair by the side of a small table bearing an
- empty plate and a knife and fork.
- </p>
- <p>
- She cowered down on the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, Carlos!&rdquo; she exclaimed under her breath.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria made the obvious demand:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing in this house, Juliette?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look here, Carpentaria,&rdquo; Ilam began, rising a little in a chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Silence!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria angrily and threateningly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And at the noise the great dog Neptune, pride of the Ilams, emerged from
- behind the chair and growled.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette said at last:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam told me that Jos&mdash;that Mr. Ilam was unwell, and so I&mdash;I
- came to see how he was. That&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Is that all? Your philanthropic interest in
- the sick and suffering, my girl, does you great credit. But as the invalid
- seems to be doing fairly well you&rsquo;d better come home with me. I want to
- talk to you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette gave a look of appeal to Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must tell him,&rdquo; she whispered. &ldquo;I must tell Carlos. Why did you want me
- to keep it a secret? Carlos, Mr. Ilam and I are engaged to be married. We
- love each other. We only want your consent, and Jos was afraid you
- mightn&rsquo;t give it. He was afraid. We&rsquo;ve been engaged three days now,
- haven&rsquo;t we, Jos?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My consent!&rdquo; Carpentaria shouted bitterly. &ldquo;My consent!&rdquo; His wrath was
- dreadful, and yet to a certain extent he was controlling himself. &ldquo;I
- suppose,&rdquo; he addressed Juliette, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s your love for this estimable
- gentleman that leads you out into the gardens of a night, and I suppose
- you take beautiful romantic moonlight strolls together. My consent! Ye
- gods!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The dog continued to growl.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette gathered herself together, and moved to Ilam&rsquo;s chair, and Ilam
- took her hand protectively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My poor dear! Never mind!&rdquo; murmured Ilam soothingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Genuine affection spoke in those tones uttered by the stout and otherwise
- grotesque Mr. Ilam. Love itself unmistakably appeared in the attitude of
- the pair as they clasped hands in front of Carpentaria&rsquo;s fury. And
- Carpentaria could not but be struck by what he saw. It sobered him,
- puzzled him, diverted his thoughts.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come, Juliette,&rdquo; he said in a quieter, more persuasive tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to leave the room, and Juliette obediently followed. Allowing
- her to pass before him, he stopped an instant and threw a glance at Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So they&rsquo;ve been trying to poison you, Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poison me!&rdquo; repeated Ilam, plainly at a loss.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria with a sneer. &ldquo;And you never have ham and eggs for
- breakfast. That&rsquo;s the reason why that plate is streaked with yellow. You
- always have milk. Naturally, you eat it with a knife and fork. And you
- suspected the milk and gave some of it to Neptune, and he fell down dead.
- He looks dead, doesn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what you mean,&rdquo; Ilam said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must ask mamma,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria, departing.
- </p>
- <p>
- He saw now with the utmost clearness that the aged Mrs. Ilam had been
- indulging him with some impromptu lying, invented, and clumsily invented,
- to put him off the scent, were it only for a few hours.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She may be clumsy in her lying,&rdquo; he thought as he descended the stairs in
- Juliette&rsquo;s wake, &ldquo;but she can act, the old woman can!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He remembered that her acting had been perfect, and if Juliette had not
- happened to disclose the fact of her presence, the lying of Mrs. Ilam,
- clumsy as it was, might have succeeded. It is so easy to poison a dog, and
- to arrange the remains of poisoned milk.
- </p>
- <p>
- He was capable of congratulating her on her acting, but she had utterly
- vanished from the ground-floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- When he had deposited Juliette safely in his study, she began to cry
- softly. It was impossible for him to maintain his anger against her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;why do you have secrets from me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, Carlos, he wished it to be kept secret. He said he had reasons; and I
- love him. No one has ever loved me before, and I&rsquo;m thirty.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What about my affection?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s different!&rdquo; she cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he questioned her about Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was at the kitchen window, preparing your milk, and the window was
- open, and Mrs. Ilam came up outside, and told me that Jos was unwell, and
- wanted to see me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did she touch the milk?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Touch the milk? No; why should she touch the milk?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could she reach to touch the milk, supposing she had wished to?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I dare say she could. Yes, she could. But why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could you swear absolutely she didn&rsquo;t?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t swear; but I&rsquo;m nearly sure. Carlos, what do you mean?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll show you what I mean!&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- He unlocked the bedroom door and led her to the balcony.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0010" id="link2HCH0010"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER X&mdash;A Pinch of Snuff
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hree hours later
- Carpentaria, whose thoughts had been bent upon some solution of the
- problem set by Juliette&rsquo;s strange and incomprehensible love affair with
- Josephus Ilam, was obliged to devote his brains to other and not less
- disturbing matters. He received in his study, for the second time that
- day, young Rivers, the newly-admitted doctor who had been officially
- attached to the City of Pleasure. A medical cabinet and a pharmacy had
- been judged quite indispensable to the smooth running of the City, and the
- foresight which had provided them was entirely justified by the numerous
- small accidents, faintings, and indispositions that marked the opening
- day, when more than three hundred persons had patronized the pharmacy, and
- more than twenty had received the attentions of the ardent young doctor.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria had first met young Rivers when this youth was walking Bart&rsquo;s,
- and the accession of Rivers to the brilliant and brilliantly remunerated
- position of physician and surgeon-in-ordinary to the City of Pleasure was
- due to Carpentaria&rsquo;s influence. Rivers was grateful, very grateful.
- Moreover, he liked Carpentaria, thought him, in fact, the most wonderful
- man, except Lord Lister, that he had ever met.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said the fair youth of twenty-five, when Carpentaria had shut the
- study-door, &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve made the analysis. It comes out to just about what I
- expected.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Prussic acid?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not exactly prussic acid. A soluble cyanide&mdash;cyanide of potassium.
- Have you by any chance got a photographic bureau concealed somewhere in
- the show?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, of course,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Didn&rsquo;t you know? It&rsquo;s next door to
- the lecture-hall.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then the cyanide of potassium was probably got from there. It&rsquo;s used by
- photographers. Better make inquiries.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We will,&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed. &ldquo;And do you mean to say cyanide of
- potassium will kill like that? How much prussic acid does it contain?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Scarcely any. Not two per cent.&mdash;not one per cent.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And poor Beppo was dead in a minute.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said Rivers excitedly. &ldquo;The strongest solution
- of prussic acid known to commerce only contains four per cent, of pure
- acid. And in the anhydrous state&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anhydrous?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That means without water. In the anhydrous state,&rdquo; Rivers proceeded
- enthusiastically, &ldquo;two grains will kill a man in a second of time. Like
- that! It&rsquo;s an amazing poison!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria shuddered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By the way,&rdquo; he said, as if casually, &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve got a corpse I want you to
- look at.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A corpse?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Keep calm, my young friend,&rdquo; Carpentaria enjoined him. And he told him
- the history of the drunken man. &ldquo;Naturally all this is strictly
- confidential,&rdquo; he concluded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should think so,&rdquo; said Rivers, aghast. &ldquo;Can you not see that you have
- got yourself into a dreadful mess? You are an accessory after the fact.
- You have been guilty of a gross illegality. I don&rsquo;t know what the penalty
- is; I&rsquo;m not very well up in medical jurisprudence; but I know it&rsquo;s
- something pretty stiff. Why, you might be accused of the murder.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I am aware of all that,&rdquo; answered Carpentaria. &ldquo;But I was very
- curious; and I didn&rsquo;t want any police meddling here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are going just the way to bring them here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all. When you have made your examination I shall simply put the
- body where I found it. No one will be the wiser.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And theft?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then&mdash;we shall see. It will depend on your examination.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, really, Mr. Carpentaria, I cannot lend myself&mdash;&mdash;-&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not to oblige me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria smiled an engaging smile, and they descended together to the
- outhouse.
- </p>
- <p>
- The outhouse was not more than eleven feet square, and the barrow with its
- burden was stretched across it diagonally, so that when the two men were
- inside, the place was full and the door would scarcely close. A small
- window gave light.
- </p>
- <p>
- Rivers gently pulled the black cloth aside.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is just such black cloth as photographers use,&rdquo; he remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So it is,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes of the corpse were closed; he might have been a man asleep, this
- strange relic from which a soul had flown and which would soon resolve
- itself into its original dust.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poor fellow,&rdquo; thought Carpentaria. &ldquo;Once he lived, and had interests, and
- probably passions, and thought himself of some importance in the
- universe.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The spectacle saddened Carpentaria, whereas the young doctor was not at
- all saddened, he was merely intensely interested.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A blow on the head among other things,&rdquo; he observed, indicating to
- Carpentaria the top of the skull which showed an abrasion together with an
- extravasation of blood, now clotted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Would that do it?&rdquo; queried Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t know. Might. By Jove, the rigor is extraordinarily acute.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rigor?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <h3>
- 7.8
- </h3>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The stiffness that follows death. Great Scott!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The doctor assumed an upright position, and stared, first at the corpse
- and then at Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great Scott!&rdquo; he repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s up?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The doctor made no reply, but tried to lift the left arm of the body. He
- could not, without raising the entire body.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is most interesting,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again Rivers did not answer. Instead, he took his watch from his pocket,
- and put it suddenly against the ear of the corpse.
- </p>
- <p>
- The corpse twitched; its head moved slightly; the eyelid lifted the eighth
- of an inch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;See that? You&rsquo;re lucky! And so&rsquo;s he!&rdquo; said the doctor. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s catalepsy!
- that&rsquo;s all&mdash;A sudden slight noise at the ear itself will often
- produce a change of position in catalepsy.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then he&rsquo;s not dead!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dead? He&rsquo;s no more dead than you are! It&rsquo;s just catalepsy, induced
- probably by that blow. But he must have been very excited previously, and,
- no doubt, suffering from melancholia too. My dear Mr. Carpentaria, there
- is only one absolutely reliable symptom of death, and that is&mdash;putrefaction.
- Death is imitated by various diseases. But there are not many that will
- imitate the coldness of death as catalepsy will. Feel that hand; it&rsquo;s like
- ice.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And how long will he remain in this condition?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria, full
- of joy and relief.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Till you go and bring me some snuff. Snuff is the best thing in these
- cases.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And he&rsquo;ll be perfectly well again?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, in a day or two.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;ll remember&mdash;things?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course he will! Shall I go for that snuff, or will you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will run,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, and he ran.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0011" id="link2HCH0011"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XI&mdash;The Return to Life
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">I</span>t was half-past
- seven o&rsquo;clock on Monday evening. More than thirty hours had elapsed since
- young Rivers first began his operations to restore life to the cataleptic
- patient, and he was only just succeeding in an affair which had proved
- extremely difficult and protracted. Young Rivers, in fact, had found out
- during the watches of Sunday night and the sunny morning of Monday that
- the disease (if catalepsy may be called a disease) has a habit of flatly
- defying the rules of medical text-books and the experience of even the
- youngest doctors. But ultimately he had triumphed, though not by means of
- the famous snuff, which Carpentaria had obtained, after exhaustive
- research, from a bass-fiddle player in his band.
- </p>
- <p>
- The patient reclined, alive, conscious, capable of movement and speech,
- but otherwise a prodigious enigma, in an arm-chair in Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- bedroom. His existence was a profound secret from all except the doctor
- and the musician.
- </p>
- <p>
- And now these two, who had brought him back to earthly life, wanted him to
- talk, to explain himself, to unravel the mysteries of Saturday afternoon
- and Saturday night. And Carpentaria, dressed in his uniform, waited, watch
- in hand; for in half an hour the daily concert must commence in the
- Oriental Gardens. Nothing could interfere with Carpentaria&rsquo;s presence in
- the gorgeous illuminated bandstand. He had sacrificed his interest in his
- half-sister, his curiosity about the doings of the Ilams, his inspection
- of the affairs of the City, and even a rehearsal, to the care of the
- recovering cataleptic, but the concert itself, with its audience of a
- hundred thousand or so, could not be sacrificed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you are Carpentaria?&rdquo; murmured the patient, sipping at a glass of hot
- milk.
- </p>
- <p>
- His age now appeared to be fifty. He had grey hair and a short grey beard,
- rather whiter than the hair, and his eyes bore the expression of a man who
- has found that life bears no striking resemblance to a good joke. His
- hands moved nervously over the surfaces of the chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Carpentaria admitted; &ldquo;and you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the first direct question that he had ventured to put to the
- enigma, and the enigma ignored it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You say I was buried and you unburied me?&rdquo; he pursued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria enthusiastically, and he described the journeys,
- the disappearances and the reappearances, of the body of the enigma on the
- opening night.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose I should have died really, if I&rsquo;d been left alone?&rdquo; the enigma
- demanded of Rivers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Undoubtedly,&rdquo; said Rivers. &ldquo;Undoubtedly,&rdquo; he repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- The enigma turned almost fiercely on Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then why, in the name of common sense, couldn&rsquo;t you have left me alone?&rdquo;
- he cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was as though he owed Carpentaria a grudge which the most cruel
- ingenuity could not satisfy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I thought&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Carpentaria stammered, too surprised to
- be able to argue well.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You thought you were doing a mighty clever thing,&rdquo; snapped the enigma.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I merely&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Or, rather,&rdquo; the enigma proceeded, &ldquo;you didn&rsquo;t think at all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rivers and Carpentaria exchanged a glance, indicating to each other that
- the man was an invalid and must therefore be humoured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really, Mr.&mdash;&mdash;-&rdquo; Carpentaria began.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Call me Jetsam,&rdquo; the invalid interrupted. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t my name, but it&rsquo;s
- near enough.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, Mr. Jetsam&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam, sitting up in the chair. &ldquo;There I was,
- comfortably dead, blind and deaf for evermore to the stupidities, the
- shams, the crimes, and the tedium of this world, and you go and
- deliberately recreate me! Is your opinion of the earth, and particularly
- of England, so high that you imagine a man is better on it than off it?
- Have you reached your present position and your present age, without
- coming to the conclusion that a person once comfortably dead would never
- want to be alive again? It seems to me, that you took upon yourselves the
- responsibility, the terrible responsibility of putting me back into life
- without giving the matter a moment&rsquo;s serious thought. And I do verily
- believe that you expected me to be grateful! Grateful!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was a question of duty&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Carpentaria ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, of course. It only remained for you to drag in that word; I
- anticipated it. And why was it your duty? Who told you it was your duty?
- What authority have you for saying it was your duty? None&mdash;absolutely
- none! The sole explanation of your conduct is that, like most human
- beings, you are an interfering busybody; you can&rsquo;t leave a thing alone.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At length Carpentaria laughed. He was conscious of a certain liking for
- Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can but offer you my humble apologies,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;They are of no avail;
- they will not undo what is done. But none the less I offer them to you.
- You see, when I last saw you alive, you were so drunk, so very drunk&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was not drunk at all,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam. &ldquo;And your inability to perceive
- the fact proves that, though you may be able to wear a very stylish
- uniform and to make a great deal of noise with a band, you are an infant
- as a detective. No, sir, I had certain plans to execute, and you, with
- that meddlesomeness that appears to characterize you, came along and
- interfered. In order that I might be left alone I pretended to be drunk. I
- have never been drunk in my life, which is conceivably more than you can
- say for yourself, or you, sir&rdquo;&mdash;and he pointed to the young doctor,
- who had only recently finished being a medical student.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And those plans&mdash;may one inquire?&rdquo; Carpentaria murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam covered his face with his hands.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; he sighed, evidently speaking to himself. &ldquo;I had done with all that,
- and now I must begin again. My instincts will inevitably drive me to begin
- again. My dear people&rdquo;&mdash;he surveyed his two companions with an acid
- and distant stare&mdash;&ldquo;instead of saving life, you have only set in
- motion a chain of circumstances that will lead to the loss of it. Murder
- and the scaffold will probably be the net result of your officious zeal.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a rap on the bedroom door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Five minutes to eight, sir,&rdquo; called a voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Right,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, getting up; and to Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;I will see you
- after the concert.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I doubt it,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I shall be gone. I am feeling quite strong.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <h3>
- 35
- </h3>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should like to talk to you about certain people,&rdquo; pursued Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, Josephus Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know all about Josephus Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And his mother. Perhaps you don&rsquo;t know all about his mother.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam jumped to his feet with singular agility.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam! She&rsquo;s been dead for years,&rdquo; he said gravely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She was very much alive this morning,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He told me she was dead,&rdquo; Jetsam muttered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He lied. She is in the bungalow opposite.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; Jetsam breathed, and he seemed to breathe the breath out of his
- body. He swayed and fell back into the chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By Jove! He&rsquo;s fainted!&rdquo; exclaimed Rivers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look after him,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, and flew downstairs and towards his
- bandstand.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0012" id="link2HCH0012"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XII&mdash;On the Wheel
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>he concert was
- over. If it had been as great a triumph as usual&mdash;and it had&mdash;the
- reasons were perhaps that nothing succeeds like success, and that the
- Carpentaria band was so imbued with the spirit of Carpentaria that it
- would have played in the Carpentaria manner even had the shade of
- Beethoven come down to conduct it. Certainly Carpentaria&rsquo;s performances
- with the baton, though wild and bizarre, lacked that sincerity and that
- amazing invention which usually distinguished them. He had too much to
- think about. There was the possibility of getting shot as he stood there.
- There was the possibility of being poisoned at his next meal. There was
- the possibility of some fearful complication with Juliette and Ilam. There
- was the positive mystery of Ilam himself. There was the comparative
- mystery of Ilam&rsquo;s mother. And there was the superlative mystery of Mr.
- Jetsam. Under these circumstances, with all these pre-occupations, the
- plaudits of a hundred thousand people did not particularly interest
- Carpentaria that night. His chief desire was to get back to Mr. Jetsam,
- and to extract Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s secrets out of Mr. Jetsam either by force, by
- fraud, or by persuasion. As he was bowing languidly for the nineteenth
- time, and the entire orchestra was bowing behind him, amid a hurricane of
- clapping, he thought to himself:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a good thing I&rsquo;m not in love! It would only need that, in addition
- to what I already have on my hands, to drive me crazy!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As a fact, he had never been in love. Art, particularly as expressed by
- brass instruments, was his mistress.
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to descend the steps from the bandstand, when he perceived a
- tall African standing at attention at the bottom of the steps.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you want?&rdquo; he asked the African.
- </p>
- <p>
- The man smiled the placid and infantile smile of his race, and handed a
- note to Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You from the Soudanese village?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The inhabitant of the Soudanese village, which was one of the attractions
- of the hippodrome, stood about six feet four inches high, and he was in
- native costume, which consisted largely, but not exclusively, of beads and
- polish. To gaze, dazzled, at the polish on that man&rsquo;s face, shoulders,
- chest, and calves, one would guess that the whole tribe must sit up at
- nights bringing his polish to such a unique pitch of perfection. In his
- cheek you could see yourself as in a mirror, and he had the air of being
- personally well satisfied with the splendour of his mahogany skin.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria opened the note. It read:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please come to me at once.&mdash;Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Should he go? Or should he refuse this strange invitation, and hasten at
- once to Mr. Jetsam and the doctor?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is Mr. Ilam?&rdquo; he demanded of the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese merely increased his smile, and pointed vaguely in the
- direction of the Amusement Park.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Over there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But where, man?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah!&rdquo; He lifted an arm and pointed.
- </p>
- <p>
- The upper part of the illuminated rim of the giant wheel, a hundred feet
- higher than any other wheel in the world, could be seen over the roofs of
- the lofty white buildings in the Central Way. At this moment a rushing,
- roaring noise was heard to the east, and simultaneously the lights of the
- giant wheel were extinguished. Carpentaria glanced round. A rocket burst
- with a faint reverberation in the sky, a little colony of crimson stars
- floated for a few seconds amid the clouds&mdash;some stars had the shape
- of the letter I and others of the letter C&mdash;and then they expired,
- and the sky was black again. Cheers greeted the ingenious signal for the
- commencement of the first pyrotechnic display of the City of Pleasure, and
- a small crowd, which was beginning to form in the neighbourhood of the
- Soudanese, frittered itself suddenly away in a rush towards the
- Embankment. The fireworks were discharged from a plot of ground on the
- other side of the river&mdash;a plot specially leased for that sole
- purpose.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll come with you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria to the Soudanese. He had decided
- that an interview with Ilam could not do any harm, and there was always
- the chance that it might in some way prove decisive. As for Mr. Jetsam, he
- would deal with Mr. Jetsam later. Possibly Ilam might have determined to
- make a general confession to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- And he had his revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese walked quickly, and he was several inches taller than
- Carpentaria. In something less than five minutes they had arrived at the
- entrance to the Amusements Park, which was closing for the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is Mr. Ilam?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked again.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stood at the foot of the giant wheel, all of whose sixty cars were in
- darkness save one, and this car was at the bottom, and its door was open.
- Near the door stood a single official in the uniform of the City.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria began to be puzzled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam at the top?&rdquo; he asked the official.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think so, sir,&rdquo; said the official, after hesitating.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria went into the car. The Soudanese shut the sliding door,
- remaining himself outside. The official blew a whistle, and the giant
- wheel began slowly to revolve with a terrific vibration and straining of
- chains and rods. The car was designed to hold sixty people&mdash;when the
- giant wheel was in full work it earned a hundred and eighty pounds per
- revolution&mdash;and Carpentaria felt lonely in it. &ldquo;Is this some trap?&rdquo;
- his thoughts ran; and he said to himself that he didn&rsquo;t care whether it
- was a trap or not. As the car rose in the sky he had a superb view of the
- fireworks, which were now in full career&mdash;an immense and glittering
- tapestry of changing coloured flame, reflected hue for hue and tint for
- tint on the calm surface of the Thames beneath. And high above the
- pyrotechnics lightning was beginning to play. The day had been hot, even
- close, and it had been a pleasing surprise to the money-takers of the City
- that rain had not fallen.
- </p>
- <p>
- At last the wheel shuddered, shook, and stopped. The car was at the
- summit, three hundred and forty feet above the level of the earth. A
- figure appeared on the flying platform outside the car. The door was
- opened, and Ilam entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the meaning of this?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded of him, standing up
- suddenly, and instinctively feeling the handle of his revolver with his
- right hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It means that I wish to talk to you in private,&rdquo; answered Ham,
- emphasizing the last two words; &ldquo;and there seems to me to be no place
- particularly private down below now,&rdquo; he added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you infer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps I don&rsquo;t quite know what I infer,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;All I can tell you
- is that this City has been getting rather peculiar this last day or two.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It has,&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed pointedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And as you went to the trouble of taking me up in that thing&rdquo;&mdash;he
- indicated overhead, where the captive balloon was darting a searchlight to
- and fro across the expanse of the grounds&mdash;&ldquo;I thought I&rsquo;d go to the
- trouble of bringing you up here. It&rsquo;s safer.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria noticed how pale the man was, how changed his visage, and how
- nervous his demeanour.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hope it is,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;What do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let&rsquo;s sit down,&rdquo; replied Ilam, clearing his throat, and they sat down on
- opposite sides of the car. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll explain what I want in three words. How
- much will you take to clear out? I&rsquo;m a plain man&mdash;how much will you
- take to clear out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Clear out of the City? I won&rsquo;t take anything,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;All the
- gold of all the Rockefellers won&rsquo;t clear me out. I&rsquo;ve got the largest
- audience for my band that any bandmaster ever had, and I like it. It&rsquo;s
- worth more than money to&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it worth more than life to you?&rdquo; asked the heavy President, gloomily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; but I reckon I can keep my life and my audience, too,&rdquo; said
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;At any rate, you&rsquo;ve tried to have my life twice and failed,
- and that hasn&rsquo;t frightened me. I&rsquo;m less frightened than you are, even.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve not tried to kill you,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&rsquo;ve tried to shoot me and to poison me. Why, I cannot imagine.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve not,&rdquo; repeated Ilam.&rsquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And, in spite of himself, Carpentaria was impressed by the apparent
- truthfulness of Ilam&rsquo;s tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then who has?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no idea,&rdquo; said Ilam lamely. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what you mean, what you
- are referring to. But I&rsquo;ll give you fifty thousand a year for ten years to
- go&mdash;to go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m here. I stay.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then, you&rsquo;ll take the consequences.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I always take the consequences. But what consequences, my friend?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; Ilam coughed, &ldquo;you say there have been attempts on your life.
- Suppose they are continued? What then? I should like to save you. And
- perhaps I can only save you by persuading you to vanish.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Awfully good of you,&rdquo; Carpentaria sneered. &ldquo;But I assure you that these
- attempts on my life interest me enormously. I wouldn&rsquo;t miss them for a
- fortune. I&rsquo;m beginning rather to like them. One gets used to an atmosphere
- of mystery. No, Mr. President, I shall not go; but Juliette will go. I
- shall send Juliette away to-morrow.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam bit his lip.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That remains to be seen,&rdquo; said he. &ldquo;She likes me. I should make her a
- good husband. Why do you object to me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you court her in the dark? Why do you force her to have secrets
- from me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s neither here nor there,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I should make her a good
- husband.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what sort of a mother-in-law would she have if she married you?&rdquo;
- demanded Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam made no reply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And,&rdquo; continued Carpentaria, &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think it&rsquo;s a good thing for a woman
- to have a husband who is always seeing ghosts.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Seeing ghosts?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you see ghosts?&rdquo; sneered Carpentaria. &ldquo;N&mdash;no.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come down with me, and I&rsquo;ll show you one, then,&rdquo; said the bandmaster.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had conceived the idea of confronting Ilam with Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- The shifting searchlight from the balloon fell dazzlingly across the car,
- and through the window Carpentaria saw plainly for the fraction of a
- second the polished face of the Soudanese. Then it disappeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- He rushed to the door, flung it open, and gazed downwards into the weblike
- tracery of the steel-work which shone dully in the white glare of the
- searchlight. A zigzag stairway, incomparably slender, stretched away
- towards earth along the face of the colossal wheel, and a dark figure
- slipped rapidly from rung to rung of the dizzy ladder. Then the light
- moved capriciously away, and all was indistinguishable blackness.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0013" id="link2HCH0013"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIII&mdash;Performances of Mr. Jetsam
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria slipped
- back into the car with a shiver, as it occurred to him that Ilam, had he
- so chosen, might have pushed him into three hundred and forty
- perpendicular feet of space. But Ilam had not moved.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve had enough,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll descend. Ring the bell.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I want to&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll descend,&rdquo; Carpentaria insisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s about Juliette,&rdquo; pleaded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll descend,&rdquo; said Carpentaria a third time. &ldquo;Ring the bell.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He sat down, took his revolver from his pocket, and put it ostentatiously
- on his knees.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam sighed, and pushed the white disc that communicated with the
- engine-house, and a few moments later a vibration went through the wheel,
- and it resumed its revolution. The car came down on the side nearest the
- river, and its occupants had a superb view of the final items of the
- display of fireworks. Among them were two portraits, in living flame, of
- the twin gods of the City of Pleasure, and under each headpiece was the
- name of its subject: &ldquo;Ilam,&rdquo; &ldquo;Carpentaria.&rdquo; The cheers of the immense
- multitude greeted their ears. Then there was another sound, but it came
- from above instead of from below. Ilam shrank as if afraid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You needn&rsquo;t be frightened,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t the trumpet of
- the Day of Judgment, it&rsquo;s only the beginning of a thunderstorm. It&rsquo;s just
- come in nice time to soak everybody through on their way home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rain spattered viciously on the windows.
- </p>
- <p>
- When they reached the ground a strange sight met their eyes&mdash;the
- sight of seas and oceans of black, shining umbrellas, surging in waves
- from all directions towards the Central Way and the exits from the City,
- and as the umbrellas reached the covered footpaths of the Central Way they
- collapsed and showed human beings. And then, at all the exits from the
- City, all these umbrellas&mdash;and it was estimated that there were over
- a quarter of a million of them&mdash;sprang again into life, and hid their
- owners. The tempest was already at its height.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come with me,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, as Ilam sought to leave him, when they
- quitted the Amusements Park.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam flatly.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stood side by side in the open, heedless of the rain, while shelter
- in the shape of the sidewalks of the Central Way was within a few yards of
- them.
- </p>
- <p>
- The searchlight from the balloon still swept about the grounds, but the
- fireworks were finished.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You shall come with me and see a ghost,&rdquo; insisted Carpentaria angrily and
- obstinately, &ldquo;or I will make such a scandal in this place as will go far
- to ruin it. Let me tell you that I know a great deal more than you think.
- I am in a position, for example, to ask you, Ilam, whether you spend your
- nights in bed or wandering about the grounds carrying mysterious burdens.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A group of visitors hurried past them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; muttered Ilam. &ldquo;I&mdash;you must be going off your
- head.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doubtless I&rsquo;m a madman, eh? Well, come along with the madman.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam sighed. They passed into the Central Way, and had to fight for
- progress against the multitudes that crowded the footpaths. No one
- recognized them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish we could understand each other,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall, rest assured of that,&rdquo; returned Carpentaria. &ldquo;In quite a few
- minutes we shall understand each other, or I am mistaken, and it may be
- you that will have to leave this City&mdash;and with considerably less
- than fifty thousand a year, my friend.&rdquo; He pictured the moment when he
- should confront Ilam with the man whose corpse Ilam had buried. Vistas
- opened out before him. He saw the tables completely turned; he saw himself
- sole master of the City, and the wielder of such power over Ilam as would
- enforce obedience to his wishes. Then there would be no more insulting
- requests to abandon his music, no more ridiculous suggestions, and no fear
- of foolishness on the part of Juliette. It astonished him that he had not
- realized before the enormous latent power which his knowledge of Saturday
- night gave him over Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will come with me to my house,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is there?&rdquo; asked Ilam wearily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dr. Rivers&mdash;and the ghost.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is all this nonsense about a ghost?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You shall see him first, and then, when you have seen him&mdash;before he
- has seen you&mdash;you shall tell me whether or not you would like to have
- a chat with him. It is a ghost warranted to talk.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam said nothing. He was naturally at a complete loss.
- </p>
- <p>
- They entered the bungalow by means of Carpentaria&rsquo;s latchkey, and they
- mounted to the first-floor, and they went into the study. The door of the
- bedroom was shut. Carpentaria led Ilam out on to the balcony of the study
- window, from which it was not difficult, even for Ilam, to climb into the
- balcony of the bedroom.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now, you shall look into my bedroom,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And he himself looked first. It may be said that he was astounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- The room was lighted. There were no signs of Mr. Jetsam, but two chairs
- had been overturned, and young Rivers lay prone on the floor, his eyes
- shut, and some blood flowing from a wound in his forehead.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria sprang into the room, and, strange to say, Ilam followed him.
- The fact was that Ilam did really for the moment believe Carpentaria to be
- mad, and the bedroom to be the scene of some maniacal crime. .
- </p>
- <p>
- Just then Rivers came to his senses.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That you, Mr. Carpentaria?&rdquo; he murmured, rubbing his eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. What&rsquo;s happened? Where&rsquo;s Jetsam, as he calls himself? You&rsquo;re not
- seriously hurt, are you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At the name of Jetsam, Ilam caught his breath and took hold of a bedpost.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jetsam?&rdquo; he repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You evidently recognize the name of my ghost,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;though
- he isn&rsquo;t here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He bashed me on the head with a chair,&rdquo; said the doctor, sitting up and
- putting a handkerchief to his head, &ldquo;and I suppose I must have&mdash;&mdash;
- It can&rsquo;t be more than a minute or two since&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what was he doing? Where&rsquo;s he gone?&rdquo; inquired Carpentaria
- impatiently.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He recovered consciousness quite quickly,&rdquo; answered Rivers, &ldquo;and I gave
- him something to drink; then he asked me about Mrs. Ilam, and I told him
- she lived with Mr. Ilam here, and he grew very excited, and said he must
- go to her at once. I said he couldn&rsquo;t; I said you wouldn&rsquo;t allow that, and
- he pretended to agree; but it was only a pretence. He began to talk about
- other things, and then, all of a sudden, he sprang at me, and that&rsquo;s as
- much as I remember.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Without a word Carpentaria ran out downstairs and into the avenue. The
- door of Ilam&rsquo;s house stood wide open. He entered. In the hall he perceived
- that the door of the drawing-room was also wide open, and he entered the
- drawing-room..There was no light in the room save that of a match, and the
- match was held by Mr. Jetsam. Mr. Jetsam stood staring at Mrs. Ilam, and
- Mrs. Ilam sat motionless in her chair, apparently trying to articulate and
- not succeeding. An appalling fear shone in her eyes. No sound could be
- heard except the rattling of the rain on the French window.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam turned, and in the same second he dropped the match. The room
- was in darkness. Then followed a crash of glass and splintering of wood,
- and then a heavy fall in the apartment itself. With some trouble,
- Carpentaria found the electric switch and turned on the light. Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s
- lips were still trembling in a vain effort to speak. Her son lay stretched
- and whimpering at her feet. Mr. Jetsam had vanished. The window was in
- ruins.
- </p>
- <p>
- Dr. Rivers appeared. He had bandaged his forehead.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is paralysed!&rdquo; said the doctor, when he had examined Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;She
- will never again have the use of her limbs or her organs of speech. She
- will be able to see and to hear, that&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_PART2" id="link2H_PART2"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- PART II&mdash;THE TWINS
- </h2>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0014" id="link2HCH0014"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIV&mdash;Entry of the Twins
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">I</span>t is a singular
- fact that the secondary stage of the drama which I am relating was
- tremendously, vitally, influenced by the marriage of Mr. Luke Shooter,
- junior partner in Shooter&rsquo;s, a firm of wholesale ribbon merchants in
- Cannon Street. Luke Shooter did not know it. Luke Shooter had nothing
- whatever to do with the drama; it is very, probable that he never even
- heard of it, except such trifling fragments as got into the newspapers.
- Nevertheless, by the mere fact of marrying, Luke Shooter unconsciously
- changed the course of events in the City of Pleasure. For he was a man of
- broad views, and he liked people to think well of him, and so it occurred
- that, at his suggestion, the multitudinous staff of Shooter&rsquo;s was given a
- complete holiday on the day of his marriage, and that day happened to be
- Tuesday, May 4.
- </p>
- <p>
- So much for Mr. Luke Shooter.
- </p>
- <p>
- Many of the employés spent the latter half of the day in the City of
- Pleasure, which was now the rage, the craze, and the vogue of London, and
- among these were the twin sisters, Pauline and Rosie Dartmouth. Pauline
- and Rosie were typists in the house of Shooters. Their age was twenty-six.
- They were tall, and rather slim; only Rosie, the younger, was not quite so
- slim as Pauline. Pauline was dark; Rosie was inclined to fairness. In the
- partnership between them Pauline supplied the common sense, while Rosie
- supplied the gaiety; each supplied a considerable amount of beauty and
- charm, and a sum of thirty-five shillings a week. It is obvious that on a
- total income of three pounds ten a week, or a hundred and eighty-two
- pounds a year, two girls living together in a small flat, with sense and
- gaiety and full opportunity for acquiring ribbons at wholesale prices, may
- have a very good time and cut quite a pretty figure in the world. And this
- Pauline and Rosie certainly did manage to do.
- </p>
- <p>
- They were orphans, and had been for a very long time.
- </p>
- <p>
- They came to the City by the Tube from their flat in Shepherd&rsquo;s Bush, and
- Pauline put a florin down for the two of them at the northern entrance
- gates, just as though they had been ordinary visitors; as, in fact, at
- that moment they were. A few persons noticed them, but quite casually, and
- only because they were dressed&mdash;and well dressed&mdash;almost exactly
- alike. There are so many beautiful young women in London that Londoners
- seldom turn their heads to look at one. It is left to Frenchmen to rave
- about the blond charm of the Anglo-Saxon &ldquo;mees.&rdquo; What exuberant adjectives
- the Frenchman would find to express his delight if he penetrated further
- north, into Staffordshire, Lancashire, and Yorkshire, where ugly faces and
- bad complexions are practically unknown, it is impossible to guess.
- </p>
- <p>
- The City of Pleasure met with the entire approval of Pauline and Rosie. As
- soon as they found themselves in the Central Way they began to get
- enthusiastic. The sun was shining, the flags were flying, the cable-cars
- were gliding, and thousands and thousands of visitors made gay the City.
- They had never before seen anything like the Central Way, with its
- colonnades, and its shops, and its coloured throngs, and its soaring,
- gleaming, white architecture.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s just as good as being abroad, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Better,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- But then they had never been beyond Boulogne.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stopped at shop windows, as much to regard jewellery and
- knick-knacks, as to observe whether their frocks and chiffons and hats
- were in that immaculate order which a sunny day and the presence of one&rsquo;s
- fellow-creatures demand. It may be mentioned here that their dresses were
- of dark blue, with blue belts, bunchy knots of white muslin at the throat,
- white gloves, brown glacé kid boots, and large blue-and-black picture
- hats. It was plain, but it was perfect, and they knew it was perfect. The
- consciousness of perfection enabled them to sustain the judicial gaze of
- other women, and the passing glance of innumerable young men, with a
- supercilious stare. In truth they were secretly wild with the joy of life,
- and the attractiveness of the City, and the sensations of their holiday,
- but they did not show it. Oh, no! They did not show it. They were prim to
- the most advanced degree, as became them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should just love to go on one of those dear little cable-cars!&rdquo;
- exclaimed Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, let&rsquo;s,&rdquo; Pauline agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Aren&rsquo;t they delicious?&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- And only in the girlish hop, skip, and jump, which landed them gracefully
- on a car, was there a hint of the pent-up vivacity which surged in their
- veins&mdash;a hint that vanished as rapidly as it had showed itself. As
- Rosie smoothed out her skirt, and as Pauline opened the purse in her
- gloved hand to give two pence to the conductor, they had the utter
- demureness of duchesses.
- </p>
- <p>
- The car was open to the sky, with crosswise seats, and, as it sailed
- rapidly down the Central Way, constantly passing other cars coming in the
- opposite direction, and passing fountains and flower-beds and elephants
- and camels, and all the strange world of the City, the pleasure became
- rather too keen for Rosie&rsquo;s mercurial heart. She took Pauline&rsquo;s hand and
- pressed it, sitting a little bit closer to her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose we meet him?&rdquo; she whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What? In this crowd? Never! Besides, he isn&rsquo;t likely to be outside,&rdquo; said
- Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- She was only a few minutes older than Rosie, but she could not have played
- the elder sister more completely had she been ten years older.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We might meet <i>her</i>, anyway!&rdquo; murmured Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nonsense, Rosie. You don&rsquo;t imagine she&rsquo;ll be here, do you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Rosie, lifting her chin. &ldquo;But suppose we do meet him,
- or either of them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, then,&rdquo; said Pauline wisely, &ldquo;we meet them, that&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Shall you speak to them?&rdquo; Rosie asked; &ldquo;I shan&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll think about that when we see them,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; cried Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- This exclamation had nothing to do with the foregoing chatter. It merely
- expressed some part of Rosie&rsquo;s joy when the car came to the magnificent
- circular place half-way down the Central Way, with the façade of the
- Exposition Palace on the right, the stately entrance to the Oriental
- Gardens on the left, and the superb vista of the thoroughfare before and
- behind.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; cried Rosie again, for quite a different reason.
- </p>
- <p>
- Already she had forgotten the architectural and other beauties of this
- scene, and was eagerly directing Pauline&rsquo;s attention to a tall man with
- vivid hair and an individual style, who had just crossed the rails in
- front of the car and was proceeding towards the Oriental Gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There!&rdquo; said Rosie, pointing frantically, yet primly. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you see
- him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who? That man with the red hair?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; it&rsquo;s Carpentaria, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So it is, I do declare!&rdquo; agreed Pauline, frankly as interested as her
- sister.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; breathed Rosie regretfully, as the car swept them further from the
- figure of the popular hero. &ldquo;Doesn&rsquo;t he look lovely? He&rsquo;s just like his
- portraits, only nicer, isn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I couldn&rsquo;t see him very well,&rdquo; said the discreet Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you could,&rdquo; Rosie corrected her sharply. &ldquo;You know you adore him.
- But you&rsquo;re always so mum.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline smiled placidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do wish we could meet him&mdash;be introduced to him I mean!&rdquo; said
- Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear child,&rdquo; Pauline reprimanded. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be silly. He&rsquo;s frightfully
- rich.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know!&rdquo; said Rosie sadly. &ldquo;But he isn&rsquo;t married. I think his hair&rsquo;s
- beautiful.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In common with very many English and other girls, Rosie and Pauline were
- capable of displaying brazenly, for a man they had scarcely seen, an
- affection the tenth part of which certain males with whom they were
- intimately acquainted would have been delighted to receive. Their virgin
- hearts had never been touched, not even by the Apollos of the house of
- Shooter; they prided themselves on their unapproachableness; yet they
- could rave about Carpentaria, and openly profess that they were his
- slaves. In Carpentaria&rsquo;s presence they would doubtless have behaved, even
- if they did not feel, differently.
- </p>
- <p>
- The car whirled them to the other end of the City, and they began
- systematically to do everything and to see everything that could be done
- and seen, from the captive balloon (not that they did that&mdash;they were
- content to see it) to the Soudanese native village, from the circus to the
- exhibition relating to Woman, from the cricket field to the Freak Show,
- and from the Art Galleries to the ladies&rsquo; afternoon-tea café. They were in
- the ladies&rsquo; afternoon-tea café and paying for two pots of tea, seven
- cakes, and an extra cream, just as the clock struck five. It then occurred
- to them that a concert of military music began at precisely five o&rsquo;clock
- in the Oriental Gardens, and they decided to go and listen to it, even
- though, sad to say, Carpentaria never conducted in person till the
- evening.
- </p>
- <p>
- They crossed the Central Way, and were strolling along the avenue to the
- Gardens, when Pauline stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, I never!&rdquo; she exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Coming down the steps of Ilam&rsquo;s bungalow was the great Ilam himself, and
- it was to Ilam she pointed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What shall we do?&rdquo; whispered Rosie. &ldquo;He&rsquo;s lots older, isn&rsquo;t he?... And
- you said we shouldn&rsquo;t meet him!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They walked on, irresolute and blushing, and just as they arrived opposite
- Ilam&rsquo;s gate, with their eyes gazing studiously straight in front of them,
- Ilam called out:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hi, there! Young ladies!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Now, the avenue was generously sprinkled with people, but Pauline and
- Rosie happened to be the only young ladies within hail, and to have
- ignored such a loud and unmistakable appeal as Ilam&rsquo;s would have drawn
- down upon them more public attention than they desired. They therefore
- stopped, still blushing, but delightfully blushing, and smiling with that
- innate kindliness of heart which distinguished both of them. Rosie spoke
- first. She was a woman, and had positively stated that under the
- circumstances she should not speak. Hence, naturally, she spoke first.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good afternoon, cousin,&rdquo; said she.
- </p>
- <p>
- In her manner of pronouncing that word &ldquo;cousin,&rdquo; a non-committal manner, a
- more-than-meets-the-eye manner, a defensive manner&mdash;in a word, a
- family manner&mdash;she indicated a whole family history. When relatives
- who are distant in more senses than one meet after a considerable period,
- that particular manner is invariably employed by the one who speaks first.
- </p>
- <p>
- The history of the Dartmouths and the Ilams was quite simple&mdash;indeed,
- so usual as to be hardly worthy of record. Mrs. Dartmouth, mother of the
- twins, had been an Ilam. She was the orphan child of Josephus&rsquo; dead uncle,
- and therefore niece of Josephus&rsquo; father. And before her marriage she was
- understood to have &ldquo;expectations&rdquo; from that mighty and opulent soda-water
- manufacturer. However, heedless of these expectations, she went and
- married beneath her&mdash;to wit, a solicitor&rsquo;s clerk. The niece of a rich
- soda-water manufacturer has no business to marry a solicitor&rsquo;s clerk. The
- result was a complete estrangement. Mrs. Dartmouth gave all the Ilams to
- understand that she and her husband had no need of anyone&rsquo;s money&mdash;that,
- in fact, they scorned the Ilam millions. Mrs. Dartmouth met Josephus at
- his father&rsquo;s funeral. Ten years later Pauline and Rosie met Josephus at
- Mrs. Dartmouth&rsquo;s funeral. They shook hands formally, and made it clear to
- Josephus that they would stoop to accept no gift from him, who had scorned
- their mother, even should he offer it.
- </p>
- <p>
- That was seven years ago, and Pauline and Rosie were now absolutely alone
- in the world, and, moreover, age had taught them tolerance, and their
- curiosity had been extremely excited by the news of their cousin&rsquo;s
- partnership with the world-renowned Carpentaria, and the subsequent birth
- of the City of Pleasure. So that, in spite of anything they might have
- previously said to each other, they were rather pleased to meet their
- solemn cousin, who, after all, was a millionaire, and who really seemed
- less aloof and stiff than he appeared at funerals.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you were going to cut me?&rdquo; said Ilam, trying to smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, cousin,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;How are you? You don&rsquo;t look very well.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They shook hands over the gate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m not,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And Mrs. Ilam. She keeps pretty well, I hope,&rdquo; put in Rosie decorously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just it. She doesn&rsquo;t. She&rsquo;s&mdash;&mdash; Won&rsquo;t you come in?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he opened the gate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you live here?&rdquo; cried Rosie. &ldquo;Fancy living in the middle of this
- place! How jolly! And what a jolly house! Oh! what a delicious notion&mdash;living
- in the show!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And they disappeared into the bungalow.
- </p>
- <p>
- The historic family coolness looked as if it was going to warm itself into
- a sort of pleasant acquaintanceship.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0015" id="link2HCH0015"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XV&mdash;Proposal of Josephus
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">Y</span>es, Ilam was
- saying when they came downstairs, &ldquo;she has been like that since last
- night, and the doctors&mdash;I have had two&mdash;assure me that at her
- age no recovery is possible. She can take liquid food, and she can move
- her eyes slightly&mdash;you noticed how her eyes turn?&mdash;but otherwise
- she is incapable of movement, and, of course, she can&rsquo;t articulate.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He had taken his young relatives upstairs to see his mother, and the
- picture of her, lying almost in the attitude of a corpse on the bed, with
- a uniformed nurse sitting motionless beside her, had made a deep
- impression on Pauline and Rosie. In fact, the whole house saddened them.
- It was spacious and luxurious, but it was far from reaching that standard
- of splendour which one might reasonably expect from the Ilam wealth. Ilam
- did not look like a wealthy man. He did not talk like a wealthy man, and
- both girls began to perceive, dimly, that wealth is useless to those who
- have not sufficient imagination to employ it. Certainly the City of
- Pleasure was an expression of the Ilam riches, but they knew, as all the
- world knew, that the imagination which had brought into being the City of
- Pleasure was Carpentaria&rsquo;s. Hence, they felt sorry for Josephus Ilam,
- partly because of the calamity to his mother, and partly because of his
- forlorn and anxious air; they thought he wanted looking after, and that
- this heavy pompous man was greatly to be pitied, despite his opulence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You haven&rsquo;t told us how it happened, what caused it?&rdquo; said Pauline
- sympathetically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;as to that, who can tell? Probably some fright, some
- shock. But we can&rsquo;t say. She was alone when it happened. And as she can&rsquo;t
- speak&mdash;can&rsquo;t write&mdash;can&rsquo;t&mdash;&mdash; Well, you see how it
- is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are sorry for you,&rdquo; murmured Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And here I am, alone as it were,&rdquo; Ilam continued. &ldquo;What am I to do? What
- can a man do by himself? I&rsquo;ve got a nurse. I can get fifty nurses, if
- necessary. And there are the servants. But what are nurses and servants?
- You understand my position, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, quite,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- They were partaking of a second tea in the Ilam drawing-room. The appetite
- of Rosie for cakes seemed unimpaired, though she did her best to hide it,
- and to pretend that she was only eating cakes out of politeness.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam swallowed his tea in great gulps.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m utterly unnerved,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must be,&rdquo; said Rosie kindly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&rsquo;s a vast amount of superintendence to do in the City, as you may
- guess. But what am I fit for, with my poor old mother lying up there? You
- can&rsquo;t fancy what she was to me. I depended on her for everything&mdash;everything.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then tears showed themselves in the little eyes of Josephus Ilam. The
- appearance of those tears in the eyes of a great strong man made Rosie
- feel very uncomfortable, so much so, that she was obliged to look out of
- the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish we could help you,&rdquo; said Pauline, after a pause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;d do anything we could,&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam glanced up.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can do everything,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I hesitated to ask you, but since
- you&rsquo;ve mentioned it yourselves... and I&rsquo;ll make it worth your while. Rely
- on that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what?&rdquo; demanded Pauline, startled, while Rosie put down a fresh piece
- of cake which she had just taken.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come and live here,&rdquo; said Ilam bluntly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Both of us?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Both of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We couldn&rsquo;t do that, really,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, of course not. But wouldn&rsquo;t it be lovely?&rdquo; added Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why couldn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; asked Ilam. &ldquo;You are your own mistresses, aren&rsquo;t you?
- What is there to prevent you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, you see,&rdquo; said Pauline judicially, &ldquo;we have our living to get, and
- then there&rsquo;s our flat, and&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how much you earn,&rdquo; Ilam cried. &ldquo;But I&rsquo;ll cheerfully
- undertake to give you treble, whatever it is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That would be five hundred and forty-six pounds a year, then,&rdquo; said
- Rosie, who was specially good at arithmetic.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let us say six hundred,&rdquo; Ilam amended the figure with a tremendously
- casual air.
- </p>
- <p>
- The girls felt that, after all, perhaps he resembled a millionaire more
- than they had at first thought.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come, now,&rdquo; Ilam urged. &ldquo;Say yes. It&rsquo;s an idea that came to me all of a
- sudden, while I was talking to you. But it&rsquo;s an idea that gets better and
- better the more I think about it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But we couldn&rsquo;t give up our situations,&rdquo; objected Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; Ilam asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; Pauline stammered. &ldquo;It seems so queer. It&rsquo;s so sudden.
- What would our duties be here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your duties would be to act as mistresses of this house, and to look
- after my poor mother. Of course, there&rsquo;d be a nurse as well. I don&rsquo;t know
- how many servants there are&mdash;five or six.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And we should have to manage everything?&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Everything domestic. Come, you agree?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But suppose,&rdquo; interpolated Rosie&mdash;&ldquo;suppose we&mdash;you&mdash;we
- didn&rsquo;t suit you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- What she meant was &ldquo;Suppose you didn&rsquo;t suit us?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come a month on trial,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;At the end of that time, if you want
- to leave, I&rsquo;ll guarantee you a situation quite as good as you&rsquo;re leaving.
- I can&rsquo;t say fairer than that, can I?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause; the twins looked at each other.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Just think how I&rsquo;m fixed!&rdquo; pleaded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you say, Rosie?&rdquo; Pauline asked primly of her sister.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; answered Rosie, &ldquo;as cousin is in such a dilemma, and poor Mrs.
- Ilam so&mdash;so ill, perhaps&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good!&rdquo; exclaimed Ilam; &ldquo;you agree. Good! I&rsquo;m very much obliged to you.
- You&rsquo;re two really nice girls, and I can assure you you&rsquo;ll have a free hand
- here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You decide for us,&rdquo; said Pauline, smiling and reddening under Ilam&rsquo;s
- appreciation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll begin at once, eh?&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;Tonight.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s quite out of the question,&rdquo; objected Rosie. &ldquo;We shall be
- obliged to give a month&rsquo;s notice at Shooter&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nonsense!&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll send &lsquo;em a cheque for a month&rsquo;s salary
- instead; then they can&rsquo;t grumble.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But to-morrow? How will they manage without us?&rdquo; persisted Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam laughed&mdash;and it was not often that Ilam laughed. Either the
- humour of the thing must have appealed to him very strongly, or it was a
- symptom that his spirits had mightily improved.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They&rsquo;ll manage without you,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s true they can get substitutes from the Typewriting Exchange,&rdquo; said
- Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thus, it was arranged that Pauline and Rosie should take one of the City
- automobiles to their flat, and return with trunks and boxes during the
- evening. Before leaving the bungalow Pauline wrote to Shooter&rsquo;s informing
- them of the blow that had fallen on Shooter&rsquo;s, and Ilam filled in a
- cheque, and Rosie put it in the envelope and fastened the envelope. The
- automobile, ordered by telephone, came round to the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll introduce us to Mr. Carpentaria, won&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; said Rosie smilingly,
- as she was getting into the carriage.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam frowned, and then cleared his face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you want to know him?&rdquo; he asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, of course!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well, I suppose you must,&rdquo; Ilam agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, isn&rsquo;t this the greatest fun?&rdquo; Rosie whispered to Pauline when they
- drove off. &ldquo;We can go where we like in the City. We can save at least five
- hundred a year, and perhaps we shall be his heiresses.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; Pauline admonished her.
- </p>
- <p>
- And three hours later those two extremely practical twins were thoroughly
- installed in the Ilam bungalow. They had the air of having lived there all
- their lives as they chatted with Ilam in the drawing-room. Ilam himself
- was decidedly looking a little better.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have been talking to nurse,&rdquo; said Pauline importantly, &ldquo;and I shall
- sleep on the couch in Mrs. Ham&rsquo;s room to-night. Nurse needs rest. She says
- there is nothing to do, but some one should be there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want you to begin by tiring yourselves,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;but, of
- course&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They heard a violent ring at the front-door, and presently a servant
- entered. Ilam started.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said the servant.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam turned pale.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Show him in,&rdquo; said Rosie calmly to the servant.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, Miss Rose,&rdquo; said the servant, who, in common with the other
- servants, had already been clearly informed of the names, position, and
- authority of the new-comers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are to introduce him to us, you know,&rdquo; Rosie murmured sweetly to
- Ilam, &ldquo;and I suppose we shall have to play hostesses now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria came in, evidently hot from his concert.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I say, Ilam&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; he began.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he perceived the twins, and Ilam clumsily performed the
- introductions. The girls were enchanted with his uniform and with him. He
- said little, and he was pale, but then he was so distinguished; all his
- movements were distinguished and magnificent.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We saw you this afternoon,&rdquo; Rosie ventured timidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And I didn&rsquo;t see you! The loss was mine,&rdquo; he returned, gazing at Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam had sunk back heavily into a chair. Carpentaria caught sight of his
- face, and an awkward silence followed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I came on a matter of business,&rdquo; Carpentaria said to Ilam, &ldquo;but I won&rsquo;t
- trouble you now, it will do to-morrow. Good-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall hope to see more of you,&rdquo; said Rosie when Carpentaria had
- demonstrated that he really meant to go.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes indeed,&rdquo; said Pauline very quietly, and the visitor bowed.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then Carpentaria, that glorious vision, had vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cousin&rsquo;s nerves are simply all to pieces,&rdquo; commented Rosie, as the girls
- were going upstairs; &ldquo;even a casual visitor upsets him. Did you notice his
- face as soon as the bell rang?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0016" id="link2HCH0016"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVI&mdash;The Box
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">P</span>auline had put the
- book down on the bed, and was bending over the fire pulling the coals
- together with the poker. She performed this homely, natural, everyday
- action more to reassure herself, to convince herself that she was in an
- everyday world, than because the fire needed attention. For the strange
- mystery of the speechless creature on the bed, helpless as though bound
- with chains and gagged by the devices of tortures, had seized and
- terrified her. She held the poker in the air and listened. Not a sound
- save the ticking of the clock on the mantelpiece! From all the sleeping
- house, not a sound. She might have been alone with the living corpse in
- the house, and yet she knew that Rosie, and Josephus Ilam, and the nurse,
- and the halfdozen servants, were in various rooms of it, perhaps sleeping,
- perhaps trying to sleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a sudden sharp noise behind her, near the bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- She started violently and glanced round in fear. It was merely the book&mdash;the
- harmless and amusing &ldquo;The Lady or the Tiger?&rdquo;&mdash;which had slipped from
- the bed to the floor. Yet how could it have slipped? Had the paralytic,
- who was incapable of the slightest movement, after all twitched a limb and
- so shaken the book off the bed? Absurd. She had merely placed the book too
- close to the edge of the bed; that was all. Nothing more natural, nothing
- more probable. Her nervous fright was grotesque.
- </p>
- <p>
- She rose, picked up the book, and looked again at her charge. The burning,
- blazing eyes were still dropping tears, and the tears ran in a deep furrow
- down either cheek. Softly Pauline wiped them away, her own eyes moist. The
- tragedy of the life&rsquo;s end of this old, old woman, whom every one had
- regarded as fierce and formidable, rendered helpless in a moment by no one
- knew what horrible visitation, chilled her heart&rsquo;s core.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What can she want? What is troubling her?&rdquo; thought Pauline frenziedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then she imagined that perhaps she had mistaken all the symptoms of
- those eyes, and that Mrs. Ilam had wished her to continue to read. She
- resumed the book, and read very slowly in a fairly loud voice. And
- instantly the eyes began to blink irregularly&mdash;fast, then slow&mdash;and
- the eyeballs themselves moved slightly from side to side. Obviously the
- patient was not content.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline put down the book again in despair.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyeballs still moved slightly to and fro.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She wants something in the room. What can it be?&rdquo;&rsquo; said Pauline to
- herself. &ldquo;It may be she is thirsty.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She went to the night-table and poured a few drops of water into the
- invalid&rsquo;s cup, and brought it near Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s lips. But the eyes seemed
- to close as if in refusal, and the face, which could only wear one
- expression&mdash;that of grief&mdash;to deepen its inexpressible
- melancholy.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then an idea occurred to Pauline, and shone on her brow like a light.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; she said kindly to the aged woman. &ldquo;I will ask you some
- questions. The answers will be only yes or no. If you mean &lsquo;no&rsquo; try to
- keep your eyelids still, but if you mean &lsquo;yes&rsquo; blink them! as much as you
- can. Do you understand?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids blinked; and then they continued their terrible entranced
- stare at a spot on the ceiling exactly above their owner&rsquo;s head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;Are you in pain?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No movement of the eyelids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you thirsty?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A slight flickering, which the patient clearly endeavoured to suppress.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You want something?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it some person?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids were steady.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Something in this room?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A violent blinking.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it in a drawer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids were steady.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I can see it as I stand here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked again. Pauline set the cup down on the night-table, and
- gazed round the room. She went to the mantelpiece, and gave a list of the
- things on it: candlestick, clock, matches, vases, keys, medicine-bottle, a
- piece of crochet work, a long knitting-needle, a picture post-card. There
- was no response from the invalid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How foolish I am!&rdquo; murmured Pauline. &ldquo;She cannot possibly want any of
- these things.&rdquo; Then she saw a few old letters half-hidden behind the
- clock. &ldquo;Is it there?&rdquo; she asked, holding the letters near to Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- But there was still no response. She put back the letters and went to the
- ottoman, on which was a large family Bible. But it was not the Bible that
- Mrs. Ilam wanted, nor a spectacle case that lay on the Bible. Then Pauline
- catalogued one by one the contents of the dressing-table, and then the
- contents of the washstand, still with no result. At last, she came to a
- chest of drawers, covered with a piece of white crewelwork, and bearing
- some wax flowers, two small vases, a black lacquered box, sundry folded
- linen, several books, and a few faded photographs. She described the
- photographs and the linen and the books, as these seemed to be the most
- likely objects, and then she came to the lacquered box. And suddenly, the
- eyes began to blink furiously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You want this box?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes continued to blink.
- </p>
- <p>
- She brought it to the bed: It was about eight inches square and three
- inches in depth, and beautifully inlaid with mother-of-pearl in a design
- to resemble a bunch of roses&mdash;just such a little cabinet as our
- grandmothers valued, such as was scorned as being Early Victorian during
- the aesthetic movement of the eighties and nineties, but such as we
- ourselves are beginning to recognize as beautiful. It had prominent brass
- hinges, and a keyhole, and it was locked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you want me to open it? It&rsquo;s locked.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes were moderately still.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you wish it put somewhere else?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In a drawer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;On the dressing-table?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Near you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;On the bed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Under the bed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline was at a loss.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Under your pillow?&rdquo; she hazarded at length.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids moved up and down, if not with joy, at any rate with
- satisfaction.
- </p>
- <p>
- And very carefully Pauline raised the pillow, and
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s head, and slipped the box underneath both the pillow and the
- bolster.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There; is that right?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The tragic eyes blinked, and a slight sigh emanated weakly from between
- those thin pale lips. But, slight as it was, it seemed to have come from
- the innermost depths of the stricken woman&rsquo;s being. It might have been a
- sigh to indicate that her last wish was realized.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall lie down now,&rdquo; said Pauline, and turning out all the electric
- lights except the tiny table lamp on the table, she stretched herself on
- the couch which stood at the foot of the great bed, and she drew a rug
- over her and shut her eyes and told herself that she must sleep. But she
- could not sleep. Her brain was as busy as the inside of a clock and
- electric lights seemed to be burning and fizzing in it, extinguishing
- themselves and relighting themselves. What strange house had she and Rosie
- wandered into? What was the hidden secret of this paralysis, and of
- Josephus Ilam&rsquo;s worn and worried mien, and of the sudden arrival and
- equally sudden departure of Carpentaria? And, above all, what was the
- meaning of the old woman&rsquo;s desire for the box. What was in the box?
- </p>
- <p>
- Do not imagine that Pauline regretted having come. She did not. Except
- under the passing influences of night and of the presence of illness, she
- was not a bit superstitious; nor was Rosie. They were not afraid of
- mysteries. They were intensely practical young women, incapable of being
- frightened or repulsed by what they did not understand. And that Pauline
- was a girl entirely without the timidity of the doe, she abundantly proved
- in the next few minutes. As she lay on the couch she could see, without
- moving her head, the French window. She fancied that the heavy crimson
- curtain was somewhat pulled aside in one place, at a height of about four
- feet from the ground, and she fancied that she could see the end of a
- finger on the end of the curtain. &ldquo;No,&rdquo; she said to herself, &ldquo;this is
- ridiculous. There cannot possibly be a finger there. I must not be silly,&rdquo;
- and she resolutely shut her eyes. The next time she opened them, the fire
- had blazed up a little and, more than ever, the something on the edge of
- the curtain resembled a finger.
- </p>
- <p>
- Her little heart beating, but courageously, she noiselessly rose up from
- the couch and approached the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the end of a finger on the edge of the curtain&mdash;a finger with
- a rounded and very white finger-nail I Moreover, the curtain trembled
- slightly, as it would do if held by some one who was endeavouring not to
- move. Pauline remembered that the French window behind the curtain had
- purposely been left slightly open, and that it gave on to a balcony, as
- most of the windows of the bungalow did.
- </p>
- <p>
- She advanced resolutely, and drew aside the curtain.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0017" id="link2HCH0017"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVII&mdash;The Man on the Balcony
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">A</span> man was standing
- behind it. The French window had been opened at least eight inches, and
- the man stood partly in the aperture and partly in the room. He did not
- flinch. He did not even seem scared, nor yet disturbed. He was a
- middle-aged man, with grey hair, and a worn, rather sad face, and he wore
- a blue suit of clothes, which showed earth-stains and other evidences of
- an exciting and violent life. He was, in fact, the man whom Ilam had
- buried, and who described himself to Carpentaria as Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo; demanded Pauline, in a low, brave voice. &ldquo;What
- do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She mastered her fear, though her heart was beating madly. She determined
- that, just as she had proved equal to difficult situations in the past,
- she would prove equal to this one.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now that you have seen me, I want to talk to you,&rdquo; replied the man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You climbed up by the balcony, didn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; she asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said the intruder. &ldquo;Nothing more simple. I found a ladder.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you had better go as you came&mdash;and quickly!&rdquo; said the girl.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And the alternative?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course, I must call the master of the house. In any event I shall do
- that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam. &ldquo;For heaven&rsquo;s sake don&rsquo;t call Jos.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jos!&rdquo; repeated Pauline, astounded at this familiarity.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I said &lsquo;Jos,&rsquo;&rdquo; the man insisted firmly. &ldquo;What do you take me for?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally I take you for a burglar. What else should you be?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now, do I look like a burglar?&rdquo; Mr. Jetsam asked severely. &ldquo;Examine me,
- and tell me whether I look like a burglar.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Whatever you are,&rdquo; said Pauline, in a tone of decision, &ldquo;I cannot remain
- talking to you like this. I am in charge of an invalid here, and you must
- go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The man gazed at her fixedly. She thought his eyes were very sad eyes, and
- yet dignified, too. They reminded her of the eyes of Mrs. Ilam. And
- presently, when they grew moist, they reminded her even more of the eyes
- of Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said the man, &ldquo;I can easily prove to you that I am not a
- burglar.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you know me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know of you. I know your name. I know you by sight. I know that you and
- your sister have come into this stricken and fatal house from sheer
- goodness of heart!&rsquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do not talk like that,&rdquo; said Pauline, whom any praise, save of her
- personal appearance, made extremely uncomfortable. She endeavoured to make
- her voice cold, forbidding, and accusatory, but she could not. The eyes of
- the grey-haired man seemed to hypnotize her, to rob her of initiative, and
- of the power to decide things for herself.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will talk in any manner you like,&rdquo; returned Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;provided you
- will let me come into the room and explain to you what I want.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Impossible,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why impossible? It is, on the contrary, perfectly easy,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam.
- &ldquo;All I have to do is to close the window&rdquo;&mdash;and he closed it&mdash;&ldquo;to
- come into the room&rdquo;&mdash;and he came in&mdash;&ldquo;and to ask you to be good
- enough to listen.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He put down his felt hat on a chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- He now stood within the room, a couple of feet from Pauline, in the
- direction of the bed, but with his back to it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline, with a sudden sharp movement, darted to the mantelpiece, by the
- side of which was the bell-push. In the same instant he, too, darted
- forward and clutched her wrist, just as she was about to touch the bell.
- They held themselves rigid for a moment, like statues.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I understand your feelings,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam in a shaken voice. &ldquo;I admire
- you. But before you ring that bell, let me assure you most solemnly that
- if you do ring it you will bring murder into this house. You will utterly
- ruin one family, if not two. Believe what I say; you cannot help but
- believe it. A man&rsquo;s character for truthfulness shows itself in every
- accent of his voice, and by this time, you must be very well aware that
- when I speak, I speak the truth.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline moved from the mantelpiece and he loosed her arm.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well?&rdquo; she said interrogatively.
- </p>
- <p>
- She did not know it, but she was breathing very rapidly through her nose,
- and her charming nostrils were distended. Still, she probably noticed the
- admiration in Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s glance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he began, and then stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- Simultaneously they both thought of the invalid stretched moveless on the
- bed, and Pauline bent over that form. The eyes blinked irregularly, and
- always they stared up at the same point of the ceiling. They were dry, but
- Pauline noticed traces of tears on the rugged cheeks, and she wiped them
- away&mdash;it was her mission.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; she murmured. &ldquo;You can&rsquo;t advise me what I ought to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then she faced Mr. Jetsam once more, still standing by the bed. The
- table-lamp, with the crimson silk shade, and the bright fire gave
- sufficient light.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; Mr. Jetsam recommenced, &ldquo;a great crime was committed
- long ago in the Ilam family, one of the most cruel crimes conceivable. It
- can never be atoned for in full, or nearly in full: but, even now, after
- many, many years, it can be partially atoned for.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who committed this crime? and what was it? Murder?&rdquo; gasped Pauline in a
- breath.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot be sure who committed it,&rdquo; replied the man; &ldquo;and it was not
- murder. It was worse than murder.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know it was worse than murder? How does it concern you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was the victim,&rdquo; said the man quietly. And then he raised his voice and
- repeated: &ldquo;I was the victim. I am the victim.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; she warned him. &ldquo;Not so loud.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to the bed with a strange expression on his face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not so loud?&rdquo; he demanded. &ldquo;She can hear, even if we speak in a
- whisper. She has heard everything, and she can do nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He spoke bitterly, and held a pointing finger at the old woman. And her
- eyes remained ever fixed, blinking irregularly, regardless of the two
- beings near her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are cruel,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;You torture her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Far from being cruel,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;I am kind. Justice is always
- kind, for it alone produces peace, and peace alone produces happiness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would not talk like that if you had ever been happy,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I have not been happy, it is because justice has been denied me. If
- this old woman and her son have never been happy it is because they have
- denied me justice. But justice may now be done, and you yourself may be
- the first instrument of it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me how,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will be the blind instrument,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me how,&rdquo; Pauline repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have been watching a long time at that window,&rdquo; said the man, always
- with the utmost respect&mdash;&ldquo;and what I saw convinces me that you know
- more of this affair than you care to seem to know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; demanded the girl defiantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam cannot talk, cannot give instructions
- of any kind. Yet I saw you take a particular box from off the chest of
- drawers, and hide it under the invalid&rsquo;s pillow. In order to hide it, you
- actually disturbed the invalid. You lifted her head to enable you to
- conceal the box in the bed beneath it. That is strange, Miss Dartmouth.
- But I have no desire to pry into your secrets. You are a friend of the
- family, nay more, a relative, and you had the right to do all that you
- have done. But let me tell you at once that I have come in search of
- precisely that box. I hoped to get it while everybody was asleep; but I
- was prepared for emergencies. If your cousin Ilam had been here in your
- place I should have obtained possession of it without asking his leave.
- But you&mdash;well, I humbly ask you to give it to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline gazed at the poor organism on the bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is he to have the box?&rdquo; she asked. &ldquo;Is he to have the box, Mrs. Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The staring, sad eyes did not move. There was not the slightest flutter of
- the lids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you put questions to her?&rdquo; asked Mr. Jetsam moodily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She means that you are not to have the box,&rdquo; said Pauline, and then she
- addressed Mrs. Ilam anew. &ldquo;You mean that he is to go away without the
- box?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids wavered and then blinked rapidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That means &lsquo;Yes.&rsquo; You must now go&mdash;at once. I have listened to you
- too long,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is impossible that you should refuse me,&rdquo; argued the man. &ldquo;Impossible!
- I don&rsquo;t suppose that motion of the eyelids means anything, but even if it
- did, naturally she does not want me to have the box. Still, I must have
- it. Miss Dartmouth, everything depends on my obtaining that box. Its
- contents are essential to the bringing about of justice. I entreat you
- most urgently and most solemnly to give it to me. You cannot doubt my
- sincerity.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will admit frankly,&rdquo; answered Pauline, &ldquo;that I do not doubt your
- sincerity. But, all the same, you cannot have that box&mdash;at least from
- my hands. It belongs to Mrs. Ilam; she evidently treasures it highly. I
- put it under her pillow to satisfy her. Mrs. Ilam is helpless, and I am in
- charge of her. You must go, I repeat&mdash;and at once. We have talked too
- much.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose I take it by force?&rdquo; suggested the man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would never dare,&rdquo; said Pauline angrily, and she rushed again to the
- bell. &ldquo;If you attempt to take it I will ring the bell, and I will hold you
- till some one comes, even if I die for it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mad creature!&rdquo; he exclaimed acidly. &ldquo;I could kill you. It is almost worth
- while; but I won&rsquo;t. You tell me to go, and I go; but my resources are not
- yet exhausted. Good-night. I can&rsquo;t leave without expressing the opinion
- that you&rsquo;ve got both sense and grit, and plenty of both. But you&rsquo;ve made a
- mistake to-night. Good-bye.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And while she stood with her hand on the bell-push Mr. Jetsam passed very
- calmly out of the window, and the curtain fell in front of him and hid
- him.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the most curious adventure of Pauline&rsquo;s life, which, indeed, had
- hitherto been entirely free from the unusual and the mysterious. After a
- short period of hesitation she went to the window, drew aside the curtain
- boldly, and looked out into the night of the City. There was no sign of
- her late visitor, but the ladder rested against the balcony, a proof of
- his recent presence; otherwise, she might have persuaded herself that what
- she had been through was a dream. She shut the window and bolted it, and
- came back into the room. The old woman, with her dark burning eyes staring
- always at the same spot on the ceiling, seemed now somewhat easier.
- Pauline gazed at her, and, after having stirred the fire, lay down again
- on the couch.
- </p>
- <p>
- And as she closed her eyes, the strange enigma of Mrs. Ilam and her son
- and the nocturnal visitant filled her mind with distracting and futile
- thoughts. Who was this grey-haired man, at once so masterful, so
- dignified, and so desperate? What could be the justice that he demanded?
- what the contents of the lacquered box? She would have a real good talk
- with Rosie in the morning. That prospect comforted her. Rosie&mdash;Rosie&mdash;&mdash;
- Suddenly she started, and gradually she perceived that she had been asleep
- a long time&mdash;two hours, perhaps&mdash;and that something, some
- presence, had wakened her. Looking round, she noticed that the door, which
- had been closed, was now open.
- </p>
- <p>
- She jumped up and went out of the room to the passage, but she could
- neither see nor hear anything. Then, as her eyes became accustomed to the
- obscurity, she detected a very faint, thin pencil of light at the other
- end of the passage, and on approaching it she found that it came from her
- sister&rsquo;s room. She crept forward, pushed open the door and went in. Rosie,
- fully dressed, was sitting on a chair near the window, which was not quite
- closed, and her face was hidden in her hands, and she appeared to be
- crying.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie,&rdquo; exclaimed Pauline, &ldquo;whatever&rsquo;s the matter? Why aren&rsquo;t you in bed
- and asleep?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And Rosie subsided into her sister&rsquo;s arms, weeping violently.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t been to bed at all,&rdquo; she said at last. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve never slept in a
- room with a balcony before, and I couldn&rsquo;t resist going out on to this
- balcony to see how beautiful the night was. And I began to think what a
- splendid time we were having, and I watched the stars, and I heard the
- clock strike in the tower over there, and the gardens looked so beautiful
- in the starlight, and a long, long time must have passed. And then I saw a
- man standing under my window. He was a man dressed in blue, with grey
- hair, and he began to talk to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And why didn&rsquo;t you tell him to go away, my dear?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He seemed so sad, and he said such interesting things. Pauline, darling,
- there&rsquo;s something very, very wrong in this house&mdash;some mystery! He
- told me. No one could help believing what he says, and he has such a
- beautiful voice. I cried, almost, in listening to him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But who was he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think he must be some relative,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;I think so. He didn&rsquo;t
- say. What he did say was that there was a black box which it was
- absolutely necessary he must have. Oh, Pauline, I&rsquo;m sure he isn&rsquo;t a thief!
- He&rsquo;s a man who has suffered a great deal, and he asked me to get the box
- for him, and his face was so sad&mdash;well, I said I would. And he told
- me exactly where it was.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where did he say it was?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He said it was under Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s pillow; and it was, true enough.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know?&rdquo; cried Pauline, aghast.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I crept into your room, and lifted Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s head, and took the box.
- You were fast asleep. He asked me to see if you were asleep, and, if you
- were, not to wake you. So I came as quietly as a mouse.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you obeyed him like that?&rdquo; murmured Pauline, astounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it. I felt so sorry for him. And his voice was so&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;You used to be sensible enough!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it!&rdquo; moaned Rosie again.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0018" id="link2HCH0018"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVIII&mdash;An Arrangement for a Marriage
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">J</span>uliette D&rsquo;Avray
- had a small sitting-room of her own in the Carpentaria bungalow. It was on
- the first floor, and it looked west, whereas Carpentaria&rsquo;s study and
- bedroom both looked north, on the avenue. Three days after the affair of
- the black box, Carpentaria ran hastily up the stairs of his house and
- touched the knob of the door of Juliette&rsquo;s sitting-room, and then he drew
- back his hand, nervous and hesitant. He was evidently perturbed, and he
- pulled his fine beard in a series of quick twitches, and then he rapped
- smartly on the door and coughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo; he cried. He was very much surprised to discover that he had
- not got complete control of his voice. It broke in the middle of his
- half-sister&rsquo;s name. &ldquo;I must do better than this,&rdquo; he thought, trying to
- command himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo; he cried again, more firmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- The word was scarcely out of his mouth when the door opened wide, and
- Juliette stood before him. They gazed at each other for a fraction of a
- second, as if inimically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you come in, Carlos?&rdquo; she murmured softly, and her eyes fell,
- &ldquo;instead of knocking and making such a noise. What&rsquo;s the matter?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria was certainly astonished at the nature and tone of her remark.
- She seemed to wish to run away. Then he gathered himself together, with an
- immense show of force, as a man will when confronted by a woman who is
- helpless before him, but of whom he is afraid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want to come in,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo; she demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know why,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed I don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; she asserted; and she laughed&mdash;a curt laugh.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You promised me you wouldn&rsquo;t see Ilam again at present,&rdquo; said Carpentaria
- stoutly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette tossed ever so little her charming head, with its admirable
- coiffure.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did,&rdquo; she admitted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;he is at this moment in the sitting-room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette&rsquo;s dainty nostrils began to dilate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos,&rdquo; she said disdainfully, &ldquo;do you know what you are saying? To me!
- Mr. Ilam is not here. I have already asked you to come in!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;but you don&rsquo;t make way for me. You keep well in
- the doorway, Juliette!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She moved aside with a gesture of the finest feminine scorn.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is there space for you to enter?&rdquo; she said, bitterly sarcastic.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria stepped forward one pace. His foot was on the door-mat.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop a moment, Carlos,&rdquo; she said warningly, lifting her arm. &ldquo;I repeat
- that Mr. Ilam is not here. I cannot imagine what put the idea into your
- head. But whatever put it in, let me advise you to put it out again at
- once. Under the circumstances, if you come into this room, now that I have
- distinctly told you that Mr. Ilam is not here, it will be equivalent to
- calling me a liar. I could not suffer that, even from you, Carlos. I
- should leave you. We should quarrel for ever. Think what you are doing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Tears stood in her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria shuffled his feet in an agony of uncertainty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in if you doubt me,&rdquo; Juliette continued. &ldquo;But if you do, it will be
- the end.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria turned slowly away, and passed down the corridor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course I don&rsquo;t doubt you,&rdquo; he called out.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette made no response. She waited till her half-brother had descended
- the stairs, then she shut the door quietly, and ran to the Louis Quinze
- sofa, with its gilded borders, that stood a little way from the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can come out,&rdquo; she whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- And from behind the sofa emerged the bulky form of Josephus Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great heavens!&rdquo; he muttered, searching in his pocket for a handkerchief.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette sat down on a chair and burst into tears. The contrast between
- their two handkerchiefs&mdash;Ham&rsquo;s enormous, like himself, and Juliette&rsquo;s
- a fragment of lace no larger than a piece of bread-and-butter&mdash;was
- one of those trifles which put an edge of the comical on the tragic stuff
- of life.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are an astounding woman!&rdquo; exclaimed Ilam, wiping his brow.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have lied to him&mdash;I have deceived him. You heard what I said?&rdquo;
- whimpered Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You behaved superbly,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I behaved shamefully,&rdquo; said the woman. &ldquo;But I did it for you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And she looked at him over her handkerchief, with wet eyelashes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam would have gone through unutterable torture for her in that moment.
- It was a highly strange thing&mdash;this late coming of love into the
- existence of Josephus Ilam. It transformed him. It made him feel that, at
- fifty, he was only just beginning to grasp the meaning of life. It made
- him see that hitherto his days and his years had been wasted on vain
- things, and that the only commodity really worth having in this world was
- such a look as Juliette gave him out of her impassioned eyes. He could not
- understand what so bewitching and lively a woman as Juliette could see in
- a heavy, gloomy fellow like him. For the matter of that, probably no other
- person, save only Juliette, could understand that mystery. But then, when
- a woman loves a man, she sees him in a radiance shed from her own soul,
- and it changes him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My poor friend,&rdquo; said Juliette, composing herself, &ldquo;why do you put me in
- such an awkward position, coming upstairs like this, and in the middle of
- the day, too? You must have bribed one of the servants.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, don&rsquo;t tell me which,&rdquo; Juliette put in quickly.
- </p>
- <p>
- He bent down and kissed her. Yes, this heavy and rather creaky person, who
- had laughed at love for several decades, bent down and kissed a pretty
- woman sitting on a Louis Quinze sofa; moreover, he put his arms round her.
- He did it clumsily, of course, but Juliette did not think so.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was obliged to see you,&rdquo; he told her. &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t go without seeing
- you. Why have you so persistently kept out of my way? You were so kind
- that morning&mdash;when Carpentaria surprised you. Has he been bullying
- you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; exclaimed Juliette, suddenly excited. &ldquo;I cannot tell you what he
- said to me. You know I love him best in the world&mdash;next to&mdash;you.
- But he said such things to me&mdash;such things!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He said&mdash;oh, my dearest!&mdash;he said his life was not safe&mdash;he
- said no one&rsquo;s life was safe in this City&mdash;he said he had been shot at
- in the bandstand; and, you know, that business of the milk was dreadful.
- The strange thing is that Carlos won&rsquo;t consult the police about it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But how does this affect us&mdash;affect you and me?&rdquo; demanded Ilam
- bravely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest,&rdquo; said Juliette, &ldquo;poor Carlos thinks&mdash;he actually thinks&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That I am trying to kill him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He thinks you have something to do with it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But why? Why should I want to kill your brother&mdash;your brother?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, indeed!&rdquo; agreed Juliette. &ldquo;And why should you want to kill anybody&rsquo;s
- brother?&rdquo; she added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course,&rdquo; he said hastily. &ldquo;Why should I want to kill any person at
- all?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos says that he is not the only person you have tried to kill.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ha! And who is the other? Give me the full catalogue.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. He says you have buried a man in the grounds, and that he
- saw you do it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo; Ilam stepped backwards. Then he stopped. &ldquo;Juliette,&rdquo; he
- repeated, &ldquo;I swear to you most solemnly that I have never tried to kill
- anyone.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest, you shouldn&rsquo;t have said that!&rdquo; she remonstrated. &ldquo;You shouldn&rsquo;t
- have sworn to me. It is an insult to my love. Do you imagine that I
- believed Carlos for a single instant? Do you imagine it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She looked at him proudly, gloriously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How splendid you are!&rdquo; muttered Josephus Ilam, son of the soda-water
- manufacturer. The admiration was drawn out of him. He had not guessed that
- women could be so fine. And then he perceived that he, too, must be
- splendid, that he must be worthy of her; and so he proceeded:
- &ldquo;Nevertheless, it is true that I did bury a man in the grounds a few
- nights ago.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The perspiration stood afresh on his brow as he made the confession.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You!&rdquo; she murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought he was dead,&rdquo; said Ilam, speaking quickly. &ldquo;I thought I should
- be accused of his murder. And so I&mdash;the fact is, I was mad. I was off
- my head. I must have been. Until yesterday I actually fancied I was being
- haunted by his ghost. Yes! me! me&mdash;thinking a thing like that! But I
- did; and yesterday I was in that big crush, during the shower, in the
- Court of the Exposition Palace, and he, too, was in the crowd. I saw him;
- I touched him; he didn&rsquo;t see me, thank Heaven! Then I knew that what I had
- buried was not a corpse.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is this man?&rdquo; asked Juliette calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My angel!&rdquo; said Ilam, driven to poetry by the stress of his emotion, &ldquo;you
- mustn&rsquo;t inquire; there are some things I can&rsquo;t tell you&mdash;at least,
- not yet. When we are married, when matters are settled a bit, I will tell
- you everything, but not now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not now?&rdquo; she persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look here,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;if you persist I shall simply go and kill myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She paused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My friend,&rdquo; she resumed, &ldquo;you do not love me as much as I love you. The
- measure of love is trust, and you do not trust me completely.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I love you in my way,&rdquo; said Ilam doggedly; &ldquo;men are not like women.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is true,&rdquo; she admitted philosophically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would tell you everything if I was free to do so,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest&rdquo;&mdash;she addressed him in quite a new tone&mdash;&ldquo;you know
- something about those attacks on Carlos&rsquo; life.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She spoke with an air of absolute certainty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have had nothing to do with them,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you know something about them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you think so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can tell from your manner,&rdquo; she said triumphantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know nothing for certain, nothing precise,&rdquo; said Ilam&mdash;&ldquo;nothing
- that I can tell you&mdash;nothing that I dare tell you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest,&rdquo; she remarked, with a faint acidity, &ldquo;it seems to me that you
- have come here to-day in order not to tell me things.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He deprecated her tone with an appealing gesture.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can tell you, at any rate, this,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;that your brother&rsquo;s life is
- no longer in danger&mdash;of that I am sure.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are atoning,&rdquo; she smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which is more than can be said of my life,&rdquo; Ilam proceeded, not heeding
- her smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your life is in danger?&rdquo; she questioned, rushing to him as though she
- would protect him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam, without a word, led her to the window, from the corner of which a
- glimpse of the avenue could be caught, and walking to and fro there in the
- avenue was the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You see that man?&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the fellow they call &lsquo;Spats&rsquo; in the
- native village. I don&rsquo;t know why. He is devoted to me; he is fully armed;
- he follows me everywhere. I have only to blow this whistle&rdquo;&mdash;and Ilam
- produced a whistle from his pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Darling&rdquo;&mdash;and Juliette clung to him&mdash;&ldquo;is it so bad as that? Who
- is it that threatens you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The man that I buried,&rdquo; said Ilam quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what are you going to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m come here to see you. We must get your brother on
- our side.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll force him to understand at once,&rdquo; cried Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;perhaps you would fail, as things are, but if you were
- my wife, you would not fail then. Carpentaria, once the thing was done,
- would do everything in his power to protect your husband; he likes you
- well enough for that. He might be angry at first, but he would see
- reason.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest, you want me to marry you secretly?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I merely want you to go with me to the registry office at Putney.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is that what you came for?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is what I came for.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My love!&rdquo; she murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- Yet, with that cold and penetrating insight which women have, she saw
- clearly that, though Ilam&rsquo;s idea of getting Carpentaria&rsquo;s assistance in a
- moment of grave danger was doubtless quite serious, it was somewhat
- fanciful, and that Ilam&rsquo;s professed reason for their instant marriage was
- also fanciful, and was not a real reason, but only an excuse. He merely
- wanted to marry her at once, that was all, and although his life was
- threatened, he thought little of that. She loved him the more.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can make the arrangements pretty quick,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;You will agree, my
- angel?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And she nodded, and the compact was sealed. They heard a scurrying in the
- passages of the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette! Juliette!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Carpentaria&rsquo;s voice, and other voices mingled with it indistinctly&mdash;the
- voices of the servants. &ldquo;Yes!&rdquo; she answered loudly and, whispering to
- Ilam, &ldquo;Get out of the window; whistle softly for your Soudanese. You can
- get on to the roof of the outhouse. He will help you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And noiselessly she opened the window, and Ilam, struck by her tremendous
- resourcefulness, passed out. She heard his low whistle, and then she ran
- to the door and into the passage.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The house is on fire,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, meeting her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it?&rdquo; she answered calmly. &ldquo;Are the firemen come? where&rsquo;s the fire?&rdquo;&mdash;She
- sniffed&mdash;&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;I can smell it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was amazingly calm. &ldquo;No woman with a man concealed in her
- sitting-room,&rdquo; said Carpentaria to himself, &ldquo;could behave so calmly upon
- being informed that the house was on fire. Her first thought would have
- been to secure the hidden man&rsquo;s safety.&rdquo; And Carpentaria ran downstairs
- with a great show of activity. He was baffled, disappointed, for he had
- deliberately set fire to his own house in order to drive Ilam from the
- sitting-room, where he felt sure Ilam was. And the trick had failed. After
- all, he had been mistaken. He had been convinced of his sister&rsquo;s
- deception, and lo! she had not deceived him. Carpentaria could have killed
- himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- Happily the fire was of no importance, and it was extinguished before it
- had done more than about five pounds&rsquo; worth of damage and alarmed more
- than about five thousand visitors to the City.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0019" id="link2HCH0019"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIX&mdash;The Heart of the City
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>he situation of
- the heart of the City was one of the secrets of the City. It was not
- located, perhaps, exactly where you might have expected it to be, and for
- a very good reason. The magnificent building which housed the managerial,
- clerical, and inspectorial staff of the City was near the south end of the
- Central Way. It comprised four floors, and more than a hundred clerks
- spent seven hours a day there. On the first floor was the President&rsquo;s
- Parlour, where Ilam held consultations with Carpentaria and with the heads
- of departments, from the department of catering to the department of
- road-cleaning. On the floor above was the Manager&rsquo;s and Musical Director&rsquo;s
- Parlour, where the august Carpentaria held consultations with Ilam and
- with the heads of other departments, from that of music, with its
- subsections (a) open-air bands, (b) theatre and other bands, (c)
- restaurant bands, (d) vocal music, (e) pianolas, gramophones, and
- mechanical orchestras, to the procession and fêtes department. But the
- heart of the City was nowhere in this building.
- </p>
- <p>
- There were also scattered about the immense grounds, various other
- executive buildings of a smaller size, where sectional managers, viceroys
- of Ilam and Carpentaria, held their mimic sway. But the heart of the City
- was not in any of these, either.
- </p>
- <p>
- Very few persons, even among those on the salary-list of the City, did
- know where the heart was; for it was not talked about. Talking about it
- was discouraged; the hearts of such places are never talked about. And it
- is a most singular thing that visitors to the City scarcely gave a thought
- to the question of the situation of the heart of the City. The most
- interesting of all the many secrets of the City seldom aroused public
- curiosity, so strange is the public.
- </p>
- <p>
- The heart of the City, as I propose to reveal, was situated beneath the
- Storytellers&rsquo; Hall, near the northern end of the Central Way, on your left
- hand as you passed down from the north entrance-gates. The Storytellers&rsquo;
- Hall was an invention of Carpentaria&rsquo;s&mdash;one of his best. Between two
- o&rsquo;clock and four, between five o&rsquo;clock and seven, and between half-past
- eight and closing-time you could pay sixpence to go into the Storytellers&rsquo;
- Hall and listen to a succession of American and Irish and English
- performers, whose sole business it was to sit in an armchair on the
- diminutive stage and tell funny stories. The entertainment consisted in
- nothing else. It was the simplest thing in the world, and yet one of the
- completest successes of the City. It was a success from the very first
- hour of its existence. The little hall was nearly always crowded, chiefly
- by men. One is bound to admit that women were not enchanted by it; either
- they laughed in the wrong places, or they turned to their husbands,
- sweethearts, uncles, nephews, at the end of the story, and asked if that
- really was the end of the story, and, if it was, would their husbands,
- sweethearts, uncles, nephews kindly explain the joke to them.
- </p>
- <p>
- Well, the heart of the City was beneath that gay and mirthful structure.
- While storytellers told stories above the level of the ground, the most
- serious business of the City was being transacted a few feet away, below
- the level of the ground. Let me explain.
- </p>
- <p>
- Take an average intelligent visitor to the City. He approaches, say, the
- northern entrance, and among the twenty patent turnstiles which confront
- him he chooses the nearest one that is empty. He puts a shilling on the
- iron table of the turnstile; an official in the livery of the City
- scrutinizes the coin to make sure that it is what it pretends to be, and
- then pushes it down a little hole. The shilling disappears&mdash;not only
- from the sight, but from the thoughts of the visitor.
- </p>
- <p>
- It is a highly remarkable fact&mdash;as he squeezes through the turnstile
- he actually forgets all about his shilling, forgets it for evermore!
- </p>
- <p>
- Yet shillings are being poured in a continuous stream into the mouth of
- that turnstile and into the mouths of scores of similar turnstiles, all
- day. What becomes of them? Surely this question ought to interest the
- average intelligent visitor! What becomes of them? The turnstiles won&rsquo;t
- hold an unlimited number of shillings; nevertheless, shillings are falling
- into them eternally and they are never emptied; they are never even moved;
- they could not be moved, since they are imbedded in concrete. Here <i>is</i>
- a puzzle for the average intelligent visitor.
- </p>
- <p>
- It will occur to anyone that when four hundred thousand people have each
- paid a shilling entrance, quite a nice little lot of money must have
- accumulated somewhere in the City by nightfall; for, besides the entrance
- shillings, there is the vast expenditure of the visitors after they have
- entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- The nice little bit of money runs to the heart of the City. That is what
- the heart of the City is for; that is why it is called the heart.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now, the heart was a long, wide, and low apartment, lighted by
- electricity, and lined with concrete. In the centre, its top level with
- the floor, was a huge safe, which by hydraulic power could be raised till
- its top was nearly level with the ceiling, and its doors bared to the
- persuasions of keys. Round about were large wooden tables, furnished with
- large and small balances, copper scoops, bags, and steel coffers. A few
- chairs completed the apparatus of the apartment.
- </p>
- <p>
- The shillings of the clients of the City dropped through the mouths of the
- turnstiles right down to a small subterranean chamber, which could only be
- reached from a tunnel beneath each entrance. Thus, the officials in charge
- of the turnstiles had no control whatever over the coins once they had
- been slipped into the orifices. The coins were checked and collected by an
- entirely separate set of officials, who visited the underground chambers
- every three hours and brought back the booty, enclosed in coffers, in
- specially constructed insignificant-looking carriages, to the solitary
- door of the heart. And the door of the heart was by no means in the
- Central Way; it gave on a back entry running parallel to the Way and just
- wide enough to permit the passage of one carriage. The coffers were
- received, and receipted for, by an official of the heart, and handed by
- him into the interior. Neither he nor the collectors were ever allowed to
- enter the heart.
- </p>
- <p>
- On the evening of the day of the secret interview between Juliette and
- Ilam, the inconspicuous door of the heart was guarded, not by its usual
- official, but by a tall Soudanese, and waiting close to him was an
- automobile with chauffeur on board. The automobile was one of several
- employed specially to transport the riches of the City to the head offices
- of the London and West-End Bank in King William Street. The journeys were
- made at night, twice a week, and the offices of the London and West-End
- were specially opened to receive the coin. Automobiles laden with vast
- wealth are less apt to be remarked when they travel at night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Within the heart itself were three people&mdash;Ilam; a middle-aged man
- named Gloucester, who spent all his days in counting and weighing gold and
- silver, and who was the presiding genius of the heart; and, thirdly, a
- clerk from the London and West-End Bank.
- </p>
- <p>
- Gloucester was weighing sovereigns, the clerk was counting coffers and
- piling them up in a corner near the door, and Ilam was idly inspecting the
- doors of the huge safe, which had been raised out of its well and stood
- open and empty.
- </p>
- <p>
- During that day and the previous two days, what with a monster Y.M.C.A.
- fête then in progress, and what with the weather, over a million shillings
- had been taken at the turnstiles. Now, a new shilling weighs eighty-seven
- grains, and about seven thousand average current shillings go to the
- hundredweight. A million shillings, or fifty thousand pounds in silver,
- will weigh, therefore, something like seven tons. Nearly the whole of this
- treasure had already started on its way to the famous vaults of the London
- and West-End Bank; only a few coffers remained. But there was, in
- addition, about ten thousand pounds in gold, which weighed about a couple
- of hundredweight, and it was chiefly for this gold that the last
- automobile was waiting.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Seven coffers of silver, Mr. Gloucester,&rdquo; said the clerk; &ldquo;two of gold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall be ready with the others in a few minutes,&rdquo; replied Mr.
- Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I&rsquo;ll be making out the check-sheets,&rdquo; said the clerk.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do so,&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester, who was a formal old person, and wore
- steel-rimmed spectacles. And he continued his weighing of the gold.
- </p>
- <p>
- At this interesting and dazzling juncture, the unique door of the
- apartment, an affair of solid Bessemer steel, swung slowly on its hinges,
- and disclosed the figure of a man in a blue suit, with grey hair under his
- soft hat. Mr. Gloucester, being just a little short-sighted and just a
- little hard of hearing, neither saw nor heard the visitor. Nor did Mr.
- Ilam, who was actually within the safe, measuring its-shelves. But the
- bank-clerk, who was quite close to the door, most decidedly did see the
- man. And the clerk started, whether with fear, surprise, or mere
- nervousness, will probably never be known.
- </p>
- <p>
- The man shut the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; began the clerk.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the other end of the room,&rdquo; said the man commandingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam!&rdquo; the clerk called out respectfully, alarmed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the other end of the room,&rdquo; repeated the man.&rsquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The clerk perceived then that he had a revolver. Mr. Gloucester also
- perceived the man and his revolver, and Mr. Ilam came out of the safe
- rather like a jack out of a box.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0020" id="link2HCH0020"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XX&mdash;What Jetsam Wanted
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">H</span>ullo, Jos! said
- the intruder in a light, careless and rather scornful tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a stroke of genius on his part to address Mr. Ilam as &ldquo;Jos.&rdquo; That
- curt and familiar monosyllable, directed like a bullet at the formidable
- Ilam, the august President of the City, made such an impression upon both
- Mr. Gloucester and the L. and W. E. Bank-clerk that they took no part
- whatever in the immediately subsequent proceedings. They were astounded
- into silence. They trembled lest lightning should descend and utterly
- destroy the intruder.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Ilam himself was plainly at a loss. He was about to say to the
- intruder: &ldquo;You have no right to speak to me in such a way,&rdquo; and to order
- him out of the place, when the ridiculousness of protesting and the
- futility of ordering presented themselves vividly to his mind.
- </p>
- <p>
- Besides, there was the revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- So Mr. Ilam said merely, in a sort of pained surprise:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jetsam!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly,&rdquo; said Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the imperturbable fellow, with his grey hair and his shabby suit and
- his weary eyes, nonchalantly sat down on the edge of one of the
- counting-tables, his legs dangling, and his body leaning forward.
- </p>
- <p>
- The two employés were by this time convinced that the new-comer must be
- either the Shah of Persia in disguise, or else some extremely intimate and
- life-long friend of Ilam&rsquo;s, perhaps richer than Ilam himself. The
- bank-clerk knew by sight several chairmen of banks who were quite as badly
- dressed as the man on the table. Nevertheless, they did not carry
- revolvers. The revolver was certainly rather disquieting. However, they
- bent to their work, as though both eyes of the Recording Angel were upon
- them.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam closed the door of the safe.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The doorkeeper let you pass?&rdquo; he ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, not at all,&rdquo; replied Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He isn&rsquo;t at his post?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not just at the moment. I&rsquo;ve had him removed for a bit. He&rsquo;ll doubtless
- return as soon as I&rsquo;ve gone. I thought it would be simpler to have my own
- doorkeeper.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What did the Soudanese say, though?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which Soudanese?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The Soudanese who is outside the door.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, him? He didn&rsquo;t say anything.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is a serious breach of rules for you to be here, you know,&rdquo; said
- Ilam. &ldquo;And I must ask you to go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I really can&rsquo;t go just yet,&rdquo; said Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing,&rdquo; said Jetsam; &ldquo;except nursing this revolver. I&rsquo;m going to do
- something soon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Both the bank-clerk and Mr. Gloucester looked up. They even went so far as
- to glance at their employer for instructions; but their employer seemed to
- avoid the eyes of the underlings. Then Mr. Gloucester spoke in a low tone
- to the clerk, and the clerk replied, and some bags of gold were bundled
- into a coffer and the coffer locked and double-locked, and the bank-clerk
- murmured respectfully:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;These are the lot, sir. Shall I take them and go?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you help me?&rdquo; said the clerk to Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Mr. Gloucester and the clerk each picked up several coffers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night, sir,&rdquo; said the clerk.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop that!&rdquo; Jetsam exclaimed, turning his head slowly behind him to
- follow the movements of the pair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I beg pardon?&rdquo; murmured the clerk interrogatively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought I told you to go to the other end of the room,&rdquo; thundered
- Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Mr. Ilam&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the other end of the room, up there at that corner,&rdquo; Jetsam
- commanded sternly, adding, &ldquo;or I&rsquo;ll blow your idiotic brains out! Do you
- hear?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The clerk was in love with a girl who lived with her mother in a pretty
- little semi-detached villa at Weybridge. He thought of her; he thought of
- all the evenings he had spent with her; he conjured her up in all her
- different dresses; he heard her voice in all its tones&mdash;and all this
- in the fraction of a second. Then he put down the boxes and discreetly
- betook himself to the corner indicated by Mr. Jetsam, thinking obscurely
- and slangily that to be a bank-clerk was not all jam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you, too!&rdquo; ordered Jetsam, raising a finger to Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Gloucester was not in love with a charming young thing at Weybridge.
- He never had been in love; he had never lived with anyone except himself
- and a bull-terrier; but he was fond of playing chess at night at
- Simpson&rsquo;s; and he suddenly saw Simpson&rsquo;s and the chess-boards, and the
- foamy quart, and the bull-terrier lying under the table. Life and
- Simpson&rsquo;s seemed infinitely precious to him in those instants. And he put
- down his boxes and followed the bank-clerk to the suggested corner.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must really&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; he began protestingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Silence!&rdquo; exploded Mr. Jetsam; and there was silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- You must picture the large, low room, with its concrete lining and its
- half-dozen sixteen candle-power electric lights burning in the ceiling;
- and underneath these lights the four men&mdash;Ilam leaning against the
- gigantic safe which rose out of the floor in the middle of the apartment;
- Jetsam still nonchalantly swinging his legs as he sat on the table, facing
- him directly; and the democracy, somewhat scared and undecided, in a
- corner. Jetsam had his back to the door, and since the two piles of
- coffers were near the door they were out of his field of vision.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam winked at Ilam&mdash;deliberately winked at him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Simple as a, b, c, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; he pleasantly remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What?&rdquo; demanded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What I&rsquo;m doing now&mdash;holding up a strong room and its staff.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll suffer for this,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That remains to be seen,&rdquo; was the reply. &ldquo;I gravely doubt if I shall
- suffer for it. Up to now, what have I done? I have asked those gentlemen
- to go into a corner and not to indulge in desultory and disturbing
- conversation; and they have been good enough to humour my caprice; and I
- have winked at you, Jos. Is there anything illegal in winking at you? A
- few days ago you did more than wink at me&mdash;you nearly killed me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must go,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I have an appointment&mdash;I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He moved slightly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let me advise you not to move,&rdquo; Jetsam warned him, raising the revolver
- an inch or so. &ldquo;It mightn&rsquo;t be very good for your constitution. You must
- grasp, the fact that you are being held up. A worn-out operation, you will
- say&mdash;a trick lacking in novelty! Yes; but one, nevertheless, based on
- the fundamental human instincts, and therefore pretty certain to succeed.
- Indeed, I am surprised how simple it is. You might fancy from my easy
- bearing that I had devoted a lifetime to holding people up. Not in the
- least. I have never held anyone up before. And yet, how well I am
- succeeding! The thing works like a charm; merely because you can see in my
- eye that I mean to be obeyed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose you want money?&rdquo; said Ilam savagely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want impudence!&rdquo; retorted Jetsam. &ldquo;Apologize, if you please, my
- friend!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What have I said?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t what you said&mdash;it&rsquo;s your manner of saying it that was
- unworthy of you. You mean to apologize for wounding my feelings, don&rsquo;t
- you?&rdquo; Jetsam smiled. &ldquo;No, don&rsquo;t move; merely express your regret!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m sorry,&rdquo; muttered Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&mdash;you see!&rdquo; cried Jetsam to the men in the corner. &ldquo;Let that be
- a lesson to you. And remember, that only great men like Mr. Ilam have
- sufficient moral force, when they are in the wrong, to admit the fact.
- Well, Jos, I accept your apology in the cheerful and generous spirit in
- which you offer it; and I shall not deny that I do want money. That is
- part of what I came for.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How much do you want?&rdquo; asked Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;How much have you got handy?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Ilam intimated that there was a small sum in gold.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A thousand in gold?&rdquo; queried Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Probably more,&rdquo; Jetsam commented. &ldquo;But a thousand will suffice me. If I
- need a fresh supply I can always come again, can&rsquo;t I? And besides, all
- that is yours is mine, eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam maintained silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Eh?&rdquo; repeated Jetsam persuasively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; growled Ilam, and his eye caught the eye of the young bank-clerk by
- pure accident.
- </p>
- <p>
- At that moment the young bank-clerk, fired by martial valour, a thirst for
- glory, and the thought of what a splendid thrilling tale he would have to
- tell to the charming young thing at Weybridge, sprang furiously forward in
- the direction of Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop!&rdquo; said Jetsam, slipping off the table and facing the youth, revolver
- ready.
- </p>
- <p>
- The youth hesitated for the fifth of a second.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said the youth, and came on.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam fired almost point-blank at the hero&rsquo;s face, and the hero started
- back and sank to the ground. And there was a great hush in the room and a
- smell of powder and a little smoke. The youth lay still.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Get up!&rdquo; said Jetsam fiercely. &ldquo;Get up, or I&rsquo;ll kick you up!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And, strange to relate, the youth discovered the whereabouts of his limbs
- and got up, and returned to the corner.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A singular example of what imagination will do!&rdquo; commented Jetsam. &ldquo;The
- first chamber of this revolver was loaded with blank. I expected to have
- to use it for theatrical effect, to begin with, and I was not wrong. Let
- me add that the other five chambers are most carefully loaded, and that I
- once earned my living in a music-hall by shooting the pips out of cards
- with this revolver.&rdquo; He then addressed Mr. Gloucester. &ldquo;Now, old man,&rdquo; he
- said, &ldquo;how much gold is there in one of those boxes?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Two thousand five hundred!&rdquo; answered Mr. Gloucester politely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And it weighs?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;About sixty pounds.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t worth while breaking into it,&rdquo; said Jetsam smoothly, looking at
- Ilam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll take the lot. In our final settlement it shall be brought into
- account.&rdquo; His glance shifted to Gloucester. &ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;for
- this information so courteously given.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps you are satisfied now!&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you go? You think you won&rsquo;t get caught, but you will.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Surely, you won&rsquo;t give me away, Jos!&rdquo; protested Jetsam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m convinced
- you won&rsquo;t; because you see, if you begin to talk about me I should
- probably begin to talk about you, and think how dreadful that would be.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Keep it up! Keep it up!&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hence,&rdquo; Jetsam proceeded, ignoring the interruption, &ldquo;I shall confidently
- rely on you to see that these excellent gentlemen here in the corner keep
- their elegant mouths shut. I shall rely on you for that. You understand,
- gentlemen, Mr. Ilam wishes you not to prattle, even in the privacy of your
- own homes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you going?&rdquo; said Ilam doggedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Jetsam; &ldquo;and so are you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you. The money is a mere incidental. What I came for was your
- distinguished self.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m not coming with you. I haven&rsquo;t the slightest intention of coming with
- you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You may not have much intention, but you are coming,&rdquo; said the suave
- Jetsam. &ldquo;Besides, who is going to carry this box outside for me? I can&rsquo;t
- carry the box and a revolver, too. Obviously Providence has designated
- precisely you to carry this box. Come.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not I!&rdquo; Ilam defied him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come!&rdquo; repeated Jetsam. &ldquo;I have a vehicle awaiting outside, and we shall
- see what we shall see.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No!&rdquo; insisted Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam advanced two paces.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen!&rdquo; said he angrily and yet calmly. &ldquo;If you don&rsquo;t come, I&rsquo;ll shoot
- you where you stand. You ought to be able to perceive that I mean what I
- say.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam&rsquo;s reply was a mute surrender. He dropped his eyes, and the next
- moment the two underlings had the spectacle of the corpulent Mr. Ilam
- lifting a sixty-pound weight and struggling with it to the door, followed
- by the revolver and Mr. Jetsam behind the revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop in the doorway a second,&rdquo; ordered Jetsam. He addressed the clerks
- again. &ldquo;If I were you, I shouldn&rsquo;t hurry out of here. You might catch
- cold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then they saw Ilam disappear, the box in his arms, and Mr. Jetsam
- follow him. Mr. Jetsam closed the door. The clerks were alone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, of all the&mdash;&mdash;!&rdquo; exclaimed the younger man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wonder how soon it will be safe for us to leave!&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0021" id="link2HCH0021"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXI&mdash;Interrupting a Concert
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hat evening the
- nightly concert of the &ldquo;Carpentaria Band&rdquo; was held in the great court of
- the Exposition Palace, partly because the weather was threatening, and
- partly because the Y.M.C.A. wished it so. The stalwart members of the
- Y.M.C.A. were prominent and joyous, and they pervaded the City to the
- number of some fifty thousand. They were nearly all young, and they were
- all, without exception, enthusiastic. They had taken possession of
- practically the whole of the tables on the three tiers of balconies that
- surrounded the court, and there was also a considerable sprinkling of them
- on the ground floor. They liked Carpentaria; they liked his music; they
- liked his way of conducting. They admired him when he split the drums of
- their ears, and they equally admired him when he wooed those organs with a
- hint of sound that was something less than a whisper. They violently
- cheered his marches, and with the same violence they cheered his serenades
- and his cradlesongs.
- </p>
- <p>
- Consequently Carpentaria was content. He was more than content&mdash;he
- glowed with pleasure. He was the centre of the vast illuminated court,
- with its ornate architecture, and its wonderful roof, and its serried rows
- of lights. All eyes were centred on him. He swayed not only his band, but
- the multitude, by a single movement of the slim baton&mdash;that magic bit
- of ivory which he held in his hand. He said to himself that he had never
- had a better, a more appreciative and enthusiastic audience in the whole
- of his glorious career. The result was, that-he conducted in his most
- variegated and polychromatic manner. He did things with his wand that no
- conductor had ever done with a wand before; he performed gyrations,
- contortions, and acrobatics beyond all his previous exploits. In a word,
- he surpassed himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- He was in the very act of surpassing himself, in his renowned &ldquo;Cockney
- Serenade,&rdquo; when he observed, out of the tail of his eye, a middle-aged
- man, who was forcing his way at all costs across the floor of the hall
- towards the bandstand.
- </p>
- <p>
- When seven thousand people are packed on chairs on a single floor, it is
- not the quietest task in the world to penetrate through them. And the
- middle-aged man was not doing it quietly, in fact, he was making decidedly
- more noise than the &ldquo;Cockney Serenade,&rdquo; and attracting quite as much
- attention.
- </p>
- <p>
- A number of ardently musical young men on the grand balcony leaned over
- the wrought-iron parapet and advised the middle-aged man to lie down and
- die, in a manner unmistakably ferocious. (It is extraordinary how
- ferocious a youth can be on mere lemonade.) But the middle-aged man
- continued his course, and he arrived at the bandstand, despite official
- and unofficial protests, simultaneously with the conclusion of the
- serenade.
- </p>
- <p>
- Gales of applause swept about the court, and Carpentaria bowed, and bowed
- again&mdash;bowed innumerably, all the time regarding the middle-aged man
- with angry and suppressed curiosity. The middle-aged man had lifted up a
- hand and pulled the triangle-player by the belt of his magnificent
- uniform, and the triangle-player had bent down to speak to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it? What is it?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria, his nerves on edge.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A person insists on speaking to you, sir,&rdquo; replied the triangle-player.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He cannot,&rdquo; snapped Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He says he shall,&rdquo; said the triangle-player.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Carpentaria began an anathema, and then stopped. He
- went to the rail of the bandstand and leaned over to the middle-aged man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At your age,&rdquo; he said grimly, &ldquo;you ought to know better than to interrupt
- my concerts in this way. Who are you? What do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My name is Gloucester, sir,&rdquo; was the answer. &ldquo;Doubtless you recollect.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do nothing of the kind,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m in charge of the&mdash;er&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Here Gloucester stood up on
- tiptoe in an endeavour to whisper directly into Carpentaria&rsquo;s ear&mdash;&ldquo;the
- strong-rooms.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; asked Carpentaria, &ldquo;what do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Been robbed, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great Heavens, man!&rdquo; Carpentaria exploded. &ldquo;You come to interrupt my
- concert because the strong-rooms have been robbed!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Two thousand five hundred pounds, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care if it&rsquo;s two thousand times two thousand five hundred pounds.
- Go away! Go and worry Mr. Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just it, sir. Mr. Ilam has been taken, too.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- By this time the multitudinous eyes of the audience were fixed on
- Carpentaria and his interlocutor, and everybody was sapiently saying to
- everybody else that something extraordinary must have occurred.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean&mdash;Mr. Ilam been taken?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s been carried off&mdash;he carried the money off&mdash;he was forced
- to, sir. Revolver, sir. Can&rsquo;t you come, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can I come? Ye gods! Man, do you know what a concert is? Can I come? Of
- course I can&rsquo;t come!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam may be dead, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall have leisure to bury him after the concert,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- &ldquo;Go away. Go and consult Lapping, head of the police department. Or,
- rather, don&rsquo;t. You&rsquo;ll upset the audience making your way out. Sit down.
- Sit right down there, and don&rsquo;t move. We&rsquo;re going to play my new
- arrangement of the &lsquo;Glory Song&rsquo; with variations. You&rsquo;ll see it will bring
- the house down. It will be something you&rsquo;ll remember as long as you live.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, sir,&rdquo; pleaded Mr. Gloucester pathetically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Sit down&mdash;and listen,&rdquo; Carpentaria repeated sternly.
- </p>
- <p>
- He returned to the centre of his men. He rapped the magic wand on his
- desk, and the next moment the band had burst deliriously into the now
- famous orchestral arrangement of the &ldquo;Glory Song.&rdquo; The audience was
- thrilled by the waves of sound that emanated from the instruments,
- especially when the variations began. So the entertainment continued,
- while Mr. Gloucester, consuming his middle-aged impatience as best he
- could, ruminated upon the strange caprices of employers. He had been an
- employé all his life; he had never commanded; and his conclusion, at the
- age of fifty odd, was to the effect that the nature of employers is
- incomprehensible, and that you never know what they will do next.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me, sir.&rdquo; He timidly touched Carpentaria when the concert was
- over.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, it appeared, in the rush and fever of the music, had
- forgotten all about him, and was on the point of leaving the court
- deafened by applause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, yes!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;That thief. Two thousand five hundred
- pounds. And you say that Mr. Ilam has been carried off. Tell me all about
- that. Come this way. Come into the street&mdash;it is always the most
- private place.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And in the Central Way, near the fountain, upon which coloured lights were
- reflected from below, Mr. Gloucester related in detail to Carpentaria the
- episode of the theft.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You say it was a man dressed in blue, with grey hair?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And there were three of you, including Mr. Ilam, and you could not manage
- to disarm him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It might have meant death for the first of us, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Carpentaria absently, &ldquo;what if it did?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Gloucester grunted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You said I was to consult Mr. Lapping, sir. Shall we go there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;not yet. I will look into it myself first. The
- principal mystery is that of the doorkeeper. What is his name?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wiggins.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And he has disappeared?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He was not there when I left, sir. And he could not have been there when
- the thief entered.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because he would not have allowed the thief to enter, sir. He has strict
- orders.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Humph! Come along.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They hastened up the Central Way, in a northerly direction. The rain had
- kept off, and the illuminations, which were superb, evidently met with the
- ecstatic approval of the Y.M.C.A. adherents, who paraded to and fro, and
- filled the flying cars, with the hectic enjoyment of people who feel that
- closing time is near. The progress made by Carpentaria and his companion
- was therefore not of the quickest.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s more than an hour since,&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester, daring to show his.
- discontent.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Since the crime occurred.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The fellow must have calculated on my concert,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria. &ldquo;He
- probably knew that everybody in this City runs to me when the slightest
- thing goes wrong.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The slightest thing!&rdquo; repeated Mr. Gloucester bitterly&mdash;but not
- aloud, only in his secret soul.
- </p>
- <p>
- They hurried round by the side of the Storytellers&rsquo; Hall, and so to the
- passage at the back. And standing at the entrance to the vaults,
- underneath a solitary jet of electric light, was Wiggins, the doorkeeper
- of the heart of the City. He was a man aged about thirty-five, six feet
- two high, and not quite so broad.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you&rsquo;re here!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where have you been since&mdash;since Mr. Ilam arrived here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did what you told me, sir,&rdquo; said Wiggins, with an air of independence.
- Wiggins was not a Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What was that?&rdquo; demanded Carpentaria, mystified.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, your note, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What note?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Wiggins pulled a crumpled paper from his pocket and handed it to
- Carpentaria, who read:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come to me in my office at once. If I am not there, wait for me. The
- bearer will take your duties meanwhile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;C. Carpentaria.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;And who brought this?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A Soudanese, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which Soudanese?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. They&rsquo;re all alike to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And it didn&rsquo;t occur to you that this note was forged?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir. Why should it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It didn&rsquo;t occur to you,&rdquo; Carpentaria continued, &ldquo;that I was conducting my
- concert, and that therefore I couldn&rsquo;t possibly be in my office?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t know anything about any concert, sir. I&rsquo;m doorkeeper here&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not know about my concert!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria. Then he calmed himself.
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam came before the Soudanese brought the note to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir, but only a few seconds before. He had but just gone in when the
- Soudanese came. I was talking to the driver of the motor-car as was
- waiting, sir, here in front of the door.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh. So there was a motor-car?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir. It was one of the City cars. No. 28, sir. To take the money
- away, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good. Who was the driver? Do you know his name?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think his name&rsquo;s Pratt, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you left immediately and went to my office and waited for me, and
- then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I got tired of waiting and I came back here, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Mr. Gloucester, the garage is indicated as our
- next resort.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The immense garage of the City was close to the northern entrance gates.
- And it, too, was guarded by a doorkeeper, hidden in a little box near the
- double-wooden doors.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I want to know if Car No. 28 has come in,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; was the reply. &ldquo;Came in twenty minutes ago.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you see it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said the doorkeeper.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who was driving it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t notice, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Show us the car, if you please.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They passed into the desert expanse of the garage, where a few men were
- cleaning cars. Car No. 28 was in its place. In shape it was rather like a
- police-van, but smaller. Carpentaria noticed that its wheels were very
- dirty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Open it,&rdquo; said he.
- </p>
- <p>
- The key was found, and the interior of the car exposed to the light of a
- lantern. And at the extremity of the car could be seen a vague mass, a
- collection of limbs and clothes on the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Get in,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;and see what that is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The next moment two men were dragged out of the car in a state of stupor.
- One was the Soudanese entitled &ldquo;Spats,&rdquo; who had become Ilam&rsquo;s bodyguard,
- and the other wore the uniform of an automobile driver.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is this?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It looks precious like Pratt, the man as usually drives this car, sir,&rdquo;
- answered the doorkeeper.
- </p>
- <p>
- All the attendants in the place had now gathered round.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0022" id="link2HCH0022"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXII&mdash;Carpentaria as Detective
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">Y</span>ou will now relate
- to me, as accurately as you can,&rdquo; said Carpentaria somewhat peremptorily
- to Pratt the chauffeur, &ldquo;exactly what were the circumstances which led to
- your ceasing to be master of your car.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria had had Pratt and the Soudanese carried to the strong-room,
- the heart of the City, where a chemist and Dr. Rivers had united to treat
- them for the effects of the narcotic which had evidently, by some means,
- been administered to them. Rivers repeated that, so far as he could judge,
- the narcotic employed was chloral hydrate, a drug more powerful than
- morphine, more effective in its action on the heart, and less annoying to
- other functional parts of the body. When Rivers and the chemist had
- finished their ministrations, Carpentaria had politely intimated to them
- that he did not absolutely insist on their remaining&mdash;a piece of
- information which surprised the doctor, who, having been let into one of
- his director&rsquo;s secrets, expected, with the confidence of youth, to be let
- into all of them. The three men, two white and one Ethiop, were thus alone
- together in the chamber.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, sir,&rdquo; said Pratt, who was a fair man, talkative, with, just at
- present, a terrific sense of his own importance as the central hero of a
- mysterious drama. &ldquo;It was like this: After I&rsquo;d had the drink&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What drink?&rdquo; demanded Carpentaria sharply. &ldquo;The drink the other driver
- offered to me, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What other driver?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There came up another driver, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the City uniform?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who was he? What was his name?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No idea, sir. I seemed to remember his face, like, but I couldn&rsquo;t
- recollect his name. I asked him his name, and he said: &lsquo;Don&rsquo;t try to be
- funny, Pratt; you&rsquo;ve had a drop too much.&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And had you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not I, sir&mdash;of course I hadn&rsquo;t. I&rsquo;d made two journeys to the Bank
- with full loads, and the next one was to be the last, and&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you hadn&rsquo;t had anything to drink at all?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing to speak of, sir. A glass of port at Short&rsquo;s as I was coming back
- the first time, and a pint of beer&mdash;or it might have been a pint and
- a half&mdash;at the Redcliffe as I was coming back the second time.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was absolutely all?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir, except a drop of whisky which was left in my flask.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But how came the other driver to be in a position to offer you drink? Was
- he carrying casks and other things about with him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir, only a flask. Every chauffeur has a flask. Necessary, sir. Cold
- work, sir. And you&rsquo;ll recollect it hasn&rsquo;t been exactly sultry to-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What did he say? Are you in the habit of accepting drinks from men whose
- names you can&rsquo;t call to mind?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He was in the profession, sir, and in the uniform; besides, he said he&rsquo;d
- got a new cordial, fresh from Madeira, that would keep anyone warm, even
- in the depth of winter, for at least two hours.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But this isn&rsquo;t the depth of winter.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir; but, as the cordial was handy, I thought I might as well try
- it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And when you had tried it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I felt rather jolly, sir. I never felt better in my life, and thinks I to
- myself: &lsquo;I&rsquo;d better write down the name and address of this cordial before
- I forget it.&rsquo; So I says: &lsquo;What&rsquo;s-your-name,&rsquo; I says, meaning the other
- driver, &lsquo;what&rsquo;s the name and address of this cordial, before I forget it?&rsquo;
- And I was just taking a pencil out of my pocket to write it down when I
- felt a bit less jolly and the pencil wouldn&rsquo;t stop in my hand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You were on your driving seat?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And that is all you remember?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir. Except that once, dreamy like, I thought I was in prison for
- exceeding the legal limit, and that all the lights in the prison were
- turned out, and an earthquake was going on.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The other driver stood in the road by the car, eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How was he dressed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve told you, sir. This uniform. Blue and white cap, same as this, and
- long overcoat.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You couldn&rsquo;t see what he wore underneath the overcoat?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you?&rdquo; Carpentaria turned swiftly on the Soudanese. &ldquo;Did you drink
- too?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Spats smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And after you had drunk?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Spats shook his head, still smiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You remember nothing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He means he doesn&rsquo;t remember anything,&rdquo; Pratt explained.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You mean you remember nothing?&rdquo; Carpentaria questioned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did you drink?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese looked at Pratt, smiling.. &ldquo;Because Pratt drank?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have been waiting on Mr. Ilam lately, haven&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When he came to the outer door there, and entered in here, did he tell
- you to wait outside?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can both go,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Come to me at eight o&rsquo;clock
- to-morrow, Pratt, in case I should want you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Pratt. &ldquo;Yes, sah,&rdquo; said the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, not you,&rdquo; Carpentaria explained.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One moment,&rdquo; said Carpentaria to the Ethiopian. &ldquo;Did Mr. Ilam or any
- other person give you a note to hand to the doorkeeper outside there?&rdquo; The
- Soudanese shook his fierce and yet amiable head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; cried Pratt, addressing him in surprise, &ldquo;didn&rsquo;t you come up and
- give a note to Wiggins and then go away again, and return a second time?&rdquo;
- The Soudanese shook his head once more.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then there must have been two of &rsquo;em, sir,&rdquo; said Pratt to
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;This chap&rsquo;s honest enough.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Me have brother,&rdquo; said the Soudanese, &ldquo;same me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is your brother?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese shook his head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the native village?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go and fetch him,&rdquo; ordered Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the next moment he was alone in the great chamber, and he felt tempted
- simply to go to the regular police, of whom a few were constantly employed
- by the City, and tell them what had happened, and leave the whole affair
- entirely in their hands. And then the strange attraction which always
- emanates from a mystery appealed to him so strongly that he determined to
- probe a little further into the peculiar matter of Ilam&rsquo;s disappearance,
- without the aid of professional detectives. He didn&rsquo;t imagine for an
- instant that Ilam was dead. He was capable of believing that Ilam had
- disappeared willingly; and yet such a theory, having regard to the
- recitals of Mr. Gloucester and of the bank-clerk (by this time doubtless
- on his way to Weybridge, and the young thing) was to say the least
- exceedingly improbable.
- </p>
- <p>
- He unlocked the door and went outside. Wiggins was at his post, actuated
- by the exaggerated alertness which characterizes one who has been caught
- napping.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anything happened, Wiggins?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir. Nothing whatever.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall return soon. If the Soudanese comes, keep him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He passed into the Central Way, which was almost deserted. The last
- visitor, the very last stalwart of the Y.M.C.A., had departed, and the
- sole signs of life in the great thoroughfare were a lamplighter
- extinguishing the gas-lamps which were provided in case of a sudden
- failure of electricity, and a road-sweeper in charge of a complicated
- machine with two horses. The clock in the tower of the Exposition Palace
- showed half an hour after closing time. The moon was peeping over the
- eastern roofs.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria went to the garage, and, not without difficulty, for it was
- shut up, made his way into the interior and procured some light. He wished
- to make a thorough examination of the car which had been employed as the
- instrument of the plot. He had it drawn out to the centre of the garage,
- under the full flare of an electric chandelier. A sleepy attendant hovered
- in the background.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Get a ladder and see if there&rsquo;s anything on the roof of the van&mdash;any
- tyres or boxes or anything,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&rsquo;s only this, sir,&rdquo; replied the attendant when he had climbed up,
- and he produced a cap and overcoat of the City uniform.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;m&mdash;&mdash;!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria, and a notion struck him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doorkeeper gone to bed?&rdquo; he queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wake him and tell him I want him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- While waiting for the doorkeeper, Carpentaria scrutinized attentively the
- wheels of the vehicle; those wheels, even on his first visit, had put an
- idea into his head. Then the doorkeeper arrived, not quite as spruce and
- perfect as a doorkeeper ought to be.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one can enter this garage except under your observation?&rdquo; Carpentaria
- asked him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one,&rdquo; said the doorkeeper, positively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you don&rsquo;t keep such a careful eye on the people who go out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally not, sir. They can&rsquo;t go out till they&rsquo;ve been in, and if
- they&rsquo;ve been in they&rsquo;re all right.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Just so. Now try to remember. Soon after this car returned to the garage
- to-night, did any one leave the garage who was unfamiliar to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t remember, sir. You see, sir&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly. I see. I am not blaming you. Your theory, though defective, is a
- natural one. Now, do you remember, for instance, a man in a blue suit,
- with grey hair, going out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Upon my soul, I believe I do, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are certain?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, no, sir. I&rsquo;m not certain. But I have a sort of a hazy idea&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look at these wheels,&rdquo; Carpentaria cut him short. &ldquo;That&rsquo;s clayey mud,
- isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where could the car have been to get that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&rsquo;s that passage down under the embankment, sir, that way as leads to
- the river.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doorkeeper,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;you are brilliant. I also have thought of
- that spot, where just such clay exists. But why should the car go down
- there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; said the doorkeeper. &ldquo;There you beat me, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then perhaps you are not so brilliant after all,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And having minutely examined the interior of the car, with no result, he
- left the garage, and returned to the strong room.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese was awaiting him at the door, and there were evident signs
- of a quarrelsome temper on the part of Wiggins. Wiggins had not forgotten
- the colour of the messenger who had handed him the forged note.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked of the Soudanese. &ldquo;Where&rsquo;s your brother?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The man shook his head, but not smilingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Has he gone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one knows at the village where he&rsquo;s gone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Spats shook his head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wiggins,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Is this the man who brought you the note?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Wiggins hesitated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir,&rdquo; he said at length&rsquo;, resentfully. &ldquo;But they&rsquo;re all alike, them
- folk are.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;H&rsquo;m!&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria. &ldquo;Since there is nothing to guard here, you
- may as well go, Wiggins. You, too, Spats.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Two minutes later he was crossing the Oriental Gardens in the direction of
- the Thames. And when he had travelled two hundred yards or so he heard
- footsteps behind him, light, rapid, irregular. He turned quickly, his hand
- on the revolver in his pocket, to face his pursuer. His pursuer, however,
- was Pauline Dartmouth and no other. So he left the revolver where it was.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0023" id="link2HCH0023"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIII&mdash;The Talk in the Garden
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">S</span>he was so out of
- breath that at first it seemed as if she could not speak. He could hear
- her hurried breathing, almost like the catch of a sob, and in the
- moonlight he could see fairly clearly her flushed face, under the hat, and
- her tall, rather imperious figure. But he could not make out the
- expression of her eyes. Nevertheless, as he peered curiously into them,
- the thought suddenly struck him: &ldquo;She is angry with me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria, I want to have a word with you,&rdquo; she said at length,
- stiffly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he answered in his courtly and elaborate manner,
- &ldquo;I shall be delighted. What can I do for you? I regret very much that you
- should have had to run after me like this.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been following you up for quite a long time,&rdquo; she remarked, in a
- more friendly tone. It appeared as if his attitude and greeting had made
- some impression on her, in spite of herself. &ldquo;First I went to your office.
- Then to the strong-rooms, then to the garage, then to the strong-rooms
- again, and now I&rsquo;m here. I saw you crossing the gardens. Nobody seemed to
- be inclined to give me any information about you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No?&rdquo; he murmured, in a cautious interrogative. &ldquo;Now tell me; how can I be
- of service to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She scanned his features. They were alone together in the midst of the
- immense gardens. A hundred yards away was the bandstand, the scene of the
- greatest triumphs of his life. And yet in that moment his triumphs seemed
- nothing to him as he stood under her gaze. Her personality affected him
- powerfully. He said to himself that no woman had ever looked at him like
- that. There was no admiration in her glance, no prejudice either for or
- against him; nothing but a candid and judicial inquiry. &ldquo;I hope I shall
- come well out of this scrutiny,&rdquo; his thoughts ran. And the masculine
- desire formed obscurely in his breast to make this girl think favourably
- of him, to make her admire him, love him, worship him. He felt that to see
- love in these calm, courageous, independent eyes of hers would be a
- recompense and a reward for all he had suffered in the forty years of his
- existence. In a word she piqued him. He little knew that up to that very
- evening she had worshipped him afar off as women do worship their heroes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nobody ill, I hope,&rdquo; he ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- She ignored the observation, and said:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria, what have you done with Cousin Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What?&rdquo; he cried, amazed both by the question, and by the cold firmness
- with which it was put.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think you heard what I said,&rdquo; she replied. &ldquo;What have you done with
- Cousin Ilam? Where is he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth, do you imagine for one instant that I know where Mr. Ilam
- is? I should only like to know where he is. I&rsquo;m looking for him now. But I
- was not aware that the fact of his disappearance was known. Indeed, I
- meant it to be kept as secret as possible. I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no,&rdquo; she interrupted him. &ldquo;I was hoping you would be frank. I thought
- you had an honest face, Mr. Carpentaria, and it is because of that that I
- have come&mdash;like this. I have just left your poor sister. She is in
- despair. She has told me all.&rdquo; Carpentaria did not reply immediately. At
- last he repeated:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Told you all? All what? You have soon become fast friends, you and
- Juliette.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is possible,&rdquo; said Pauline drily. &ldquo;I have met your sister three times,
- but in seasons of distress we women are obliged to cling to each other. As
- for Miss D&rsquo;Avray and me, we live next door to each other. What more
- natural than that I should call on her this evening? And finding her in a
- condition of&mdash;shall I say?&mdash;despair, what more natural than that
- I should ask her what was the matter, and what more natural, seeing that
- she has no women friends here, and is of a nature that demands sympathy,
- than that on the spur of the moment she should confide in me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I assure you, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;that I was entirely
- unaware of my sister&rsquo;s despair&mdash;as you call it. What precisely has
- she confided to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, about her engagement to Cousin Ilam, and your opposition.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me, there has been no engagement,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me,&rdquo; said Pauline, &ldquo;there has been an engagement, because my
- cousin and your half-sister made it. Is there anybody better qualified
- than them to make an engagement?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She lifted her chin.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Let us assume that there was an engagement.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They were to be married to-morrow,&rdquo; remarked Pauline calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To-morrow!&rdquo; Carpentaria exclaimed, aghast. &ldquo;Secretly?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you pretend to be surprised? As for the secrecy, your opposition
- has forced them to secrecy, because your sister is afraid of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And now that your cousin has disappeared, of course, they can&rsquo;t be
- married to-morrow,&rdquo; mused Carpentaria. &ldquo;Hence this woe.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why have you taken such extreme measures, such cruel measures, such
- wicked measures?&rdquo; asked Pauline, full of indignation. &ldquo;I can understand
- well enough that you, as a great artist, cannot be expected to behave like
- other people; I can understand you doing mad things, original things. I
- can understand you defying the law, and taking the most serious risks on
- yourself. But I can&rsquo;t understand you being so cruel to your sister, and so
- utterly beside yourself, as to carry off Mr. Ilam by force.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Her cheeks had flushed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By force?&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he laughed loudly, violently, magnificently, after his manner. His
- laugh resounded through the deserted gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette thinks I have removed her betrothed by force?&rdquo; he queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally she does!&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;The most extraordinary rumours are
- about. It is even said that you have had a quarrel and killed him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tut-tut!&rdquo; said Carpentaria, and after clearing his throat he proceeded:
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth, will you kindly fix your eyes on mine. I tell you I have
- had nothing whatever to do with your cousin&rsquo;s disappearance, and that I
- was entirely unaware of his intention to marry Juliette to-morrow.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She gazed at him doubtfully.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;On your honour?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said proudly, &ldquo;not on my honour. When I talk to a person as I am
- talking to you, if I say a thing is so, it is so. I decline to back my
- assertions with my honour.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I believe you,&rdquo; she whispered softly, and her eyes fell.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thanks!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Will you shake hands?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And she gave him her hand loyally. And he thought it was a very slim and
- thrilling hand to shake.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you know,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;it was exceedingly naughty of you to go and
- credit me with being such a monster.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she replied, &ldquo;perhaps I never did really believe it.&rdquo; She smiled
- at him courageously. &ldquo;But I was angry with you for objecting to the match.
- I suppose you won&rsquo;t deny that you have objected to the match.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I shan&rsquo;t deny that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And your reasons?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I could not disclose them to Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s cousin,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;And
- perhaps they are not as strong as they were. I am beginning to think that
- just as you accused me wrongly, so I have accused your cousin wrongly. But
- I can assure you I had better reason than you. Ah, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he
- added, &ldquo;it may well occur that you will infinitely regret ever having come
- into the City.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never!&rdquo; she said positively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s very polite,&rdquo; he commented.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are getting away from the point,&rdquo; she remarked in a new tone. &ldquo;I have
- left your sister in a pitiable state. If you have not had anything to do
- with the disappearance of Cousin Ilam, who has?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He may have disappeared voluntarily,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Impossible!&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think so too.&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed. &ldquo;At first I was capable of believing
- that he had played an enormous comedy in order to disappear in the most
- effective manner. But really the comedy grows too enormous to be any
- longer a comedy. It may be a tragedy by this time.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And whom do you suspect?&rdquo; queried Pauline impatiently.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I were you,&rdquo; was Carpentaria&rsquo;s strange response, &ldquo;I should ask your
- sister, Miss Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria, what on earth do you mean?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I mean that your sister probably knows something of the affair. Where is
- she at the present moment?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is watching Mrs. Ilam, in place of the nurse.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I gravely doubt it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria with firmness.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But I have seen her there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is conceivable,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;But I gravely doubt if she is
- still there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall be compelled to think that after all you are a little mad,&rdquo;
- Pauline observed coldly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are all more or less mad,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Otherwise your sister,
- for instance, would not hold long conversations with a highly suspicious
- character every night from the window of her room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline, in the light of her knowledge of what had taken place in and
- about the Ilam bungalow on the first night of her residence there, could
- scarcely affect not to understand, at any rate partially, Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- allusion.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t quite&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; she began, lamely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you mean to say,&rdquo; he interrupted her at once, &ldquo;do you mean to say,
- dear lady, that you are entirely unaware of the surreptitious visits of a
- certain mysterious person to Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s house?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am not entirely unaware of them,&rdquo; she said frankly! &ldquo;I saw the man
- myself one night. I spoke to him. My sister also&mdash;also spoke to him.
- But I have not seen nor heard of him since. Nor has Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of that you are sure?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I think I may say I am sure.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I must undeceive you,&rdquo; Carpentaria spoke firmly. &ldquo;I also have
- acquired a certain curiosity as to that strange individual. And to satisfy
- my curiosity I have kept a considerable number of vigils. And I am in a
- position to state that, not only on the first night of your arrival, but
- every night your sister has had speech with that person from the window of
- her room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is he? What can he want?&rdquo; demanded Pauline, nervously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is a question that I meant to put to you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria in
- reply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As for me, I know nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When you spoke to him, as you admit you did, did he not ask you to do
- something?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, and I refused his request.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But your sister? What did she do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh! Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; murmured Pauline, &ldquo;can I trust you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know that you can.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She related to him all the details of the episode of the black box.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And after that,&rdquo; Carpentaria commented, &ldquo;your sister continues to have
- stolen interviews with this man.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t help thinking you are mistaken. Rosie would never keep such a
- secret from me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It will be very easy to throw some light on the matter,&rdquo; said
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;Let us go to your house and see whether Miss Rosie is in
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s room as you imagine her to be, and as I imagine her not to be.
- I may tell you quite openly my opinion that Miss Rosie has had something
- to do with the disappearance of Mr. Ilam. I am convinced, indeed I know,
- that he has been spirited away, together with a trifling amount of money,
- by our mysterious visitor, and since our mysterious visitor talks to Miss
- Rosie each night, she on her balcony and he beneath it&mdash;well, I leave
- the inference to yourself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline started back.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said, in a low voice, &ldquo;let us go and see.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And they went, walking side by side in silence across the gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will wait here,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when they arrived at the side-door
- of the Ilam bungalow. &ldquo;You can ascertain whether anything unusual has
- occurred in the house, and particularly if your sister is still at her
- post, and then you will be kind enough to come back and report to me. I
- will watch here.&rdquo; Without replying Pauline passed into the house. In a few
- minutes she returned. Tears stood in her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well?&rdquo; queried Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie is not in the house,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam is alone. Happily
- she is asleep. Everything is quiet. But Rosie&mdash;&mdash;!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A sob escaped her.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_PART3" id="link2H_PART3"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- PART III&mdash;JETSAM
- </h2>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0024" id="link2HCH0024"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIV&mdash;The Boat
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria and
- Pauline continued to stand motionless outside the house, both of them
- hesitant, recoiling before the circumstances which faced them. The night
- remained clear, almost brilliant.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The entire situation is changed,&rdquo; said Carpentaria at length. &ldquo;A new
- factor has entered into it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What factor?&rdquo; Pauline demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, your sister, of course!&rdquo; he replied, with a slight smile that
- disclosed momentarily the quizzical male person in him. &ldquo;Consider how it
- complicates the affair. If I had to deal only with the mysterious
- individual with grey hair and a blue suit&mdash;perhaps you do not know
- that he calls himself Jetsam?&mdash;I could go to work in a simple
- masculine fashion, and in the end one of us would suffer, probably he. But
- with a woman in the case&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How can you be sure,&rdquo; Pauline interrupted him, &ldquo;that Rosie is in the
- case?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can you doubt it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot understand why she should behave so!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps she knew him before,&rdquo; Carpentaria hazarded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never,&rdquo; said Pauline positively&mdash;&ldquo;never.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then he has certainly been able to exercise a most remarkable influence
- over her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not a hypnotic influence, or anything of that kind?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps an influence of quite another kind&mdash;quite another kind.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Rosie is scarcely half his age.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do these things depend on age?&rdquo; cried Carpentaria. &ldquo;They depend on
- glances, sympathies, and trifles even more subtle than sympathies.
- Besides, she is more than half his age.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; murmured Pauline, with a sudden wistful appeal in her voice, &ldquo;I
- shall trust you to help me, Mr. Carpentaria. Rosie may be in danger; she
- may be doing something very foolish, mixing herself up like this in the
- kidnapping of poor Cousin Ilam. What is to be done?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is decidedly doing something very foolish,&rdquo; said Carpentaria,
- &ldquo;foolish, that is, from a mere ordinary common-sense point of view. But I
- don&rsquo;t think she is in any danger. I don&rsquo;t think that either she or you are
- the sort of woman that gets into danger without very good cause. As to
- what is to be done, I have an idea. Mrs. Ilam will be all right alone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; for a few hours, at any rate.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then will you come with me to the river? I have some investigations to
- make.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- And as they crossed the Oriental Gardens for the second time that night,
- he told her what he knew about the use, or rather the abuse, of the
- automobile.
- </p>
- <p>
- The marble parapet of the immense terrace of the gardens stood a dozen
- feet above the level of high tide. The terrace was continuous from end to
- end, but in several places it formed a viaduct over paths that ran from
- the gardens at a steep slope down to the bed of the river. It was one of
- these paths, a specially clayey one, at the point where it ran under the
- terrace, that Carpentaria suspected the automobile of having taken.
- Assuming his suspicion to be correct, the automobile could only have
- descended to the Thames, and then, if the tide gave room, turned round and
- returned; or, if the tide did not give room, backed out without turning.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Its sole purpose,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, as they talked the matter over,
- &ldquo;could have been to pass something to a boat. Don&rsquo;t you think so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Pauline agreed, and then she added, &ldquo;unless they merely wanted to
- throw something into the river.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; He cried; &ldquo;a corpse?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; she said calmly. &ldquo;I was thinking of the two thousand five hundred
- pounds in gold that you told me had been stolen.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He paused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is really very clever of you,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;But why should they throw
- it into the river.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s high tide, or rather it was, about an hour and a
- half ago. They might have sunk the money, intending to recover it at their
- leisure during the night when the tide sank.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I must repeat,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;this is really very clever of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They were already beginning to descend the broadest of the three paths
- which led from the level of the gardens to the level of the river, and the
- wheelmarks of an automobile were clearly visible thereon, when Carpentaria
- halted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose,&rdquo; he whispered, &ldquo;they are there now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who? Mr. Jetsam and my sister?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, not your sister. Mr. Jetsam and his&mdash;other accomplices&mdash;whoever
- they may be. I do not imagine that your sister has been concerned in the
- actual&mdash;er&mdash;affair. Indeed, she was at home with you at the
- time. But if Jetsam, for instance, should be down there now, alone or with
- others, there might be a row on my appearance. I will therefore ask you to
- stay where you are, Miss Dartmouth.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She shook her head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have begun,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I will go through with it. Besides, what
- danger could there be? People don&rsquo;t go shooting and killing promiscuously
- like that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t they!&rdquo; Carpentaria exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Moreover, I have no fancy to be left alone here now,&rdquo; she added. &ldquo;And
- most likely there isn&rsquo;t anyone there at all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Can&rsquo;t you hear the splash of an oar? Listen!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They listened.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she murmured. &ldquo;And is not that the noise of a boat crunching on the
- beach?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The path disappeared mysteriously before them under the terrace; they
- could not see the end of it. But the sound-waves came clearly enough
- through the little tunnel.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We will go back,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;and slip on to the terrace. Behind
- the parapet we can see anything that may happen to be going on. But
- quietly, quietly, dear lady.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In a few moments they were creeping across the broad terrace.
- Simultaneously they bent down, side by side, under the parapet and looked
- between its squat, rounded pillars at the water below.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline gave a slight smothered cry, which Carpentaria, with an imperious
- gesture, bade her check.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not a word,&rdquo; he whispered in her ear.
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie&mdash;Rosie and no other&mdash;was manoeuvring a boat off the shore.
- Her face, her dress, her hat, were plainly visible in the moonlight. She
- stood up in the boat, and by means of a boat-hook hooked to a large oblong
- stone, drew the boat to the shore. She then seized the painter and jumped
- lightly out.
- </p>
- <p>
- The curious thing was that she went directly to the large oblong stone,
- and with a great effort, lifted it up in her arms, tottered with it to the
- boat, and deposited it therein. Carpentaria perceived then that the stone
- was not a stone, but one of the coffers in which was kept the gold of the
- City of Pleasure. He perceived also that, attached to the coffer, was a
- dozen feet or so of rope with a cork float at the end. Rosie followed the
- coffer into the boat, pushed off, and then, at a distance of a few yards
- from the shore, pitched the coffer into the river. This done, she landed,
- made fast the painter of the boat to an iron ring in the wall of the
- embankment and departed; and she did it all rather neatly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Immediately she had disappeared under the terrace, Pauline cried, starting
- up:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must go to her&mdash;I must ask her what she means by doing such
- things.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me,&rdquo; said Carpentaria; &ldquo;you must do nothing of the kind. I most
- seriously beg you to do nothing of the kind. By interfering now you may
- spoil the coup which we may ultimately make.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t quite comprehend you,&rdquo; Pauline observed. &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he
- addressed her excitedly, &ldquo;there can be no doubt in your mind now that your
- sister is concerned in this plot, whatever it is. I am perfectly convinced
- that her motives are good, honourable, kind-hearted. But she is concerned
- in it. We must, therefore, so far as we can, treat her as one of the
- conspirators&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But surely&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Always with profound respect,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Had the person in the
- boat been any other than your sister, should we have revealed ourselves?
- Certainly not! We should have followed the plot to its next development,
- with this advantage&mdash;that we knew something which the conspirators
- imagined to be a secret. The fact that the person in the boat was your
- sister must not alter our course of conduct. And permit me to add, Miss
- Dartmouth, that you first approached me on behalf of <i>my</i> sister. We
- owe something to her, do we not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Pauline in a low voice. &ldquo;Then what do you mean to do next?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suggest that we go back to your house, to see whether your sister has
- returned. May I ask whether, when you last spoke to her, she gave you to
- understand that she meant to stay with Mrs. Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline breathed a reluctant affirmative.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No hint that she was going out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;None. And&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And what?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, dear!&rdquo; Pauline sighed. &ldquo;Must I tell you? Yes, I must! I&rsquo;m sure Rosie
- is acting for the best, but really it was not her turn to watch Mrs. Ilam
- to-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Whose turn was it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The nurse&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And your sister changed the rotation?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. She said the nurse needed a holiday, and told her she could go away
- for twenty-four hours, and that she would take her place.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What time was that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;About six o&rsquo;clock this evening, I think.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And where has the nurse gone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The nurse has gone to a concert at Queen&rsquo;s Hall, and will sleep at the
- house of some friends at Islington.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And does your sister imagine you to be in bed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I expect so,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- They slowly returned to the neighbourhood of the bungalows. Carpentaria
- wanted to hurry, but it seemed as though Pauline was being held back by
- some occult force. As a matter of fact, she dreaded the moment when she
- should re-enter the house. But at length, they stood once again by the
- doorstep of Josephus Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What am I to do?&rdquo; Pauline demanded sadly. &ldquo;What do you think will be the
- best thing to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We have not seen your sister in the gardens,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;She has
- most probably returned. She would not be likely to leave Mrs. Ilam for
- very long, would she? Go and see if she has returned, if she is in Mrs.
- Ham&rsquo;s room. And if she is, question her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But how? What am I to say? Am I to ask her if she has been out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By no means!&rdquo; said Carpentaria promptly. &ldquo;You are to pretend that you
- know nothing. You must approach her diplomatically. Either she will tell
- the truth or she will&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Lie! Lie!&rdquo; cried Pauline. &ldquo;Say it openly! Say the word! Admit that you
- are persuading me to behave despicably to the creature who is dearest to
- me in all the world.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If there is duplicity,&rdquo; Carpentaria answered, &ldquo;you, at any rate, did not
- begin it. We are convinced of your sister&rsquo;s good intentions. What else
- matters? In a few days, perhaps to-morrow, all will be explained. Let me
- entreat you to go at once. I will await your report.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She shook her head sadly, opened the door with her latchkey, and was just
- about to shut it when Carpentaria stopped her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One moment,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;You have told me your sister believes you to be in
- bed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I say &lsquo;probably.&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is important that she should not be undeceived. I need not insist. You
- can easily make it appear that, having been awakened by some noise, you
- have got up. Eh?&rdquo; And he smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- She tried to smile in return, and disappeared from his view. Within the
- house, she crept upstairs, and into her bedroom, feeling like a thief.
- When she emerged therefrom she had put on a <i>peignoir</i>, and her <i>coiffure</i>
- was disarranged. She went to the door of Mrs. Ham&rsquo;s room, and listened
- intently. There was not a sound. If she was to obey Carpentaria she must
- enter, and she must wear a false mask: to that sister to whom she had all
- her life been as sincere as it is possible for one human being to be to
- another. Well, she could not enter&mdash;she could not enter! Her legs
- would not carry her through the doorway. And so, instead of going in, she
- called:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But her voice was so weak that she scarcely even heard it herself.
- </p>
- <p>
- No reply came from the interior. And she called again, this time quite
- loudly:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie, dear!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then she opened the door an inch or two. There was a rush of skirts across
- the room, and Rosie appeared. She was evidently in a state of extreme
- excitement.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter? Are you ill?&rdquo; asked Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I was wakened by some noise or other,&rdquo; said Pauline painfully,
- and it appeared to her that Carpentaria was whispering in her ear the
- words that she must say. &ldquo;And&mdash;and&mdash;I&mdash;I thought perhaps
- something had gone wrong here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; was Rosie&rsquo;s reply. &ldquo;But how queer you look, darling! You must have
- had a nightmare. You have quite startled me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline did not answer at once.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You aren&rsquo;t undressed! You haven&rsquo;t lain down,&rdquo; she said at length. &ldquo;I
- thought you could always sleep very well on that sofa.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So I can,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;But I&rsquo;ve been reading. And besides&mdash;it&rsquo;s
- rather upsetting about Cousin Ilam. I wonder where he can be.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; Pauline remarked summarily, &ldquo;he&rsquo;s pretty certain to turn up
- to-morrow. I expect he&rsquo;s gone into town.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie yawned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, good-night, darling,&rdquo; said Pauline, and took Rosie&rsquo;s hand. .
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How cold your hand is!&rdquo; Pauline observed, with an inward tremor. &ldquo;Have
- you been out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Been out? What do you mean?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Outside on to the balcony?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. I haven&rsquo;t stirred from my chair, darling. Bye-bye.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They stared at each other for an instant, each full of dissimulation, and
- yet also of love, and then they kissed one another passionately, and
- Pauline departed. They were women.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0025" id="link2HCH0025"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXV&mdash;-A Wholesale Departure
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">H</span>aving retired to
- her bedroom and divested herself of the deceitful <i>peignoir</i>, Pauline
- made her way, with all the precautions of secrecy, downstairs again, and
- so to the door which gave on the avenue. Carpentaria was not in view when
- she timorously put her head out of the door, and she was in a mind to rush
- back to her sister in order to confide in her absolutely, and to demand in
- return her entire confidence. She allowed herself to suspect for a brief
- instant that, after all, Carpentaria had not been behaving openly with
- her; but just then the musician arrived&mdash;he had evidently been
- watching the other side of the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You were right,&rdquo; she whispered, before he had time to ask a question.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your sister denies that she has been out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Does this help us?&rdquo; she inquired, as it were, bitterly. &ldquo;Are we any
- better off, now that I have lied to Rosie, and forced Rosie to lie to me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think so,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; Pauline retorted. &ldquo;And I have passed the most dreadful five
- minutes of all my life.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She seemed to be desolated, to be filled with grief.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so sorry, so very sorry,&rdquo; he murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no,&rdquo; she said quickly. &ldquo;You have been quite right. We find ourselves
- in the centre of a mystery, and I have no excuse for being sentimental. My
- trust in Rosie remains what it always was. Still, facts are facts, and I
- am ready to do whatever you instruct me to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;your sister must have had some reason for insisting on
- watching Mrs. Ilam out of her turn; and that reason is not connected with
- the little matter of the boat. If she had merely wished to go unobserved
- to the boat she would have gone to bed as usual and said nothing, wouldn&rsquo;t
- she?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is obvious, therefore, that there is something else to be done, or to
- occur&mdash;probably in Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom. For if it is not to happen in
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom, why should your sister have voluntarily tied herself
- up there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what could possibly happen in Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom?&rdquo; demanded Pauline,
- with a nervous start of apprehension.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do I know?&rdquo; Carpentaria replied. &ldquo;I can only point to certain
- indications, which lead to certain conclusions. You will oblige me by
- watching, Miss Dartmouth.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The landing and the stairs of your house. Is there a view of the stairs
- from your room?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you can watch from there. Do not burn a light.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And if anything strange does occur?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to your balcony, and tie a white handkerchief to the railings.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you?&rdquo; queried Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- At that moment there was the sound of a window opening in Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- bungalow across the avenue, and a voice called plaintively:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos, is that you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is I,&rdquo; he answered, as low as he could.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to her. Comfort her,&rdquo; Pauline enjoined him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am coming to you,&rdquo; he obediently called in the direction of the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- Both of them could see the vague figure of Juliette, framed in the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poor thing!&rdquo; murmured Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Afterwards,&rdquo; said Carpentaria hurriedly, &ldquo;I shall come out again and
- watch the outside of your house. With you inside and me outside, it will
- be very difficult for anything peculiar to occur without our knowledge.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he left her, impressed by her common sense and her self-control, and
- withal her utter womanliness.
- </p>
- <p>
- The hall of his own house was dark, and all the rooms of the ground-floor
- deserted. He mounted to the upper story. Juliette, hearing his footsteps,
- had come to the door of the study, from whose window she had hailed him,
- and she stared at him with a fixed and almost stony gaze as he approached.
- Her figure was silhouetted against the electric light in the study.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Turn that light out instantly,&rdquo; he said, with involuntary sternness.
- </p>
- <p>
- She did not move, and, obsessed by the importance of giving to anyone who
- might be spying the impression that all the occupants of the house had
- retired for the night, he pushed past her and turned off the switch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, Carlos,&rdquo; Juliette sighed, &ldquo;how cruel you are?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He now saw her indistinctly in the deep gloom of the chamber, and her form
- seemed pathetic to him, and her sad, despairing voice even more pathetic.
- He went up to her impulsively and took her hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;can you believe it of me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth has spoken to you?&rdquo; she asked, a glimmer of hope in her
- tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Can you believe that I have&mdash;have caused anything to
- be done to Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you not?&rdquo; she demanded eagerly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And he told her what he had previously told Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- She thanked him with an affectionate kiss.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos,&rdquo; she said, and the words fell in a little torrent from her mouth,
- &ldquo;I told you a falsehood this morning. I acted a part. He was in my
- sitting-room all the time. Can you forgive me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was sure of it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria calmly, &ldquo;and I can forgive you,&rdquo; he
- added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You do not know what it is to love,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You have never cared for
- anyone&mdash;in that way. I hadn&rsquo;t&mdash;until I met&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who says I don&rsquo;t know what it is to love!&rdquo; he stopped her. &ldquo;Perhaps I am
- learning. But tell me, when did you last see Ilam? Have you seen him since
- this morning?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At his offices this evening.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He gave no hint that he was in any danger?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No immediate danger. Oh, Carlos, he is not what you think him to be. He
- is an honest man, and I am so sorry for him, and I love him. Where is he?
- What has happened to him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t tell you now,&rdquo; was Carpentaria&rsquo;s reply, &ldquo;but before morning we
- shall know more, or I am mistaken.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is for the crimes of others that he is suffering,&rdquo; said Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He told you so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, but I guess; I am sure. I know all his faults&mdash;all of them. I do
- not hide one of them from myself. Why should I, since he loves me and I
- love him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My child,&rdquo; said Carpentaria abruptly, &ldquo;you might have trusted me more.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should have trusted you absolutely,&rdquo; answered Juliette, &ldquo;but he is
- afraid of you. He would not let me. I could not disobey him. Sometime,
- somehow, you must have said something to frighten him and, though he is so
- big and strong, he is timid; he has timid eyes. It was because of his eyes
- that I first began to like him. Carlos, what are you going to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am going to watch,&rdquo; was the response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A man came to the back-door not long since, and asked whether you were at
- home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A man came to the back-door?&rdquo; repeated Carpentaria sharply, every nerve
- suddenly on the strain. &ldquo;Who was it? What did you say to him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At first I thought it was one of the night-staff, and then the man&rsquo;s face
- made me suspicious; I imagined it might be a thief&mdash;you know what a
- state I am in, Carlos&mdash;and so I told him you had just gone to bed,
- and I shut the door in his face. I didn&rsquo;t want him to think there were
- only women in the house. But, of course, it couldn&rsquo;t have been a burglar&mdash;here&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is the wisest thing you have done this day, Juliette,&rdquo; Carpentaria
- remarked; and then he questioned her as to the appearance of the
- mysterious inquirer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you going to leave me?&rdquo; cried Juliette, when Carpentaria picked up
- his hat, which had fallen from a chair to the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;you must try to rest.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then they were both startled by a strange noise on the window-pane.
- They listened. The noise was repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it rain?&rdquo; asked Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s gravel.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He went out on to the balcony. A form was discernible in the avenue below.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is that you, Miss Dartmouth?&rdquo; he whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; came the reply. &ldquo;I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; he warned her. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll be with you in a second.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With a brief explanation to Juliette, he hastened downstairs and let
- himself out of the house. Pauline was already standing at the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anything happened?&rdquo; he questioned her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing has happened,&rdquo; said Pauline, &ldquo;but there is something extremely
- curious, all the same, in our house. It is a most singular thing that the
- housemaid, who never forgets anything, forgot just to-night to leave some
- milk in my room&mdash;a thing which I had specially reminded her to
- remember, so I rang the bell for her. There is a bell that communicates
- direct with her room&mdash;it used to be in Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom, but we
- have had it changed&mdash;there was no answer. I rang again. No answer.
- You know, I&rsquo;m the sort of person that can&rsquo;t stand that sort of thing from
- servants, so I went upstairs to her. She was not in her room. There are
- two beds in that room, the second one for the cook. Both beds were empty;
- they had neither of them been slept in. I went into the rooms of the other
- servants. They are all empty. Rosie and I and Mrs. Ilam are alone in the
- house.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria paused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you tell your sister?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, I came straight here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was very discreet of you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am beginning to get frightened,&rdquo; Pauline added. &ldquo;What can it mean? All
- the servants gone&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0026" id="link2HCH0026"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVI&mdash;The Empty Bedroom
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">W</span>ithin the bungalow
- of the Ilams there remained only two persons who were legally entitled to
- be there, and those persons were Mrs. Ilam, motionless for ever, but with
- her bright, tragic eyes staring continually at the same point in the
- ceiling, and Rosie Dartmouth. These two women, however, were decidedly not
- alone in the house. It was a large house, a bungalow more by the character
- of its architecture and its many balconies, than by its size and shape.
- Most bungalows are long and low; this one was long without being low. On
- the ground floor were the reception rooms and kitchen offices; on the
- first floor were the principal bedrooms; and above these was a low-ceiled
- floor of servants&rsquo; bedrooms. Nor was that all; for the steeply-sloping
- roof had been utilized by an architect who hated to waste space as a miser
- hates to waste money, and hence, above even the servants&rsquo; floor was a vast
- attic, serviceable for storage. The attic was reached by a little flight
- of stairs of its own, and it was lighted by two panes of glass let into
- the roof, one on either side.
- </p>
- <p>
- The ground-floor and the servants&rsquo; floor were now dark and uninhabited. On
- the first floor the only occupied room was the bedchamber of Mrs. Ilam,
- where Rosie stood nervously by the mantelpiece in an attitude of uneasy
- expectation. The sole illumination was given by the small rose-shaded
- lamp, which threw a circle of light on the white cloth of the invalid&rsquo;s
- night-table; all else, including Rosie, was in gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie was evidently listening&mdash;the door was ajar&mdash;and after a
- few moments she stepped hastily outside on to the landing, and glanced up
- the well of the staircase. At the summit of the staircase she saw the door
- of the great attic open, and a figure emerge; the figure, which was
- carrying a small electric lantern, carefully locked the door of the attic
- behind it, and then, with some deliberation, descended the narrow attic
- stairs, and, more quietly, the stairs from the servants&rsquo; floor to the
- first floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- The figure was that of Mr. Jetsam, clothed in his eternal suit of blue
- serge.
- </p>
- <p>
- The stairs and landing were quite dark, save for his lantern and the faint
- glimmer that came from Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom. Mr. Jetsam had moved without a
- sound, for he was wearing thick felt slippers. He did not immediately
- notice Rosie on the landing, and when the light of his lantern caught and
- showed her dress, he started back slightly. Rosie made no move.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did not expect you to be there,&rdquo; he whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- She regarded him with steady eyes, and then, without a word, motioned him
- to proceed further downstairs to the ground-floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You want to talk to me?&rdquo; he whispered again.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had a voice which was curiously capable of being almost inaudible, and
- yet at the same time distinct.
- </p>
- <p>
- She nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- He pointed to the open door of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s room, but Rosie shook her head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- She shook her head once more, and they went downstairs to the dining-room,
- both silently creeping. With infinite precautions he opened the
- dining-room door, and shut it when they had entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It would have been better to remain upstairs,&rdquo; he said mildly. &ldquo;The least
- possible movement is dangerous enough. At this stage a creaking stair
- might spoil the whole business.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot talk there,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, since Mrs. Ilam is utterly helpless,&rdquo; he protested, &ldquo;what can it
- matter what she hears? She cannot talk.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The fact that she hears is more than enough to upset me,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;I
- am like that, you see. I know it is silly, but I can&rsquo;t help it. I wanted
- to tell you that I have just had a dreadful scene with Pauline.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A dreadful scene! You&rsquo;ve not quarrelled?&rdquo; he demanded anxiously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, no! But I&rsquo;ve lied to her&mdash;I&rsquo;ve lied to her in the most shocking
- way, and, what is worse, I fancy she didn&rsquo;t quite believe me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She suspects something?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His tone sounded apprehensive in the gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know; I hope not. In any case, what can she suspect? She&rsquo;s been
- in bed all the time.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;True,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam reflectively. &ldquo;True! You have behaved
- magnificently, Miss Rosie. Never, never, in this world, shall I be able to
- thank you. I had not thought that such a woman as you existed. You have
- given me the first sympathy I have ever had. Yes, the first!&mdash;without
- you I could never have succeeded. I could scarcely have begun. And now I
- shall succeed. Listen to me&mdash;I shall succeed! A wrong will be
- righted. Justice will be done. If it isn&rsquo;t, I shall kill myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He finished grimly, as it were, ferociously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t say that,&rdquo; pleaded Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- He laughed. Then he lifted the little lantern and threw its ray on her
- face. She did not flinch. &ldquo;You are very pale,&rdquo; he remarked softly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you expect?&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;You have gone much further&mdash;very
- much further than I ever dreamt of. You have led me on.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;it is your own kindness of heart, your sympathy with the
- unfortunate that has led you on. I assure you I was never so bold before I
- met you, before I appealed to you that night when you stood on your
- balcony. Do you regret? If you tell me to stop, to abandon my plans and
- depart&mdash;well, I will depart.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She smiled sadly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not want you to do that,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Nevertheless, I tremble for
- what you have done.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do not tremble,&rdquo; he said coaxingly. &ldquo;If I am not safe here, where am I
- safe? Is not this the very last place where anyone would expect to find me
- and my&mdash;my booty?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, then, sending the servants away,&rdquo; she exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing simpler,&rdquo; he commented.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how I did it,&rdquo; she mused, as if aghast at the memory of what
- she had achieved; &ldquo;and as for to-morrow, how I shall explain it to Pauline
- I really can&rsquo;t imagine!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To-morrow,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;everything will be over one way or the other; you
- will be able to resume your habit of speaking the truth. By the way,&rdquo; he
- went on, in a tone carefully careless, &ldquo;you managed to do what I asked you
- with the boat?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you meet anyone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not a soul.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you pulled the plug out and cut the boat: adrift?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pulled the plug out and cut the boat adrift!&rdquo; she repeated after him,
- amazed. &ldquo;No; you never told me to do that!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;that was the most important thing of all. It is
- essential that there should be no trace of the boat.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t understand,&rdquo; she faltered. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so sorry. I never heard&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I regret I didn&rsquo;t make myself more clear,&rdquo; he remarked. &ldquo;You see, at
- intervals during the night the watchmen do their patrols, and I know there
- is a regular inspection of the terrace. Supposing the boat is seen?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I really don&rsquo;t remember, that you asked me to do that,&rdquo; she persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anyhow,&rdquo; he said politely, &ldquo;what you have done deserves all my praise and
- gratitude. But&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would like me to go and sink the boat, wouldn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hesitate to ask you. It is really too much&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, yes,&rdquo; she said passionately. &ldquo;I will go and do it&mdash;alone.&rdquo; Then
- she paused. &ldquo;But suppose I meet the patrol?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are you,&rdquo; was Jetsam&rsquo;s response. &ldquo;You are the President&rsquo;s cousin. You
- have the right to amuse yourself with a boat, at no matter what hour of
- the day or night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Just so,&rdquo; she admitted. &ldquo;I will go now. I shall be back quite soon. Shall
- you be ready by the time I return?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Everything is all right?&rdquo; She seemed to question him anxiously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Quite all right,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;Let me thank you again.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With an impulsive movement he took her hand and kissed it. She blushed and
- trembled. Then he opened the door and they passed out into the hall.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will unfasten the front-door for you,&rdquo; he whispered. &ldquo;I think I can do
- it more quietly than you. It may be left on the latch till you come back;&rdquo;
- and he unfastened the front-door. Through its panes a faint light entered
- the hall.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must get my hat,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- They went upstairs.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll leave you,&rdquo; he whispered. &ldquo;You can manage?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She nodded. He put the light on a bracket on the landing and ascended to
- the upper parts of the house. Rosie went into her bedroom. When she came
- out, wearing a hat, she noticed for the first time that the door of
- Pauline&rsquo;s bedroom was not shut. She pushed it open very carefully, and
- peered in. A feeble reflection of the moonlight redeemed it from absolute
- obscurity, and Rosie perceived that the bed was unoccupied, that it had
- not even been slept in. Instantly her mind became full of suspicions. Had
- Pauline lied to her as she had lied to Pauline? Was her part in the plot
- of Mr. Jetsam discovered? No, impossible! And yet&mdash;Then she
- recollected having heard, or having thought that she had heard, the
- distant ringing of one of the service-bells in the house some time before
- Mr. Jetsam came downstairs. She had forgotten to mention this disturbing
- fact to Mr. Jetsam. Evidently he had not heard the ringing, or he would
- have questioned her about it. Supposing they were being watched, after
- all? And in any case where was Pauline? Pauline had given her to
- understand that she had retired to rest, and lo! the bed had not been
- touched! Full of tremors, she silently shut the door on the empty room.
- </p>
- <p>
- She remembered Jetsam&rsquo;s threat of what he should do if his plans failed,
- and she hesitated.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0027" id="link2HCH0027"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVII&mdash;The Photograph
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">M</span>r. Jetsam, having
- with an attentive ear heard the vague sound of the shutting of a door,
- came out a second time from the mysterious attic and descended the stairs.
- He was a man to omit no precautions, and every door that he passed he
- locked on the outside, not only on the servants&rsquo; floor, but on the first
- floor. He penetrated then to the ground-floor, and fastened not merely
- every door, but every window. At last he arrived at the front door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a pity to lock her out,&rdquo; he murmured to himself; &ldquo;but what can I do?
- It would be madness to let her assist at the scene I have to go through.
- She expects to, but I must disappoint her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he noiselessly bolted and locked the front door.
- </p>
- <p>
- The fact was that Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s plans had been slightly deranged. He had
- hoped to get through his great scene&mdash;the scene to which all his
- efforts had tended&mdash;during Rosie&rsquo;s first absence on the river. He
- relied on Rosie; he had been amazed at her goodness and her fortitude; he
- had been still more amazed at his singular influence over her; and he
- naturally told her a great deal. But he did not tell her quite everything.
- He feared to frighten her. Hence proceeded one of his reasons for sending
- her to the boat, with the object of sinking the coffer further in the
- river as the tide fell. But she had dispatched the business with such
- extraordinary celerity, and he, on his part, had been so hindered by such
- an unexpected contretemps, that she was back again before even he had
- begun.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thus, he had been obliged to invent a new errand for her, and he flattered
- himself that he had invented the errand, and dispatched her on it, with a
- certain histrionic skill&mdash;and he had the right so to flatter himself.
- It desolated him to deceive her, to hoodwink her; but he saw no
- alternative.
- </p>
- <p>
- Having secured the house, he ascended again, this time taking less care to
- maintain an absolute silence, to the first floor. The affair was fully
- launched now, and no one could interrupt him. If Pauline awoke in her
- locked bedroom and heard things, so much the worse for her, he reflected.
- She could not go out on to her balcony because he had seen long ago to the
- fastening of the window. Therefore she might cry as much as she liked. He
- laughed as he thought of this, not having the least idea that he had so
- elaborately fastened the door and the window of an empty room.
- </p>
- <p>
- He went into Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom with a slight swagger, and shut the door.
- A fire was burning in the grate. He cast a single glance at the bed and
- its mute and helpless occupant, and putting his little lantern on the
- mantelpiece, he walked round the room, inspecting its arrangement and its
- corners. Then, suddenly remembering his own burglarious exploit of forcing
- an entrance into the room by the window, he approached the window, flung
- it wide open and stepped outside on to the balcony. Far across the expanse
- of the Oriental Gardens, in the moonlight, he discerned a figure vaguely
- moving in the direction of the river. It was a woman&rsquo;s figure.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There she is,&rdquo; he murmured. &ldquo;Admirable creature! Why did I not meet such
- a woman when I was younger?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he came in again, shut and fastened the window, and drew the heavy
- curtains across it, taking care that no chink was left through which light
- could be seen. Then he began to whistle softly, and he turned on all the
- electricity in the apartment; there were a cluster of lamps in the
- ceiling, and two lights over&rsquo; the dressing-table, besides the table-lamps,
- and his own trifling gleam of a lantern. The room was brilliantly, almost
- blindingly, lit, and every object stood revealed.
- </p>
- <p>
- He stepped towards the bed, and deliberately gazed into the eyes of the
- stricken old woman. Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s burning orbs blinked at intervals.
- Otherwise she gave no sign of volition or of life. Jetsam placed his eyes
- in the fixed line of her gaze, so that they were obliged to exchange a
- glance. She appeared to be unconscious of it. Only a scarcely perceptible
- trémulation ran along her arms, which lay stretched, as usual, outside the
- coverlet, like the arms of a corpse.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Jetsam, &ldquo;here I am at last, you see. Do you recognize me?
- I&rsquo;ve changed, haven&rsquo;t I, old hag? But you can&rsquo;t be mistaken in me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The pent-up bitterness of a lifetime escaped from him in the tones of his
- voice. But the old woman showed no symptom that the terrible past was thus
- revisiting her in its most awful form.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You thought I was dead, didn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; Jetsam continued. &ldquo;For over forty
- years you have been sure that I was dead, and that your crime was one of
- the thousands of crimes which go unpunished. And look here,&rdquo; he went on;
- &ldquo;if you have any doubt, murderess, as to my identity, look at this. I&rsquo;ll
- make you look at it, by heaven!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He bent down, drew up the trouser of his left leg to the knee, and pushed
- the sock into his boot, so that the calf of the leg was exposed. On the
- fleshy part of the calf could be plainly seen a large birth-stain. With
- the movement of an acrobat he raised that leg over the bed, over the eyes
- of Mrs. Ilam, and held it there during several seconds. Then he dropped
- it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There!&rdquo; he exclaimed. &ldquo;That&rsquo;s to show you who it is you have to deal
- with.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His voice was cruel, icy, and inexorable. He had no pity, no trace of
- mercy, for the woman who, whatever the enormity of her sins, was entitled
- to some respect by reason of her extreme age, her absolutely defenceless
- condition, and her suffering.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They tell me you can answer &lsquo;yes&rsquo; or &lsquo;no,&rsquo;&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;by your eyelids.
- Blinking means &lsquo;yes,&rsquo; and no movement means &lsquo;no.&rsquo; I am going to put some
- questions to you. Did you take the photograph out of the box? Answer.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam closed her eyes and kept them closed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What does that mean?&rdquo; Jetsam grumbled. &ldquo;Open your eyes again, murderess.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But Mrs. Ilam did not open her eyes again. She obstinately kept them
- closed; and she might have been asleep, except that now and then a tear
- exuded from under the lids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll make you open them,&rdquo; cried Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- His hand approached the old woman&rsquo;s eyes, but even his implacable and
- cruel bitterness recoiled from the coward villainy of touching that
- stricken and helpless organism. He drew back his hand, and some glimmering
- sense of the dreadfulness of the scene which he was acting reached his
- heart. The thought ran through his brain that it was a good thing Rosie
- had not been present.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;as you like. Only I know that you, or one of you,
- must have taken that photograph out of the box, and I have every reason to
- believe that it is in this room. In any case I mean to know very shortly
- whether it is or not.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- So saying, he went abruptly out of the room, shutting the door, and
- climbed once more to the attic.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jakel&rdquo; he called quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And a Soudanese, the brother of Ilam&rsquo;s protector, &ldquo;Spats,&rdquo; obediently
- appeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am ready,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;Come, pass in front of me. I will lock the
- door myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They went together to Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know how to search, Jake?&rdquo; Jetsam instructed him. &ldquo;Everything in this
- room has to be searched to find a photograph&mdash;a photograph, you know&mdash;the
- same sort of thing as this.&rdquo; And he pointed to a portrait of Josephus Ilam
- that stood on the mantelpiece.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Begin with the chest of drawers,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- In a quarter of an hour the room was in such a state of havoc as might
- have resulted from the passage through it of a cyclone. Every drawer in
- every piece of furniture had been ransacked and emptied. The Soudanese had
- even climbed on a chair in order to inspect the top of the wardrobe, and
- had dislodged therefrom a pile of cardboard boxes. Every book had been
- torn to pieces. Piles of letters lay scattered about. The floor was heaped
- up with Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s private possessions. Chairs were overturned. One or
- two vases with narrow necks and wide bases had been smashed in order the
- better to search their interiors. The place was wrecked. But the
- mysterious photograph which Jetsam wanted had not been discovered. The
- Soudanese had found dozens of photographs, but not the right one.
- </p>
- <p>
- The bed of the invalid was alone undisturbed. Among all the ruins of the
- chamber it remained untouched, white, apparently inviolate, and the old
- woman&rsquo;s arms lay ever in the same position, and her eyes, open and blazing
- now, gazed ever at the same spot in the ceiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have it!&rdquo; exclaimed Jetsam suddenly. &ldquo;The bed&mdash;the bed! The box
- was hidden under the bed, but I got it. The photograph is hidden under the
- bed, and I will get it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He hesitated. Dare he search the bed? Dare he disturb its helpless burden?
- He wondered. He was ready for anything. He was capable of slaughter, but
- he wavered and retreated before the idea of searching for the photograph
- in the place where the box had been.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he suddenly decided.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Take firm hold of the bed itself, not the mattress,&rdquo; he ordered the
- Soudanese, &ldquo;and I will take hold on this side. Be very gentle. Do not
- disarrange the clothes. We will lift it over the foot of the bedstead and
- place it on the floor. Carefully now&mdash;carefully!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And with the utmost delicacy the two men lifted the bed bodily and laid it
- very gently on the floor, and Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s gaze was directed to a new
- point: of the ceiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That will be a change for you,&rdquo; said Jetsam, with a touch of compunction
- in his voice. &ldquo;I was obliged to do it. We&rsquo;ll put you back presently.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he searched thoroughly the mattress and the bedstead, but there was no
- photograph.
- </p>
- <p>
- He paused and wiped, his brow. The Soudanese stood at attention by the
- side of the bed. Jetsam looked at Jake.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go and fetch him down,&rdquo; he said peremptorily to the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Jake vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One way or another this shall end,&rdquo; he murmured, gazing at the old woman
- in her lowly position among the heaped confusion of the floor; and he
- waited, eyeing at intervals the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- At length the door opened, and the Soudanese came in, and he was leading
- by the hand Josephus Ilam. Jetsam stepped quickly behind them and shut and
- locked the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now then, Ilam,&rdquo; said he, &ldquo;sit down. Make him sit down, Jake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And quite obediently Ilam sat down on a chair, near the night-table. He
- made no remark; he scarcely looked round; his senses seemed to be dulled;
- it was as though his mind had retired to some fastness from which it
- refused to emerge.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you want?&rdquo; Ilam demanded gloomily. &ldquo;What have you been doing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to make one last appeal to you, Ilam,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;I
- kidnapped you for this, I may tell you. I was determined to confront the
- mother and the son if necessity should arise. But you nearly did for me by
- swallowing too much of that blessed opiate. You are clumsy, even when you
- are a victim. However, you&rsquo;ve got over it nicely, haven&rsquo;t you? Pretty
- notion, wasn&rsquo;t it,&rdquo; he continued, &ldquo;to conceal you in your own attic, where
- no one would ever think of looking for you? But it wanted doing, my
- weighty friend&mdash;it wanted doing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you after?&rdquo; Ilam asked again, as if in the grip of one fixed
- idea. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ve got the money&mdash;what else do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know perfectly well what I want,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;My case is complete
- except for that photograph, and I&rsquo;ve secured as much money as will keep me
- on my pins till I&rsquo;ve forced you to see reason. But the photograph is
- lacking; you are aware of that. It&rsquo;s certainly rather hard lines on you
- that you should be forced to give up the very thing whose possession by me
- will ruin you. But what would you have? I am desperate, and no one knows
- better than you and this sad creature here that my cause is just. Tell me
- where the photograph is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what you mean,&rdquo; said Ilam doggedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam turned to Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen, murderess,&rdquo; he said, and Ilam shuddered at that word: &ldquo;if you do
- not answer my questions I will kill your son before your eyes. Does Ilam
- know where the photograph is?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Once again the old woman obstinately shut her eyes and refused to give any
- indication.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam, who seemed mentally to be quickly regaining his normal state, stood
- up and moved to the fireplace.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stand!&rdquo; said Jetsam angrily, and he drew his revolver from his pocket. &ldquo;I
- will know where that photograph is or I will hang for you. I shall not be
- the first man who has died in a good cause. Now, where is that photograph?
- Did you or your mother take it out of the box?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He lifted the revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I took it out of the box,&rdquo; snarled Ilam&mdash;&ldquo;I&mdash;I&mdash;I&mdash;and
- my mother knew nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And where is it?&rdquo; asked Jetsam, smiling triumphantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is here,&rdquo; Ilam cried, and he took a faded photograph from his breast
- pocket. &ldquo;You never thought of searching me, eh? Ass!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give it me,&rdquo; said Jetsam quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam; and with a sudden movement he stuck it in the fire.
- </p>
- <p>
- The flame destroyed it in an instant.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam sprang towards him, and then fell back as if stunned. Jetsam was
- beaten, after all. He gave a sort of groan and walked to the other side of
- the room, as if in a dream. He had failed, and he meant to commit suicide.
- All his trouble, all his risks, had gone for nothing. He raised the
- revolver again, and no one in the room quite guessed the tragedy that was
- preparing for them. His finger was on the trigger.
- </p>
- <p>
- Immediately behind him was a draught-screen, and the draught-screen began
- mysteriously to sink forward. It lodged lightly on his shoulders. He
- turned, the revolver at his temple; and round the screen, from behind it,
- appeared Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t do that,&rdquo; she said calmly, and she took the revolver out of his
- unresisting hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam turned round, saw that the person who had so mysteriously
- interfered was Rosie herself, and sank down on a chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have done me an evil turn,&rdquo; he breathed, at the same time with a
- gesture ordering the Soudanese to leave the room.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have saved your life,&rdquo; she said simply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he replied, with a trace of bitterness. &ldquo;That is what I mean. You
- are not the first who has saved my life. And if the first saviour had
- refrained we should all have been happier now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do not say that,&rdquo; she whispered. &ldquo;I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&mdash;you would never have met me,&rdquo; he said curtly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am glad I have met you,&rdquo; she retorted, bravely facing him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; he sighed. &ldquo;And yet you play tricks on me! Yet you make promises to
- me and break them!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no,&rdquo; she cried. &ldquo;I only promised to go to the boat, and I would have
- gone to the boat afterwards.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did you not go at once?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She told him how she had gone by accident into Pauline&rsquo;s bedroom and found
- it empty, and how thus all her suspicions were aroused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was afraid your plans might fail,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;and you had threatened to
- kill yourself if they failed; and I thought something dreadful might
- happen during my absence. And so&mdash;so&mdash;I hid myself here&mdash;without
- thinking. I&rsquo;m so sorry.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And tears came to her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A few minutes ago I might have been seriously perturbed by what you have
- told me,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;But what does it matter now? If your sister is
- against me, if the house is surrounded by spies, it makes no difference. I
- wanted to kill this man here. I should have killed him; but I thought of
- the annoyance it would give you. Yes,&rdquo; he smiled, &ldquo;I did really. Not to
- mention the futile trouble it would cause me. And on the whole I regarded
- it as simpler and neater to kill myself. But you have stopped that. Will
- you oblige me by putting down that revolver? It is at full cock.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not touch it?&rdquo; she demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not touch it,&rdquo; he replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- She laid it at the foot of the bed, and then bent down inquiringly to old
- Mrs. Ilam, who rested with closed eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is asleep,&rdquo; murmured Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Through all this?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, thank heaven! She sleeps very heavily sometimes. Will you not put
- the bed back in its place? I do not like to see it here. It is painful,
- very painful, in spite of all you have told me about her, to see this. She
- is very old and very helpless.&rdquo; During the conversation Ilam had remained
- in a sort of stupor. It was as though the effort of putting the photograph
- in the fire, and then the shock of Rosie&rsquo;s sudden appearance, had
- exhausted the energies which he had managed with difficulty to collect as
- the results of the narcotic passed away; it was as though the narcotic had
- resumed its sway over him for a time. But now he came brusquely forward,
- taking two long steps across the room, and stood between Rosie and Jetsam,
- and he put his face quite close to Rosie&rsquo;s face, as an actor does to an
- actress on the stage.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you this scoundrel&rsquo;s accomplice?&rdquo; he asked hoarsely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cousin,&rdquo; said Rosie, &ldquo;Mr. Jetsam is not a scoundrel, and I am nobody&rsquo;s
- accomplice.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He has nearly killed me, and he has robbed me of two thousand five
- hundred pounds,&rdquo; pursued Ilam. &ldquo;If that is not being a scoundrel, what is?
- Tell me that. You are his accomplice. You came into this house to serve
- his ends.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed, I did not,&rdquo; protested Rosie, &ldquo;I came into this house with my
- sister at your urgent request.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; sneered Ilam. &ldquo;That is what you made me believe, you chit! You
- worked it very well; but I know different now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Until I came here I had never seen Mr. Jetsam,&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have come to understand each other remarkably well in quite a few
- days.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps we have,&rdquo; admitted the girl. &ldquo;But if you object you have a simple
- remedy.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You say he is a thief and almost a murderer. You say that I am his
- accomplice; we are criminals therefore. Bring us to justice. Have the
- entire affair thrashed out, Cousin Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know that I cannot do that,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am well aware that you dare not,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;The scandal would be
- intolerable. Think of Pauline&rsquo;s feelings.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But suppose Pauline, too, is in the conspiracy?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There would always be the scandal. It would ruin the City.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is neither the scandal nor the City that you are thinking of, Cousin
- Ilam,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;It is merely yourself or your mother. If it is your
- mother, well and good.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam retired a couple of paces, uncertain what to say in reply, and
- possibly fearing some attack from Mr. Jetsam, who stood behind him. There
- was a silence, and then Ilam murmured:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah! my poor mother, sleeping there in the midst of all this!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a cry from the strange man&rsquo;s heart, and another silence ensued. The
- situation had reached such a point as baffled all the parties to it to
- discover a solution.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Jetsam who broke the silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will leave you,&rdquo; he said in a low voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-bye,&rdquo; he said, as no one replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where are you going to?&rdquo; asked Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am merely going,&rdquo; answered Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you will tell me where?&rdquo; she insisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is vague,&rdquo; he replied. &ldquo;Out of your life&mdash;that is all I can say.
- It was too much to hope that at the end of a career which has been one
- long and uninterrupted misfortune the sun of happiness should shine on me.
- I was destined to failure from the beginning. You do not know all my
- story; but you know some of it&mdash;enough to enable you, perhaps, to
- forgive me. Good-bye!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He moved to the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not leave me like that,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;You dare not leave me like
- that. You are going to kill yourself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I have got over that caprice, I think. I shall drag out my
- existence to its natural end.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give me your address,&rdquo; Rosie said doggedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- He shook his head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are cruel,&rdquo; she whimpered. &ldquo;After&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was interrupted by Ilam himself, who said:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie, go downstairs. I have two words to speak to this fellow. Go
- downstairs. Leave us.&rdquo; His tone was cold and acid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Jetsam agreed after a moment. &ldquo;Leave us; we have to speak to each
- other.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not go without seeing me?&rdquo; asked Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not,&rdquo; replied Jetsam, and the next instant the two men were alone
- together in the room, save for the unconscious form of Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- The door had been locked again, this time by Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is in love with you,&rdquo; Ilam shouted fiercely. &ldquo;You have imposed on
- her; you have taken advantage of her ignorance of life, and she is in love
- with you! It is infamous. I am stronger than you, and unless you promise
- me&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Idiot!&rdquo; Jetsam stopped him. &ldquo;What are you raving about? You must be mad.
- You must have forgotten&mdash;as your mother forgets. As for this poor
- girl being in love with me&mdash;&mdash;-&rdquo; He stopped with a hard laugh.
- &ldquo;What has that to do with you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It has everything to do with me,&rdquo; cried Ilam, and, as if transported by
- fury, he suddenly sprang on Jetsam, who was all unprepared, and, clasping
- him in a murderous embrace, threw him to the ground. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve had enough of
- you,&rdquo; he ground out the words through his teeth. &ldquo;And if I finish you, I
- can easily show that it was in self-defence.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he had scarcely spoken when his hands fell lax in astonishment and
- alarm, for immediately outside the window, or so it seemed, there sounded
- four notes of a trombone, brazen, clear, and imposing in the night. No one
- who has heard Beethoven&rsquo;s greatest symphony will ever forget the four
- notes&mdash;commonly called the notes of fate&mdash;with which the most
- tremendous of musical compositions opens. It was these notes which the
- trombone had given forth. There was a silence, and the instrument repeated
- them, and in the next pause that followed, the two men who an instant
- before had been joined in a dreadful struggle, lay moveless, listening to
- their own breathing; and a third time the trombone sounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0028" id="link2HCH0028"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVIII&mdash;The Dead March
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">W</span>hen Pauline,
- standing outside Carpentaria&rsquo;s bungalow, had communicated to Carpentaria
- the fateful fact that all Ilam&rsquo;s servants had disappeared from their
- rooms, and had given expression to the vague and terrible fear that was
- beginning to take possession of her, the musician said in reply:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have every reason to be afraid, and yet I shall ask you to try to
- calm your apprehensions. Whether the servants are there or not, nobody can
- get into your house without our knowing it, and when anybody starts to
- attempt to get in, there will be plenty of time for you to alarm yourself
- then.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Rosie alone there with poor Mrs. Ilam!&rdquo; sighed Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam can&rsquo;t do her any harm, at any rate,&rdquo; said Carpentaria
- comfortingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And with that he commenced a cautious perambulation of the exterior of
- Ilam&rsquo;s house, Pauline following him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish you would go to my sister until I have something to report,&rdquo; he
- murmured. &ldquo;You will take cold, and you will work yourself up into a fever,
- and do no good to anybody.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall not work myself up into a fever,&rdquo; replied Pauline firmly. &ldquo;I am
- capable of being just as calm as you are yourself. Let us go at once into
- the house&mdash;let us go to Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; expostulated Carpentaria, &ldquo;and spoil whatever scheme is going on?
- No, my dear young lady, we have gone so far that we must go a little
- further. We must catch the schemers red-handed. If we do not, our night&rsquo;s
- work will have been wasted.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The idea of weakly and pusillanimously changing a course of conduct at the
- very moment when that course promised the most interesting adventures
- shocked all the artist in him.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stared blankly at the house, whose form was clearly revealed in the
- misty moonlight, but none of whose windows showed the slightest glimmer of
- light. It was an extremely modern tenement, and its architecture was in no
- way startlingly original; nevertheless, in those moments it seemed to both
- of them the strangest, the most mysterious, the most insubstantial house
- that the hand of man had ever raised.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly Pauline clutched his arm.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hear some one walking somewhere in the grounds,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- They both listened. In the stillness of the night regular steps sounded
- plainly from a distance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is the patrol on the terrace,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is assuredly on the terrace&mdash;the sound of heavy boots on stone
- flags, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Pauline agreed, loosing his arm.
- </p>
- <p>
- They were twenty or thirty yards from the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I want you to be brave and to do something for me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria turned to her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the patrol, and tell him I have sent you, and that he is to remain
- within sight of the boat there, until further orders, keeping as much in
- the background as possible. Will you go?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Alone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Alone. There is no danger. Besides, one of us must remain here, and one
- person can more easily keep out of sight than two. My fear is that the
- boat may be used again. The patrol is not to prevent the boat being used.
- He is not to show himself; he is merely to observe. You understand?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you insist on my going?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, I entreat you to go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And without more words she went. It was her figure, and not the figure of
- Rosie, that Mr. Jetsam had seen in the gardens when he peeped out of the
- window of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, now alone, recommenced from a fresh spot his vigil over the
- closed house. He argued with himself with much ingenuity as to what point
- the persons who wished to enter it would choose for their appearance, but
- he could decide nothing. They might, he thought, come by the avenue, or
- round by the back from the other side of the buildings of the Central Way,
- or even through the gardens. He was growing impatient of a delay
- apparently interminable, and then his glance happened to wander upwards to
- the roof of the house. He could not see the roof itself, because he was
- now too near the wall, but it appeared to him that he detected a
- phenomenon above the roof which was somewhat unusual. He walked carefully
- away from the house until the expanse of roof became visible; and, indeed,
- he had not been mistaken. There was a radiance there. The small square
- pane of the attic, flat with the surface of the roof itself, was
- illuminated, and sent up a faint shaft of light into the sky.
- </p>
- <p>
- Instantly he saw his own shortcomings as a counter-schemer against
- schemers. He had assumed that the schemers were not already in the house,
- whereas he had had no grounds for such an assumption. The schemers were
- most obviously in the house, and they had most obviously been there for a
- considerable time, since no one could have recently entered it without his
- knowledge. He was angry with the schemers, and he was more angry with
- himself, and one of those wild ideas seized him&mdash;one of those ideas
- which could only occur to a Carpentaria. He would catch these schemers
- himself, by his own devices, and he would do it leisurely, dramatically,
- and effectively. He would make such a capture as never had been made
- before. He did not know precisely who the schemers were, nor their
- numbers, nor their nefarious occupations in the house; and he did not
- care. When once he was in the toils of a grand romantic idea he cared for
- nothing except the execution of it. He laughed with joy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you laugh?&rdquo; said a voice behind him.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Pauline, who had returned. She had given the instructions to the
- patrol.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;An idea,&rdquo; he replied&mdash;&ldquo;a notion that appealed to me.&rdquo; And then he
- perceived that he must at all costs get rid of Pauline, and he continued:
- &ldquo;My sister is extremely disturbed,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Will you not, as a last
- favour, go and stay with her? Do not refuse me this. I will find some one
- to assist me in my work here&mdash;one of my trombone-players on whom I
- can rely. I&mdash;I really do not care for you to be out here like this.
- The strain is too much for you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Rosie&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; she objected again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie is all right,&rdquo; he reassured her. &ldquo;I will answer for Rosie&rsquo;s safety
- with my life; and when I say that, I mean it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will do as you wish,&rdquo; said Pauline at length.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let me see you into the house,&rdquo; he murmured, enchanted.
- </p>
- <p>
- He unlocked his front-door for her, and called out softly, &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is that you, Carlos?&rdquo; said a voice in the darkness at the top of the
- stairs.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Here is Miss Dartmouth come to keep you company. Do not
- use a light&mdash;at least, use as little light as possible, until you
- hear some music.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hear some music? What music?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind what music. If you should hear some music you will know that
- you are at liberty to turn on all the lights you like. Miss Dartmouth will
- tell you why I want darkness at present. Here are the stairs, Miss
- Dartmouth. Cling to the rail. <i>Au revoir.</i>&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; faltered Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>Au revoir</i>, I said,&rdquo; he whispered insistently.
- </p>
- <p>
- Before leaving the house he rushed into the kitchen, found a long
- clothes-line, of which he seemed to know exactly the whereabouts, and
- appropriated it.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next minute he was tying the handle of Ilam&rsquo;s front-door firmly to the
- railing, so that it would be impossible to open the door from the inside.
- He secured in the same manner the side-door and also the gate in the wall
- of the kitchen yard. He then fixed pieces of rope under windows, in such a
- manner that a person endeavouring to leap from a window to the ground
- would almost certainly be caught in the rope, and break a leg or an arm,
- if not a neck or so.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cheerful for them!&rdquo; he murmured maliciously. &ldquo;I only hope it won&rsquo;t be
- Miss Rosie who tries to make her exit by the window. I have answered for
- her. However, I must take the risks.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He glanced finally round the house, throwing away some short unused pieces
- of rope, but keeping two long pieces. He surveyed the house with
- satisfaction.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think I can safely leave it for five minutes or so now,&rdquo; he said to
- himself; and he shut his penknife with a vicious snap and put it in his
- pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he ran off at a great speed in the direction of the Central Way. At
- the southern end of the Central Way, nearly opposite to the general
- offices of the City, was an elegant building known as the band-house. Here
- dwelt the majority of the members of Carpentaria&rsquo;s world-renowned
- orchestra. Some members, being married to women instead of married to
- their art, had permission to possess domestic hearths in London and the
- suburbs, but these were few. The edifice was a very large one, as it. had
- need to be. A peculiar feature of it was the rehearsal-room on the top
- floor, constructed, like the finest flats in New York, in such a manner as
- to be absolutely sound-proof.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria rang the electric bell at the portals of the band-house, and
- the portals were presently opened by a sleepy person whose duty it was to
- admit bandsmen returning after late leave.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look &rsquo;ere,&rdquo; said the porter, &ldquo;this is a bit thick, this is. Do you
- know as the hour is exactly&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hold your tongue, you fool!&rdquo; Carpentaria stopped him briefly, &ldquo;and go and
- bring Mr. Bruno to me at once; it&rsquo;s very important. Let&rsquo;s have some
- light.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I beg pardon, sir,&rdquo; said the porter, astounded by this nocturnal
- apparition of the autocrat of the band. &ldquo;Mr. Bruno is asleep, sir. He had
- two whiskies to make him sleep, and went to bed afore midnight, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know he&rsquo;s asleep. Do you suppose I thought he was standing on his head
- waiting for the dawn? Go and waken him&mdash;and quicker than that! Here,
- I&rsquo;ll go with you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The two men went upstairs together, and Mr. Bruno, principal
- trombone-player of the band, was soon sitting up in bed, awaking to the
- presence of his chief.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Bruno, my lad,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;give me your trombone.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My trombone, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Mendelssohn once remarked that the trombone was
- an instrument too sacred to use often, but I think the supreme occasion
- has arrived for me to use it to-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s there, in the corner, sir,&rdquo; said Bruno, wondering vaguely what was
- this latest caprice of Carpentaria&rsquo;s.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria rushed to the thing, took it out of its case, and put it to
- his mouth.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;H&rsquo;m!&rdquo; he murmured, after he had sounded a note gently. &ldquo;I can do it, I
- think. Listen, Bruno! The occasion is not only supreme; it is unique. You
- are to rouse all the men; you are to dress, and take your instruments; and
- you are to go out quietly and surround the bungalow of our honoured
- President, Mr. Josephus Ilam. You are to make no noise of any kind until
- you hear me give the first bars of a tune, either with my mouth or with
- this instrument. You are then to join in that tune.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What tune, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will hear.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where shall you be, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will see. Get up, now; don&rsquo;t lose a second.&rdquo; Carpentaria was off
- again. He returned to Ilam&rsquo;s house, and climbed to the balcony of the
- window of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom. It was fortunate that he had preserved the
- rope, for he could not have climbed with the trombone in his arms. His
- method was to leave the trombone on the ground, the rope tied to it; he
- kept the other end of the rope in his hand, and drew the trombone after
- him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then it was that he sounded on the trombone the terrible phrase of
- Beethoven&rsquo;s, which put a period to the struggle between Ilam and Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- He felt for the handle of the French window, and, finding the window
- fastened on the inside, adopted the simple device of leaning with his full
- weight against the window-frame. The whole thing gave way, and through a
- crashing of glass, a splintering of wood, and the tearing of curtains he
- backed into the room, the trombone held precariously in one hand and his
- revolver very firmly in the other.
- </p>
- <p>
- The scene that confronted him was sufficiently surprising. Amid the
- extraordinary disorder of the chamber he found its three occupants all
- stretched on the floor. The old woman was apparently oblivious, but the
- two men, releasing each other, gazed at him for all the world like two
- schoolboys caught in an act contrary to discipline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did I startle you? I hope so,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when he had found his
- bearings. &ldquo;I meant to.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam was the first to rise.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You with the red hair!&rdquo; cried Jetsam. &ldquo;You are trying to save my life
- again!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind my red hair,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, ruffled. &ldquo;I am not trying to
- save anybody&rsquo;s life. I&rsquo;m here on a mission of inquiry. No one leaves this
- room until I have had a full explanation of everything. I have stood just
- about as much as I can stand of the mystery that has been hanging over
- this City for a week past. Ilam, let me beg you to get up and take a seat
- over there in that corner. Thanks!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He relinquished the musical instrument as Ilam clumsily resumed his feet
- and obeyed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As for you, Mr. Jetsam,&rdquo; continued Carpentaria, &ldquo;you know, from accounts
- which have reached me, the precise moral effect of a loaded revolver such
- as I am now pointing at you. Go into the other corner.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;You can fire if you like. As a matter of fact,
- you daren&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You propose to leave the room and defy me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I propose to leave the room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- He took the trombone and blew on it loudly a few notes which neither
- Jetsam nor Ilam immediately recognized. But the musicians, who had by this
- time surrounded the house, recognized them. And at once there entered by
- the smashed window the solemn and moving strains of the Dead March in
- &ldquo;Saul.&rdquo; The house seemed to be ringed in a circle of awful melody.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam shuddered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now kindly stay where you are,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Jetsam stayed where he was, at the foot of the bed, his back to Mrs.
- Ilam&rsquo;s prone figure.
- </p>
- <p>
- The playing continued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What foolery is this?&rdquo; demanded Ilam slowly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is part of a larger piece of foolery that has rescued you, Ilam,&rdquo;
- Carpentaria replied, and he was crossing the room to approach Ilam, when
- he saw something in the looking-glass over the mantelpiece, and he started
- back.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam, the paralytic, roused in some strange way, either by the
- violence of the scenes at which she had assisted, or by the inexplicable
- influence of the music, was almost erect in her bed, and her trembling
- parchment hands had seized the revolver which Rosie had left on the floor,
- and she was endeavouring to point it between Jetsam&rsquo;s shoulders. The other
- two men turned and saw the fatal and appalling movement of the aged
- creature, who was evidently in the grip of some tremendously powerful
- instinct&mdash;the kind of instinct that only dies with death.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria alone retained his self-possession. With a swift and yet
- gentle movement he disarmed the terrible old woman, and she sank back,
- with streaming eyes, helpless and moveless as before. The incident was
- over in a few seconds.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And now,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;I will hear your story, Mr. Jetsam. But
- first, we must lift this bed back to its proper-position.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; replied Jetsam, trembling in spite of himself. &ldquo;You shall
- hear my story.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The music ceased.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0029" id="link2HCH0029"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIX&mdash;Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s Recital
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">W</span>e will go
- downstairs,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when a certain amount of order had been
- restored to the room. &ldquo;We shall be more at ease there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; cried Jetsam, and there was a note of passion in his voice. &ldquo;This
- old woman shall hear my tale. I tell it in her presence, or I tell it not
- at all.&rdquo; Carpentaria gazed at Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s eyes, which made no response.
- Her bed was now replaced in its proper position, and those strange burning
- eyes perused their old spot in the ceiling. After the brief and terrible
- return of activity to that stricken body, it seemed to have sunk back into
- a condition of helplessness more absolute even than before. The eyes
- burned, but not quite with their former disturbing brilliance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam was already seated, apparently half-comatose. The other two men each
- seized a chair. And then there was a timid but insistent knocking.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that?&rdquo; demanded Carpentaria of Jetsam. &ldquo;You ought to know; you
- have been master here for some hours.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is Miss Rosie, I imagine,&rdquo; Jetsam answered. &ldquo;Your singular music has
- startled her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria walked rapidly to the door, unlocked it, and opened it. Rosie
- it indeed was who stood there.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, my dear young lady,&rdquo; he said lightly, without giving her an
- opportunity even to express her astonishment. &ldquo;I would like you to go to
- your sister, who is in my house over the way. But I fear you cannot open
- any of the doors. Won&rsquo;t you retire and rest a little, after your
- complicated labours?&rdquo; He smiled a little grimly. &ldquo;Everything is all right
- here, and should your aged relative need your ministrations you may rely
- on me to call you. In the meantime, your cousin and I, and your particular
- friend Mr. Jetsam, must have a chat on business matters.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He bowed, covering the aperture of the door with his body so that Rosie
- could not see inside the room. As for Rosie, she hesitated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I entreat you,&rdquo; he insisted, &ldquo;go and rest, and don&rsquo;t have anything more
- to do with boats; you might drown yourself. And believe me when I say that
- nothing further will be done in secret. The moment I am free I will
- endeavour to free the doors.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie moved reluctantly away down the landing. She had not spoken a word.
- Carpentaria closed the portal softly and retired to his chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have my attention,&rdquo; he remarked significantly to Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Jetsam, after a moment&rsquo;s pause. &ldquo;It goes back a very long
- time, this affair does, Mr. Carpentaria. It certainly began before you
- were born&mdash;down at Torquay. Torquay, according to what they tell me,
- was not the place then that it is now, not by a considerable distance; but
- it was fashionable. It had got a bit of a name as a good place to go and
- get fat in. Perhaps that was why a certain soda-water manufacturer went
- there to spend a year or so. He was a very wealthy man, and he rented a
- villa there. It&rsquo;s one of those villas on the top of the hill between Union
- Street and the sea, and it still exists. His age was about fifty, and he
- was supposed to be worth half a million or so&mdash;all made out of gas
- and splutter, you see. Being supposed to be worth half a million or so, of
- course he soon had the entire population of Torquay knocking at his door
- and throwing cards into his card-basket. He made a wide circle of friends
- in rather less than no time, and being a simple, decent creature, though
- not faultless, he was pretty well pleased with himself. Now among the
- friends that he made was a certain widow, age uncertain&mdash;but in the
- neighbourhood of thirty, and her name was Kilmarnock.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At this time Mr. Jetsam stood up, and bending over Mrs. Ham&rsquo;s bed with his
- smile so ruthlessly cruel, he repeated, staring at the invalid:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Her name was Kilmarnock, wasn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam made no sign. Mr. Jetsam resumed his chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A pretty woman, I believe she was, with magnificent black eyes; the most
- wonderful eyes in the West Country, people said,&rdquo; Mr. Jetsam proceeded.
- &ldquo;Husband dead some little time. Anyhow, she had gone out of mourning, and
- her dresses were the amazement of the town. They&rsquo;d look pretty queer
- nowadays, I reckon, because that was before 1860. However, her dresses
- have got nothing to do with it, especially as the soda-water manufacturer&mdash;have
- I happened to mention that his name was Ilam?&mdash;especially as Mr. Ilam
- couldn&rsquo;t see them very well. Mr. Ilam was beginning to suffer from a
- cataract; both his eyes were affected, and the disease was making progress
- rapidly. You must remember that oculists didn&rsquo;t know as much about
- cataract then as they do now. Well, Mr. Ilam was himself a widower&mdash;a
- widower with one child, aged three years. He had been a widower for two
- years when he first met Mrs. Kilmarnock. He liked Mrs. Kilmarnock. She
- seemed to have in her the makings of a good nurse, and one of the things
- that Mr. Ilam wanted was a faithful, loving nurse. He was certainly in an
- awkward predicament. He also wanted a mother for his child; and Mrs.
- Kilmarnock took a tremendous fancy to the child&mdash;a simply tremendous
- fancy. He was a man who talked pretty freely and openly, Mr. Ilam was, and
- he made no secret of the fact that, though he preferred to marry a widow,
- he would never permit himself to marry a widow who had children of her
- own. And one day he said to Mrs. Kilmarnock that, since he had never heard
- her mention a child, he assumed that she had no children.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She replied that his assumption was correct, and that she continually
- regretted being childless, as she adored children, and felt very severely
- the need of something to give her a real interest in life. A month later
- Mr. Ilam asked Mrs. Kilmarnock to marry him, and she consented like a
- bird. Three months later they were married. Everybody said kind things;
- for you must know that Mrs. Kilmarnock was not penniless herself. Oh, no!
- She lived in very good style in Torquay, and gave dinners that Torquay
- liked. And Torquay is a good judge of dinners. Her husband had been a
- Scottish writer to the Signet, she said. So the marriage was celebrated
- amid universal plaudits, and there was quite three-quarters of a column
- about it in the <i>Western Morning News</i>.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At this juncture Carpentaria ventured to interrupt the speaker.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You appear,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;to be remarkably well informed about matters which
- occurred long before you were of an age to take an intelligent interest in
- them. At the time of this marriage you surely were not in the habit of
- reading newspapers?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was not,&rdquo; answered Jetsam drily. &ldquo;I had attained the mature age of
- three years. If I am well informed it is because I have taken the trouble
- to inform myself. You see, I was interested, and I have spared no pains
- during this last year or two to acquire all the circumstantial details of
- the case.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I perceive,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;But how were you interested?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will understand presently,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;To continue. This Mrs.
- Kilmarnock, whom we must now call Mrs. Ilam, used, both before and after
- her second marriage, to pay visits to the town of Teignmouth, and these
- visits were, not to put too fine a point on it, of an extremely discreet
- nature; they were, in fact, strictly secret. Mrs. Ilam fell into the habit
- of telling her husband that she was going to Exeter to shop, but instead
- of going to Exeter she went only as far as Teignmouth. She was always
- dressed very simply indeed for these Teignmouth visits. She used to walk
- through the town from the station, and, having taken the ferry across the
- Teign, she walked up the right bank of the river till she came to a
- cottage that stood by itself in the marshy land thereabouts. At the
- cottage an old man and woman and a little boy would meet her. And the
- strange thing was that the old man spoke French; he could not speak
- English. You may possibly not be aware that onion-boats from the coast of
- Brittany are constantly arriving at the smaller Devonshire ports, such as
- Torquay and Teignmouth. The old man was a Breton peasant, with all the
- characteristics of a Breton peasant, who had arrived at Teignmouth once in
- an onion-boat, and forgotten to go back again because he fell in love with
- an Englishwoman&mdash;a Devonshire lass with a soft drawling accent. So
- Mrs. Ilam used to talk to the Breton peasant in French, and to his wife in
- English, and to the boy in baby language. She would cover the boy with
- kisses; she would call him by pet names, and she saw him at least once a
- week.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He was her son?&rdquo; Carpentaria put in interrogatively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have naturally guessed it,&rdquo; Jetsam responded. &ldquo;He was her son.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But if she was really a widow, and this was really her son, why did she&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; cried Jetsam, &ldquo;I think she was really a widow, and there is not the
- slightest shadow of doubt that this was really her son. Perhaps she kept
- him a secret from Torquay because she felt that he might prove an obstacle
- to the achievement of her desires in Torquay. Anyhow, she loved him
- passionately. Her son was, beyond question, the greatest passion of her
- life.&rdquo; He turned abruptly again to the old woman, &ldquo;Wasn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo; he
- demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the aged creature&rsquo;s burning eyes were filled with tears.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think perhaps it might be as well to leave Mrs. Ilam out of the
- conversation,&rdquo; suggested Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Impossible to leave her out of the conversation,&rdquo; said Jetsam quickly,
- &ldquo;because the conversation is almost exclusively about her. However, I will
- not trouble her any more for confirmation of what I say. Well, for nearly
- a year after her second marriage these clandestine visits of Mrs. Ilam to
- the cottage on the banks of the Teign continued with the most perfect
- regularity, and then something extremely remarkable happened.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What was that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;First, I must tell you that soon after the marriage Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s cataract
- got rapidly worse. In six months he could only distinguish objects
- vaguely. He could not read anything except shop signs. In Mrs. Ilam he
- found an admirable nurse and companion. Except for her shopping excursions
- to Exeter she never left his side. She was a model wife, and all Torquay
- admitted the fact. Even when Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s impaired vision rendered him
- captious, querulous, and indeed unbearable, she remained sweetness itself;
- and Mr. Ilam would not admit anyone but her to his presence. He even took
- a dislike to his child, his only son, and the infant was left in the
- charge of servants and governesses, except that Mrs. Ilam saw him as
- frequently as she could.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But this is not very remarkable,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;such things are
- constantly happening.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am coming to the remarkable part,&rdquo; replied Jetsam, with a certain
- solemnity of manner. &ldquo;One day the old Breton fisherman told Mrs. Ilam that
- a relative had left him property in his native district, and that he had
- persuaded his wife to go with him to France so that they might end their
- days there. Mrs. Ilam was extremely disturbed by this piece of news,
- because she did not know what to do with the boy. She asked the Frenchman
- how soon he proposed to leave, and the Frenchman said in about three
- weeks. She left and said she would come back again in a few days. It is at
- this point that the remarkable begins. Within a week all Torquay was made
- aware that Mr. Ilam, at the solicitation of his wife, had decided to go to
- Paris to consult a great specialist there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see,&rdquo; breathed Carpentaria, while Ilam&rsquo;s face wore at length a look of
- interest.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I doubt if you do see,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;You think that Mrs. Ilam was
- arranging to go to Paris in order to be nearer her son. Well, she was, but
- not at all in the way you imagine. They departed from Torquay almost at
- once, and in a somewhat remarkable manner, for Mrs. Ilam dismissed every
- servant, even her own maid and Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s man, and the child&rsquo;s nurse&mdash;all
- were dismissed in Torquay itself&mdash;and Mr. Ilam and his wife and child
- left Torquay railway station entirely unaided, except by porters and the
- domestics of a hotel. Mrs. Ilam would certainly have all her work cut out
- to conduct the expedition, for you must remember that at this period Mr.
- Ilam was practically blind. Well, they had to change at Exeter and catch
- the Plymouth express, and at Exeter the old French peasant was waiting on
- the platform, evidently by arrangement, and he held Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s own little
- boy by the hand, and Mrs. Ilam and the peasant had a long talk by
- themselves, and then the express came in, and the Ilams got into it, and
- the express started off again for London, and the French peasant was left
- standing on the platform holding the little boy by the hand. You see?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria bluntly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; proceeded Jetsam. &ldquo;It was not the same little boy that the peasant
- held by the hand. Mrs. Ilam had taken her own child with her, and left
- behind her step-child.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great heavens!&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria. &ldquo;Exactly,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;Only the
- heavens didn&rsquo;t happen to interfere. This was no common case of
- substitution at birth, it was a monstrously ingenious change which Mrs.
- Ilam, out of her passionate love for her own son, had planned and carried
- out in a manner suggested to her by the facts of the situation. Consider.
- The two boys were the same age&mdash;about three years&mdash;and they were
- dressed alike, Mrs. Ilam had seen to that. Mr. Ilam is nearly blind,
- certainly he could not distinguish one child of three from another child
- of three, even if they had been dressed differently. Moreover, Mr. Ilam is
- not interested in the child. He is wrapped up in his own complaint, a
- ferocious egotist, like most sufferers. Probably the child sleeps during
- the journey to London&mdash;probably Mrs. Ilam gives him something to make
- him sleep. The party arrive at Paddington, and are met by a new set of
- servants whom Mrs. Ilam has engaged. She left Torquay with a child; she
- arrived at Paddington with a child. Who, except the old French peasant, is
- to know that there has been a change <i>en route?</i> The new child is
- kept entirely out of Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s presence. He is taught his new name; he is
- taught to forget his past on the banks of the Teign; and he readily
- succeeds in doing so. His new nurse is suitably discreet. During their
- brief stay in London the Ilams stop at a hotel. They do not visit friends,
- on the plea of Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s complaint. Then they leave London for Paris.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The thing was perfect,&rdquo; observed Carpentaria, astounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was fatally perfect,&rdquo; Jetsam agreed. &ldquo;Even had Mr. Ilam been cured at
- once, the danger would have been but slight, because he had never seen his
- own child clearly. However, Mr. Ilam was not cured at once, for it
- happened that the famous oculist whom they meant to consult died on the
- very day they entered Paris. It was seven years before Mr. Ilam got
- himself cured; but in the end he was cured almost completely. The boy was
- then aged ten years. What possible chance was there of a discovery of the
- fraud? Even had Mr. Ilam ever seen his child clearly, what resemblance is
- there between an infant of three and a boy of ten? None; none whatever.
- Mrs. Ilam had triumphed: she had deposed the authentic heir of Mr. Ilam
- and had put her own son on the throne in his stead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And the other boy?&rdquo; Carpentaria queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam paused, his eyes bent downwards.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you know the Breton peasantry?&rdquo; he demanded suddenly, at length.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not in the least,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, well; that doesn&rsquo;t matter! When you hear the sequel of the story you
- will be able to imagine what a Breton peasant is capable of. He is the
- equal of the Norman peasant, and no French novelist has ever yet dared to
- write down the actual! truth about the Norman peasant. I told you that
- Mrs. Ilam and the old Frenchman had a chat on Exeter platform. She told
- him that she was giving him a new charge, preferring to take the other boy
- herself. It was arranged that the new charge should accompany the Breton
- to France, and live with him as his foster-child. Terms were fixed up, no
- doubt to the entire satisfaction of the peasant. Then Mrs. Ilam ventured
- to play her great card. She informed the Frenchman that his new charge was
- a very delicate plant, frequently ill, and not apparently destined to long
- life. This, by the way, was grossly untrue. &lsquo;Of course, if he were to
- die,&rsquo; she said in effect to the peasant, &lsquo;you would lose the income which
- I shall pay to you for looking after the child, and to compensate you for
- that loss I will promise to give you, if he dies, the sum of five hundred
- pounds.&rsquo; I expect she managed to put a peculiar and sinister emphasis on
- these words. Anyhow, the Frenchman understood. That was just the kind of
- thing that you might rely on a Breton peasant to comprehend without too
- much explanation. Five hundred pounds is five hundred pounds; it is over
- twelve thousand francs, and twelve thousand francs to a Breton peasant is
- worth anything&mdash;it is worth eternal torture.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And so, in due course, Mrs. Ilam received news of her stepson&rsquo;s death?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In due course she received news of her stepson&rsquo;s death,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;It
- took a considerable time&mdash;six years, in fact&mdash;&lsquo;but it was
- accompanied by legal proof, and when she received it Mrs. Ilam must have
- been as happy as the day is long, especially as her own boy was growing up
- strong and well, and Mr. Ilam had taken quite a fancy to him. So all trace
- of the crime&mdash;would you call it a crime, or only a pleasing
- manifestation of a mother&rsquo;s love?&mdash;all trace of the crime was lost,
- for the French peasant died; the English wife of the French peasant had
- expired a long time before.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And Jetsam paused again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am accepting all that you say as gospel,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Because
- somehow it impresses me vividly as being true.&rdquo; Here he looked at Josephus
- Ilam, who avoided his glance. &ldquo;But how does this matter concern yourself,
- and in what way did you come upon the traces of the crime?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you,&rdquo; Jetsam recommenced. &ldquo;It was like this. The boy was not
- dead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not dead?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. He had run away. He had had a pretty hard time before the death of
- the peasant&rsquo;s wife. Afterwards, his existence was a trifle more exciting
- than he could bear. He was starved and he was beaten. But that was not
- all. On board fishing boats he was forced to accept dangers and risks of
- such a nature that the continuance of his life was nothing less than a
- daily miracle. So he ran away. He was aged nine, and he had a perfect
- knowledge of two languages as his stock-in-trade.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But the legal proof of his death?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing simpler. The foster-father was a great friend of the village
- schoolmaster, and the schoolmaster, as you may know, is always the
- secretary of the mayor in a French village. He it is who makes out all
- certificates, and transacts every bit of the routine business of
- population-recording. The foster-father suggested to the schoolmaster that
- in exchange for a certificate of the boy&rsquo;s death, the schoolmaster should
- receive a note of the Bank of France for a thousand francs. This was more
- than half a year&rsquo;s salary to the schoolmaster, and the result was that the
- foster-father got the certificate. No fear of discovery! None knew of the
- issue of the certificate except these two men. And the lady for whose
- benefit the certificate was issued would be extremely unlikely to visit a
- remote French fishing village.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And what occurred to the boy?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The principal thing that occurred to the boy is that he is now sitting
- here and telling you his story,&rdquo; said Jetsam, calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I guessed it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, with equal calmness, &ldquo;as soon as you
- mentioned that the boy was not dead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Josephus Ilam maintained a stony silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knocked about for nine or ten years,&rdquo; continued Jetsam, &ldquo;both in
- England and France, chiefly fishing. Then I suddenly became respectable. I
- got a place in a house-agency in Cannes, chiefly on the strength of my
- knowledge of French and English. Of course, that only lasted during the
- winter season. But my employer had a similar agency in Ostend during the
- summer. It was in Ostend that I became gay. I joined a theatrical troupe.
- I travelled a great deal. I did everything except make money. And after
- ten years of that I settled down again as a house-agency clerk. I really
- was rather good at that, much better than as a music-hall performer with
- revolvers, for instance. And in various &lsquo;pleasure cities&rsquo; of Europe I
- acted as a clerk for over twenty years. Think of it&mdash;twenty years!
- And me growing older and narrower and more gloomy every year in the
- service of &lsquo;pleasure.&rsquo; I never saved any money to speak of, even though I
- remained single, perhaps because I remained single. And then one day,
- finding myself at St. Malo, I thought I would go and have a look at that
- fishing village which I had fled from over thirty years before. My
- delightful foster-father was, of course, dead; so was the schoolmaster;
- but one or two people remembered me, and among them was an old woman who
- had been a charming young girl when I left. It appeared that my old
- foster-father had fallen deeply in love with her in a senile way, and at
- her parents&rsquo; instigation she had married him for his money. He had
- confided to her, once when he thought he was dying, the secret of the
- substitution on Exeter platform. And now she told me. She had always liked
- me. You should have heard her pronounce &lsquo;Exeter.&rsquo; It was the funniest
- thing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam laughed hardly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So that was how you got on the track?&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. I then pursued my inquiries in Torquay, and I found my old nurse.
- She told me that the real child of Mr. Ilam had a large crimson birthmark
- on the calf of his left leg. I had that mark. She also told me that there
- existed a photograph&mdash;one of the old daguerreotypes&mdash;of me as a
- child in the arms of my step-mother, my father standing close by, and that
- the mark on my leg was most clearly visible on this photograph. And that
- was the only real solid piece of information that I obtained, except that
- the photograph used to be kept in an old lacquered box. I had an instinct
- that the photograph had been preserved. And it was preserved&mdash;until
- to-night! I relied on the photograph. I could dimly recollect Torquay and
- Exeter platforms, but of what use would my assertions be without some
- proof, some tangible proof? When I thought of my wasted and spoiled and
- miserable life&mdash;and of what it might have been had I not been hated
- by a woman, I was filled with hatred and with&mdash;with such sorrow as
- you can&rsquo;t understand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A sob escaped from Mr. Jetsam, and Carpentaria got up and took his hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is not too late for justice,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That woman has always hated me,&rdquo; Jetsam murmured. &ldquo;And even to-night her
- hatred still burned so fiercely that she tried to kill me. Even if she
- could speak, would she admit the truth? And she cannot speak.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think I can cause her to communicate with us,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;You
- will see in a moment.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0030" id="link2HCH0030"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXX&mdash;The Words of Mrs. Ilam
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria bent
- over the old woman, as if to search &lsquo;her eyes and find some kindness
- there.
- </p>
- <p>
- And it seemed to him, indeed, that the character of her gaze had somewhat
- changed, though those brilliant orbs, famous in Torquay fifty years ago
- for their splendour, showed no trace of humidity.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria himself was moved. It would have been impossible for anyone,
- least of all an artist of romantic instincts such as he, to listen to
- Jetsam&rsquo;s recital without emotion. And now, when the narrative was
- finished, Jetsam sat silent and preoccupied, the figure of grief and of
- failure. One felt, in observing him, the immense tragedy of his life&mdash;a
- life which would not have been a tragedy, but merely a little slice of the
- commonplace, had he not by chance learned the sinister secret of his
- origin. One understood how the discovery of that secret had completely
- changed his view of existence, how it had filled him with ideas of frantic
- hope, frantic revenge, and frantic regret at the long drab irrecoverable
- years which the past had swallowed up. One penetrated, as it were, into
- his brain, and watched how he was continually contrasting what his career
- actually had been with what it might have been&mdash;with what it would
- have been but for the ruthless action of the woman on the bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then there was the burly, smitten figure of Josephus Ilam, too,
- equally pathetic in its way. For love of this strong, heavy man, who once
- had been a little boy in a sailor suit standing on Exeter platform, the
- woman on the bed had committed a crime which was certainly worse than
- murder. She had made one life and she had marred another. And now she
- herself was stricken, withered, about to appear before the ultimate
- tribunal. It was incontrovertible that, if she had sinned, she had sinned
- magnificently, in the grand manner.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria glanced at the two men, and then back again at the aged
- mother.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I understand, Mrs. Ilam,&rdquo; he began in a voice strangely soft and
- persuasive, &ldquo;that you can indicate &lsquo;yes&rsquo; or &lsquo;no&rsquo; by a slight movement.
- Miss Dartmouth told me the other day. Is this so? I entreat you to answer
- me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With a sudden jerk Josephus Ilam rose from his chair and rushed to the
- bedside.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Answer him, mother.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mother and son exchanged a long gaze, and then Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s eyelids
- blinked. It was the affirmative sign.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria simply. &ldquo;Now it seems to me, if you are not
- too tired, that we can quite easily carry on a conversation upon this
- basis. It will be slow, but it will be none the less sure. By successively
- choosing letters out of the alphabet you can make up words, and so form
- sentences. You can choose the letters thus: I will run through the
- alphabet, and when I come to the letter you want, you will blink. Do you
- comprehend my scheme?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And are you willing to try it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a considerable pause, but in the end the eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very good,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Now, quite probably you will want to begin
- with the letter &lsquo;I,&rsquo; eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excellent! Your first word is &lsquo;I.&rsquo; Let us go to the next word. A, B, C, D&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At &ldquo;D&rdquo; the eyes blinked again.
- </p>
- <p>
- With infinite patience, Carpentaria continued to help Mrs. Ilam to express
- herself, and though that mouth was incapable of speech and those hands
- would never write again, the woman transmitted her first thought to the
- outer world, and it went thus:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>I do not regret</i>.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was something terrible, something majestic, in that unrepentant
- enunciation. It illustrated the remorseless character of the aged
- creature, whose spirit nothing apparently could conquer. Josephus Ilam
- moved away from the bed and hovered uncertainly between the dressing-table
- and the window. Jetsam got up from his chair and, taking Ilam&rsquo;s place,
- examined the features of the woman who had ruined his life and cheated him
- out of all that was his. And even Jetsam could not forbear an admiring
- exclamation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are tremendous,&rdquo; he murmured. &ldquo;I could almost like you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria waved him aside.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Has Mr. Jetsam told us the truth, dear madam?&rdquo; he interrogated her.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the eyes blinked. It was as though they blinked joyously, defiantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you agree that restitution should be made, so far as restitution is
- possible?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was no movement of the eyelids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You object to restitution, even now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Still there was no movement of the eyelids. But Josephus Ilam&rsquo;s legs could
- be heard shuffling on the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wish to speak, then? A, B, C, D&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria went on to &ldquo;W&rdquo; before Mrs. Ilam signified that the sentence
- was to commence. The words ran:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why named Jetsam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The woman&rsquo;s mind was evidently exploring, in a sort of indifferent
- curiosity, the side-issues, the minor scenes, of the terrific drama which
- she had started and of which she now witnessed the climax.
- </p>
- <p>
- She appeared to have no sense at all of her own responsibility.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was a name I gave myself when I first found out who I was,&rdquo; said
- Jetsam bitterly. &ldquo;Something chucked overboard and forgotten, you see.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A slight smile seemed to illuminate the woman&rsquo;s face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you agree that restitution should be made?&rdquo; Carpentaria repeated
- patiently.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes of the paralytic made no sign until Carpentaria began again to go
- through the alphabet. Then, letter by letter, the message came:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If my son wishes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother,&rdquo; Ilam murmured, averting his face from the bed, &ldquo;of course I
- wish. I nearly killed him myself the other day. You thought I had been
- dreaming&mdash;till you saw him yourself, and, and&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He stopped; he broke down.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then Mrs. Ilam proceeded, with Carpentaria&rsquo;s help:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My son must tell me about that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; Jetsam put in authoritatively; &ldquo;I will tell you about that. Ilam&mdash;or
- rather I should say Kilmarnock&mdash;is in no condition to make speeches.
- When I first came to this place to begin my struggle for what was mine, I
- really had not got much of a plan in my head. It was so difficult to make
- a start. It may seem to you quite a simple thing&rdquo;&mdash;he turned away
- from Mrs. Ilam and addressed Carpentaria&mdash;&ldquo;to go up to a person and
- say to him, &lsquo;Look here, you are standing in my shoes, and your mother has
- committed an act foully criminal!&rsquo; But in practice it isn&rsquo;t quite as easy
- as it seems. You want a gigantic nerve to make a statement like that as if
- you meant it&mdash;although you do mean it. It sounds rather wild, you
- see. And then I met my supplanter rather before I was ready for him. The
- truth is that he came into that little place where I was hiding in just
- the same way as you came in, Mr. Carpentaria. He caught me like you did&mdash;a
- trespasser; and, of course, I was at a disadvantage. He spoke to me very
- roughly, and then angered me&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How could I know who you were?&rdquo; demanded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly. You couldn&rsquo;t know. But the effect on me was the same. Put
- yourself in my place, Mr. Kilmarnock. I had been cheated out of my whole
- career. You were in unlawful possession of it; and on the top of that you
- came along, and behaved to me as if I were a dog. Well&rdquo;&mdash;here Jetsam
- addressed his stepmother again&mdash;&ldquo;I told him who I was, and pretty
- quick too, and I could see from his manner that he knew the history of our
- origin, and the substitution on Exeter platform.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knew,&rdquo; Ilam admitted with a certain sadness. &ldquo;My mother had once told
- me&mdash;I came across traces of a mystery, and she told me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you did nothing?&rdquo; queried Jetsam. &ldquo;It was not on your conscience?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must recollect that we had the legal proof of your death. What was
- there to be done? I could not have made restitution to the dead, even had
- my mother permitted.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But when I told you who I was,&rdquo; rejoined Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;unless I am much
- mistaken, you believed what I said.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did,&rdquo; Ilam agreed. &ldquo;Moreover, you bear a most distinct likeness to a
- portrait of my stepfather, painted when he was about your age.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You believed me, and your answer was to try to kill me?&rdquo; Jetsam sneered.
- </p>
- <p>
- The two men, the son and the stepson, were now opposite to one another, on
- either side of the bed, while Carpentaria, intently listening, stood at
- the foot.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did not try to kill you,&rdquo; answered Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You pretty nearly succeeded,&rdquo; said Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought I had killed you,&rdquo; Ilam said gravely. &ldquo;But I had no intention
- of doing so. You said something very scathing about my mother&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I said nothing that was not justified.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You insulted my mother. I lost my temper. I hated you. We always hate
- those whom we have wronged. I struck you. You fell, and you must have
- knocked your head against the pile of planks lying in the enclosure; you
- never moved. I examined you. I could have sworn you were dead&mdash;I was
- afraid&mdash;I thought of inquests. I knew the whole truth would come out.
- I had not meant to kill. So I took you and buried you temporarily, while I
- considered what I should do afterwards. I went back to the house and told
- my mother. She would not believe me. She thought I had been dreaming. I do
- frequently have bad nightmares. And certain things that occurred
- afterwards made even me suspect that after all I had been dreaming. It was
- not until you came again that I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And even your mother believed then, eh?&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;Your mother
- believed too suddenly. She saw me and she believed! And the result was
- paralysis! I ought to have broken it to her more gently. That would have
- been perhaps better for all of us&mdash;perhaps better!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause. And Jetsam added, as if communing with himself:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How she hated me! How she hates me still! even to-night, if some one had
- not interfered in time&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He could not get away from the amazing tenacity of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s purpose.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wish to speak?&rdquo; said Carpentaria, who had been observing the woman&rsquo;s
- eyes; the eyes were blinking nervously.
- </p>
- <p>
- He began the alphabet again, and her message ran thus:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not hate him; but I love my son. To-night I thought Josephus was in
- danger. That was why&mdash;revolver. I always acted for my son. I love
- him!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- These sentiments, so unmistakably clear in their significance, took some
- time to transmit. Mrs. Ilam appeared to be exhausted. But after a few
- moments she continued:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is Rosie? She helped him. I want to know why.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The men exchanged glances.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did she help you?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked of Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Better ask her!&rdquo; replied Jetsam curtly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria did not hesitate an instant. He went to the door, opened it,
- and called Rosie, and his voice resounded through the well of the
- staircase and the empty rooms. And then Rosie came from; downstairs, like
- an apparition. She had been crying.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam wants you to explain why you have been helping Mr. Jetsam,&rdquo;
- said Carpentaria, as she entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Helping him in what?&rdquo; Rosie parleyed timidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In his plans&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Against me,&rdquo; Ilam added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I only helped him in his plans for justice,&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I was sorry for him. Because there is something in his tone&mdash;because&mdash;oh!
- if he has told you all, are you not all sorry for him? When I think of
- what his life has been&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She stopped and burst into tears.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But my hair is grey,&rdquo; murmured Jetsam. &ldquo;How can you possibly be
- interested in me? What does it matter what happens to me? My life is
- over.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No it isn&rsquo;t!&rdquo; Rosie protested. &ldquo;It hasn&rsquo;t yet begun. It is just
- beginning. Mrs. Ilam and Cousin Ilam will be just to you. You will not
- bear them ill-will. The wrong is too old for that. You will forget it. You
- will forget all the past. Your hair may be grey, but I&rsquo;m sure your heart
- isn&rsquo;t. And your voice can influence even the Soudanese. The way that man
- obeyed you! The way he got the better of his brother just to please you!
- It seems strange, but I can understand it, because I have&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again she stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam went up to her and took her hand, which she seemed willingly to
- release to him. And he held it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How good you are!&rdquo; he said steadily. &ldquo;I am almost ashamed to have roused
- your sympathy so much.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The other two men watched.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what Pauline will say,&rdquo; Rosie stammered.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly there was the sound of music. The band, which everybody in the
- room had forgotten, had begun to play, apparently of its own accord. And
- the melody it had chosen was, &ldquo;See the Conquering Hero Comes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria rushed to the window. And then, as he drew the curtains, all
- noticed for the first time that the dawn had begun.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you making that noise for?&rdquo; he demanded angrily from the
- balcony. The music ceased abruptly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;re saluting the sun, sir,&rdquo; came the reply. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s morning. We imagined
- that possibly you had lost sight of the fact of our existence.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I had,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;However, you can go!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; cried another voice&mdash;a woman&rsquo;s, firm and
- imperious. &ldquo;Open the front door immediately and let me in. I insist.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said Carpentaria obediently. &ldquo;Kindly cut the
- rope which you will see tied to the handle. I will tell the Soudanese to
- admit you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he did so.
- </p>
- <p>
- And presently footsteps were heard on the stairs, and both Pauline and
- Juliette came in.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo; exclaimed Pauline. The sisters were clasped in each other&rsquo;s arms.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Forgive me, dearest!&rdquo; Rosie entreated; and they kissed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what have you&mdash;&mdash;?&rdquo; Pauline began, naturally mystified to
- the utmost.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;I fear you must wait for
- enlightenment until you can hear the whole story.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But the servants?&rdquo; cried Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I sent them to sleep in the staff-dormitories. I said you wished it,&rdquo;
- answered Rosie, smiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But why should I wish it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;When they asked me that, I told them I didn&rsquo;t
- know,&rdquo; she smiled again faintly. &ldquo;But Mr. Jetsam will explain it all to
- you. I&mdash;I tried to help him, and I have succeeded&mdash;I think.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- During this conversation, Juliette, with that direct candour which
- frequently distinguishes women in a crisis, had gone straight to Josephus
- Ilam and seized his hand. She was assuring herself that he was not hurt,
- when Mrs. Ilam once more gave a sign with her eyelids. Carpentaria resumed
- his position as helper.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was because I loved him,&rdquo; Carpentaria spelt out for her, &ldquo;that I tried
- to kill you&mdash;twice.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria fell back. Then he regained his self-command and, pushing his
- fingers through his red-gold hair, he asked monosyllabically, &ldquo;Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then he interpreted for her the answer to his own question.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You worried Josephus. He wanted to get rid of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Josephus disengaged his hands from those of Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother!&rdquo; he moaned sadly, and then added, &ldquo;She is mad!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But through Carpentaria Mrs. Ilam said:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am not mad. But my love has always been too strong.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you know of this, Ilam?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked his partner solemnly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course I did not,&rdquo; was the answer&mdash;&ldquo;not till it was too late.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then, why did you warn me up in the wheel?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I suspected. I suspected my poor mother was beginning to hate
- you, and I feared that&mdash;&mdash; I can&rsquo;t say any more.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, powerfully moved, walked out of the room, and it was Pauline
- who followed him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s eyes were now shut.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0031" id="link2HCH0031"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXI&mdash;Unison
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hat summer was
- astoundingly fine and warm, not to say tropical. But since it remains
- clearly in the memory of all, especially of the London water-companies, as
- a unique caprice on the part of the English climate, there is no need to
- go into details of its beauty. Towards the end of September the weather
- was exceedingly lovely. And of course the City prospered accordingly. It
- had been thought that the record &ldquo;gates&rdquo; during the great fêtes of August
- would make the September returns look meagre and feeble. Such, however,
- was not the case. In the first week of September over a million people
- paid fifty thousand pounds at the turnstiles to enjoy the charms of the
- City. And a water-famine in most other parts of London did not impair
- their pleasure, for Ilam and Carpentaria had sunk their own Artesian
- wells, and they had sunk them deep enough. Consequently, the glorious
- lawns of the Oriental Gardens and the turf of the cricket field kept a
- vivid green through that solitary summer.
- </p>
- <p>
- The consumption of multi-coloured liquids in the cafés dotted about the
- gardens exceeded the most sanguine estimates. It was stated that during
- one of Carpentaria&rsquo;s concerts twelve thousand pints of Pilsen beer (the
- genuine article, imported daily in casks from the Erste Pilsen
- Actien-Brauerei, Pilsen) were consumed within sight of the bandstand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This,&rdquo; said Carpentaria emphatically, &ldquo;is success. No
- composer-conductor,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;has ever before been able to say that he
- was listened to by an audience that put away Pilsen beer at the rate of a
- hundred pints a minute.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he was right. Success was written large all over the place. Success
- shone on the faces of the entire staff, and it shone particularly on the
- face of Carpentaria, though he tried to pretend that it was nothing to
- him. It was, naturally, a great deal to him. He was the lion of London,
- and he knew it. All his previous triumphs were nothing in comparison with
- this triumph, which was the triumph of his ideas as well as a personal
- triumph.
- </p>
- <p>
- Fifty amusement-mongers in London were asking themselves why they had not
- thought of building a City of Pleasure&mdash;and they were not getting
- satisfactory replies to the conundrum!
- </p>
- <p>
- One evening, towards the middle of September, after a more than usually
- effective concert, Carpentaria laid down his baton on the plush cushion
- provided for its repose, and bowed and bowed and bowed again, in response
- to the enthusiastic plaudits, but with a somewhat pre-occupied mien.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s up with the old man?&rdquo; a French-horn player whispered to his mate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dashed if I know!&rdquo; replied the second French-horn-player. &ldquo;Unless he&rsquo;s in
- love.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, he is,&rdquo; said the first. &ldquo;Everybody knows that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They called him the old man, no doubt, because his age was barely forty
- and because he looked younger than any of them.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria descended from his throne, smiling absently at the applause of
- his band as he made his way through them to the steps leading down from
- the bandstand to the level of the gardens. He had only to move a few paces
- in order to be lost in the surging crowd. But before he could do this, he
- heard a voice:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned sharply. It was a woman&rsquo;s voice. It was more&mdash;it was
- Pauline&rsquo;s voice. Had she come to meet him? Impossible! That would have
- been too much happiness. However, he determined to ascertain, and he
- ascertained in his usual direct manner.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you come specially to meet me?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she replied, in a low voice:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was extremely kind of you,&rdquo; he said, trembling with joy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; she protested. &ldquo;I had something to tell you&mdash;and&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- She hesitated, and then stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose we take a little stroll,&rdquo; he suggested.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she said, quite naturally:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should love to.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This woman is simply the divinest creature,&rdquo; he told himself. &ldquo;She is not
- like other women. She would like to go for a stroll with me, and she does
- not pretend the contrary. I am a great man, but I have done nothing,
- absolutely nothing, to deserve her goodness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They crossed the gardens, with difficulty, in the direction of the
- terrace. And around were the light and laughter of the City&mdash;the
- brilliant illuminated cafés and the sombre trees for a background, and
- thousands of pretty toilettes and thousands of men gazing at the pretty
- toilettes, so attractive in the gloom under the starry sky. A burst of
- minor music would come now and then from some little café-orchestra, or
- the sound of the popping of guns from a distant shooting-gallery or the
- roar of a lion, forced unwillingly to go through its performance in the
- menagerie. Then, every woman in the gardens gave a little start or a
- little shriek at the noise of the great cannon which signalled the
- commencement of the fireworks, and the rush to the terrace, where the best
- view was to be obtained, became a stampede.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you mean to go on to the terrace?&rdquo; asked Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, madam,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, teasingly. &ldquo;I mean to go on to the
- foreshore of the river. The tide is low&mdash;we shall be alone&mdash;we
- shall see both the crowd and the fireworks; and we shall be secure from
- interruption.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With one of his pass-keys he unlocked a gate giving access to a tunnel
- leading down to the river. They passed through, and he locked the gate
- again. They arrived at the edge of the stream just as the first cluster of
- rockets was expanding itself in the firmament. The scene was impressive,
- and the roaring cheers of the serried crowd behind and above them did not
- detract from its impressiveness.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you have something to tell me?&rdquo; he remarked, tapping his foot idly
- against a stone. &ldquo;I also have something to tell you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really?&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- He examined her face and figure. She was dressed in mourning, for Mrs.
- Ilam had died within two days of the events set down in the previous
- chapter, and Carpentaria thought that black had never suited any woman so
- well as it suited Pauline.... There was something about her face... In
- short... Well, those who have been through what Carpentaria was going
- through will readily understand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And what are you going to tell me?&rdquo; he queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a message from Cousin Ilam,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;You haven&rsquo;t seen him
- to-day, have you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. I&rsquo;ve been very much alone to-day. Juliette&rsquo;s been away all day&mdash;I
- suppose preparing for the wedding&mdash;there&rsquo;s only a few days left now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Pauline, &ldquo;Cousin Ilam told me to tell you they aren&rsquo;t going
- to be married next week.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria, &ldquo;after all? Why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because they were married this morning. They&rsquo;re already on their
- honeymoon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And Juliette has played this trick on me?&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In any case, the marriage would have had to be very quiet,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- &ldquo;I fancy Cousin Ilam didn&rsquo;t particularly care for your notion of having a
- section of your band to play at the church. Anyhow, he wanted the affair
- absolutely quiet. You know how nervous and self-conscious he is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now I come to think of it,&rdquo; Carpentaria said, &ldquo;Juliette did kiss me this
- morning rather fervently, and I wondered why.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wonder no longer,&rdquo; observed Pauline, smiling. &ldquo;It was just a little
- plot.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Extraordinary! Most extraordinary!&rdquo; Carpentaria exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think it&rsquo;s quite so extraordinary as all that!&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know what I mean,&rdquo; Carpentaria replied. &ldquo;I also have a message&mdash;for
- you. It is from our friend Mr. Jetsam Ilam and your sister. Have you seen
- Miss Rosie since this morning?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Pauline; &ldquo;she went with Juliette.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly. She went with Juliette. And she has done what Juliette has done.
- I was asked by Mr. Jetsam Ilam to inform you that instead of marrying your
- sister next week he has married her this week. He is very sorry. He has a
- perfect horror of publicity. In fact they chose the registry office.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What a shame!&rdquo; cried Pauline. &ldquo;What a shame!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;you didn&rsquo;t mind them deceiving me! But when it
- comes to deceiving you&mdash;&mdash;! It must have been a united plot on
- the part of those two pairs of people to deceive us two; and, I must say,
- they managed the thing pretty well. Don&rsquo;t you think so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think they&rsquo;ve been horrid,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And we two are quite alone, for one solid week&mdash;you in your house,
- and I in mine,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause, and then he heard a sob.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You aren&rsquo;t really crying, are you?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline made no answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- In crying she had lost herself. She had given herself away&mdash;she had
- precipitated a crisis which, in any event, could not have been long
- postponed. In a word, he tried to comfort her. You may guess how he did
- it. You may guess whether she objected. You may guess if he succeeded. In
- a quarter of an hour she was telling him that she had always liked him,
- that, formerly, she and Rosie used to worship him&mdash;Rosie even more
- than she&mdash;but that that sort of worship was nothing compared to the
- feelings which she at present entertained&mdash;<i>et seq</i>.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the fireworks and the applause of the vast crowd provided the kind of
- setting that Carlos Carpentaria loved.
- </p>
- <h3>
- THE END
- </h3>
- <div style="height: 6em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CITY OF PLEASURE ***
-
-***** This file should be named 55115-h.htm or 55115-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/1/1/55115/
-
-Produced by David Widger from page images generously
-provided by the Internet Archive
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/55115-h/images/0001.jpg b/old/55115-h/images/0001.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 03bb8b8..0000000
--- a/old/55115-h/images/0001.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55115-h/images/0007.jpg b/old/55115-h/images/0007.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 74d365f..0000000
--- a/old/55115-h/images/0007.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55115-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/55115-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 03bb8b8..0000000
--- a/old/55115-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55115-h/images/enlarge.jpg b/old/55115-h/images/enlarge.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5a9bcf3..0000000
--- a/old/55115-h/images/enlarge.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/old/55115-h.htm.2018-08-20 b/old/old/55115-h.htm.2018-08-20
deleted file mode 100644
index 4b982f2..0000000
--- a/old/old/55115-h.htm.2018-08-20
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11283 +0,0 @@
-<?xml version="1.0" encoding="utf-8"?>
-
-<!DOCTYPE html
- PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd" >
-
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en">
- <head>
- <title>The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett</title>
- <meta content="pg2html (binary v0.17)" />
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css" xml:space="preserve">
-
- body { margin:5%; background:#faebd0; text-align:justify}
- P { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: .75em; margin-bottom: .75em; }
- H1,H2,H3,H4,H5,H6 { text-align: center; margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 15%; }
- hr { width: 50%; text-align: center;}
- .foot { margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%; text-align: justify; font-size: 80%; font-style: italic;}
- blockquote {font-size: 97%; font-style: italic; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;}
- .mynote {background-color: #DDE; color: #000; padding: .5em; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-family: sans-serif; font-size: 95%;}
- .toc { margin-left: 10%; margin-bottom: .75em;}
- .toc2 { margin-left: 20%;}
- .xx-small {font-size: 60%;}
- .x-small {font-size: 75%;}
- .small {font-size: 85%;}
- .large {font-size: 115%;}
- .x-large {font-size: 130%;}
- .indent5 { margin-left: 5%;}
- .indent10 { margin-left: 10%;}
- .indent15 { margin-left: 15%;}
- .indent20 { margin-left: 20%;}
- .indent30 { margin-left: 30%;}
- .indent40 { margin-left: 40%;}
- div.fig { display:block; margin:0 auto; text-align:center; }
- div.middle { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; }
- .figleft {float: left; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 1%;}
- .figright {float: right; margin-right: 0%; margin-left: 1%;}
- .pagenum {position: absolute; right: 1%; font-size: 0.6em;
- font-variant: normal; font-style: normal;
- text-align: right; background-color: #FFFACD;
- border: 1px solid; padding: 0.3em;text-indent: 0em;}
- .side { float: left; font-size: 75%; width: 15%; padding-left: 0.8em;
- border-left: dashed thin; text-align: left;
- text-indent: 0; font-weight: bold; font-style: italic;
- font-weight: bold; color: black; background: #eeeeee; border: solid 1px;}
- .head { float: left; font-size: 90%; width: 98%; padding-left: 0.8em;
- border-left: dashed thin; text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0; font-weight: bold; font-style: italic;
- font-weight: bold; color: black; background: #eeeeee; border: solid 1px;}
- p.pfirst, p.noindent {text-indent: 0}
- span.dropcap { float: left; margin: 0 0.1em 0 0; line-height: 0.8 }
- pre { font-style: italic; font-size: 90%; margin-left: 10%;}
-
-</style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: The City Of Pleasure
- A Fantasia on Modern Themes
-
-Author: Arnold Bennett
-
-Release Date: July 15, 2017 [EBook #55115]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CITY OF PLEASURE ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David Widger from page images generously
-provided by the Internet Archive
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- <div style="height: 8em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h1>
- THE CITY OF PLEASURE
- </h1>
- <h3>
- A Fantasia on Modern Themes
- </h3>
- <h2>
- By Arnold Bennett
- </h2>
- <h4>
- Author Of &ldquo;The Old Wives&rsquo; Tale,&rdquo; &ldquo;Clayhanger,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Old Adam,&rdquo; Etc.
- </h4>
- <h4>
- New York: George H. Doran Company
- </h4>
- <h3>
- 1907
- </h3>
- <p>
- <br /><br /><a name="linkimage-0001" id="linkimage-0001"> </a>
- </p>
- <div class="fig" style="width:50%;">
- <img src="images/0001.jpg" alt="0001 " width="100%" /><br />
- </div>
- <h5>
- <a href="images/0001.jpg"><img src="images/enlarge.jpg" alt="" /> </a>
- </h5>
- <p>
- <br /><br /><a name="linkimage-0002" id="linkimage-0002"> </a>
- </p>
- <div class="fig" style="width:50%;">
- <img src="images/0007.jpg" alt="0007 " width="100%" /><br />
- </div>
- <h5>
- <a href="images/0007.jpg"><img src="images/enlarge.jpg" alt="" /> </a>
- </h5>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <p>
- <b>CONTENTS</b>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_4_0001"> <b>THE CITY OF PLEASURE</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br />
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_PART"> <b>PART I&mdash;CARPENTARIA</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0001"> CHAPTER I&mdash;Over the City </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0002"> CHAPTER II&mdash;Interviewed </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0003"> CHAPTER III&mdash;Inspiration </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0004"> CHAPTER IV&mdash;Mrs. Ilam </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0005"> CHAPTER V&mdash;The Band </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0006"> CHAPTER VI&mdash;The Black Burden </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0007"> CHAPTER VII&mdash;The Cut </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0008"> CHAPTER VIII&mdash;Disappearance of Juliette </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0009"> CHAPTER IX&mdash;The Dead Dog </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0010"> CHAPTER X&mdash;A Pinch of Snuff </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0011"> CHAPTER XI&mdash;The Return to Life </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0012"> CHAPTER XII&mdash;On the Wheel </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0013"> CHAPTER XIII&mdash;Performances of Mr. Jetsam
- </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br />
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_PART2"> <b>PART II&mdash;THE TWINS</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0014"> CHAPTER XIV&mdash;Entry of the Twins </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0015"> CHAPTER XV&mdash;Proposal of Josephus </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0016"> CHAPTER XVI&mdash;The Box </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0017"> CHAPTER XVII&mdash;The Man on the Balcony </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0018"> CHAPTER XVIII&mdash;An Arrangement for a Marriage
- </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0019"> CHAPTER XIX&mdash;The Heart of the City </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0020"> CHAPTER XX&mdash;What Jetsam Wanted </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0021"> CHAPTER XXI&mdash;Interrupting a Concert </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0022"> CHAPTER XXII&mdash;Carpentaria as Detective </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0023"> CHAPTER XXIII&mdash;The Talk in the Garden </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br />
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2H_PART3"> <b>PART III&mdash;JETSAM</b> </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0024"> CHAPTER XXIV&mdash;The Boat </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0025"> CHAPTER XXV&mdash;-A Wholesale Departure </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0026"> CHAPTER XXVI&mdash;The Empty Bedroom </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0027"> CHAPTER XXVII&mdash;The Photograph </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0028"> CHAPTER XXVIII&mdash;The Dead March </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0029"> CHAPTER XXIX&mdash;Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s Recital </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0030"> CHAPTER XXX&mdash;The Words of Mrs. Ilam </a>
- </p>
- <p class="toc">
- <a href="#link2HCH0031"> CHAPTER XXXI&mdash;Unison </a>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_4_0001" id="link2H_4_0001"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h1>
- THE CITY OF PLEASURE
- </h1>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_PART" id="link2H_PART"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- PART I&mdash;CARPENTARIA
- </h2>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0001" id="link2HCH0001"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER I&mdash;Over the City
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria!
- </p>
- <p>
- One of the three richly-uniformed officials who were in charge of the
- captive balloon, destined to be a leading attraction of the City of
- Pleasure, murmured this name warningly to his companions, as if to advise
- them that the moment had arrived for them to mind their p&rsquo;s and q&rsquo;s. And
- each man looked cautiously through the tail of his eye at a striking
- figure which was approaching through crowds of people to the enclosure.
- The figure was tall and had red hair and a masterful face, and it was
- clothed in a blue suit that set off the red hair to perfection. Over the
- wicket of the enclosure a small enamelled sign had been hung:
- </p>
- <h3>
- &ldquo;CITY OF PLEASURE.
- </h3>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>President</i>: Josephus Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>Managing and Musical Director</i>: Charles Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>Balloon Ascents every half-hour after three o&rsquo;clock. Height of a
- thousand feet guaranteed. Seats, half-a-crown, including field-glass</i>.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The sign was slightly askew, and the approaching figure tapped it into
- position, and then entered the enclosure.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good afternoon,&rdquo; it said. &ldquo;Everything ready?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;&rsquo;d afternoon, Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said the head balloonist
- respectfully. &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The three men with considerable ostentation busied themselves among ropes,
- while a young man in gold-rimmed spectacles gazed with sudden
- self-consciousness into the far distance, just as if he had that very
- instant discovered something there that demanded the whole of his
- attention.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Going up, sir?&rdquo; inquired the head balloonist.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria. &ldquo;Mr. Ilam and I are going up together. We have
- time, haven&rsquo;t we? It&rsquo;s only half-past two.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria examined the vast balloon, which was trembling and swaying and
- lugging with that aspiration towards heaven and the infinite so
- characteristic of well-filled balloons. He ignored the young man in
- spectacles.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where&rsquo;s the parachutist?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- A parachutist was to give éclat to the first public ascent of the silken
- monster by dropping from it into the Thames or somewhere else. His
- apparatus hung beneath the great circular car.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;ll be here before three, sir,&rdquo; said the head balloonist.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s been here once, sir,&rdquo; added the second balloonist, anxious to prove
- to himself that he also had the right to converse with the mighty
- Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- A few seconds later the august President arrived. Mr. Josephus Ilam was
- tall, like his partner, but much stouter. He had, indeed, almost the
- inflated appearance which one observes constantly in the drivers of
- brewers&rsquo; drays; even his fingers bulged. His age was fifty, ten years more
- than that of Carpentaria, and it was probably ten years since he had seen
- his own feet. Finally, he was clean-shaven, with areas of blue on his chin
- and cheeks like the sea on a map, and his hair&mdash;what remained of it&mdash;seemed
- to be hesitating between black and grey.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter?&rdquo; he asked of Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, I thought I would just like to make the first ascent with you alone,&rdquo;
- Carpentaria answered, and added, smiling, &ldquo;I have something to show you up
- there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His hand indicated the firmament, and his peculiar smile indicated that he
- took Ilam&rsquo;s consent for granted.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam sighed obesely, and agreed. He did not care to argue before members
- of the staff. Nevertheless, the futility of ascending to the skies on
- this, the opening day, when the colossal organism of the show cried aloud
- for continual supervision on earth, was sufficiently clear to his mind. He
- climbed gingerly over the edge of the wickerwork car, which had a
- circumference of thirty feet, with a protected aperture in the middle, and
- Carpentaria followed him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let go,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, gleefully. &ldquo;Let go!&rdquo; he repeated with
- impatience, when the balloon was arrested at a height of about ten feet.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Right sir,&rdquo; responded briskly the head balloonist. There appeared to have
- been some altercation between the balloonists.
- </p>
- <p>
- The day was the first of May, but the London spring had chosen to be
- capricious and unseasonable. Instead of the snow and frost and east wind
- which almost invariably accompany what is termed, with ferocious irony,
- the merry month, there was strong, brilliant sunshine and a perfect calm.
- The sun glinted and glittered on the upper surfaces of the balloon, but of
- course the voyagers could not perceive that. They, in fact, perceived
- nothing except that the entire world was gradually falling away from them.
- The balloon had ceased to shiver; it stood as firm as consols, while the
- City of Pleasure sank and sank, and the upturned faces of more than fifty
- thousand spectators grew tinier and tinier.
- </p>
- <p>
- It would be interesting and certainly instructive to unfold some of the
- many mysteries and minor dramas which had diversified the history of the
- making of the City of Pleasure, from the time when Carpentaria, having
- conceived the idea of the thing, found the necessary millionaire in the
- person of Josephus Ilam, to the hurried and tumultuous eve of the opening
- day; but these are unconnected with the present recital. It needs only to
- remind the reader of the City&rsquo;s geography. Towards the lower left-hand
- corner of any map of London not later than 1905, may be observed a large,
- nearly empty space in the form of an inverted letter &ldquo;U.&rdquo; This space is
- bounded everywhere, except across the bottom, by the Thames. It is indeed
- a peninsula made by an extraordinary curve of the Thames, and Barnes
- Common connects if with the mainland of the parish of Putney. Its
- dimensions are little short of a mile either way, and yet, although
- Hammersmith Bridge joins it to Hammersmith at the top, it was almost
- uninhabited, save for the houses which lined Bridge Road and a scattering
- of houses in Lonsdale Road and the short streets between Lonsdale Road and
- the reservoir near the bridge. The contrast was violent; on the north side
- of the Thames the crowded populousness of Hammersmith, and on the south
- side&mdash;well, possibly four people to the acre.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam and Carpentaria, with Ilam&rsquo;s money, bought or leased the whole of the
- middle part of the peninsula&mdash;over three hundred acres&mdash;with a
- glorious half-mile frontage to the Thames on the east side. They would
- have acquired all the earth as far as Barnes Common but for the fact that
- the monomaniacs of the Ranelagh Club Golf Course could not be induced to
- part with their links, even when offered a fantastic number of thousand
- pounds per hole. They obtained the closing of the Bridge Road, which cut
- the peninsula downwards into two halves, and the omnibus traffic between
- Hammersmith and Barnes was diverted to Lonsdale Road&mdash;not without
- terrific diplomacy, and pitched battles in the columns of newspapers and
- in Local Government offices. They pulled down every house in Bridge Road,
- thus breaking up some seventy presumably happy English homes, and then
- they started upon the erection of the City of Pleasure, which they
- intended to be, and which all the world now admits to be, the most
- gigantic enterprise of amusement that Europe has ever seen.
- </p>
- <p>
- As the balloon rose the general conformation of the City of Pleasure
- became visible. Running almost north and south from Hammersmith Bridge was
- the Central Way, the splendid private thoroughfare which had superseded
- Bridge Road. It was a hundred feet wide, and its surface was treated with
- westrumite, and a service of gaily coloured cable-cars flashed along it in
- either direction, between the north and the south entrances to the City.
- It was lined with multifarious buildings, all painted cream&mdash;the
- theatre, the variety theatre, the concert hall, the circus, the panorama,
- the lecture hall, the menagerie, the art gallery, the story-tellers&rsquo; hall,
- the dancing-rooms, restaurants, cafés and bars, and those numerous shops
- for the sale of useless and expensive souvenirs without which the
- happiness of no Briton on a holiday is complete. The footpaths, 20 feet
- wide, were roofed with glass, and between the footpaths and the roadway
- came two rows of trees which were industriously taking advantage of the
- weather to put forth their verdure. Footpaths and road were thronged with
- people, and the street was made gay, not only by the toilettes and
- sunshades of women, but also by processions of elephants, camels, and
- other wild-fowl, bearing children of all ages in charge of gorgeous
- Indians and Ethiops. From every roof floated great crimson flags with the
- legend in gold: &ldquo;City of Pleasure. President: Ilam; Director:
- Carpentaria.&rdquo; Add to this combined effect the music of bands and the
- sunshine, and do not forget the virgin creaminess of the elaborate
- architecture, and you will be able to form a notion of the spectacle
- offered by the esplanade upon which Ilam and Carpentaria looked down.
- </p>
- <p>
- Midway between the north and south entrances, the Central Way expanded
- itself into a circular place, with a twenty-jetted bronze fountain in the
- middle. To the west was the façade of what was called the Exposition
- Palace, an enormous quadrangular building, containing a huge covered court
- which, with its balconies, would hold twenty thousand people on wet days.
- The galleries of the palace were devoted to an exhibition of everything
- that related to woman, from high-heeled shoes to thrones; it was
- astonishing how many things did relate to woman. North of the Exposition
- Palace stretched out the Amusements Park, where people looped the loop,
- shot the chute, wheeled the wheel, switched the switchback, etc.; and here
- was the balloon enclosure. South of the palace lay the Sports Fields,
- where a cricket match was progressing.
- </p>
- <p>
- Finally, and most important of all, to the east of the circular place in
- Central Way rose the impressive entrance to the Oriental Gardens, the
- pride of Ilam and Carpentaria. The Oriental Gardens occupied the entire
- eastern side of the City, and they sloped down to the Thames. They formed
- over a hundred acres of gardens, wood, and pleasaunce, laid out with
- formal magnificence. Flowers bloomed there in defiance of seasons. On
- every hand the eye was met by vistas of trees and shrubs, and by lawns and
- statues, and lakes and fountains. In the middle was Carpentaria&rsquo;s own
- special bandstand. A terrace, two thousand five. hundred feet long,
- bordered the river, and from the terrace jutted out a pier at which
- steamers were unloading visitors.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0002" id="link2HCH0002"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER II&mdash;Interviewed
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>he occupants of
- the balloon could see everything. They saw the debarcation from the
- steamers; they saw the unending crowd of doll-like persons thrown up out
- of the ground by the new Tube station at the south end of Hammersmith
- Bridge; they saw the heavy persistent stream of vehicles and pedestrians
- over the bridge; they saw the trains approaching Barnes on the
- South-Western Railway; they saw the struggles for admittance at all the
- gates of the City; they even saw flocks of people streaming Cityward along
- the Barnes High Street and the Lower Richmond Road. It was not for nothing
- that advertisements of the City of Pleasure had filled one solid page of
- every daily paper in London, and many in the provinces, for a week past.
- Visitors were now entering the city at the rate of seventy thousand an
- hour, at a shilling a head.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a gentle tug beneath the car. The thousand feet of rope had been
- paid out, and the balloon hung motionless.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then a faint noise, something between the crackling of musketry and the
- surge of waves on a pebbly beach, ascended from the city.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They&rsquo;re cheering,&rdquo; said Josephus Ilam. &ldquo;What for?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cheering us, of course,&rdquo; answered Carpentaria excitedly. &ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it
- immense?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Immense?&rdquo; said Ilam heavily. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s hot. What did you want to show me up
- here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria, pointing below to the city with a superb
- gesture. &ldquo;And that!&rdquo; he added passionately, pointing with another gesture
- to the whole of London, which lay spread out with all its towers and
- steeples and its blanket of smoke, tremendous and interminable to the
- east. &ldquo;That is our prey,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;our food.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he began to sing the Toreador song from &ldquo;Carmen,&rdquo; exultantly launching
- the notes into the sky.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said Josephus Ilam, with unexpected bitterness, &ldquo;is
- this your idea of a joke? Bringing me up here to see London and our show,
- as if I didn&rsquo;t know London and our show like my pocket!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam&rsquo;s concealed, hatred of Carpentaria, which had been slowly growing for
- more than a year, as a fire spreads secretly in the hold of a ship, seemed
- to spurt out a swift tongue of flame in the acrimony of his tone.
- Carpentaria was startled. Even then, in a sudden flash of illumination, he
- grasped to a certain extent the import of Ilam&rsquo;s attitude towards him, but
- he did not grasp it fully. How should he?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why,&rdquo; he said to himself, &ldquo;I believe the old johnny dislikes mel What on
- earth for?&rdquo; He could not understand all Ilam&rsquo;s reasons. &ldquo;Pity!&rdquo; he
- reflected further. &ldquo;If the managers of a show like this can&rsquo;t hit it off
- together, there may be trouble.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In which supposition he was infinitely more right than he imagined.
- </p>
- <p>
- He balanced himself lightly on the edge of the car, his left leg dangling,
- and seized one of the field-glasses which hung secured by thin steel
- chains round the inside of the wicker parapet, and putting it to his eyes,
- he gazed down at the Oriental Gardens. He must have seen something there
- that profoundly interested him, for the glasses remained glued to his eyes
- for a long time.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I repeat,&rdquo; said Ilam firmly, standing up, &ldquo;is this your idea of a joke?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He was close to Carpentaria, and his glance was vicious.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My friend,&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria, dropping the glasses. &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the
- matter with you is that you aren&rsquo;t an artist, not a bit of one. You are an
- excellent fellow, with a splendid head for figures, and I respect you
- enormously, but you haven&rsquo;t the artistic sense. If you had you would share
- the thrill which I feel as I survey our creation and that London over
- there. You would appreciate why I brought you up here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m a business man&mdash;a plain business man, that&rsquo;s what I am,&rdquo; said
- Ilam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve never pretended to be an artist, and I don&rsquo;t want to be an
- artist. Let me tell you that I ought to be in the advertisement
- department, and not canoodling my time away up here, Mr. Carpentaria.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear sir,&rdquo; said Carpentaria hastily, &ldquo;accept my apologies. Let us
- descend at once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And while I&rsquo;m about it,&rdquo; pursued Ilam unheedingly&mdash;his irritation
- was like a stone rolling down a hill&mdash;&ldquo;while I&rsquo;m about it, I&rsquo;ll point
- out that your objection to having advertisements on the walls of the
- restaurants is fatuous.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, my dear Ilam,&rdquo; Carpentaria protested, &ldquo;people don&rsquo;t care to have to
- read advertisements while they&rsquo;re at their meals. It puts them off. For
- instance, to have it dinned into you that G. H. Mumm is the only champagne
- worth drinking when you happen to be drinking Heidsieck, or to have Wall&rsquo;s
- sausages thrust down your throat while you are toying with an ice-cream&mdash;people
- don&rsquo;t like it. We must think of our patrons. And, besides, it&rsquo;s so inarti&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rubbish!&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;One way and another these ads. would be worth a
- hundred&rsquo; a week to us.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, and what&rsquo;s a hundred a week?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the interest on a hundred and twenty thousand pounds,&rdquo; Ilam replied
- vivaciously. &ldquo;And there&rsquo;s another thing. It would be much better if you
- employed more time in inspection instead of rehearsing and conducting your
- precious band. Any fool can conduct a band. Give me a stick and I&rsquo;d do it
- myself. But inspection&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My precious band!&rdquo; stammered Carpentaria, aghast.
- </p>
- <p>
- His very soul was laid low; and considering that Carpentaria&rsquo;s Band had
- been famous in the capitals of two continents for twelve years at least,
- it was not surprising that his soul should be laid low by this terrible
- phrase.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve had enough of it.&rdquo; His shoulder touched
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s, and his eyes&mdash;little, like a pig&rsquo;s&mdash;shot arrows
- of light. &ldquo;Supposing I shoved you over? I should have the concern to
- myself then, and no foolish interference.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He twisted his face into a grim laugh.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have a sense of humour, after all, Ilam,&rdquo; responded gaily the man on
- the edge of the car, fingering his long red moustache, and he, too,
- laughed, but he got down from his perch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;d just like you to comprehend&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Ilam began again.
- </p>
- <p>
- But at that instant a head appeared above the edge of the central aperture
- of the car, and Ilam stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the head of the young man in spectacles&mdash;gold-rimmed
- spectacles.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m Smithers, of the <i>Morning Herald</i>,&rdquo; said the young man brightly
- and calmly, &ldquo;and I took this opportunity of seeing you privately. Your men
- objected when I got into the parachute attachment, but you told &lsquo;em to let
- go, and so they let go. I&rsquo;ve had some difficulty in climbing up here off
- the parachute bar. Dangerous, rather. However, I&rsquo;ve done it. I dare say
- you heard the crowd cheering.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So it was him they were cheering,&rdquo; muttered Ilam, and then looked at
- Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam was not a genius in the art of conversation. He could only say what
- he meant, and when the running of the City of Pleasure demanded the art of
- conversation he relied on Carpentaria, even if he was furious with him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the game?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Smithers politely, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t you think I deserve an interview?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know we have absolutely declined all interviews.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, that&rsquo;s why the <i>Herald</i> wants one so badly; that&rsquo;s why I&rsquo;m
- dangling a thousand feet above my grave.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria and Ilam exchanged glances. Each read the thought of the other&mdash;that
- the spectacled Smithers might have overheard their conversation, and
- should therefore be handled with care, this side up. &ldquo;Leave it to me,&rdquo;
- said the eyes of Carpentaria to the eyes of Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Smithers, of the <i>Herald</i>&rdquo;&mdash;Carpentaria blossomed into the
- flowers of speech&mdash;&ldquo;we heartily applaud your courage and your
- devotion to duty in a profession full of perils, but you are trespassing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me, I&rsquo;m not,&rdquo; said Smithers. &ldquo;You can only trespass on land and
- water, and this isn&rsquo;t a salmon river or a forbidden footpath. Besides,
- I&rsquo;ve got my press season-ticket. Come now, talk to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are talking to you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I mean, answer my questions, for the benefit of humanity. I&rsquo;m the father
- of a family with two penniless aunts, and the <i>Herald</i> will probably
- sack me if I fail in this interview. Think of that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I prefer not to think of it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;However, we will answer
- any reasonable questions you care to put to us, on one condition.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Name it,&rdquo; snapped Smithers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will name it afterwards,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, looking at Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;All right,&rdquo; sighed Smithers, &ldquo;I agree, whatever it is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You look like an honourable man. I shall trust you,&rdquo; Carpentaria
- remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Journalists are always honourable,&rdquo; said Smithers. &ldquo;It is their employers
- who sometimes&mdash;however, that&rsquo;s neither here nor there. You may trust
- me. Now tell me. Why this objection to interviews? That&rsquo;s what&rsquo;s puzzling
- the public. You&rsquo;re a business concern, aren&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just the reason,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;We aren&rsquo;t a star-actor or a
- bogus company. We&rsquo;re above interviews, we are. Do you catch Smith and Son,
- or Cook&rsquo;s, or the North-Western Railway, or Mrs. Humphry Ward having
- themselves interviewed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not much,&rdquo; ejaculated Ilam glumly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;People who refuse to be interviewed have a status that other people can
- never have. Our business is our business. When we want the public to know
- anything, we take a page in the <i>Herald</i>, say, and pay two hundred
- and fifty pounds for it, and inform the public exactly what we do want &rsquo;em
- to know, in our own words. We do not require the assistance of
- interviewers. There&rsquo;s the whole secret. What next?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That seems pretty straight,&rdquo; Smithers agreed. &ldquo;Another thing. Why have
- you gone and called this concern the City of Pleasure?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because it is the City of Pleasure,&rdquo; growled Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. But it seems rather a fancy name, doesn&rsquo;t it?&mdash;rather too
- poetical, highfalutin?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s merely because you journalists never have any imagination,&rdquo;
- Carpentaria explained. &ldquo;You aren&rsquo;t used to this name yet. It was you
- journalists who cried out that the Crystal Palace was a too poetical and
- highfalutin name for that glass wigwam over there&rdquo;&mdash;and he pointed to
- the twin towers of Sydenham in the distance&mdash;&ldquo;but you&rsquo;ve got used to
- it, and you admit now that it is the Crystal Palace and couldn&rsquo;t be
- anything else.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers laughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good!&rdquo; said he. &ldquo;All that&rsquo;s nothing. Let me come to the core of the
- apple. Do you expect this thing to pay? Do you really mean it to pay, or
- is it only a millionaire&rsquo;s lark? You know all the experts are saying it
- can&rsquo;t pay.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; ejaculated Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall take fifteen thousand pounds at the gates to-day,&rdquo; said
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;The highest attendance in any one day at the Paris
- Exhibition of 1900 was six hundred thousand. Do you imagine we can&rsquo;t equal
- that? We shall surpass it, sir. Wait for our August fêtes. Wait for our
- Congress of Trade Unions in September, and you will see! The average total
- attendance at the last three Paris exhibitions has been forty-five
- millions. We hope to reach fifty millions. But suppose we only reach forty
- millions. That means two million pounds in gates alone; and let me remind
- you that the minor activities of this show are self-supporting. Why, the
- Chicago Exhibition made a profit of nearly a million and a half dollars.
- Do you suppose we can&rsquo;t beat that, with a city of six million people at
- our doors, and the millions of Lancashire and Yorkshire within four hours
- of us?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Chicago was State-aided,&rdquo; Mr. Smithers ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;State-aided!&rdquo; cried Ilam. &ldquo;Chicago was the worst-managed show in the
- history of shows, except St. Louis. If the State came to me I should&mdash;I
- should&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Offer it a penny to go away and play in the next street.&rdquo; Carpentaria
- finished his sentence for him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You interest me extremely,&rdquo; said the journalist. &ldquo;And now, as to the
- number of your employés.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He chuckled to himself with glee at the splendid interview he was getting
- out of Carpentaria and Ilam as they obligingly responded to his queries.
- It was Ilam who at last revolted, and insisted that he must descend.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now for my condition,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let&rsquo;s have it,&rdquo; said the journalist.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You asked us to talk to you and we have talked to you. The condition is
- that you regard all you have heard up here as strictly confidential&mdash;mind,
- all! You tell no one; you print nothing..Remember, you are an honourable
- man.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But this is farcical,&rdquo; Smithers expostulated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all,&rdquo; said Carpentaria sweetly. &ldquo;Do you imagine that because you
- have an inordinate amount of cheek, a family and two penniless aunts, we
- are going to break the habits of a life-time? For myself, I have never
- been interviewed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is this your last word?&rdquo; the journalist demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; said the journalist, and his head disappeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let us descend,&rdquo; said Ilam, savagely pleased. And he waved the descent
- flag.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shan&rsquo;t descend just yet,&rdquo; the journalist informed them, popping up his
- head again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And pray, why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I&rsquo;ve cut the rope.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, always calm when art was not concerned, tore a fragment of
- paper from an envelope in his pocket and threw it out of the car. It sank
- away rapidly from the balloon. Moreover, it was evident, even to the eye,
- that their distance from the earth was vastly increasing.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I withdraw my promise now this moment,&rdquo; said the journalist, climbing
- carefully into the car. &ldquo;Everything that you say henceforward will be
- printed. We shall have quite an exciting trip. We may even get to France.
- Anyhow, I shall have a clinking column for Monday&rsquo;s <i>Herald</i>. You
- evidently hadn&rsquo;t quite appreciated what the new journalism is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then there was silence in the mounting balloon.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam bent his malevolent eyes longingly upon the disappearing scene below.
- The glory of the sunshine was nothing to him. He wanted to be in the
- advertisement department, arranging future contracts for spaces on the
- programmes. He reflected that it was another of the mad caprices of
- Carpentaria that had got him into this grotesque scrape. And he was so
- angry that he forgot even to think of the danger to which he was exposed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So here we are!&rdquo; said the journalist. &ldquo;And you can&rsquo;t do anything!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0003" id="link2HCH0003"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER III&mdash;Inspiration
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">P</span>ermit me to say,
- Mr. Smithers,&rdquo; Carpentaria remarked at last, &ldquo;that your knavery is futile.
- The resources of civilization are not yet exhausted. We are, in fact,
- already descending.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He held tightly in his hand the end of a rope, which reached up high above
- them and was lost in the mass of cordage. He had opened the valve to its
- widest.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t venture to move,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;or Mr. Ilam will break your head for
- you. This affair will cost us nothing but a few thousand cubic feet of gas
- at a half-a-crown a thousand. What it will cost you, I shall have to
- consider.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And without saying anything further for the moment, he unloosed a very
- thin cable that was wound round a windlass in the car itself, and, tying a
- white flag at the end of it, he began to lower it rapidly over the edge of
- the car.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thanks to the perfect calm which reigned, the balloon was still well over
- the Amusements Park.
- </p>
- <p>
- Soon the voyagers could perceive the excited movements of the crowds
- below, and then the white flag touched earth, and was seized by the eager
- hands of the balloonists, and slowly the balloon, in a condition bordering
- on collapse, subsided to the ground with the gentleness of a fatigued
- British workman falling asleep. And great cheers, for the second time that
- day, filled the air.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You might have been sure,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when they were ten feet off
- safety, &ldquo;that in a show like this due precautions would be taken against
- accidents and idiots!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers, nearly as limp as the balloon, made no reply. Josephus Ilam
- glared over him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s nothing, it&rsquo;s nothing!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria to the staff, who besieged
- the party with questions. &ldquo;Fill her up as quick as you can, attach the
- rope, and get ready for your public. Don&rsquo;t bother me!&rdquo; And he leapt out of
- the car and was running, literally running, away, when Ilam called out:
- &ldquo;Hi! wait a minute. What&rsquo;s to be done with this maniac here?&rdquo; And Ilam
- muttered to himself, &ldquo;Why does he run away like that? What&rsquo;s his next
- caprice going to be?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was forgetting,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, stopping. &ldquo;Young man&rdquo;&mdash;and he
- addressed Smithers severely&mdash;&ldquo;follow me, and no nonsense!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers obediently followed, pushing after Carpentaria through the
- curious crowds. They came at length to the Central Way, and Carpentaria
- halted and took Smithers by the coat collar.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen!&rdquo; said he. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re much too busy to trouble with police-court
- proceedings. And besides, there&rsquo;s your brace of penniless aunts. Cut!
- Clear out! Hook it! I rather admire you. See?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Smithers saw, and vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria hastened on, rushing across the Central Way, scarcely avoiding
- cable-cars, and so, by a private passage between two shops, into the
- Oriental Gardens. Now, just within the Oriental Gardens, on either side of
- the grand entrance to them, were two spacious houses, built in the
- bungalow style, with enclosed gardens of their own. One of these was
- occupied by Josephus Ilam and his mother, and the other by Carpentaria and
- his half-sister, Juliette D&rsquo;Avray. Between the house of Ilam and the back
- of the shops in Central Way was one of those small waste trifles of ground
- which often get left in planning a vast exhibition or show. It was
- skilfully hidden from the view of the public by wooden palisades, and in
- this palisading was a door, painted so as to escape detection. The plot of
- ground, about three yards by two, was already being utilized for lumber.
- Carpentaria entered by the door and shut it after him. A man&mdash;a
- middle-aged man, in a blue suit of rather shabby appearance&mdash;was
- seated on some planks. He started up, and then seemed to sway.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo; Carpentaria curtly demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look &rsquo;ere,&rdquo; said the man, swaying towards Carpentaria, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m aw ri&rsquo;&mdash;you&rsquo;re
- aw ri&rsquo;&mdash;eh? I&rsquo;m a gemman. Come here to re&rsquo;&mdash;rest. You leave me
- &rsquo;lone&mdash;I leave you &rsquo;lone. Stop, I give you my car&rsquo;.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The man was obviously inebriated and Carpentaria was in no mood to spend
- precious minutes in diplomacy with a victim of Bacchus. He departed,
- shutting the door, and leaving the victim fumbling with a card-case. He
- meant to send some one to eject the man, but he forgot.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Say!&rdquo; cried the drunkard after him, &ldquo;how ju know I wazz &rsquo;ere? Mus&rsquo;
- been up in a b&rsquo;loon&mdash;I repea&rsquo;&mdash;b&rsquo;loon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In another moment Carpentaria was in the study of his bungalow, panting.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Quick!&rdquo; he said to Juliette, an extremely natty little woman of thirty or
- so.
- </p>
- <p>
- He sank into the chair before his desk. Juliette placed some music-paper
- in front of him and put a pen in his hand, and he scrawled across the top
- of the page &ldquo;The Balloon Lullaby,&rdquo; and began to scribble notes&mdash;quavers,
- crotchets, semibreves, and some other strange wonders&mdash;all over the
- page.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It came to me all of a sudden,&rdquo; he murmured, &ldquo;while we were up in the
- balloon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t talk, dear,&rdquo; said Juliette. &ldquo;Write.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he wrote.
- </p>
- <p>
- When it was finished Carpentaria wiped his brow and drank a whisky and
- milk which Juliette had prepared for him. He sighed with content and
- exhaustion. The creative crisis was over.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Play it,&rdquo; he ejaculated.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Juliette sat down at the piano near the window overlooking the
- magnificent gardens, and played softly the two hundred and forty-seventh&rsquo;
- <i>opus</i> of Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is lovely,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he admitted. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a classy little thing. Came to me just like
- that!&rdquo; He snapped his fingers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your best ones always do,&rdquo; Juliette smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll have that performed this very night,&rdquo; he stated.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0004" id="link2HCH0004"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER IV&mdash;Mrs. Ilam
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">S</span>omewhat later on
- the same afternoon, in the drawing-room of the house opposite, Josephus
- Ilam was drinking tea with his mother. The aged Mrs. Ilam, who was very
- thin and not in the least tall&mdash;her son would have made a dozen of
- her&mdash;sat tremendously upright in her chair, while Josephus lolled his
- great bulk in angry attitudes on a sofa, near which the tea-table had been
- placed. Mrs. Ilam wore widow&rsquo;s weeds, though it was many years since she
- had lost her husband, a man who had made a vast fortune out of soda-water&mdash;in
- the days when soda-water <i>was</i> soda-water. She had a narrow, hard
- face, with intensely black eyes, and intensely white hair, and when she
- directed those eyes upon her son, it became instantly plain that her son
- was at once her idol and her slave. She lived solely for this man of
- fifty, who had scarcely ever left her side. For her this mass of fifteen
- stone four was still a young child, needing watchful care and constant
- advice. Certainly she spoilt him; but, just as certainly, he went in awe
- of her. The fact that by judicious investments in hotel and public-house
- property he had more than doubled the fortune which his father left, did
- not at all improve his standing with the antique dame; it only made him in
- her view a clever boy with financial leanings. Moreover, every penny of
- the Ilam fortune was legally hers during her lifetime. Even Ilam&rsquo;s share
- in the City of Pleasure was hers. When Carpentaria had discovered him, he
- had had to decide whether or not he should put more than a million pounds
- into the enterprise, and it was his mother who decided, who listened to
- everything, and then briefly told him that he would be a fool to leave the
- thing alone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she said, in her high quavering voice, as she passed him a cup of
- tea&mdash;the cup rattled on the saucer in her blue-veined parchment hand&mdash;&ldquo;so
- you are not getting on with Carpentaria? I was afraid you wouldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He won&rsquo;t listen to reason about the advertisements,&rdquo; said Ilam crossly,
- stirring his tea.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And he&rsquo;s absolutely mad about his music. He&rsquo;s spent ten hours in
- rehearsing these last two days. All the work, I&rsquo;ve had to do myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And then, to crown his exploits, he takes me up in the balloon, mother&mdash;wastes
- a solid hour.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the balloon!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam recounted the incident of the balloon.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And, after all, he lets that impudent journalist go free&mdash;absolutely
- free!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jos,&rdquo; said his mother, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s a wonder you&rsquo;re alive, my dear.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a pity Carpentaria&rsquo;s alive,&rdquo; rejoined Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- His mother&rsquo;s burning eyes met his.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just what I&rsquo;ve been thinking,&rdquo; she piped calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Her son&rsquo;s gaze dropped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Since when?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Since you began grumbling about him, last week but one, my pet.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s no use now,&rdquo; Ilam grumbled. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ve carried out all his ideas, and
- it&rsquo;s simply a matter of business, and Carpentaria doesn&rsquo;t know the meaning
- of the word &lsquo;business.&rsquo; Just think of his argument about those ads.!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind that, Jos,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam put in.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s only in the way now,&rdquo; Jos proceeded gloomily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose he wouldn&rsquo;t retire,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam suggested.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Retire? Of course he wouldn&rsquo;t retire&mdash;nothing would induce him to
- retire. He enjoys it&mdash;he enjoys annoying me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anyway,&rdquo; said the mother, &ldquo;you&rsquo;ll have the satisfaction of a very great
- success.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She looked out of the window at the gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; growled Ilam. &ldquo;And he gets half the profits. I&rsquo;ve found all the
- money, and he hasn&rsquo;t found a cent. But he gets half the profits. What for?
- A few ideas&mdash;nothing else. He pretends to direct, but he&rsquo;ll direct
- nothing except his blessed band. And I reckon we shall clear a profit of
- ten thousand a week! Half of ten is five.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He only gets half the profits as long as he lives, Jos,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- &ldquo;After that&mdash;nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing,&rdquo; agreed Jos, biting cruelly into a hot scone. &ldquo;But as long as he
- lives he&rsquo;s costing me, say, five thousand a week, besides worry.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He mayn&rsquo;t live long,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam ventured. &ldquo;No, but he may live
- fifty-years.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Supposing he died very suddenly, Jos,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam pursued calmly; &ldquo;he
- wouldn&rsquo;t be the first person that was inconvenient to you who had
- disappeared unexpectedly.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother!&rdquo; Ilam almost shouted, starting up. &ldquo;But would he?&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam
- persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, he wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; muttered Josephus, and his voice trembled.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam blew out the spirit-lamp under the kettle as though she was
- blowing out Carpentaria. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m off,&rdquo; said Josephus nervously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wait a moment, child. Ring the bell for me.&rdquo; A servant entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Bring me your master&rsquo;s knitted waistcoat,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, mother, I shan&rsquo;t want it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you will, Jos. There&rsquo;s no month more treacherous than May. You&rsquo;ll
- put it on to please me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He obeyed, bent down to kiss his terrible parent, and departed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Think it over,&rdquo; she called out after him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And then, what about his sister?&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t mix up two quite
- separate things,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam responded. &ldquo;Besides, she isn&rsquo;t his sister.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0005" id="link2HCH0005"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER V&mdash;The Band
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hat night the City
- of Pleasure was illuminated. Eighty thousand tiny electric lamps hanging
- in festoons from standard to standard lighted the Central Way alone; the
- façades of all the places of amusement were outlined in fire; the shops
- glittered; and the cable-cars, as they flashed to and fro, bore the
- monogram I.C. in electricity on their foreheads. At eight o&rsquo;clock the
- thoroughfare was crowded with visitors, and the stream of arrivals was
- stronger than ever. In the superb restaurants, at all prices (no matter
- what the price, they were equally superb in decoration), five thousand
- diners were finishing five thousand dinners, their eyes undisturbed by the
- presence of advertisements on the walls. The theatre, the music-hall, the
- circus, the menagerie, the concerts, and the rest of the entertainments,
- were filling up. In the Amusements Park people shot down railways into
- water, slid down smooth slopes into mattresses, circled in great wheels,
- floated in the latest novelties of merry-go-rounds, ascended in the
- balloon, and practised all the other devices for frittering away eternity,
- just as though night had not fallen. In the vast court of the Exposition
- Palace a band was swelling the strains of the newest waltzes to three
- storeys of loungers and sitters at café-tables, while within the interior
- of the building men and women wandered about examining the multifarious
- attractions of the Woman&rsquo;s Exhibition.
- </p>
- <p>
- But the chief joy was the Oriental Gardens, wherein a multitude of over
- fifty thousand persons had gathered together. The Oriental Gardens were
- illuminated, but in a different manner from the Central Way. Chinese
- lanterns were suspended everywhere in the budding trees, giving the
- illusion of magic precocious flowers that had blossomed there in a single
- hour, in all the tints of the rainbow and many others entirely foreign to
- the rainbow. The bandstand alone was picked out in electricity. It blazed
- in the centre of the gardens like a giant&rsquo;s crown, and, although yet
- empty, it formed the main object of attention. Overhead stretched a
- dark-blue sky, silvered with stars, and the wind had a warm and caressing
- quality which encouraged sightseers to expose themselves to it to such an
- extent that the fifteen cafés of the Oriental Gardens, some sheltered,
- some quite open, but each a centre of light and laughter, were every one
- crowded with guests. The four thousand chairs surrounding the bandstand
- were occupied, and also the six thousand other chairs dispersed in various
- parts of the gardens. The murmur of conversation, the rustle of dresses,
- the tinkle of glasses, the rumour of uncountable footsteps, rose on the
- air. The faces of pretty women could be observed obscurely in the
- delicious gloom, and the glowing scarlet of cigars bobbed mysteriously
- about like aspecies of restless glow-worm.
- </p>
- <p>
- And everybody was conscious of the sensation of the extraordinary and
- amazing success of the great show. The evening papers had carried the news
- of the wonderful thing to each suburb of London. These papers gave from
- hour to hour the number of the persons who had passed the turnstiles, and
- calculated the number of tons of shillings that Ilam and Carpentaria would
- have to bank on Monday morning. But the principal thing that struck the
- evening papers was the complete readiness of the City of Pleasure. No
- detail of it was unfinished, and all agreed that this phenomenon stood
- unique in the history of the art of amusing immense crowds. All felt that
- a new era of amusement enterprise had been ushered in by Ilam and
- Carpentaria, that everything was changed, and that in the future an
- enlightened and excessively exacting public would not be satisfied with
- what had pleased it in the past. And the owners of the old-fashioned
- resorts trembled in their shoes, and hated Ilam and Carpentaria, while the
- myriad patrons of Ilam and Carpentaria on that first day flattered
- themselves that they had personally assisted at the birth of the grand
- innovation, and thought how they would say to their grandchildren: &ldquo;Yes, I
- was present at the opening of the City of Pleasure, and a marvellous
- affair it was,&rdquo; and so on, in the manner of grandparents.
- </p>
- <p>
- All were expecting Carpentaria, the lion of the show.
- </p>
- <p>
- His band was due to perform from eight o&rsquo;clock to ten, and special bills,
- posted on the sides of the gilded bandstand and in the cafés, announced:
- &ldquo;Carpentaria&rsquo;s band will play the Balloon Lullaby, the latest composition
- of Carpentaria, composed this afternoon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At ten minutes before eight the members of the band, sixty in number, and
- clad in the imperial purple uniform, marched in Indian file across the
- gardens to the stand. At a distance of ten paces from the end of the
- procession came Carpentaria, preceded by a small page bearing his baton on
- a cushion of purple velvet. Carpentaria always did things with
- overwhelming style and solemnity. Superior persons laughed at the style
- and solemnity, but the vast majority did not laugh; they cheered; they
- appreciated. Whether they were right or wrong, the indubitable fact is
- that these things came naturally to Carpentaria; they were the expression
- of his exceedingly theatrical soul, the devices of a man who believes in
- himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- At eight o&rsquo;clock precisely Carpentaria faced the fifty thousand from his
- bandstand, and, after having bowed elaborately thrice, turned to the band,
- and lifted the sacred stick.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a dramatic moment, the real inauguration of the City of Pleasure.
- </p>
- <p>
- Cheers and hurrahs rolled in terrific volumes of sound across the gardens,
- and they did not cease; and people not acquainted with the fame and renown
- of Carpentaria perceived what it was to be a favourite of capitals, a
- leading star in the galaxy of stars that the public salutes and
- recognizes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria preserved the immobility of carven stone until the plaudits
- had ceased; they lasted for exactly five and a half minutes. Consequently
- the concert was exactly five and a half minutes late in commencing.
- Carpentaria himself was never late, but his public had a habit of delaying
- him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly he brought rown his baton with a surprising shock. The carven
- stone had started into life, and &ldquo;God save the King&rdquo; was under way.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now to see Carpentaria conduct was one of the sights of the world. He
- conducted not merely with his hand and eye, but with the whole of his
- immortal frame and his uniform. It was said that he was capable of
- conducting the Eroica Symphony of Beethoven with his left foot&mdash;and
- who shall deny it? &ldquo;God save the King&rdquo; was child&rsquo;s play to him. Moreover,
- he showed a certain reserve in handling it. He merely conducted it as
- though in conducting it he himself were literally saving the King. That
- was all. But with what snap, what dash, what <i>chic</i>, what splash and
- what magnificent presence of mind did he save the King! The applause was
- wild and ample.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next item was &ldquo;The City of Pleasure March,&rdquo; composed by Carpentaria.
- Indeed, Carpentaria conducted nothing but national hymns, his own
- compositions, and, as a superlative concession, Wagner and Beethoven. &ldquo;The
- City of Pleasure&rdquo; was in Carpentaria&rsquo;s finest style, and it was planned to
- give him the fullest scope in conducting it. He had already made it famous
- in a triumphal tour through the United States in the previous year. It
- began with the utmost possible volume of sound. It had a contagious and
- infectious lilt to it, and both the lilt and the volume of sound were
- continued without the slightest respite during the whole composition. In
- the course of this masterpiece Carpentaria performed physical feats that
- would have astounded Cinquevalli and the Schaffer Troupe. In the frenzy of
- self-expression he all but stood on his head. The bandstand was too small
- for him; he needed a planet on which to circulate. By turns his baton was
- a sceptre, a pump-handle, a maypole, a crutch, a drumstick, a flag, a
- toothpick, a mop, a pendulum, a whip, a bottle of soothing-syrup, and a
- scorpion. By turns he whipped, tortured, encouraged, liberated,
- imprisoned, mopped up, measured, governed, diverted, pushed over, pulled
- back, and turned inside out his band, and whenever their enthusiasm seemed
- likely to lead them into indiscretions, he soothed them with the
- soothing-syrup. By turns the conducting of the piece was a march, a
- campaign, a house on fire, the race for the Derby, the forging of a
- hundred-ton gun, a display of fireworks, a mayoral banquet, and a mother
- scolding a numerous family.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was colossal.
- </p>
- <p>
- At the close, as sudden as the shutting of a door, there was a vast
- strange silence, and then the applause, as colossal as the piece, broke
- out like a conflagration.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria bowed; the entire band bowed; Carpentaria bowed again. Lastly
- he indicated a flute-player with his baton, and the flute-player came
- forward and shared the glory of Carpentaria. Why a flute-player, no one
- could have guessed. Forty flutes could not have been heard in that
- terrific concourse of brass and drums. But Carpentaria was Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did any of you hear the sound of a shot?&rdquo; Carpentaria said in a low voice
- to his band.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Shot? No, sir. No, sir,&rdquo; came from a dozen mouths. &ldquo;Why, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because a bullet has just grazed my ear. It was in the fourth bar from
- the end.&rdquo; He put his hand to his ear and showed blood on his finger. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s
- nothing, nothing,&rdquo; he quieted them. &ldquo;I shall expect you to behave as
- though nothing had occurred, as soldiers in fact.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly, sir,&rdquo; replied the intrepid band.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria gazed at one of the iron supports of the roof of the
- bandstand. In a line with his head the surface of the pillar had been
- damaged and dented. He disturbed two trombone-players in order to search
- the floor, and in a few seconds he had found a flattened bullet, which he
- put in his pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Number two,&rdquo; he said sharply, going to his desk and tapping it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Number two was the lullaby. No more striking contrast to the march could
- have been found. It was so delicate, so softly stealing, that you could
- scarcely hear it; and yet you could hear it&mdash;you could hear it
- everywhere. Carpentaria drew sweetness out of his band with the gestures
- of a conjurer drawing an interminable roll of coloured paper from his
- mouth, previously shown to be empty. It was the daintiest thing, swaying
- in the air like gossamer. It brought tears to the orbs of mothers, and
- made strong men close their eyes. Such was the versatility of Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- The applause amounted to a furore.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I give you my word of honour, ladies and gentlemen,&rdquo; said Carpentaria,
- coming to the rail of the stand and stilling the cheers with a gesture,
- &ldquo;at halfpast three this afternoon not a note of the little piece was
- composed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His demeanour gave no sign of agitation. But at the close of the concert,
- no more bullets having arrived, he wiped his brow with relief. Most of the
- band did the same.
- </p>
- <p>
- He walked about on the river terrace for over an hour, calming his spirit,
- which had been through so many excitements, artistic and otherwise, during
- the afternoon and evening. And he meditated, now on the bullet, and now on
- Ilam. He could scarcely realize how nearly he had escaped quarrelling with
- Ilam in the balloon; their relations hitherto had been invariably
- amicable, at any rate on the surface; and he had done so much for Ilam; he
- had put a second fortune in Ilam&rsquo;s pocket. The dazzling success of the day
- of inauguration was the success of Carpentaria&rsquo;s ideas. And yet Ilam hated
- him. He felt that Ilam hated him. He almost shuddered as he remembered the
- moment when he had sat on the dizzy edge of the balloon-car, and Ilam had
- threatened him, and then laughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Oriental Gardens were empty and dark. The gay crowd had departed; the
- lights were extinguished. Only the light in Ilam&rsquo;s drawing-room shone
- across the expanse as it had shone through all the evening. Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- own bungalow was dark. He wondered what Juliette was doing.
- </p>
- <p>
- At length he set off home through the gardens. And just as he was entering
- his front-door he recollected that he had given no instructions about the
- drunken man in the enclosure. He turned back down the steps, and went into
- the enclosure and struck a match. The man was lying on the ground, no
- doubt asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, this is a caution!&rdquo; he muttered.
- </p>
- <p>
- A notion occurred to him, one of his fanciful pranks. He picked up the
- unconscious man, who held himself stiff and did not even groan, and
- carried him, not with too much difficulty&mdash;for Carpentaria was
- extremely powerful&mdash;to the side-door of Ilam&rsquo;s residence; he placed
- the form against the door. Every night for weeks past Ilam had come out by
- that door about midnight to take a final stroll of inspection. He felt
- that he owed Ilam a grudge. Then he retired into the shadow and waited.
- </p>
- <p>
- Presently the door opened, and Ilam fell over the man, as Carpentaria
- hoped he would, and picked himself up with oaths and struck a match and
- gazed at the form.
- </p>
- <p>
- At the same instant a woman&rsquo;s figure passed Carpentaria in the dark. He
- was surprised to recognize Juliette. He touched her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; she cried softly, starting back.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you start like that?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&mdash;you&mdash;frightened me,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- He escorted her into their house. When he came out again Ilam was
- descending the steps by the side door. Nothing lay near the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Seen anything of a drunken man?&rdquo; Carpentaria called out.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam, after a pause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not near your door?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, nothing. Only I thought I saw one.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good night,&rdquo; growled Ilam, but instead of taking the air he returned
- abruptly to the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0006" id="link2HCH0006"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VI&mdash;The Black Burden
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>urious!
- Carpentaria meditated as he retired to his abode. &ldquo;Having fallen over a
- man lying drunk on his steps, why should my friend and partner, Mr.
- Josephus Ilam, totally deny that he has seen a drunken man? With my own
- eyes I saw him tumble. Now this mishap must have made Mr. Josephus Ilam
- angry, because he is just the sort of person who does get angry upon the
- provocation of a pure accident. Yet, so far as I could judge in the gloom,
- there was no trace of anger in his demeanour when he answered my question.
- On the contrary, he appeared to be rather subdued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And further&mdash;what has become of my friend the drunken man? The
- drunken man must exist somewhere. Is he in Ilam&rsquo;s house? And, if so, why
- is he in Ilam&rsquo;s house? Neither Josephus nor his mother is precisely a type
- of the Good Samaritan. And if he is not in Ilam&rsquo;s house, has he suddenly
- recovered and walked away on his legs unaided? Impossible! I was once
- drunk, and I say, impossible. Then, has Josephus carried him somewhere?
- And where has he carried him, and why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria unlocked his front-door and entered the hall of his dwelling,
- and then locked and bolted the door. He was not in the habit of either
- locking or bolting his front-door; the idea of so securing a house which
- stood in the middle of half a square mile of private property, well
- guarded at all its gates, seemed ridiculous. Nevertheless he did it, and
- he could have given no reason for doing it. He imagined that he heard
- footsteps in the passage leading from the hall to the kitchen, and he
- quickly turned on the electric light and looked down the passage. But
- there was nothing. He decided that he was very nervous and impressionable
- that night. The servants had, doubtless, long since gone to bed. He
- extinguished the light and made his way upstairs to his study, and sat
- down in his chair&mdash;the famous chair in which he composed his famous
- melodies. The faint illumination of the May night made the principal
- objects in the room vaguely visible. He could discern the pale square of
- the framed autograph letter from President McKinley which hung on the
- opposite wall. He tried to collect his ideas and think in a logical
- sequence.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then, again, he fancied that he heard footsteps, and that he saw a dim
- form near the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who&rsquo;s that?&rdquo; he cried sharply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s only me,&rdquo; answered a woman&rsquo;s voice, and the electricity was at the
- same instant switched on.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette stood there.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why are you sitting in the dark, Carlos?&rdquo; she demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carlos was her pet name for him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; he said lamely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My poor dear,&rdquo; she smiled, approaching him. &ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t said good-night to
- you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She put her long and elegant hands on his shoulders, as was her wont each
- evening, and kissed him on both cheeks in her French fashion. The
- affection between Carlos and his half-French half-sister was real and
- profound. He liked her for her Parisian daintiness, and for the eminently
- practical qualities which she possessed in common with most Frenchwomen,
- and also because she regarded him as a genius. To-night he thought she was
- sweeter and more sisterly than ever.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night,&rdquo; she said, and her voice trembled, and a slight humidity
- glistened in her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night,&rdquo; he responded.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she tripped off, swinging the perfect skirt of her black <i>mousseline</i>
- dress round the edge of the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She&rsquo;s mightily excited to-night,&rdquo; he murmured to himself; and he
- reflected, as all men reflect from time to time, that women are strange
- and incomprehensible, a device invented by Providence to keep the wit of
- man well sharpened by constant employment.
- </p>
- <p>
- He passed into his bedroom, and went out on to the wooden balcony of the
- bedroom, which commanded a view of Ilam&rsquo;s side-door. A light showed
- through the glass above the door, and Carpentaria noticed at length that
- the door was slightly ajar. He stepped back into the bedroom, extinguished
- all his own lights, and returned to the balcony to watch. He determined to
- watch as long as Ilam&rsquo;s door remained ajar. He sat down in a cane chair
- provided for repose on the balcony, and his one regret was that the glow
- of a cigarette or a cigar would betray him.
- </p>
- <p>
- He grew calmer. The frenzy into which music always threw him had quite
- worn itself away. He was able to think clearly. He did not, however, think
- so much upon the incident of the drunken man as upon the incident of the
- bullet; and this was perhaps natural. He was astounded now that he could
- have remained in the bandstand, so utterly careless of danger, after the
- arrival of the bullet. He was astounded, too, at the sang-froid of his
- musicians. But, then, their ears had not been grazed, and his had. He saw
- that he was at the mercy of any homicidal maniac who, on a dark night,
- with a good rifle and a sure aim, chose to secrete himself in some
- deserted alley of the vast Oriental Gardens, and shoot at him during a
- loud burst of music. And he said: &ldquo;Well, if I am to die, I am to die, and
- there&rsquo;s an end of it. Assuming that a given man A has really determined to
- kill another given man B, and A is obstinate, nothing will ultimately save
- B. I am B. Hence I must be philosophical.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But who was A?
- </p>
- <p>
- He thought of all the enemies he had made, all the rivals he had defeated,
- but the process of their enumeration was perfunctory. For out of the
- depths of his mind rose persistently one name, again, and again, and
- again, and yet again, like a succession of bubbles, all alike, rising to
- the surface of a pond and breaking there. And that name was the name of
- Ilam. He forbade the name to rise, but it rose. With the simplicity which
- marked some of his mental processes, he could not understand why Ilam
- should hate him murderously. But the episode of the balloon had magically
- and terribly cast a new and searching light on the recesses of Ham&rsquo;s
- character. He felt that hitherto he had been mistaken in Ilam, and that
- Ilam was not a person with whom it was wise to have interests in common.
- And the unknown designs of Ilam seemed to surround him in the night like
- the web of a gigantic spider, and to bind him tighter and tighter.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then his reflections were interrupted by a sound somewhere below the
- balcony.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the sound of his own side-door being very cautiously opened. He
- could hear it perfectly clearly in the still night; but whether the door
- was being opened from the outside or the inside he could not tell. He
- remembered that, though he had bolted and locked the front-door, he had
- utterly forgotten the side-door. He leaned over the balcony as far as he
- dared, but even so he could catch no glimpse of anything in the obscurity
- beneath.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then there were steps on the gravel, and he saw a white blur moving on
- the top of a dark mass. In another moment he perceived that the apparition
- was Juliette, with a white shawl wrapped round her head. What was she
- doing there, and why had she opened the door so cautiously? Had she some
- secret? He decided to watch her. She moved to the middle of the avenue
- between the two houses and hesitated. And then the great clock in the
- tower of the Exposition Palace tolled the hour of twelve solemnly, as it
- were warningly, over the immense extent of the sleeping City of Pleasure.
- </p>
- <p>
- The appeal of the clock seemed to Carpentaria to be almost dramatic. He
- felt strongly that he could not spy upon Juliette, that he could not be
- disloyal to this affectionate companion of his life, and honourably he
- called out to her:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette, what are you doing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His own voice startled him. It was so clear and penetrative in the gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a slight pause. Then Juliette replied: &ldquo;Carlos, you seem bent on
- frightening me tonight. I thought you were in bed and asleep. You&rsquo;ll take
- cold on that balcony. I only came out to get a little air.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The notion struck him that her head was turned directly to Ham&rsquo;s house,
- and yet she made no comment on the light there and the door ajar.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go in, there&rsquo;s a good girl,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s you who&rsquo;ll be taking
- cold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m going in,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she went in.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had yet another alarm. Something moved on the balcony itself, near a
- row of flower-pots. Then he felt a pressure against his leg.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, Beppo!&rdquo; he whispered, suddenly relieved, smiling at his nervous
- timidity. A great Angora cat leaped on to his knees, and began clawing at
- the superb pile of his purple trousers. He stroked the animal, and Beppo
- purred with a volume of sound equal to that of many sawmills. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t purr
- so loud, Bep,&rdquo; he advised the cat; but the cat, under the impression that
- it was the centre of importance in the best of all possible worlds, purred
- with undiminished vigour.
- </p>
- <p>
- Five minutes, ten minutes, a quarter of an hour passed so, and then
- Carpentaria heard heavy footsteps in the avenue from the direction of the
- Central Way. He jumped up, shattering the illusions of Beppo, and listened
- intently. A man presently appeared, walking slowly. He wondered who it
- could be; but when the figure paused at Ilam&rsquo;s steps, mounted them, and
- pushed open the unlatched door, he saw that it was Ilam himself, and that
- Ilam was holding in his arms a bundle of what looked like black cloth. The
- vision of him was but transient, for Ilam closed the door at once. Ilam,
- then, must have left his house before Carpentaria had come on to the
- balcony. The watcher on the balcony felt his heart beating rapidly. His
- calm had vanished. The frenzy of the music, the perturbation caused by the
- bullet, had passed, only to give way to another and perhaps a more
- dreadful excitation. What could these secret journeys of Ilam portend? He
- clutched fiercely the rail of the balcony in his apprehensive anxiety.
- </p>
- <p>
- After a time&mdash;not a very long time&mdash;the door opened again, and
- for at least five seconds Josephus Ilam stood plainly silhouetted against
- a light within the house, and over his shoulders, which were bent, he
- carried an enormous limp burden, draped in black. He looked back into the
- house once, then turned awkwardly, because of his burden, to shut the door
- behind him, and with excessive deliberation descended the steps and came
- out into the avenue. The figure and its burden were now nothing but a
- shape in the gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria decided in the fraction of a second what he would do. He
- slipped into his bedroom, took off his boots, put on a pair of felt
- slippers, scurried downstairs, opened the side-door, and gently slipped
- out. Ilam, tramping slowly with clumsy footsteps, had reached the arch
- leading to the Central Way.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0007" id="link2HCH0007"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VII&mdash;The Cut
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria dogged
- him with all the precautions of silence as he turned to the right down the
- Central Way. The great thoroughfare of the City of Pleasure was, of
- course, absolutely deserted. Its fountains were stilled; its pretty
- cable-cars had disappeared; its flags had been hauled down. The meagre
- trees rustled chilly in the night-wind. Its vast and floriated white
- architecture seemed under the sombre sky to be the architecture of a
- dream. The one sign of human things was the illuminated face of the clock
- over the Exposition Palace, which showed twenty-five minutes past twelve.
- Of the two thousand souls employed in the City, more than half had gone to
- their homes in the other city, London, and several hundreds slept in the
- dormitories that had been built for them at the southern extremity of the
- Central Way. The remaining hundred or so were dispersed in various parts
- of the City, either watching or asleep. Some had the right to sleep at
- their posts. But the men of the highly-organized fire service would be
- awake and alert.
- </p>
- <p>
- Yet there happened to be no living creature on the Way, except its two
- chiefs. Ilam crossed the Way, and turned off it through an avenue that lay
- between the lecture hall and the menagerie. Carpentaria followed at a safe
- distance, hiding in the thick shadows as he went. From the interior of the
- menagerie came the subdued growls and groans of the wild beasts therein,
- suffering from insomnia, and longing for the jungle. Among the treasures
- of the menagerie was a society of twenty-seven lions, who went through a
- performance twice a day under their trainer, Brant, the king of
- lion-tamers, as he was called on the City of Pleasure programmes, and as
- he, in fact, was. There were also a celebrated sanguinary tiger, that had
- killed three men in New York, and various other delicate attractions. The
- nocturnal noises of these fearsome animals were sufficiently appalling.
- And when Ilam stopped before a little door in the south façade of the
- menagerie building, a cold perspiration froze the forehead and the spirit
- of Carpentaria. Was the man going to yield his mysterious black-enveloped
- burden to the lions and the tigers, the jackals and the hyenas, of that
- inestimable collection of African and Asiatic fauna?
- </p>
- <p>
- But Ilam struggled onwards. And next they passed the electricity works,
- which was in full activity, for the manufacture of light went on night and
- day in the City of Pleasure. Ilam slunk along the front of the workshops,
- increasing his pace. Fortunately for him, the windows were seven feet from
- the ground, so that he could not be observed from within. The whirr of the
- wheels revolving incessantly in front of gigantic magnets filled the air,
- and from the high windows shone a steely-blue radiance, chequered by the
- flying shadows of machinery.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam turned again, and entered the Amusements Park, and, threading his way
- among chutes, switchbacks, slides, and ponds, he crossed it from end to
- end.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is he going?&rdquo; Carpentaria muttered.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then, suddenly, it occurred to Carpentaria where Ilam was going.
- </p>
- <p>
- Behind the Amusements Park, and abutting on the confines of the City
- territory, was a large waste piece of ground which had been used for
- excavations and for refuse. In the tremendous operation of levelling the
- site of the City, digging foundations, and gardening in the landscape
- manner, much earth had been needed in one spot, and much earth had had to
- be removed in another. The waste piece of ground was the clearing-house of
- this business. In certain parts it was humped like a camel&rsquo;s back, and in
- others it was hollowed into pits. Immense quantities of soil lay loose,
- and there were, besides, barrows and spades in abundance.
- </p>
- <p>
- Arrived in the midst of this sterile wilderness, Ilam unceremoniously
- dropped his burden near a miniature mountain, which raised itself by the
- side of a miniature pit. He then found a spade, and, having tested the
- looseness of the soil, took up the black mystery and slipped it carefully
- into the pit. Then he climbed with the spade on to the summit of the
- hillock, and began to push the soil from the hillock into the pit. It
- proved to be the simplest thing in the world. In five minutes the burden
- of Ilam lay under several feet of soil.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, favoured by the nature of the spot, had crept closer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust!&rdquo; he heard Ilam reciting.
- Amazing phenomenon! But nothing can be more amazing than the behaviour of
- an utterly respectable man when he is committing a crime!
- </p>
- <p>
- The affair finished, Ilam departed, passing within a few feet of
- Carpentaria, who stretched himself flat on the ground to avoid detection.
- </p>
- <p>
- And when Ilam had vanished out of sight, Carpentaria jumped up feverishly,
- seized the spade, leapt into the pit and began to dig&mdash;to dig with a
- fury of haste. Fate helped him, for the black mass was uncovered in less
- time than had been taken to cover it. He dragged it slowly out of the pit,
- and slowly, almost reluctantly, unwrapped it. He had been sure at the
- first touch that it was the body of a man, and he was not mistaken. In the
- gloomy night he could see the white patches made by the face and the
- hands. The body was not yet stiff. He hesitated, and then struck a match.
- He hoped the wind would blow it out, but the wind spared it; it flared
- bravely, and lighted the face of the corpse, and the corpse was that of
- the mysterious drunken man.
- </p>
- <p>
- A thousand unanswerable questions fought together for solution in
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s brain.
- </p>
- <p>
- He knew himself to be in the presence of a crime, of a murder. His legal
- duty, therefore, was to fetch justice in the shape of a policeman. But he
- reflected that no battalion of policemen and judges could undo the crime,
- bring the dead to life, make innocent the guilty. He reflected also upon
- the clumsiness of State justice, and the inconveniences attaching to it,
- and upon the immeasurable harm its advent might do to the opening season
- of the City of Pleasure. Moreover, he had a horror of capital punishment,
- and he was a bold and original man, though an artist. He settled rapidly
- in his mind that he himself would probe the matter to its root, and that
- the justice involved should be the private justice of Carpentaria, not the
- public justice of the realm.
- </p>
- <p>
- And a few minutes later he had discovered a long, flat barrow, and was
- wheeling away the burden that had bent the back of Josephus Ilam. He
- brought it circuitously and gently by way of the Sports Fields round again
- to the Central Way, and so to the neighbourhood of his own house. The
- night had now grown darker than ever, and a few drops of rain began to
- fall.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly, as he was approaching the two bungalows, he stopped and
- listened. He thought he heard footsteps; but no sound met his ear, and he
- raised the handles of the barrow again. By this time he was midway between
- the bungalows and about to turn to the side-entrance of his own. Once more
- he stopped; he distinctly did hear footsteps crushing the gravel.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that? Anyone there?&rdquo; cried a voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- And it was Ilam&rsquo;s voice, full of fear. Carpentaria crept away to the
- shelter of his own wall, leaving the barrow that had become a bier in the
- midst of the path. Vaguely and dimly he saw the form of Ilam coming down
- the avenue, saw it stop uncertainly before the barrow, saw it bend down,
- and then he heard a shriek&mdash;a shriek of terror&mdash;loud, violent,
- and echoing, and Ilam fled away. Carpentaria heard him mount the steps of
- his house and fumble with the door, and then he heard the bang of the
- door.
- </p>
- <p>
- With all possible speed he rushed to the barrow, wheeled it into his
- garden, and thence to an outhouse, of which he carefully fastened the
- padlock.
- </p>
- <p>
- He stood some time hesitant in the avenue, wondering whether any further
- singular phenomenon would proceed from the Ilam house that night. His
- curiosity was rewarded. A most strange procession emerged presently from
- the bungalow. First came old Mrs. Ilam, dressed in a crimson
- dressing-gown, a white nightcap on her head, and carrying a lamp with an
- elaborate drawing-room shade. Carpentaria could see that the lamp shook in
- her trembling hand. Her hands always trembled, but her head never. She
- came down the steps with the deliberation of extreme old age, peering in
- front of her, and she was followed, timorously, by her son. The lamp threw
- a large circle of yellow light on the ground, and at intervals Mrs. Ilam
- held it up high so that it illuminated the faces of mother and son. They
- came into the middle of the avenue. It was now seriously raining.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knew it wouldn&rsquo;t be there,&rdquo; Ilam whispered, in an awed tone. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t
- the sort of thing that stays. But I saw it&mdash;I saw the cloth and I saw
- a bit of its face.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam looked about her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nonsense, Jos,&rdquo; she upbraided him, fixing her eyes on him in a sort of
- reproof. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s your imagination.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Josephus. &ldquo;I saw it; and what&rsquo;s more, it was on a bier.
- That&rsquo;s the worst&mdash;it was on a bier. Mother, he will haunt me all my
- life!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t talk so loud, child,&rdquo; put in Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;You&rsquo;d better go to bed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the good of going to bed?&rdquo; he inquired. &ldquo;What! I took him and I
- buried him as safe as houses. I left him there, and I came straight back
- here, except that I was stopped by a watchman at the stables, who told me
- the horses seemed to be all frightened. And I had a talk to the fellow;
- and I find <i>it</i> on a bier here, right in my path. And now it&rsquo;s gone
- again.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And why were the horses frightened? That shows&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in,&rdquo; Mrs. Ilam repeated. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll get you some hot milk, and you must
- try to sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Sleep!&rdquo; he murmured. &ldquo;Mother, you mustn&rsquo;t leave me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And the procession re-entered the house, and the door was closed, but a
- light burned upstairs through the remainder of the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria himself had little sleep; he scarcely tried to sleep. He arose
- at seven o&rsquo;clock, and dressed and went out on to the balcony. The rain had
- ceased, and the Sunday morning was exquisitely calm and sunny. The whole
- scene was so bright and clear that the events of six hours ago appeared
- fantastic and impossible. Yet Carpentaria knew only too well that the
- unidentified corpse lay in the outhouse. He meant first to examine the
- corpse himself, and then to confide in a certain official of the city whom
- he knew that he could trust. What he should do after that he could not
- imagine. Decidely some process of burial would be speedily imperative.
- </p>
- <p>
- All the blinds of the Ilam bungalow were drawn. He guessed that at least
- the upper ones would remain so, and he was somewhat taken aback when Mrs.
- Ilam herself appeared at a window and opened it. He was still more taken
- aback to see Mrs. Ilam a moment later open the door, and with much
- stateliness cross the avenue to his own dwelling. He knew that she was
- friendly with Juliette, and that Juliette liked her. He, too, had admired
- her, but only because she was so old and so masterful, such a surprising
- relic. That she should be accessory to a crime did not seem strange to
- him. He esteemed her to be a woman capable of anything. He would have to
- warn Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- At eight o&rsquo;clock a servant brought up the French breakfast with which,
- under Juliette&rsquo;s influence, he compromised with hunger till lunch-time;
- and with the breakfast came, as usual, the cat Beppo. The breakfast
- consisted of a two-handled bowl of milk and a fresh roll and a pat of
- butter. Beppo seemed determined to share the breakfast without delay.
- Carpentaria, as was his frequent practice, took the roll off its plate and
- poured on the plate as much milk as it would hold. And Beppo, to whom milk
- was the answer to the riddle of the universe, leapt on to the table and
- began to lap in his gluttonous masculine way. He had taken exactly four
- laps when he ceased to lap. He looked up at his master, and there was a
- disturbed and pained expression in his amber eyes. This expression changed
- in an instant to one of positive fright. He was evidently breathing with
- difficulty, and he was rather at sea, for he groped about on the table and
- put both his forepaws into the bowl, splashing the milk in all directions.
- He then gave a fearful shriek; his pupils dilated horribly in spite of the
- strong sunshine, and he went into convulsions. His breath came quick and
- short. Finally, he fell off the table.
- </p>
- <p>
- He was dead.
- </p>
- <p>
- Less than three minutes previously he had been a cat full of power, of
- romance, and of the joy of life, with comfortable views on most things.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0008" id="link2HCH0008"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VIII&mdash;Disappearance of Juliette
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">P</span>eople may read
- about crimes in newspapers all their lives, and yet never properly realize
- that crime exists. To appreciate what crime is, one must be brought to
- close quarters with crime, as Carpentaria was. Twelve hours ago murder to
- him had been nothing but a name. Now he knew the horror that murder
- inspires. And with the corpse of the cat Beppo lying at his feet, he felt
- that horror far more keenly even than in the night as he unearthed the
- corpse of the mysterious drunken man. He had actually seen the cat done to
- death, and had it not been for the greediness of Beppo, he himself would
- have lain there, stretched out in eternal quiet.
- </p>
- <p>
- He looked at the half-empty bowl of milk and at the splashes of milk on
- the round painted table, reflecting that each splash was no doubt
- sufficient to kill a man.
- </p>
- <p>
- He wondered what he must do, how he must begin to disentangle himself from
- the coil of danger that was surrounding him. He was not afraid. He was
- probably much too excited to be afraid. He was angry, startled, grieved,
- and puzzled, and nothing more. His mind turned naturally to Juliette&mdash;Juliette,
- his comforter and companion. He did not like the idea of frightening her
- by a recital of what had occurred, but he knew that he would be compelled
- to do so. He must talk confidentially to some one who understood him and
- admired him. Now, at that hour in the morning the faithful Juliette, her
- dress ornamented by an extremely small and attractive French apron, was in
- the habit of personally dusting the writing-table in Carpentaria&rsquo;s study
- adjoining the bedroom. No profane hand ever touched that table, and
- Juliette&rsquo;s own hand never ventured to arrange its sublime disorder. There
- were three servants in the house&mdash;the parlourmaid, the cook, and a
- scullery-maid. There might have been a dozen had Juliette so wished. But
- Juliette was a simple person; her father, the second husband of
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s mother, had belonged to the plain and excellent French
- bourgeoisie, who know so well how to cook and how to save money, and
- Juliette had inherited his tastes. Juliette was always curbing
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s instinct towards magnificence. She did not want even three
- servants, and there were a number of delicate tasks, such as the dusting
- of Carpentaria&rsquo;s table, that she would not permit them to do.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria touched nothing on the balcony. He went into the bedroom,
- fastened the window, and then hesitated. He could hear Juliette&rsquo;s soft
- movements in the study. Ought he, could he, go to her and say bluntly:
- &ldquo;Juliette, some one is trying to murder me, and you must take more care
- than you took this morning&mdash;you allowed my milk to be poisoned&rdquo;?
- </p>
- <p>
- At last he opened the door of the study.
- </p>
- <p>
- But it was not Juliette dusting the sacred table. It was Jenkins, the
- parlourmaid!
- </p>
- <p>
- Such a thing had never before happened in the united domesticity of
- Carpentaria and Juliette! It was astounding. It unnerved Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- He locked the door of the bedroom, and put the key in his pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo; he demanded gruffly of the parlourmaid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dusting your table, sir,&rdquo; replied Jenkins, in a tone that respectfully
- asked to be informed whether Carpentaria was blind.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who told you to dust my table?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mistress, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is your mistress?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know, sir. She told me to come up and dust the room.&rdquo; A pause. &ldquo;I&mdash;er&mdash;really
- don&rsquo;t know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go and find her. Ask her to speak to me at once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Half a minute, Jenkins. It was you who brought my milk up?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where did you take it from?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mistress gave it me with her own hands, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you brought it direct to me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one else touched it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anybody called here this morning?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Called, sir?&rdquo; Jenkins seemed ruffled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. Anybody been to the house?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir,&rdquo; said Jenkins, as though in asking if anybody had called
- Carpentaria was reflecting upon her moral character. And she blushed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well. Go and find your mistress.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Jenkins departed, and came back in a surprisingly short space of time.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mistress doesn&rsquo;t seem to be about, sir,&rdquo; said Jenkins.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What? She hasn&rsquo;t gone out, has she?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not that I know of, sir. But I can&rsquo;t find her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you looked in her bedroom?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knocked at the door, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And there was no answer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When did you last see your mistress?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When she told me to dust this room, sir, after I had brought up your
- milk.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where was she?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the dining-room, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A fearful thought ran through the mind of Carpentaria, cutting it like a
- lancet. Suppose that Juliette had been poisoned! Suppose that an attempt
- had been made against her, as against him, but with more success! He
- hurried out of the room and knocked loudly at her bedroom-door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette! Are you there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette, I say!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again no answer. His heart almost stopped. He opened the door and entered
- the room. It was empty, but already the bed had been made and everything
- tidied. He penetrated to the dressing-room, which was equally neat and
- equally empty.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he searched the house and the premises; he searched everywhere except
- in the little outhouse wherein was hidden the corpse of the drunken man.
- At length, after a futile cross-examination of the cook in the kitchen, he
- perceived that the scullery-maid, in the scullery was surreptitiously
- beckoning to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- This ungainly chit, Polly, whose person was only kept presentable by the
- ceaseless efforts of Juliette, had red hair, rather less red than
- Carpentaria&rsquo;s, and she worshipped him afar off. She had that &ldquo;cult&rdquo; for
- him which very humble servants do sometimes entertain for masters who
- never even throw them a glance. And now she was beckoning to him and
- making eyes!
- </p>
- <p>
- He followed her through the scullery into the yard.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you want mistress, sir?&rdquo; asked Polly in a whisper.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, she&rsquo;s over the wye, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Over the way?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir, at Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s. Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s been here this morning, sir. Don&rsquo;t
- tell mistress as I told you, sir, for the love of heving!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette was at Ilam&rsquo;s! And he had twice found Juliette in the avenue
- during the night! And she had been strangely excited when she came to kiss
- him before going to bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- In something less than fifteen seconds he was rattling loudly at Ilam&rsquo;s
- door. He received no answer. He heard no sound within the house. Wondering
- where the servants could be, he assaulted the door again, this time
- furiously. A man who was rolling a lawn in the Oriental Gardens glanced up
- at him. Still there was no reply. He was just deciding to break into the
- house by way of a window, when the door opened very suddenly, and as he
- was leaning upon it, he pitched forward into the hall and into the arms of
- old Mrs. Ilam, who, with her white cap, her black dress and her parchment
- face, seemed aggrieved by this entrance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria!&rdquo; she protested, raising her shaking hands.
- </p>
- <p>
- But she was admirably and overpoweringly calm, and her extreme age
- prevented Carpentaria from taking the measures which he would have taken
- had she been younger, less imposing, less august, less like a dead woman
- who walked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My sister is here, and I must see her at once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, Mr. Carpentaria; your sister is not here.&rdquo; Her tone startled him. It
- was so cold and positive. But after a few seconds he thought she was
- lying.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has been here, then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, Mr. Carpentaria. She has not been here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really! But you have seen her this morning. You came to my house.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me, Mrs. Ilam, I saw you from my&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&mdash;from your balcony? You saw me cross the avenue, but you did not
- see me enter your house. You could not have seen that from your balcony,
- even if I had entered; and, as it happens, I didn&rsquo;t enter.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My servants say you came.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your servants probably say a good many things, Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; she
- smiled humorously.
- </p>
- <p>
- The musician felt himself against a stone wall. &ldquo;Can I see your son?&rdquo; he
- asked at length of the imperturbable old woman.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My son is in bed and far from well,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I should like to talk to you instead,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- She seemed to burst into welcome.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in, then, my dear man, do! Come in!&rdquo; And she preceded him into the
- drawing-room, an apartment furnished in the richest Tottenham Court Road
- splendour. They sat down on either side of the hearth, where a fire was
- burning. He did not know exactly how to begin.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now, Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; she encouraged him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Some very strange things have been happening, Mrs. Ilam,&rdquo; said he.
- </p>
- <p>
- He deemed that he might as well go directly to the point. He would come to
- Juliette afterwards. So long as Juliette was not in Ilam&rsquo;s house she was
- probably in no immediate danger.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To you?&rdquo; asked the dame.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To me. I saw some very strange things with my own eyes last night, and
- within the last twelve Lours there have been two attempts to murder me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A slight flush reddened the wrinkled yellow cheek of Mrs. Ilam. It seemed
- as though she tried to speak and could not. Her fingers worked
- convulsively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You, too?&rdquo; he murmured, with apparent difficulty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you say &lsquo;you, too&rsquo;?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- She paused again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was the milk?&rdquo; she seemed to stammer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, the second attempt; it was the milk,&rdquo; admitted Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- She hid her face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The same attempt has been made against Josephus,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;And he was
- so frightened it has made him ill. That is why he is not feeling very well
- this morning.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But does Mr. Ilam take milk for breakfast? I thought he always had ham
- and eggs?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never!&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;Hot bread-and-milk. Nothing else.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And how did he find out that the milk was poisoned?&rdquo; Carpentaria pursued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;But he did. He&rsquo;s very particular
- about his food, is Jos. And he suspected something. So he tried it on
- Neptune, the Newfoundland. And Neptune is dead. He says he thinks it must
- be prussic acid. Oh, Mr. Carpentaria, what is this plot against us all?
- What are we to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria was reduced to muteness. The old lady had changed the trend of
- his thoughts. He had been secretly accusing Ilam, but if Ilam&rsquo;s life also
- had been attempted, the case was very much altered. It was perhaps even
- more perilous. Still, Mrs. Ilam had done nothing to explain the
- extraordinary events of the night. He decided to be cautious.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I happened to see lights in your house very late last night, or rather,
- early this morning,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I was afraid that either you or Mr. Ilam
- might be ill.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His eyes sought hers and met them fully and squarely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; she exclaimed sadly. &ldquo;Jos had a dreadful night. He does have them
- sometimes, you know. Bad dreams. In many ways he is just like a child.
- There are nights when I think his dreams are more real to him than his
- real life. Now, last night he dreamed there was a corpse lying on a bier
- in the avenue, and nothing would satisfy him but that I should come out
- with him to see. Fancy it! at my age! However, there was nothing&mdash;of
- course.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria said to himself that the old lady evidently was unaware of her
- son&rsquo;s midnight escapade, and that he could get no further with her. The
- hope sprang up within him that Polly had been after all mistaken. Juliette
- might have gone out merely for a stroll and have returned ere then. He
- rose to take leave of Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you going to do?&rdquo; she asked him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What about?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, my dear man, about this attempted poisoning.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose we must inform the police,&rdquo; he replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I suppose so,&rdquo; she agreed. &ldquo;But perhaps it would be well to wait
- until you had had a talk with Jos. He&rsquo;ll be getting up during the day.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll see,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a good thing it&rsquo;s Sunday and we&rsquo;re free, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; she remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had got precisely as far as the drawing-room door, when a voice reached
- his ears from the upper story. &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam! Mrs. Ilam! He&rsquo;s eaten his ham
- and eggs. What about the marmalade?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria dashed into the hall and looked up the stairs, and he saw the
- head of Juliette over the banisters.
- </p>
- <p>
- Behind him he heard a suppressed sigh from Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0009" id="link2HCH0009"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER IX&mdash;The Dead Dog
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria ran up
- the stairs. If he had not had flame-coloured hair, and the fiery temper
- that goes with it, he would probably have pursued the more dignified
- course of calling Juliette down and interrogating her in privacy. But he
- was Carpentaria. She knew his moods, and she fled before him into a
- sitting-room, where Ilam, a dressing-gown covering his suit of Sunday
- black, reclined in an easy-chair by the side of a small table bearing an
- empty plate and a knife and fork.
- </p>
- <p>
- She cowered down on the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, Carlos!&rdquo; she exclaimed under her breath.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria made the obvious demand:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing in this house, Juliette?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look here, Carpentaria,&rdquo; Ilam began, rising a little in a chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Silence!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria angrily and threateningly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And at the noise the great dog Neptune, pride of the Ilams, emerged from
- behind the chair and growled.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette said at last:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam told me that Jos&mdash;that Mr. Ilam was unwell, and so I&mdash;I
- came to see how he was. That&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Is that all? Your philanthropic interest in
- the sick and suffering, my girl, does you great credit. But as the invalid
- seems to be doing fairly well you&rsquo;d better come home with me. I want to
- talk to you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette gave a look of appeal to Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must tell him,&rdquo; she whispered. &ldquo;I must tell Carlos. Why did you want me
- to keep it a secret? Carlos, Mr. Ilam and I are engaged to be married. We
- love each other. We only want your consent, and Jos was afraid you
- mightn&rsquo;t give it. He was afraid. We&rsquo;ve been engaged three days now,
- haven&rsquo;t we, Jos?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My consent!&rdquo; Carpentaria shouted bitterly. &ldquo;My consent!&rdquo; His wrath was
- dreadful, and yet to a certain extent he was controlling himself. &ldquo;I
- suppose,&rdquo; he addressed Juliette, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s your love for this estimable
- gentleman that leads you out into the gardens of a night, and I suppose
- you take beautiful romantic moonlight strolls together. My consent! Ye
- gods!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The dog continued to growl.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette gathered herself together, and moved to Ilam&rsquo;s chair, and Ilam
- took her hand protectively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My poor dear! Never mind!&rdquo; murmured Ilam soothingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Genuine affection spoke in those tones uttered by the stout and otherwise
- grotesque Mr. Ilam. Love itself unmistakably appeared in the attitude of
- the pair as they clasped hands in front of Carpentaria&rsquo;s fury. And
- Carpentaria could not but be struck by what he saw. It sobered him,
- puzzled him, diverted his thoughts.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come, Juliette,&rdquo; he said in a quieter, more persuasive tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to leave the room, and Juliette obediently followed. Allowing
- her to pass before him, he stopped an instant and threw a glance at Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So they&rsquo;ve been trying to poison you, Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poison me!&rdquo; repeated Ilam, plainly at a loss.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria with a sneer. &ldquo;And you never have ham and eggs for
- breakfast. That&rsquo;s the reason why that plate is streaked with yellow. You
- always have milk. Naturally, you eat it with a knife and fork. And you
- suspected the milk and gave some of it to Neptune, and he fell down dead.
- He looks dead, doesn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what you mean,&rdquo; Ilam said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must ask mamma,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria, departing.
- </p>
- <p>
- He saw now with the utmost clearness that the aged Mrs. Ilam had been
- indulging him with some impromptu lying, invented, and clumsily invented,
- to put him off the scent, were it only for a few hours.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She may be clumsy in her lying,&rdquo; he thought as he descended the stairs in
- Juliette&rsquo;s wake, &ldquo;but she can act, the old woman can!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He remembered that her acting had been perfect, and if Juliette had not
- happened to disclose the fact of her presence, the lying of Mrs. Ilam,
- clumsy as it was, might have succeeded. It is so easy to poison a dog, and
- to arrange the remains of poisoned milk.
- </p>
- <p>
- He was capable of congratulating her on her acting, but she had utterly
- vanished from the ground-floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- When he had deposited Juliette safely in his study, she began to cry
- softly. It was impossible for him to maintain his anger against her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;why do you have secrets from me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, Carlos, he wished it to be kept secret. He said he had reasons; and I
- love him. No one has ever loved me before, and I&rsquo;m thirty.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What about my affection?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s different!&rdquo; she cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he questioned her about Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was at the kitchen window, preparing your milk, and the window was
- open, and Mrs. Ilam came up outside, and told me that Jos was unwell, and
- wanted to see me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did she touch the milk?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Touch the milk? No; why should she touch the milk?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could she reach to touch the milk, supposing she had wished to?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I dare say she could. Yes, she could. But why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could you swear absolutely she didn&rsquo;t?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t swear; but I&rsquo;m nearly sure. Carlos, what do you mean?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll show you what I mean!&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- He unlocked the bedroom door and led her to the balcony.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0010" id="link2HCH0010"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER X&mdash;A Pinch of Snuff
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hree hours later
- Carpentaria, whose thoughts had been bent upon some solution of the
- problem set by Juliette&rsquo;s strange and incomprehensible love affair with
- Josephus Ilam, was obliged to devote his brains to other and not less
- disturbing matters. He received in his study, for the second time that
- day, young Rivers, the newly-admitted doctor who had been officially
- attached to the City of Pleasure. A medical cabinet and a pharmacy had
- been judged quite indispensable to the smooth running of the City, and the
- foresight which had provided them was entirely justified by the numerous
- small accidents, faintings, and indispositions that marked the opening
- day, when more than three hundred persons had patronized the pharmacy, and
- more than twenty had received the attentions of the ardent young doctor.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria had first met young Rivers when this youth was walking Bart&rsquo;s,
- and the accession of Rivers to the brilliant and brilliantly remunerated
- position of physician and surgeon-in-ordinary to the City of Pleasure was
- due to Carpentaria&rsquo;s influence. Rivers was grateful, very grateful.
- Moreover, he liked Carpentaria, thought him, in fact, the most wonderful
- man, except Lord Lister, that he had ever met.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said the fair youth of twenty-five, when Carpentaria had shut the
- study-door, &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve made the analysis. It comes out to just about what I
- expected.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Prussic acid?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not exactly prussic acid. A soluble cyanide&mdash;cyanide of potassium.
- Have you by any chance got a photographic bureau concealed somewhere in
- the show?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, of course,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Didn&rsquo;t you know? It&rsquo;s next door to
- the lecture-hall.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then the cyanide of potassium was probably got from there. It&rsquo;s used by
- photographers. Better make inquiries.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We will,&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed. &ldquo;And do you mean to say cyanide of
- potassium will kill like that? How much prussic acid does it contain?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Scarcely any. Not two per cent.&mdash;not one per cent.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And poor Beppo was dead in a minute.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said Rivers excitedly. &ldquo;The strongest solution
- of prussic acid known to commerce only contains four per cent, of pure
- acid. And in the anhydrous state&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anhydrous?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That means without water. In the anhydrous state,&rdquo; Rivers proceeded
- enthusiastically, &ldquo;two grains will kill a man in a second of time. Like
- that! It&rsquo;s an amazing poison!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria shuddered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By the way,&rdquo; he said, as if casually, &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve got a corpse I want you to
- look at.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A corpse?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Keep calm, my young friend,&rdquo; Carpentaria enjoined him. And he told him
- the history of the drunken man. &ldquo;Naturally all this is strictly
- confidential,&rdquo; he concluded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should think so,&rdquo; said Rivers, aghast. &ldquo;Can you not see that you have
- got yourself into a dreadful mess? You are an accessory after the fact.
- You have been guilty of a gross illegality. I don&rsquo;t know what the penalty
- is; I&rsquo;m not very well up in medical jurisprudence; but I know it&rsquo;s
- something pretty stiff. Why, you might be accused of the murder.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I am aware of all that,&rdquo; answered Carpentaria. &ldquo;But I was very
- curious; and I didn&rsquo;t want any police meddling here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are going just the way to bring them here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all. When you have made your examination I shall simply put the
- body where I found it. No one will be the wiser.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And theft?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then&mdash;we shall see. It will depend on your examination.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, really, Mr. Carpentaria, I cannot lend myself&mdash;&mdash;-&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not to oblige me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria smiled an engaging smile, and they descended together to the
- outhouse.
- </p>
- <p>
- The outhouse was not more than eleven feet square, and the barrow with its
- burden was stretched across it diagonally, so that when the two men were
- inside, the place was full and the door would scarcely close. A small
- window gave light.
- </p>
- <p>
- Rivers gently pulled the black cloth aside.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is just such black cloth as photographers use,&rdquo; he remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So it is,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes of the corpse were closed; he might have been a man asleep, this
- strange relic from which a soul had flown and which would soon resolve
- itself into its original dust.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poor fellow,&rdquo; thought Carpentaria. &ldquo;Once he lived, and had interests, and
- probably passions, and thought himself of some importance in the
- universe.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The spectacle saddened Carpentaria, whereas the young doctor was not at
- all saddened, he was merely intensely interested.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A blow on the head among other things,&rdquo; he observed, indicating to
- Carpentaria the top of the skull which showed an abrasion together with an
- extravasation of blood, now clotted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Would that do it?&rdquo; queried Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t know. Might. By Jove, the rigor is extraordinarily acute.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rigor?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <h3>
- 7.8
- </h3>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The stiffness that follows death. Great Scott!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The doctor assumed an upright position, and stared, first at the corpse
- and then at Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great Scott!&rdquo; he repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s up?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The doctor made no reply, but tried to lift the left arm of the body. He
- could not, without raising the entire body.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is most interesting,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again Rivers did not answer. Instead, he took his watch from his pocket,
- and put it suddenly against the ear of the corpse.
- </p>
- <p>
- The corpse twitched; its head moved slightly; the eyelid lifted the eighth
- of an inch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;See that? You&rsquo;re lucky! And so&rsquo;s he!&rdquo; said the doctor. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s catalepsy!
- that&rsquo;s all&mdash;A sudden slight noise at the ear itself will often
- produce a change of position in catalepsy.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then he&rsquo;s not dead!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dead? He&rsquo;s no more dead than you are! It&rsquo;s just catalepsy, induced
- probably by that blow. But he must have been very excited previously, and,
- no doubt, suffering from melancholia too. My dear Mr. Carpentaria, there
- is only one absolutely reliable symptom of death, and that is&mdash;putrefaction.
- Death is imitated by various diseases. But there are not many that will
- imitate the coldness of death as catalepsy will. Feel that hand; it&rsquo;s like
- ice.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And how long will he remain in this condition?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria, full
- of joy and relief.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Till you go and bring me some snuff. Snuff is the best thing in these
- cases.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And he&rsquo;ll be perfectly well again?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, in a day or two.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;ll remember&mdash;things?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course he will! Shall I go for that snuff, or will you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will run,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, and he ran.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0011" id="link2HCH0011"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XI&mdash;The Return to Life
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">I</span>t was half-past
- seven o&rsquo;clock on Monday evening. More than thirty hours had elapsed since
- young Rivers first began his operations to restore life to the cataleptic
- patient, and he was only just succeeding in an affair which had proved
- extremely difficult and protracted. Young Rivers, in fact, had found out
- during the watches of Sunday night and the sunny morning of Monday that
- the disease (if catalepsy may be called a disease) has a habit of flatly
- defying the rules of medical text-books and the experience of even the
- youngest doctors. But ultimately he had triumphed, though not by means of
- the famous snuff, which Carpentaria had obtained, after exhaustive
- research, from a bass-fiddle player in his band.
- </p>
- <p>
- The patient reclined, alive, conscious, capable of movement and speech,
- but otherwise a prodigious enigma, in an arm-chair in Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- bedroom. His existence was a profound secret from all except the doctor
- and the musician.
- </p>
- <p>
- And now these two, who had brought him back to earthly life, wanted him to
- talk, to explain himself, to unravel the mysteries of Saturday afternoon
- and Saturday night. And Carpentaria, dressed in his uniform, waited, watch
- in hand; for in half an hour the daily concert must commence in the
- Oriental Gardens. Nothing could interfere with Carpentaria&rsquo;s presence in
- the gorgeous illuminated bandstand. He had sacrificed his interest in his
- half-sister, his curiosity about the doings of the Ilams, his inspection
- of the affairs of the City, and even a rehearsal, to the care of the
- recovering cataleptic, but the concert itself, with its audience of a
- hundred thousand or so, could not be sacrificed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you are Carpentaria?&rdquo; murmured the patient, sipping at a glass of hot
- milk.
- </p>
- <p>
- His age now appeared to be fifty. He had grey hair and a short grey beard,
- rather whiter than the hair, and his eyes bore the expression of a man who
- has found that life bears no striking resemblance to a good joke. His
- hands moved nervously over the surfaces of the chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Carpentaria admitted; &ldquo;and you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the first direct question that he had ventured to put to the
- enigma, and the enigma ignored it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You say I was buried and you unburied me?&rdquo; he pursued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria enthusiastically, and he described the journeys,
- the disappearances and the reappearances, of the body of the enigma on the
- opening night.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose I should have died really, if I&rsquo;d been left alone?&rdquo; the enigma
- demanded of Rivers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Undoubtedly,&rdquo; said Rivers. &ldquo;Undoubtedly,&rdquo; he repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- The enigma turned almost fiercely on Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then why, in the name of common sense, couldn&rsquo;t you have left me alone?&rdquo;
- he cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was as though he owed Carpentaria a grudge which the most cruel
- ingenuity could not satisfy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I thought&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Carpentaria stammered, too surprised to
- be able to argue well.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You thought you were doing a mighty clever thing,&rdquo; snapped the enigma.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I merely&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Or, rather,&rdquo; the enigma proceeded, &ldquo;you didn&rsquo;t think at all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rivers and Carpentaria exchanged a glance, indicating to each other that
- the man was an invalid and must therefore be humoured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really, Mr.&mdash;&mdash;-&rdquo; Carpentaria began.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Call me Jetsam,&rdquo; the invalid interrupted. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t my name, but it&rsquo;s
- near enough.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, Mr. Jetsam&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam, sitting up in the chair. &ldquo;There I was,
- comfortably dead, blind and deaf for evermore to the stupidities, the
- shams, the crimes, and the tedium of this world, and you go and
- deliberately recreate me! Is your opinion of the earth, and particularly
- of England, so high that you imagine a man is better on it than off it?
- Have you reached your present position and your present age, without
- coming to the conclusion that a person once comfortably dead would never
- want to be alive again? It seems to me, that you took upon yourselves the
- responsibility, the terrible responsibility of putting me back into life
- without giving the matter a moment&rsquo;s serious thought. And I do verily
- believe that you expected me to be grateful! Grateful!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was a question of duty&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Carpentaria ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, of course. It only remained for you to drag in that word; I
- anticipated it. And why was it your duty? Who told you it was your duty?
- What authority have you for saying it was your duty? None&mdash;absolutely
- none! The sole explanation of your conduct is that, like most human
- beings, you are an interfering busybody; you can&rsquo;t leave a thing alone.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At length Carpentaria laughed. He was conscious of a certain liking for
- Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can but offer you my humble apologies,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;They are of no avail;
- they will not undo what is done. But none the less I offer them to you.
- You see, when I last saw you alive, you were so drunk, so very drunk&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was not drunk at all,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam. &ldquo;And your inability to perceive
- the fact proves that, though you may be able to wear a very stylish
- uniform and to make a great deal of noise with a band, you are an infant
- as a detective. No, sir, I had certain plans to execute, and you, with
- that meddlesomeness that appears to characterize you, came along and
- interfered. In order that I might be left alone I pretended to be drunk. I
- have never been drunk in my life, which is conceivably more than you can
- say for yourself, or you, sir&rdquo;&mdash;and he pointed to the young doctor,
- who had only recently finished being a medical student.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And those plans&mdash;may one inquire?&rdquo; Carpentaria murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam covered his face with his hands.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; he sighed, evidently speaking to himself. &ldquo;I had done with all that,
- and now I must begin again. My instincts will inevitably drive me to begin
- again. My dear people&rdquo;&mdash;he surveyed his two companions with an acid
- and distant stare&mdash;&ldquo;instead of saving life, you have only set in
- motion a chain of circumstances that will lead to the loss of it. Murder
- and the scaffold will probably be the net result of your officious zeal.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a rap on the bedroom door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Five minutes to eight, sir,&rdquo; called a voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Right,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, getting up; and to Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;I will see you
- after the concert.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I doubt it,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I shall be gone. I am feeling quite strong.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <h3>
- 35
- </h3>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should like to talk to you about certain people,&rdquo; pursued Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, Josephus Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know all about Josephus Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And his mother. Perhaps you don&rsquo;t know all about his mother.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam jumped to his feet with singular agility.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam! She&rsquo;s been dead for years,&rdquo; he said gravely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She was very much alive this morning,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He told me she was dead,&rdquo; Jetsam muttered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He lied. She is in the bungalow opposite.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; Jetsam breathed, and he seemed to breathe the breath out of his
- body. He swayed and fell back into the chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By Jove! He&rsquo;s fainted!&rdquo; exclaimed Rivers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look after him,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, and flew downstairs and towards his
- bandstand.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0012" id="link2HCH0012"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XII&mdash;On the Wheel
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>he concert was
- over. If it had been as great a triumph as usual&mdash;and it had&mdash;the
- reasons were perhaps that nothing succeeds like success, and that the
- Carpentaria band was so imbued with the spirit of Carpentaria that it
- would have played in the Carpentaria manner even had the shade of
- Beethoven come down to conduct it. Certainly Carpentaria&rsquo;s performances
- with the baton, though wild and bizarre, lacked that sincerity and that
- amazing invention which usually distinguished them. He had too much to
- think about. There was the possibility of getting shot as he stood there.
- There was the possibility of being poisoned at his next meal. There was
- the possibility of some fearful complication with Juliette and Ilam. There
- was the positive mystery of Ilam himself. There was the comparative
- mystery of Ilam&rsquo;s mother. And there was the superlative mystery of Mr.
- Jetsam. Under these circumstances, with all these pre-occupations, the
- plaudits of a hundred thousand people did not particularly interest
- Carpentaria that night. His chief desire was to get back to Mr. Jetsam,
- and to extract Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s secrets out of Mr. Jetsam either by force, by
- fraud, or by persuasion. As he was bowing languidly for the nineteenth
- time, and the entire orchestra was bowing behind him, amid a hurricane of
- clapping, he thought to himself:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a good thing I&rsquo;m not in love! It would only need that, in addition
- to what I already have on my hands, to drive me crazy!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As a fact, he had never been in love. Art, particularly as expressed by
- brass instruments, was his mistress.
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to descend the steps from the bandstand, when he perceived a
- tall African standing at attention at the bottom of the steps.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you want?&rdquo; he asked the African.
- </p>
- <p>
- The man smiled the placid and infantile smile of his race, and handed a
- note to Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You from the Soudanese village?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The inhabitant of the Soudanese village, which was one of the attractions
- of the hippodrome, stood about six feet four inches high, and he was in
- native costume, which consisted largely, but not exclusively, of beads and
- polish. To gaze, dazzled, at the polish on that man&rsquo;s face, shoulders,
- chest, and calves, one would guess that the whole tribe must sit up at
- nights bringing his polish to such a unique pitch of perfection. In his
- cheek you could see yourself as in a mirror, and he had the air of being
- personally well satisfied with the splendour of his mahogany skin.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria opened the note. It read:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please come to me at once.&mdash;Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Should he go? Or should he refuse this strange invitation, and hasten at
- once to Mr. Jetsam and the doctor?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is Mr. Ilam?&rdquo; he demanded of the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese merely increased his smile, and pointed vaguely in the
- direction of the Amusement Park.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Over there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But where, man?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah!&rdquo; He lifted an arm and pointed.
- </p>
- <p>
- The upper part of the illuminated rim of the giant wheel, a hundred feet
- higher than any other wheel in the world, could be seen over the roofs of
- the lofty white buildings in the Central Way. At this moment a rushing,
- roaring noise was heard to the east, and simultaneously the lights of the
- giant wheel were extinguished. Carpentaria glanced round. A rocket burst
- with a faint reverberation in the sky, a little colony of crimson stars
- floated for a few seconds amid the clouds&mdash;some stars had the shape
- of the letter I and others of the letter C&mdash;and then they expired,
- and the sky was black again. Cheers greeted the ingenious signal for the
- commencement of the first pyrotechnic display of the City of Pleasure, and
- a small crowd, which was beginning to form in the neighbourhood of the
- Soudanese, frittered itself suddenly away in a rush towards the
- Embankment. The fireworks were discharged from a plot of ground on the
- other side of the river&mdash;a plot specially leased for that sole
- purpose.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll come with you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria to the Soudanese. He had decided
- that an interview with Ilam could not do any harm, and there was always
- the chance that it might in some way prove decisive. As for Mr. Jetsam, he
- would deal with Mr. Jetsam later. Possibly Ilam might have determined to
- make a general confession to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- And he had his revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese walked quickly, and he was several inches taller than
- Carpentaria. In something less than five minutes they had arrived at the
- entrance to the Amusements Park, which was closing for the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is Mr. Ilam?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked again.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stood at the foot of the giant wheel, all of whose sixty cars were in
- darkness save one, and this car was at the bottom, and its door was open.
- Near the door stood a single official in the uniform of the City.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria began to be puzzled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam at the top?&rdquo; he asked the official.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think so, sir,&rdquo; said the official, after hesitating.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria went into the car. The Soudanese shut the sliding door,
- remaining himself outside. The official blew a whistle, and the giant
- wheel began slowly to revolve with a terrific vibration and straining of
- chains and rods. The car was designed to hold sixty people&mdash;when the
- giant wheel was in full work it earned a hundred and eighty pounds per
- revolution&mdash;and Carpentaria felt lonely in it. &ldquo;Is this some trap?&rdquo;
- his thoughts ran; and he said to himself that he didn&rsquo;t care whether it
- was a trap or not. As the car rose in the sky he had a superb view of the
- fireworks, which were now in full career&mdash;an immense and glittering
- tapestry of changing coloured flame, reflected hue for hue and tint for
- tint on the calm surface of the Thames beneath. And high above the
- pyrotechnics lightning was beginning to play. The day had been hot, even
- close, and it had been a pleasing surprise to the money-takers of the City
- that rain had not fallen.
- </p>
- <p>
- At last the wheel shuddered, shook, and stopped. The car was at the
- summit, three hundred and forty feet above the level of the earth. A
- figure appeared on the flying platform outside the car. The door was
- opened, and Ilam entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the meaning of this?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded of him, standing up
- suddenly, and instinctively feeling the handle of his revolver with his
- right hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It means that I wish to talk to you in private,&rdquo; answered Ham,
- emphasizing the last two words; &ldquo;and there seems to me to be no place
- particularly private down below now,&rdquo; he added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you infer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps I don&rsquo;t quite know what I infer,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;All I can tell you
- is that this City has been getting rather peculiar this last day or two.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It has,&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed pointedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And as you went to the trouble of taking me up in that thing&rdquo;&mdash;he
- indicated overhead, where the captive balloon was darting a searchlight to
- and fro across the expanse of the grounds&mdash;&ldquo;I thought I&rsquo;d go to the
- trouble of bringing you up here. It&rsquo;s safer.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria noticed how pale the man was, how changed his visage, and how
- nervous his demeanour.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hope it is,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;What do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let&rsquo;s sit down,&rdquo; replied Ilam, clearing his throat, and they sat down on
- opposite sides of the car. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll explain what I want in three words. How
- much will you take to clear out? I&rsquo;m a plain man&mdash;how much will you
- take to clear out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Clear out of the City? I won&rsquo;t take anything,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;All the
- gold of all the Rockefellers won&rsquo;t clear me out. I&rsquo;ve got the largest
- audience for my band that any bandmaster ever had, and I like it. It&rsquo;s
- worth more than money to&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it worth more than life to you?&rdquo; asked the heavy President, gloomily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; but I reckon I can keep my life and my audience, too,&rdquo; said
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;At any rate, you&rsquo;ve tried to have my life twice and failed,
- and that hasn&rsquo;t frightened me. I&rsquo;m less frightened than you are, even.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve not tried to kill you,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&rsquo;ve tried to shoot me and to poison me. Why, I cannot imagine.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve not,&rdquo; repeated Ilam.&rsquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And, in spite of himself, Carpentaria was impressed by the apparent
- truthfulness of Ilam&rsquo;s tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then who has?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no idea,&rdquo; said Ilam lamely. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what you mean, what you
- are referring to. But I&rsquo;ll give you fifty thousand a year for ten years to
- go&mdash;to go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m here. I stay.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then, you&rsquo;ll take the consequences.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I always take the consequences. But what consequences, my friend?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; Ilam coughed, &ldquo;you say there have been attempts on your life.
- Suppose they are continued? What then? I should like to save you. And
- perhaps I can only save you by persuading you to vanish.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Awfully good of you,&rdquo; Carpentaria sneered. &ldquo;But I assure you that these
- attempts on my life interest me enormously. I wouldn&rsquo;t miss them for a
- fortune. I&rsquo;m beginning rather to like them. One gets used to an atmosphere
- of mystery. No, Mr. President, I shall not go; but Juliette will go. I
- shall send Juliette away to-morrow.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam bit his lip.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That remains to be seen,&rdquo; said he. &ldquo;She likes me. I should make her a
- good husband. Why do you object to me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you court her in the dark? Why do you force her to have secrets
- from me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s neither here nor there,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I should make her a good
- husband.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what sort of a mother-in-law would she have if she married you?&rdquo;
- demanded Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam made no reply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And,&rdquo; continued Carpentaria, &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think it&rsquo;s a good thing for a woman
- to have a husband who is always seeing ghosts.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Seeing ghosts?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you see ghosts?&rdquo; sneered Carpentaria. &ldquo;N&mdash;no.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come down with me, and I&rsquo;ll show you one, then,&rdquo; said the bandmaster.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had conceived the idea of confronting Ilam with Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- The shifting searchlight from the balloon fell dazzlingly across the car,
- and through the window Carpentaria saw plainly for the fraction of a
- second the polished face of the Soudanese. Then it disappeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- He rushed to the door, flung it open, and gazed downwards into the weblike
- tracery of the steel-work which shone dully in the white glare of the
- searchlight. A zigzag stairway, incomparably slender, stretched away
- towards earth along the face of the colossal wheel, and a dark figure
- slipped rapidly from rung to rung of the dizzy ladder. Then the light
- moved capriciously away, and all was indistinguishable blackness.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0013" id="link2HCH0013"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIII&mdash;Performances of Mr. Jetsam
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria slipped
- back into the car with a shiver, as it occurred to him that Ilam, had he
- so chosen, might have pushed him into three hundred and forty
- perpendicular feet of space. But Ilam had not moved.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve had enough,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll descend. Ring the bell.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I want to&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll descend,&rdquo; Carpentaria insisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s about Juliette,&rdquo; pleaded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll descend,&rdquo; said Carpentaria a third time. &ldquo;Ring the bell.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He sat down, took his revolver from his pocket, and put it ostentatiously
- on his knees.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam sighed, and pushed the white disc that communicated with the
- engine-house, and a few moments later a vibration went through the wheel,
- and it resumed its revolution. The car came down on the side nearest the
- river, and its occupants had a superb view of the final items of the
- display of fireworks. Among them were two portraits, in living flame, of
- the twin gods of the City of Pleasure, and under each headpiece was the
- name of its subject: &ldquo;Ilam,&rdquo; &ldquo;Carpentaria.&rdquo; The cheers of the immense
- multitude greeted their ears. Then there was another sound, but it came
- from above instead of from below. Ilam shrank as if afraid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You needn&rsquo;t be frightened,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t the trumpet of
- the Day of Judgment, it&rsquo;s only the beginning of a thunderstorm. It&rsquo;s just
- come in nice time to soak everybody through on their way home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rain spattered viciously on the windows.
- </p>
- <p>
- When they reached the ground a strange sight met their eyes&mdash;the
- sight of seas and oceans of black, shining umbrellas, surging in waves
- from all directions towards the Central Way and the exits from the City,
- and as the umbrellas reached the covered footpaths of the Central Way they
- collapsed and showed human beings. And then, at all the exits from the
- City, all these umbrellas&mdash;and it was estimated that there were over
- a quarter of a million of them&mdash;sprang again into life, and hid their
- owners. The tempest was already at its height.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come with me,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, as Ilam sought to leave him, when they
- quitted the Amusements Park.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam flatly.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stood side by side in the open, heedless of the rain, while shelter
- in the shape of the sidewalks of the Central Way was within a few yards of
- them.
- </p>
- <p>
- The searchlight from the balloon still swept about the grounds, but the
- fireworks were finished.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You shall come with me and see a ghost,&rdquo; insisted Carpentaria angrily and
- obstinately, &ldquo;or I will make such a scandal in this place as will go far
- to ruin it. Let me tell you that I know a great deal more than you think.
- I am in a position, for example, to ask you, Ilam, whether you spend your
- nights in bed or wandering about the grounds carrying mysterious burdens.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A group of visitors hurried past them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; muttered Ilam. &ldquo;I&mdash;you must be going off your
- head.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doubtless I&rsquo;m a madman, eh? Well, come along with the madman.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam sighed. They passed into the Central Way, and had to fight for
- progress against the multitudes that crowded the footpaths. No one
- recognized them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish we could understand each other,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall, rest assured of that,&rdquo; returned Carpentaria. &ldquo;In quite a few
- minutes we shall understand each other, or I am mistaken, and it may be
- you that will have to leave this City&mdash;and with considerably less
- than fifty thousand a year, my friend.&rdquo; He pictured the moment when he
- should confront Ilam with the man whose corpse Ilam had buried. Vistas
- opened out before him. He saw the tables completely turned; he saw himself
- sole master of the City, and the wielder of such power over Ilam as would
- enforce obedience to his wishes. Then there would be no more insulting
- requests to abandon his music, no more ridiculous suggestions, and no fear
- of foolishness on the part of Juliette. It astonished him that he had not
- realized before the enormous latent power which his knowledge of Saturday
- night gave him over Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will come with me to my house,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is there?&rdquo; asked Ilam wearily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dr. Rivers&mdash;and the ghost.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is all this nonsense about a ghost?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You shall see him first, and then, when you have seen him&mdash;before he
- has seen you&mdash;you shall tell me whether or not you would like to have
- a chat with him. It is a ghost warranted to talk.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam said nothing. He was naturally at a complete loss.
- </p>
- <p>
- They entered the bungalow by means of Carpentaria&rsquo;s latchkey, and they
- mounted to the first-floor, and they went into the study. The door of the
- bedroom was shut. Carpentaria led Ilam out on to the balcony of the study
- window, from which it was not difficult, even for Ilam, to climb into the
- balcony of the bedroom.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now, you shall look into my bedroom,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And he himself looked first. It may be said that he was astounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- The room was lighted. There were no signs of Mr. Jetsam, but two chairs
- had been overturned, and young Rivers lay prone on the floor, his eyes
- shut, and some blood flowing from a wound in his forehead.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria sprang into the room, and, strange to say, Ilam followed him.
- The fact was that Ilam did really for the moment believe Carpentaria to be
- mad, and the bedroom to be the scene of some maniacal crime. .
- </p>
- <p>
- Just then Rivers came to his senses.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That you, Mr. Carpentaria?&rdquo; he murmured, rubbing his eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. What&rsquo;s happened? Where&rsquo;s Jetsam, as he calls himself? You&rsquo;re not
- seriously hurt, are you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At the name of Jetsam, Ilam caught his breath and took hold of a bedpost.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jetsam?&rdquo; he repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You evidently recognize the name of my ghost,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;though
- he isn&rsquo;t here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He bashed me on the head with a chair,&rdquo; said the doctor, sitting up and
- putting a handkerchief to his head, &ldquo;and I suppose I must have&mdash;&mdash;
- It can&rsquo;t be more than a minute or two since&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what was he doing? Where&rsquo;s he gone?&rdquo; inquired Carpentaria
- impatiently.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He recovered consciousness quite quickly,&rdquo; answered Rivers, &ldquo;and I gave
- him something to drink; then he asked me about Mrs. Ilam, and I told him
- she lived with Mr. Ilam here, and he grew very excited, and said he must
- go to her at once. I said he couldn&rsquo;t; I said you wouldn&rsquo;t allow that, and
- he pretended to agree; but it was only a pretence. He began to talk about
- other things, and then, all of a sudden, he sprang at me, and that&rsquo;s as
- much as I remember.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Without a word Carpentaria ran out downstairs and into the avenue. The
- door of Ilam&rsquo;s house stood wide open. He entered. In the hall he perceived
- that the door of the drawing-room was also wide open, and he entered the
- drawing-room..There was no light in the room save that of a match, and the
- match was held by Mr. Jetsam. Mr. Jetsam stood staring at Mrs. Ilam, and
- Mrs. Ilam sat motionless in her chair, apparently trying to articulate and
- not succeeding. An appalling fear shone in her eyes. No sound could be
- heard except the rattling of the rain on the French window.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam turned, and in the same second he dropped the match. The room
- was in darkness. Then followed a crash of glass and splintering of wood,
- and then a heavy fall in the apartment itself. With some trouble,
- Carpentaria found the electric switch and turned on the light. Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s
- lips were still trembling in a vain effort to speak. Her son lay stretched
- and whimpering at her feet. Mr. Jetsam had vanished. The window was in
- ruins.
- </p>
- <p>
- Dr. Rivers appeared. He had bandaged his forehead.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is paralysed!&rdquo; said the doctor, when he had examined Mrs. Ilam. &ldquo;She
- will never again have the use of her limbs or her organs of speech. She
- will be able to see and to hear, that&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_PART2" id="link2H_PART2"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- PART II&mdash;THE TWINS
- </h2>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0014" id="link2HCH0014"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIV&mdash;Entry of the Twins
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">I</span>t is a singular
- fact that the secondary stage of the drama which I am relating was
- tremendously, vitally, influenced by the marriage of Mr. Luke Shooter,
- junior partner in Shooter&rsquo;s, a firm of wholesale ribbon merchants in
- Cannon Street. Luke Shooter did not know it. Luke Shooter had nothing
- whatever to do with the drama; it is very, probable that he never even
- heard of it, except such trifling fragments as got into the newspapers.
- Nevertheless, by the mere fact of marrying, Luke Shooter unconsciously
- changed the course of events in the City of Pleasure. For he was a man of
- broad views, and he liked people to think well of him, and so it occurred
- that, at his suggestion, the multitudinous staff of Shooter&rsquo;s was given a
- complete holiday on the day of his marriage, and that day happened to be
- Tuesday, May 4.
- </p>
- <p>
- So much for Mr. Luke Shooter.
- </p>
- <p>
- Many of the employés spent the latter half of the day in the City of
- Pleasure, which was now the rage, the craze, and the vogue of London, and
- among these were the twin sisters, Pauline and Rosie Dartmouth. Pauline
- and Rosie were typists in the house of Shooters. Their age was twenty-six.
- They were tall, and rather slim; only Rosie, the younger, was not quite so
- slim as Pauline. Pauline was dark; Rosie was inclined to fairness. In the
- partnership between them Pauline supplied the common sense, while Rosie
- supplied the gaiety; each supplied a considerable amount of beauty and
- charm, and a sum of thirty-five shillings a week. It is obvious that on a
- total income of three pounds ten a week, or a hundred and eighty-two
- pounds a year, two girls living together in a small flat, with sense and
- gaiety and full opportunity for acquiring ribbons at wholesale prices, may
- have a very good time and cut quite a pretty figure in the world. And this
- Pauline and Rosie certainly did manage to do.
- </p>
- <p>
- They were orphans, and had been for a very long time.
- </p>
- <p>
- They came to the City by the Tube from their flat in Shepherd&rsquo;s Bush, and
- Pauline put a florin down for the two of them at the northern entrance
- gates, just as though they had been ordinary visitors; as, in fact, at
- that moment they were. A few persons noticed them, but quite casually, and
- only because they were dressed&mdash;and well dressed&mdash;almost exactly
- alike. There are so many beautiful young women in London that Londoners
- seldom turn their heads to look at one. It is left to Frenchmen to rave
- about the blond charm of the Anglo-Saxon &ldquo;mees.&rdquo; What exuberant adjectives
- the Frenchman would find to express his delight if he penetrated further
- north, into Staffordshire, Lancashire, and Yorkshire, where ugly faces and
- bad complexions are practically unknown, it is impossible to guess.
- </p>
- <p>
- The City of Pleasure met with the entire approval of Pauline and Rosie. As
- soon as they found themselves in the Central Way they began to get
- enthusiastic. The sun was shining, the flags were flying, the cable-cars
- were gliding, and thousands and thousands of visitors made gay the City.
- They had never before seen anything like the Central Way, with its
- colonnades, and its shops, and its coloured throngs, and its soaring,
- gleaming, white architecture.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s just as good as being abroad, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Better,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- But then they had never been beyond Boulogne.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stopped at shop windows, as much to regard jewellery and
- knick-knacks, as to observe whether their frocks and chiffons and hats
- were in that immaculate order which a sunny day and the presence of one&rsquo;s
- fellow-creatures demand. It may be mentioned here that their dresses were
- of dark blue, with blue belts, bunchy knots of white muslin at the throat,
- white gloves, brown glacé kid boots, and large blue-and-black picture
- hats. It was plain, but it was perfect, and they knew it was perfect. The
- consciousness of perfection enabled them to sustain the judicial gaze of
- other women, and the passing glance of innumerable young men, with a
- supercilious stare. In truth they were secretly wild with the joy of life,
- and the attractiveness of the City, and the sensations of their holiday,
- but they did not show it. Oh, no! They did not show it. They were prim to
- the most advanced degree, as became them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should just love to go on one of those dear little cable-cars!&rdquo;
- exclaimed Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, let&rsquo;s,&rdquo; Pauline agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Aren&rsquo;t they delicious?&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- And only in the girlish hop, skip, and jump, which landed them gracefully
- on a car, was there a hint of the pent-up vivacity which surged in their
- veins&mdash;a hint that vanished as rapidly as it had showed itself. As
- Rosie smoothed out her skirt, and as Pauline opened the purse in her
- gloved hand to give two pence to the conductor, they had the utter
- demureness of duchesses.
- </p>
- <p>
- The car was open to the sky, with crosswise seats, and, as it sailed
- rapidly down the Central Way, constantly passing other cars coming in the
- opposite direction, and passing fountains and flower-beds and elephants
- and camels, and all the strange world of the City, the pleasure became
- rather too keen for Rosie&rsquo;s mercurial heart. She took Pauline&rsquo;s hand and
- pressed it, sitting a little bit closer to her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose we meet him?&rdquo; she whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What? In this crowd? Never! Besides, he isn&rsquo;t likely to be outside,&rdquo; said
- Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- She was only a few minutes older than Rosie, but she could not have played
- the elder sister more completely had she been ten years older.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We might meet <i>her</i>, anyway!&rdquo; murmured Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nonsense, Rosie. You don&rsquo;t imagine she&rsquo;ll be here, do you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Rosie, lifting her chin. &ldquo;But suppose we do meet him,
- or either of them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, then,&rdquo; said Pauline wisely, &ldquo;we meet them, that&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Shall you speak to them?&rdquo; Rosie asked; &ldquo;I shan&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll think about that when we see them,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; cried Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- This exclamation had nothing to do with the foregoing chatter. It merely
- expressed some part of Rosie&rsquo;s joy when the car came to the magnificent
- circular place half-way down the Central Way, with the façade of the
- Exposition Palace on the right, the stately entrance to the Oriental
- Gardens on the left, and the superb vista of the thoroughfare before and
- behind.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; cried Rosie again, for quite a different reason.
- </p>
- <p>
- Already she had forgotten the architectural and other beauties of this
- scene, and was eagerly directing Pauline&rsquo;s attention to a tall man with
- vivid hair and an individual style, who had just crossed the rails in
- front of the car and was proceeding towards the Oriental Gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There!&rdquo; said Rosie, pointing frantically, yet primly. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you see
- him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who? That man with the red hair?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; it&rsquo;s Carpentaria, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So it is, I do declare!&rdquo; agreed Pauline, frankly as interested as her
- sister.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; breathed Rosie regretfully, as the car swept them further from the
- figure of the popular hero. &ldquo;Doesn&rsquo;t he look lovely? He&rsquo;s just like his
- portraits, only nicer, isn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I couldn&rsquo;t see him very well,&rdquo; said the discreet Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you could,&rdquo; Rosie corrected her sharply. &ldquo;You know you adore him.
- But you&rsquo;re always so mum.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline smiled placidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do wish we could meet him&mdash;be introduced to him I mean!&rdquo; said
- Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear child,&rdquo; Pauline reprimanded. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be silly. He&rsquo;s frightfully
- rich.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know!&rdquo; said Rosie sadly. &ldquo;But he isn&rsquo;t married. I think his hair&rsquo;s
- beautiful.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In common with very many English and other girls, Rosie and Pauline were
- capable of displaying brazenly, for a man they had scarcely seen, an
- affection the tenth part of which certain males with whom they were
- intimately acquainted would have been delighted to receive. Their virgin
- hearts had never been touched, not even by the Apollos of the house of
- Shooter; they prided themselves on their unapproachableness; yet they
- could rave about Carpentaria, and openly profess that they were his
- slaves. In Carpentaria&rsquo;s presence they would doubtless have behaved, even
- if they did not feel, differently.
- </p>
- <p>
- The car whirled them to the other end of the City, and they began
- systematically to do everything and to see everything that could be done
- and seen, from the captive balloon (not that they did that&mdash;they were
- content to see it) to the Soudanese native village, from the circus to the
- exhibition relating to Woman, from the cricket field to the Freak Show,
- and from the Art Galleries to the ladies&rsquo; afternoon-tea café. They were in
- the ladies&rsquo; afternoon-tea café and paying for two pots of tea, seven
- cakes, and an extra cream, just as the clock struck five. It then occurred
- to them that a concert of military music began at precisely five o&rsquo;clock
- in the Oriental Gardens, and they decided to go and listen to it, even
- though, sad to say, Carpentaria never conducted in person till the
- evening.
- </p>
- <p>
- They crossed the Central Way, and were strolling along the avenue to the
- Gardens, when Pauline stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, I never!&rdquo; she exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Coming down the steps of Ilam&rsquo;s bungalow was the great Ilam himself, and
- it was to Ilam she pointed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What shall we do?&rdquo; whispered Rosie. &ldquo;He&rsquo;s lots older, isn&rsquo;t he?... And
- you said we shouldn&rsquo;t meet him!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They walked on, irresolute and blushing, and just as they arrived opposite
- Ilam&rsquo;s gate, with their eyes gazing studiously straight in front of them,
- Ilam called out:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hi, there! Young ladies!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Now, the avenue was generously sprinkled with people, but Pauline and
- Rosie happened to be the only young ladies within hail, and to have
- ignored such a loud and unmistakable appeal as Ilam&rsquo;s would have drawn
- down upon them more public attention than they desired. They therefore
- stopped, still blushing, but delightfully blushing, and smiling with that
- innate kindliness of heart which distinguished both of them. Rosie spoke
- first. She was a woman, and had positively stated that under the
- circumstances she should not speak. Hence, naturally, she spoke first.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good afternoon, cousin,&rdquo; said she.
- </p>
- <p>
- In her manner of pronouncing that word &ldquo;cousin,&rdquo; a non-committal manner, a
- more-than-meets-the-eye manner, a defensive manner&mdash;in a word, a
- family manner&mdash;she indicated a whole family history. When relatives
- who are distant in more senses than one meet after a considerable period,
- that particular manner is invariably employed by the one who speaks first.
- </p>
- <p>
- The history of the Dartmouths and the Ilams was quite simple&mdash;indeed,
- so usual as to be hardly worthy of record. Mrs. Dartmouth, mother of the
- twins, had been an Ilam. She was the orphan child of Josephus&rsquo; dead uncle,
- and therefore niece of Josephus&rsquo; father. And before her marriage she was
- understood to have &ldquo;expectations&rdquo; from that mighty and opulent soda-water
- manufacturer. However, heedless of these expectations, she went and
- married beneath her&mdash;to wit, a solicitor&rsquo;s clerk. The niece of a rich
- soda-water manufacturer has no business to marry a solicitor&rsquo;s clerk. The
- result was a complete estrangement. Mrs. Dartmouth gave all the Ilams to
- understand that she and her husband had no need of anyone&rsquo;s money&mdash;that,
- in fact, they scorned the Ilam millions. Mrs. Dartmouth met Josephus at
- his father&rsquo;s funeral. Ten years later Pauline and Rosie met Josephus at
- Mrs. Dartmouth&rsquo;s funeral. They shook hands formally, and made it clear to
- Josephus that they would stoop to accept no gift from him, who had scorned
- their mother, even should he offer it.
- </p>
- <p>
- That was seven years ago, and Pauline and Rosie were now absolutely alone
- in the world, and, moreover, age had taught them tolerance, and their
- curiosity had been extremely excited by the news of their cousin&rsquo;s
- partnership with the world-renowned Carpentaria, and the subsequent birth
- of the City of Pleasure. So that, in spite of anything they might have
- previously said to each other, they were rather pleased to meet their
- solemn cousin, who, after all, was a millionaire, and who really seemed
- less aloof and stiff than he appeared at funerals.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you were going to cut me?&rdquo; said Ilam, trying to smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, cousin,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;How are you? You don&rsquo;t look very well.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They shook hands over the gate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m not,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And Mrs. Ilam. She keeps pretty well, I hope,&rdquo; put in Rosie decorously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just it. She doesn&rsquo;t. She&rsquo;s&mdash;&mdash; Won&rsquo;t you come in?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he opened the gate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you live here?&rdquo; cried Rosie. &ldquo;Fancy living in the middle of this
- place! How jolly! And what a jolly house! Oh! what a delicious notion&mdash;living
- in the show!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And they disappeared into the bungalow.
- </p>
- <p>
- The historic family coolness looked as if it was going to warm itself into
- a sort of pleasant acquaintanceship.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0015" id="link2HCH0015"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XV&mdash;Proposal of Josephus
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">Y</span>es, Ilam was
- saying when they came downstairs, &ldquo;she has been like that since last
- night, and the doctors&mdash;I have had two&mdash;assure me that at her
- age no recovery is possible. She can take liquid food, and she can move
- her eyes slightly&mdash;you noticed how her eyes turn?&mdash;but otherwise
- she is incapable of movement, and, of course, she can&rsquo;t articulate.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He had taken his young relatives upstairs to see his mother, and the
- picture of her, lying almost in the attitude of a corpse on the bed, with
- a uniformed nurse sitting motionless beside her, had made a deep
- impression on Pauline and Rosie. In fact, the whole house saddened them.
- It was spacious and luxurious, but it was far from reaching that standard
- of splendour which one might reasonably expect from the Ilam wealth. Ilam
- did not look like a wealthy man. He did not talk like a wealthy man, and
- both girls began to perceive, dimly, that wealth is useless to those who
- have not sufficient imagination to employ it. Certainly the City of
- Pleasure was an expression of the Ilam riches, but they knew, as all the
- world knew, that the imagination which had brought into being the City of
- Pleasure was Carpentaria&rsquo;s. Hence, they felt sorry for Josephus Ilam,
- partly because of the calamity to his mother, and partly because of his
- forlorn and anxious air; they thought he wanted looking after, and that
- this heavy pompous man was greatly to be pitied, despite his opulence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You haven&rsquo;t told us how it happened, what caused it?&rdquo; said Pauline
- sympathetically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;as to that, who can tell? Probably some fright, some
- shock. But we can&rsquo;t say. She was alone when it happened. And as she can&rsquo;t
- speak&mdash;can&rsquo;t write&mdash;can&rsquo;t&mdash;&mdash; Well, you see how it
- is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are sorry for you,&rdquo; murmured Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And here I am, alone as it were,&rdquo; Ilam continued. &ldquo;What am I to do? What
- can a man do by himself? I&rsquo;ve got a nurse. I can get fifty nurses, if
- necessary. And there are the servants. But what are nurses and servants?
- You understand my position, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, quite,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- They were partaking of a second tea in the Ilam drawing-room. The appetite
- of Rosie for cakes seemed unimpaired, though she did her best to hide it,
- and to pretend that she was only eating cakes out of politeness.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam swallowed his tea in great gulps.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m utterly unnerved,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must be,&rdquo; said Rosie kindly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&rsquo;s a vast amount of superintendence to do in the City, as you may
- guess. But what am I fit for, with my poor old mother lying up there? You
- can&rsquo;t fancy what she was to me. I depended on her for everything&mdash;everything.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then tears showed themselves in the little eyes of Josephus Ilam. The
- appearance of those tears in the eyes of a great strong man made Rosie
- feel very uncomfortable, so much so, that she was obliged to look out of
- the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish we could help you,&rdquo; said Pauline, after a pause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;d do anything we could,&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam glanced up.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can do everything,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I hesitated to ask you, but since
- you&rsquo;ve mentioned it yourselves... and I&rsquo;ll make it worth your while. Rely
- on that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what?&rdquo; demanded Pauline, startled, while Rosie put down a fresh piece
- of cake which she had just taken.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come and live here,&rdquo; said Ilam bluntly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Both of us?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Both of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We couldn&rsquo;t do that, really,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, of course not. But wouldn&rsquo;t it be lovely?&rdquo; added Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why couldn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; asked Ilam. &ldquo;You are your own mistresses, aren&rsquo;t you?
- What is there to prevent you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, you see,&rdquo; said Pauline judicially, &ldquo;we have our living to get, and
- then there&rsquo;s our flat, and&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how much you earn,&rdquo; Ilam cried. &ldquo;But I&rsquo;ll cheerfully
- undertake to give you treble, whatever it is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That would be five hundred and forty-six pounds a year, then,&rdquo; said
- Rosie, who was specially good at arithmetic.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let us say six hundred,&rdquo; Ilam amended the figure with a tremendously
- casual air.
- </p>
- <p>
- The girls felt that, after all, perhaps he resembled a millionaire more
- than they had at first thought.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come, now,&rdquo; Ilam urged. &ldquo;Say yes. It&rsquo;s an idea that came to me all of a
- sudden, while I was talking to you. But it&rsquo;s an idea that gets better and
- better the more I think about it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But we couldn&rsquo;t give up our situations,&rdquo; objected Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; Ilam asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; Pauline stammered. &ldquo;It seems so queer. It&rsquo;s so sudden.
- What would our duties be here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your duties would be to act as mistresses of this house, and to look
- after my poor mother. Of course, there&rsquo;d be a nurse as well. I don&rsquo;t know
- how many servants there are&mdash;five or six.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And we should have to manage everything?&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Everything domestic. Come, you agree?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But suppose,&rdquo; interpolated Rosie&mdash;&ldquo;suppose we&mdash;you&mdash;we
- didn&rsquo;t suit you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- What she meant was &ldquo;Suppose you didn&rsquo;t suit us?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come a month on trial,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;At the end of that time, if you want
- to leave, I&rsquo;ll guarantee you a situation quite as good as you&rsquo;re leaving.
- I can&rsquo;t say fairer than that, can I?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause; the twins looked at each other.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Just think how I&rsquo;m fixed!&rdquo; pleaded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you say, Rosie?&rdquo; Pauline asked primly of her sister.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; answered Rosie, &ldquo;as cousin is in such a dilemma, and poor Mrs.
- Ilam so&mdash;so ill, perhaps&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good!&rdquo; exclaimed Ilam; &ldquo;you agree. Good! I&rsquo;m very much obliged to you.
- You&rsquo;re two really nice girls, and I can assure you you&rsquo;ll have a free hand
- here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You decide for us,&rdquo; said Pauline, smiling and reddening under Ilam&rsquo;s
- appreciation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll begin at once, eh?&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;Tonight.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s quite out of the question,&rdquo; objected Rosie. &ldquo;We shall be
- obliged to give a month&rsquo;s notice at Shooter&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nonsense!&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll send &lsquo;em a cheque for a month&rsquo;s salary
- instead; then they can&rsquo;t grumble.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But to-morrow? How will they manage without us?&rdquo; persisted Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam laughed&mdash;and it was not often that Ilam laughed. Either the
- humour of the thing must have appealed to him very strongly, or it was a
- symptom that his spirits had mightily improved.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They&rsquo;ll manage without you,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s true they can get substitutes from the Typewriting Exchange,&rdquo; said
- Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thus, it was arranged that Pauline and Rosie should take one of the City
- automobiles to their flat, and return with trunks and boxes during the
- evening. Before leaving the bungalow Pauline wrote to Shooter&rsquo;s informing
- them of the blow that had fallen on Shooter&rsquo;s, and Ilam filled in a
- cheque, and Rosie put it in the envelope and fastened the envelope. The
- automobile, ordered by telephone, came round to the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll introduce us to Mr. Carpentaria, won&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; said Rosie smilingly,
- as she was getting into the carriage.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam frowned, and then cleared his face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you want to know him?&rdquo; he asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, of course!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well, I suppose you must,&rdquo; Ilam agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, isn&rsquo;t this the greatest fun?&rdquo; Rosie whispered to Pauline when they
- drove off. &ldquo;We can go where we like in the City. We can save at least five
- hundred a year, and perhaps we shall be his heiresses.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; Pauline admonished her.
- </p>
- <p>
- And three hours later those two extremely practical twins were thoroughly
- installed in the Ilam bungalow. They had the air of having lived there all
- their lives as they chatted with Ilam in the drawing-room. Ilam himself
- was decidedly looking a little better.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have been talking to nurse,&rdquo; said Pauline importantly, &ldquo;and I shall
- sleep on the couch in Mrs. Ham&rsquo;s room to-night. Nurse needs rest. She says
- there is nothing to do, but some one should be there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want you to begin by tiring yourselves,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;but, of
- course&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They heard a violent ring at the front-door, and presently a servant
- entered. Ilam started.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; said the servant.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam turned pale.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Show him in,&rdquo; said Rosie calmly to the servant.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, Miss Rose,&rdquo; said the servant, who, in common with the other
- servants, had already been clearly informed of the names, position, and
- authority of the new-comers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are to introduce him to us, you know,&rdquo; Rosie murmured sweetly to
- Ilam, &ldquo;and I suppose we shall have to play hostesses now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria came in, evidently hot from his concert.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I say, Ilam&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; he began.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he perceived the twins, and Ilam clumsily performed the
- introductions. The girls were enchanted with his uniform and with him. He
- said little, and he was pale, but then he was so distinguished; all his
- movements were distinguished and magnificent.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We saw you this afternoon,&rdquo; Rosie ventured timidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And I didn&rsquo;t see you! The loss was mine,&rdquo; he returned, gazing at Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam had sunk back heavily into a chair. Carpentaria caught sight of his
- face, and an awkward silence followed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I came on a matter of business,&rdquo; Carpentaria said to Ilam, &ldquo;but I won&rsquo;t
- trouble you now, it will do to-morrow. Good-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall hope to see more of you,&rdquo; said Rosie when Carpentaria had
- demonstrated that he really meant to go.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes indeed,&rdquo; said Pauline very quietly, and the visitor bowed.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then Carpentaria, that glorious vision, had vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cousin&rsquo;s nerves are simply all to pieces,&rdquo; commented Rosie, as the girls
- were going upstairs; &ldquo;even a casual visitor upsets him. Did you notice his
- face as soon as the bell rang?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0016" id="link2HCH0016"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVI&mdash;The Box
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">P</span>auline had put the
- book down on the bed, and was bending over the fire pulling the coals
- together with the poker. She performed this homely, natural, everyday
- action more to reassure herself, to convince herself that she was in an
- everyday world, than because the fire needed attention. For the strange
- mystery of the speechless creature on the bed, helpless as though bound
- with chains and gagged by the devices of tortures, had seized and
- terrified her. She held the poker in the air and listened. Not a sound
- save the ticking of the clock on the mantelpiece! From all the sleeping
- house, not a sound. She might have been alone with the living corpse in
- the house, and yet she knew that Rosie, and Josephus Ilam, and the nurse,
- and the halfdozen servants, were in various rooms of it, perhaps sleeping,
- perhaps trying to sleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a sudden sharp noise behind her, near the bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- She started violently and glanced round in fear. It was merely the book&mdash;the
- harmless and amusing &ldquo;The Lady or the Tiger?&rdquo;&mdash;which had slipped from
- the bed to the floor. Yet how could it have slipped? Had the paralytic,
- who was incapable of the slightest movement, after all twitched a limb and
- so shaken the book off the bed? Absurd. She had merely placed the book too
- close to the edge of the bed; that was all. Nothing more natural, nothing
- more probable. Her nervous fright was grotesque.
- </p>
- <p>
- She rose, picked up the book, and looked again at her charge. The burning,
- blazing eyes were still dropping tears, and the tears ran in a deep furrow
- down either cheek. Softly Pauline wiped them away, her own eyes moist. The
- tragedy of the life&rsquo;s end of this old, old woman, whom every one had
- regarded as fierce and formidable, rendered helpless in a moment by no one
- knew what horrible visitation, chilled her heart&rsquo;s core.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What can she want? What is troubling her?&rdquo; thought Pauline frenziedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then she imagined that perhaps she had mistaken all the symptoms of
- those eyes, and that Mrs. Ilam had wished her to continue to read. She
- resumed the book, and read very slowly in a fairly loud voice. And
- instantly the eyes began to blink irregularly&mdash;fast, then slow&mdash;and
- the eyeballs themselves moved slightly from side to side. Obviously the
- patient was not content.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline put down the book again in despair.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyeballs still moved slightly to and fro.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She wants something in the room. What can it be?&rdquo;&rsquo; said Pauline to
- herself. &ldquo;It may be she is thirsty.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She went to the night-table and poured a few drops of water into the
- invalid&rsquo;s cup, and brought it near Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s lips. But the eyes seemed
- to close as if in refusal, and the face, which could only wear one
- expression&mdash;that of grief&mdash;to deepen its inexpressible
- melancholy.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then an idea occurred to Pauline, and shone on her brow like a light.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; she said kindly to the aged woman. &ldquo;I will ask you some
- questions. The answers will be only yes or no. If you mean &lsquo;no&rsquo; try to
- keep your eyelids still, but if you mean &lsquo;yes&rsquo; blink them! as much as you
- can. Do you understand?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids blinked; and then they continued their terrible entranced
- stare at a spot on the ceiling exactly above their owner&rsquo;s head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;Are you in pain?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No movement of the eyelids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you thirsty?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A slight flickering, which the patient clearly endeavoured to suppress.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You want something?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it some person?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids were steady.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Something in this room?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A violent blinking.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it in a drawer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids were steady.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I can see it as I stand here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked again. Pauline set the cup down on the night-table, and
- gazed round the room. She went to the mantelpiece, and gave a list of the
- things on it: candlestick, clock, matches, vases, keys, medicine-bottle, a
- piece of crochet work, a long knitting-needle, a picture post-card. There
- was no response from the invalid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How foolish I am!&rdquo; murmured Pauline. &ldquo;She cannot possibly want any of
- these things.&rdquo; Then she saw a few old letters half-hidden behind the
- clock. &ldquo;Is it there?&rdquo; she asked, holding the letters near to Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- But there was still no response. She put back the letters and went to the
- ottoman, on which was a large family Bible. But it was not the Bible that
- Mrs. Ilam wanted, nor a spectacle case that lay on the Bible. Then Pauline
- catalogued one by one the contents of the dressing-table, and then the
- contents of the washstand, still with no result. At last, she came to a
- chest of drawers, covered with a piece of white crewelwork, and bearing
- some wax flowers, two small vases, a black lacquered box, sundry folded
- linen, several books, and a few faded photographs. She described the
- photographs and the linen and the books, as these seemed to be the most
- likely objects, and then she came to the lacquered box. And suddenly, the
- eyes began to blink furiously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You want this box?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes continued to blink.
- </p>
- <p>
- She brought it to the bed: It was about eight inches square and three
- inches in depth, and beautifully inlaid with mother-of-pearl in a design
- to resemble a bunch of roses&mdash;just such a little cabinet as our
- grandmothers valued, such as was scorned as being Early Victorian during
- the aesthetic movement of the eighties and nineties, but such as we
- ourselves are beginning to recognize as beautiful. It had prominent brass
- hinges, and a keyhole, and it was locked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you want me to open it? It&rsquo;s locked.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes were moderately still.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you wish it put somewhere else?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In a drawer?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;On the dressing-table?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Near you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;On the bed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Under the bed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No response.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline was at a loss.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Under your pillow?&rdquo; she hazarded at length.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids moved up and down, if not with joy, at any rate with
- satisfaction.
- </p>
- <p>
- And very carefully Pauline raised the pillow, and
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s head, and slipped the box underneath both the pillow and the
- bolster.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There; is that right?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The tragic eyes blinked, and a slight sigh emanated weakly from between
- those thin pale lips. But, slight as it was, it seemed to have come from
- the innermost depths of the stricken woman&rsquo;s being. It might have been a
- sigh to indicate that her last wish was realized.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall lie down now,&rdquo; said Pauline, and turning out all the electric
- lights except the tiny table lamp on the table, she stretched herself on
- the couch which stood at the foot of the great bed, and she drew a rug
- over her and shut her eyes and told herself that she must sleep. But she
- could not sleep. Her brain was as busy as the inside of a clock and
- electric lights seemed to be burning and fizzing in it, extinguishing
- themselves and relighting themselves. What strange house had she and Rosie
- wandered into? What was the hidden secret of this paralysis, and of
- Josephus Ilam&rsquo;s worn and worried mien, and of the sudden arrival and
- equally sudden departure of Carpentaria? And, above all, what was the
- meaning of the old woman&rsquo;s desire for the box. What was in the box?
- </p>
- <p>
- Do not imagine that Pauline regretted having come. She did not. Except
- under the passing influences of night and of the presence of illness, she
- was not a bit superstitious; nor was Rosie. They were not afraid of
- mysteries. They were intensely practical young women, incapable of being
- frightened or repulsed by what they did not understand. And that Pauline
- was a girl entirely without the timidity of the doe, she abundantly proved
- in the next few minutes. As she lay on the couch she could see, without
- moving her head, the French window. She fancied that the heavy crimson
- curtain was somewhat pulled aside in one place, at a height of about four
- feet from the ground, and she fancied that she could see the end of a
- finger on the end of the curtain. &ldquo;No,&rdquo; she said to herself, &ldquo;this is
- ridiculous. There cannot possibly be a finger there. I must not be silly,&rdquo;
- and she resolutely shut her eyes. The next time she opened them, the fire
- had blazed up a little and, more than ever, the something on the edge of
- the curtain resembled a finger.
- </p>
- <p>
- Her little heart beating, but courageously, she noiselessly rose up from
- the couch and approached the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the end of a finger on the edge of the curtain&mdash;a finger with
- a rounded and very white finger-nail I Moreover, the curtain trembled
- slightly, as it would do if held by some one who was endeavouring not to
- move. Pauline remembered that the French window behind the curtain had
- purposely been left slightly open, and that it gave on to a balcony, as
- most of the windows of the bungalow did.
- </p>
- <p>
- She advanced resolutely, and drew aside the curtain.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0017" id="link2HCH0017"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVII&mdash;The Man on the Balcony
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">A</span> man was standing
- behind it. The French window had been opened at least eight inches, and
- the man stood partly in the aperture and partly in the room. He did not
- flinch. He did not even seem scared, nor yet disturbed. He was a
- middle-aged man, with grey hair, and a worn, rather sad face, and he wore
- a blue suit of clothes, which showed earth-stains and other evidences of
- an exciting and violent life. He was, in fact, the man whom Ilam had
- buried, and who described himself to Carpentaria as Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo; demanded Pauline, in a low, brave voice. &ldquo;What
- do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She mastered her fear, though her heart was beating madly. She determined
- that, just as she had proved equal to difficult situations in the past,
- she would prove equal to this one.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now that you have seen me, I want to talk to you,&rdquo; replied the man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You climbed up by the balcony, didn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; she asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said the intruder. &ldquo;Nothing more simple. I found a ladder.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you had better go as you came&mdash;and quickly!&rdquo; said the girl.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And the alternative?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course, I must call the master of the house. In any event I shall do
- that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam. &ldquo;For heaven&rsquo;s sake don&rsquo;t call Jos.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jos!&rdquo; repeated Pauline, astounded at this familiarity.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I said &lsquo;Jos,&rsquo;&rdquo; the man insisted firmly. &ldquo;What do you take me for?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally I take you for a burglar. What else should you be?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now, do I look like a burglar?&rdquo; Mr. Jetsam asked severely. &ldquo;Examine me,
- and tell me whether I look like a burglar.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Whatever you are,&rdquo; said Pauline, in a tone of decision, &ldquo;I cannot remain
- talking to you like this. I am in charge of an invalid here, and you must
- go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The man gazed at her fixedly. She thought his eyes were very sad eyes, and
- yet dignified, too. They reminded her of the eyes of Mrs. Ilam. And
- presently, when they grew moist, they reminded her even more of the eyes
- of Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said the man, &ldquo;I can easily prove to you that I am not a
- burglar.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you know me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know of you. I know your name. I know you by sight. I know that you and
- your sister have come into this stricken and fatal house from sheer
- goodness of heart!&rsquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do not talk like that,&rdquo; said Pauline, whom any praise, save of her
- personal appearance, made extremely uncomfortable. She endeavoured to make
- her voice cold, forbidding, and accusatory, but she could not. The eyes of
- the grey-haired man seemed to hypnotize her, to rob her of initiative, and
- of the power to decide things for herself.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will talk in any manner you like,&rdquo; returned Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;provided you
- will let me come into the room and explain to you what I want.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Impossible,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why impossible? It is, on the contrary, perfectly easy,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam.
- &ldquo;All I have to do is to close the window&rdquo;&mdash;and he closed it&mdash;&ldquo;to
- come into the room&rdquo;&mdash;and he came in&mdash;&ldquo;and to ask you to be good
- enough to listen.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He put down his felt hat on a chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- He now stood within the room, a couple of feet from Pauline, in the
- direction of the bed, but with his back to it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline, with a sudden sharp movement, darted to the mantelpiece, by the
- side of which was the bell-push. In the same instant he, too, darted
- forward and clutched her wrist, just as she was about to touch the bell.
- They held themselves rigid for a moment, like statues.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I understand your feelings,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam in a shaken voice. &ldquo;I admire
- you. But before you ring that bell, let me assure you most solemnly that
- if you do ring it you will bring murder into this house. You will utterly
- ruin one family, if not two. Believe what I say; you cannot help but
- believe it. A man&rsquo;s character for truthfulness shows itself in every
- accent of his voice, and by this time, you must be very well aware that
- when I speak, I speak the truth.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline moved from the mantelpiece and he loosed her arm.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well?&rdquo; she said interrogatively.
- </p>
- <p>
- She did not know it, but she was breathing very rapidly through her nose,
- and her charming nostrils were distended. Still, she probably noticed the
- admiration in Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s glance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he began, and then stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- Simultaneously they both thought of the invalid stretched moveless on the
- bed, and Pauline bent over that form. The eyes blinked irregularly, and
- always they stared up at the same point of the ceiling. They were dry, but
- Pauline noticed traces of tears on the rugged cheeks, and she wiped them
- away&mdash;it was her mission.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; she murmured. &ldquo;You can&rsquo;t advise me what I ought to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then she faced Mr. Jetsam once more, still standing by the bed. The
- table-lamp, with the crimson silk shade, and the bright fire gave
- sufficient light.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; Mr. Jetsam recommenced, &ldquo;a great crime was committed
- long ago in the Ilam family, one of the most cruel crimes conceivable. It
- can never be atoned for in full, or nearly in full: but, even now, after
- many, many years, it can be partially atoned for.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who committed this crime? and what was it? Murder?&rdquo; gasped Pauline in a
- breath.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot be sure who committed it,&rdquo; replied the man; &ldquo;and it was not
- murder. It was worse than murder.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know it was worse than murder? How does it concern you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was the victim,&rdquo; said the man quietly. And then he raised his voice and
- repeated: &ldquo;I was the victim. I am the victim.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; she warned him. &ldquo;Not so loud.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to the bed with a strange expression on his face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not so loud?&rdquo; he demanded. &ldquo;She can hear, even if we speak in a
- whisper. She has heard everything, and she can do nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He spoke bitterly, and held a pointing finger at the old woman. And her
- eyes remained ever fixed, blinking irregularly, regardless of the two
- beings near her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are cruel,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;You torture her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Far from being cruel,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;I am kind. Justice is always
- kind, for it alone produces peace, and peace alone produces happiness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would not talk like that if you had ever been happy,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I have not been happy, it is because justice has been denied me. If
- this old woman and her son have never been happy it is because they have
- denied me justice. But justice may now be done, and you yourself may be
- the first instrument of it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me how,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will be the blind instrument,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me how,&rdquo; Pauline repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have been watching a long time at that window,&rdquo; said the man, always
- with the utmost respect&mdash;&ldquo;and what I saw convinces me that you know
- more of this affair than you care to seem to know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; demanded the girl defiantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam cannot talk, cannot give instructions
- of any kind. Yet I saw you take a particular box from off the chest of
- drawers, and hide it under the invalid&rsquo;s pillow. In order to hide it, you
- actually disturbed the invalid. You lifted her head to enable you to
- conceal the box in the bed beneath it. That is strange, Miss Dartmouth.
- But I have no desire to pry into your secrets. You are a friend of the
- family, nay more, a relative, and you had the right to do all that you
- have done. But let me tell you at once that I have come in search of
- precisely that box. I hoped to get it while everybody was asleep; but I
- was prepared for emergencies. If your cousin Ilam had been here in your
- place I should have obtained possession of it without asking his leave.
- But you&mdash;well, I humbly ask you to give it to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline gazed at the poor organism on the bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is he to have the box?&rdquo; she asked. &ldquo;Is he to have the box, Mrs. Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The staring, sad eyes did not move. There was not the slightest flutter of
- the lids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you put questions to her?&rdquo; asked Mr. Jetsam moodily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She means that you are not to have the box,&rdquo; said Pauline, and then she
- addressed Mrs. Ilam anew. &ldquo;You mean that he is to go away without the
- box?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyelids wavered and then blinked rapidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That means &lsquo;Yes.&rsquo; You must now go&mdash;at once. I have listened to you
- too long,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is impossible that you should refuse me,&rdquo; argued the man. &ldquo;Impossible!
- I don&rsquo;t suppose that motion of the eyelids means anything, but even if it
- did, naturally she does not want me to have the box. Still, I must have
- it. Miss Dartmouth, everything depends on my obtaining that box. Its
- contents are essential to the bringing about of justice. I entreat you
- most urgently and most solemnly to give it to me. You cannot doubt my
- sincerity.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will admit frankly,&rdquo; answered Pauline, &ldquo;that I do not doubt your
- sincerity. But, all the same, you cannot have that box&mdash;at least from
- my hands. It belongs to Mrs. Ilam; she evidently treasures it highly. I
- put it under her pillow to satisfy her. Mrs. Ilam is helpless, and I am in
- charge of her. You must go, I repeat&mdash;and at once. We have talked too
- much.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose I take it by force?&rdquo; suggested the man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would never dare,&rdquo; said Pauline angrily, and she rushed again to the
- bell. &ldquo;If you attempt to take it I will ring the bell, and I will hold you
- till some one comes, even if I die for it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mad creature!&rdquo; he exclaimed acidly. &ldquo;I could kill you. It is almost worth
- while; but I won&rsquo;t. You tell me to go, and I go; but my resources are not
- yet exhausted. Good-night. I can&rsquo;t leave without expressing the opinion
- that you&rsquo;ve got both sense and grit, and plenty of both. But you&rsquo;ve made a
- mistake to-night. Good-bye.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And while she stood with her hand on the bell-push Mr. Jetsam passed very
- calmly out of the window, and the curtain fell in front of him and hid
- him.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the most curious adventure of Pauline&rsquo;s life, which, indeed, had
- hitherto been entirely free from the unusual and the mysterious. After a
- short period of hesitation she went to the window, drew aside the curtain
- boldly, and looked out into the night of the City. There was no sign of
- her late visitor, but the ladder rested against the balcony, a proof of
- his recent presence; otherwise, she might have persuaded herself that what
- she had been through was a dream. She shut the window and bolted it, and
- came back into the room. The old woman, with her dark burning eyes staring
- always at the same spot on the ceiling, seemed now somewhat easier.
- Pauline gazed at her, and, after having stirred the fire, lay down again
- on the couch.
- </p>
- <p>
- And as she closed her eyes, the strange enigma of Mrs. Ilam and her son
- and the nocturnal visitant filled her mind with distracting and futile
- thoughts. Who was this grey-haired man, at once so masterful, so
- dignified, and so desperate? What could be the justice that he demanded?
- what the contents of the lacquered box? She would have a real good talk
- with Rosie in the morning. That prospect comforted her. Rosie&mdash;Rosie&mdash;&mdash;
- Suddenly she started, and gradually she perceived that she had been asleep
- a long time&mdash;two hours, perhaps&mdash;and that something, some
- presence, had wakened her. Looking round, she noticed that the door, which
- had been closed, was now open.
- </p>
- <p>
- She jumped up and went out of the room to the passage, but she could
- neither see nor hear anything. Then, as her eyes became accustomed to the
- obscurity, she detected a very faint, thin pencil of light at the other
- end of the passage, and on approaching it she found that it came from her
- sister&rsquo;s room. She crept forward, pushed open the door and went in. Rosie,
- fully dressed, was sitting on a chair near the window, which was not quite
- closed, and her face was hidden in her hands, and she appeared to be
- crying.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie,&rdquo; exclaimed Pauline, &ldquo;whatever&rsquo;s the matter? Why aren&rsquo;t you in bed
- and asleep?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And Rosie subsided into her sister&rsquo;s arms, weeping violently.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t been to bed at all,&rdquo; she said at last. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve never slept in a
- room with a balcony before, and I couldn&rsquo;t resist going out on to this
- balcony to see how beautiful the night was. And I began to think what a
- splendid time we were having, and I watched the stars, and I heard the
- clock strike in the tower over there, and the gardens looked so beautiful
- in the starlight, and a long, long time must have passed. And then I saw a
- man standing under my window. He was a man dressed in blue, with grey
- hair, and he began to talk to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And why didn&rsquo;t you tell him to go away, my dear?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He seemed so sad, and he said such interesting things. Pauline, darling,
- there&rsquo;s something very, very wrong in this house&mdash;some mystery! He
- told me. No one could help believing what he says, and he has such a
- beautiful voice. I cried, almost, in listening to him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But who was he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think he must be some relative,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;I think so. He didn&rsquo;t
- say. What he did say was that there was a black box which it was
- absolutely necessary he must have. Oh, Pauline, I&rsquo;m sure he isn&rsquo;t a thief!
- He&rsquo;s a man who has suffered a great deal, and he asked me to get the box
- for him, and his face was so sad&mdash;well, I said I would. And he told
- me exactly where it was.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where did he say it was?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He said it was under Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s pillow; and it was, true enough.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know?&rdquo; cried Pauline, aghast.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I crept into your room, and lifted Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s head, and took the box.
- You were fast asleep. He asked me to see if you were asleep, and, if you
- were, not to wake you. So I came as quietly as a mouse.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you obeyed him like that?&rdquo; murmured Pauline, astounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it. I felt so sorry for him. And his voice was so&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;You used to be sensible enough!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it!&rdquo; moaned Rosie again.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0018" id="link2HCH0018"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVIII&mdash;An Arrangement for a Marriage
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">J</span>uliette D&rsquo;Avray
- had a small sitting-room of her own in the Carpentaria bungalow. It was on
- the first floor, and it looked west, whereas Carpentaria&rsquo;s study and
- bedroom both looked north, on the avenue. Three days after the affair of
- the black box, Carpentaria ran hastily up the stairs of his house and
- touched the knob of the door of Juliette&rsquo;s sitting-room, and then he drew
- back his hand, nervous and hesitant. He was evidently perturbed, and he
- pulled his fine beard in a series of quick twitches, and then he rapped
- smartly on the door and coughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo; he cried. He was very much surprised to discover that he had
- not got complete control of his voice. It broke in the middle of his
- half-sister&rsquo;s name. &ldquo;I must do better than this,&rdquo; he thought, trying to
- command himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo; he cried again, more firmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- The word was scarcely out of his mouth when the door opened wide, and
- Juliette stood before him. They gazed at each other for a fraction of a
- second, as if inimically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you come in, Carlos?&rdquo; she murmured softly, and her eyes fell,
- &ldquo;instead of knocking and making such a noise. What&rsquo;s the matter?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria was certainly astonished at the nature and tone of her remark.
- She seemed to wish to run away. Then he gathered himself together, with an
- immense show of force, as a man will when confronted by a woman who is
- helpless before him, but of whom he is afraid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want to come in,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo; she demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know why,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed I don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; she asserted; and she laughed&mdash;a curt laugh.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You promised me you wouldn&rsquo;t see Ilam again at present,&rdquo; said Carpentaria
- stoutly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette tossed ever so little her charming head, with its admirable
- coiffure.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did,&rdquo; she admitted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;he is at this moment in the sitting-room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette&rsquo;s dainty nostrils began to dilate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos,&rdquo; she said disdainfully, &ldquo;do you know what you are saying? To me!
- Mr. Ilam is not here. I have already asked you to come in!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;but you don&rsquo;t make way for me. You keep well in
- the doorway, Juliette!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She moved aside with a gesture of the finest feminine scorn.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is there space for you to enter?&rdquo; she said, bitterly sarcastic.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria stepped forward one pace. His foot was on the door-mat.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop a moment, Carlos,&rdquo; she said warningly, lifting her arm. &ldquo;I repeat
- that Mr. Ilam is not here. I cannot imagine what put the idea into your
- head. But whatever put it in, let me advise you to put it out again at
- once. Under the circumstances, if you come into this room, now that I have
- distinctly told you that Mr. Ilam is not here, it will be equivalent to
- calling me a liar. I could not suffer that, even from you, Carlos. I
- should leave you. We should quarrel for ever. Think what you are doing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Tears stood in her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria shuffled his feet in an agony of uncertainty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come in if you doubt me,&rdquo; Juliette continued. &ldquo;But if you do, it will be
- the end.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria turned slowly away, and passed down the corridor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course I don&rsquo;t doubt you,&rdquo; he called out.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette made no response. She waited till her half-brother had descended
- the stairs, then she shut the door quietly, and ran to the Louis Quinze
- sofa, with its gilded borders, that stood a little way from the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can come out,&rdquo; she whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- And from behind the sofa emerged the bulky form of Josephus Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great heavens!&rdquo; he muttered, searching in his pocket for a handkerchief.
- </p>
- <p>
- Juliette sat down on a chair and burst into tears. The contrast between
- their two handkerchiefs&mdash;Ham&rsquo;s enormous, like himself, and Juliette&rsquo;s
- a fragment of lace no larger than a piece of bread-and-butter&mdash;was
- one of those trifles which put an edge of the comical on the tragic stuff
- of life.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are an astounding woman!&rdquo; exclaimed Ilam, wiping his brow.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have lied to him&mdash;I have deceived him. You heard what I said?&rdquo;
- whimpered Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You behaved superbly,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I behaved shamefully,&rdquo; said the woman. &ldquo;But I did it for you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And she looked at him over her handkerchief, with wet eyelashes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam would have gone through unutterable torture for her in that moment.
- It was a highly strange thing&mdash;this late coming of love into the
- existence of Josephus Ilam. It transformed him. It made him feel that, at
- fifty, he was only just beginning to grasp the meaning of life. It made
- him see that hitherto his days and his years had been wasted on vain
- things, and that the only commodity really worth having in this world was
- such a look as Juliette gave him out of her impassioned eyes. He could not
- understand what so bewitching and lively a woman as Juliette could see in
- a heavy, gloomy fellow like him. For the matter of that, probably no other
- person, save only Juliette, could understand that mystery. But then, when
- a woman loves a man, she sees him in a radiance shed from her own soul,
- and it changes him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My poor friend,&rdquo; said Juliette, composing herself, &ldquo;why do you put me in
- such an awkward position, coming upstairs like this, and in the middle of
- the day, too? You must have bribed one of the servants.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, don&rsquo;t tell me which,&rdquo; Juliette put in quickly.
- </p>
- <p>
- He bent down and kissed her. Yes, this heavy and rather creaky person, who
- had laughed at love for several decades, bent down and kissed a pretty
- woman sitting on a Louis Quinze sofa; moreover, he put his arms round her.
- He did it clumsily, of course, but Juliette did not think so.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was obliged to see you,&rdquo; he told her. &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t go without seeing
- you. Why have you so persistently kept out of my way? You were so kind
- that morning&mdash;when Carpentaria surprised you. Has he been bullying
- you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; exclaimed Juliette, suddenly excited. &ldquo;I cannot tell you what he
- said to me. You know I love him best in the world&mdash;next to&mdash;you.
- But he said such things to me&mdash;such things!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He said&mdash;oh, my dearest!&mdash;he said his life was not safe&mdash;he
- said no one&rsquo;s life was safe in this City&mdash;he said he had been shot at
- in the bandstand; and, you know, that business of the milk was dreadful.
- The strange thing is that Carlos won&rsquo;t consult the police about it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But how does this affect us&mdash;affect you and me?&rdquo; demanded Ilam
- bravely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest,&rdquo; said Juliette, &ldquo;poor Carlos thinks&mdash;he actually thinks&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That I am trying to kill him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He thinks you have something to do with it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But why? Why should I want to kill your brother&mdash;your brother?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, indeed!&rdquo; agreed Juliette. &ldquo;And why should you want to kill anybody&rsquo;s
- brother?&rdquo; she added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course,&rdquo; he said hastily. &ldquo;Why should I want to kill any person at
- all?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos says that he is not the only person you have tried to kill.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ha! And who is the other? Give me the full catalogue.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. He says you have buried a man in the grounds, and that he
- saw you do it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo; Ilam stepped backwards. Then he stopped. &ldquo;Juliette,&rdquo; he
- repeated, &ldquo;I swear to you most solemnly that I have never tried to kill
- anyone.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest, you shouldn&rsquo;t have said that!&rdquo; she remonstrated. &ldquo;You shouldn&rsquo;t
- have sworn to me. It is an insult to my love. Do you imagine that I
- believed Carlos for a single instant? Do you imagine it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She looked at him proudly, gloriously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How splendid you are!&rdquo; muttered Josephus Ilam, son of the soda-water
- manufacturer. The admiration was drawn out of him. He had not guessed that
- women could be so fine. And then he perceived that he, too, must be
- splendid, that he must be worthy of her; and so he proceeded:
- &ldquo;Nevertheless, it is true that I did bury a man in the grounds a few
- nights ago.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The perspiration stood afresh on his brow as he made the confession.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You!&rdquo; she murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought he was dead,&rdquo; said Ilam, speaking quickly. &ldquo;I thought I should
- be accused of his murder. And so I&mdash;the fact is, I was mad. I was off
- my head. I must have been. Until yesterday I actually fancied I was being
- haunted by his ghost. Yes! me! me&mdash;thinking a thing like that! But I
- did; and yesterday I was in that big crush, during the shower, in the
- Court of the Exposition Palace, and he, too, was in the crowd. I saw him;
- I touched him; he didn&rsquo;t see me, thank Heaven! Then I knew that what I had
- buried was not a corpse.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is this man?&rdquo; asked Juliette calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My angel!&rdquo; said Ilam, driven to poetry by the stress of his emotion, &ldquo;you
- mustn&rsquo;t inquire; there are some things I can&rsquo;t tell you&mdash;at least,
- not yet. When we are married, when matters are settled a bit, I will tell
- you everything, but not now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not now?&rdquo; she persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look here,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;if you persist I shall simply go and kill myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She paused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My friend,&rdquo; she resumed, &ldquo;you do not love me as much as I love you. The
- measure of love is trust, and you do not trust me completely.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I love you in my way,&rdquo; said Ilam doggedly; &ldquo;men are not like women.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is true,&rdquo; she admitted philosophically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would tell you everything if I was free to do so,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest&rdquo;&mdash;she addressed him in quite a new tone&mdash;&ldquo;you know
- something about those attacks on Carlos&rsquo; life.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She spoke with an air of absolute certainty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have had nothing to do with them,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you know something about them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you think so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can tell from your manner,&rdquo; she said triumphantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know nothing for certain, nothing precise,&rdquo; said Ilam&mdash;&ldquo;nothing
- that I can tell you&mdash;nothing that I dare tell you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest,&rdquo; she remarked, with a faint acidity, &ldquo;it seems to me that you
- have come here to-day in order not to tell me things.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He deprecated her tone with an appealing gesture.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can tell you, at any rate, this,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;that your brother&rsquo;s life is
- no longer in danger&mdash;of that I am sure.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are atoning,&rdquo; she smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which is more than can be said of my life,&rdquo; Ilam proceeded, not heeding
- her smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your life is in danger?&rdquo; she questioned, rushing to him as though she
- would protect him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam, without a word, led her to the window, from the corner of which a
- glimpse of the avenue could be caught, and walking to and fro there in the
- avenue was the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You see that man?&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the fellow they call &lsquo;Spats&rsquo; in the
- native village. I don&rsquo;t know why. He is devoted to me; he is fully armed;
- he follows me everywhere. I have only to blow this whistle&rdquo;&mdash;and Ilam
- produced a whistle from his pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Darling&rdquo;&mdash;and Juliette clung to him&mdash;&ldquo;is it so bad as that? Who
- is it that threatens you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The man that I buried,&rdquo; said Ilam quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what are you going to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m come here to see you. We must get your brother on
- our side.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll force him to understand at once,&rdquo; cried Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam, &ldquo;perhaps you would fail, as things are, but if you were
- my wife, you would not fail then. Carpentaria, once the thing was done,
- would do everything in his power to protect your husband; he likes you
- well enough for that. He might be angry at first, but he would see
- reason.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dearest, you want me to marry you secretly?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I merely want you to go with me to the registry office at Putney.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is that what you came for?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is what I came for.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My love!&rdquo; she murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- Yet, with that cold and penetrating insight which women have, she saw
- clearly that, though Ilam&rsquo;s idea of getting Carpentaria&rsquo;s assistance in a
- moment of grave danger was doubtless quite serious, it was somewhat
- fanciful, and that Ilam&rsquo;s professed reason for their instant marriage was
- also fanciful, and was not a real reason, but only an excuse. He merely
- wanted to marry her at once, that was all, and although his life was
- threatened, he thought little of that. She loved him the more.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can make the arrangements pretty quick,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;You will agree, my
- angel?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And she nodded, and the compact was sealed. They heard a scurrying in the
- passages of the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette! Juliette!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Carpentaria&rsquo;s voice, and other voices mingled with it indistinctly&mdash;the
- voices of the servants. &ldquo;Yes!&rdquo; she answered loudly and, whispering to
- Ilam, &ldquo;Get out of the window; whistle softly for your Soudanese. You can
- get on to the roof of the outhouse. He will help you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And noiselessly she opened the window, and Ilam, struck by her tremendous
- resourcefulness, passed out. She heard his low whistle, and then she ran
- to the door and into the passage.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The house is on fire,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, meeting her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it?&rdquo; she answered calmly. &ldquo;Are the firemen come? where&rsquo;s the fire?&rdquo;&mdash;She
- sniffed&mdash;&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;I can smell it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was amazingly calm. &ldquo;No woman with a man concealed in her
- sitting-room,&rdquo; said Carpentaria to himself, &ldquo;could behave so calmly upon
- being informed that the house was on fire. Her first thought would have
- been to secure the hidden man&rsquo;s safety.&rdquo; And Carpentaria ran downstairs
- with a great show of activity. He was baffled, disappointed, for he had
- deliberately set fire to his own house in order to drive Ilam from the
- sitting-room, where he felt sure Ilam was. And the trick had failed. After
- all, he had been mistaken. He had been convinced of his sister&rsquo;s
- deception, and lo! she had not deceived him. Carpentaria could have killed
- himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- Happily the fire was of no importance, and it was extinguished before it
- had done more than about five pounds&rsquo; worth of damage and alarmed more
- than about five thousand visitors to the City.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0019" id="link2HCH0019"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIX&mdash;The Heart of the City
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>he situation of
- the heart of the City was one of the secrets of the City. It was not
- located, perhaps, exactly where you might have expected it to be, and for
- a very good reason. The magnificent building which housed the managerial,
- clerical, and inspectorial staff of the City was near the south end of the
- Central Way. It comprised four floors, and more than a hundred clerks
- spent seven hours a day there. On the first floor was the President&rsquo;s
- Parlour, where Ilam held consultations with Carpentaria and with the heads
- of departments, from the department of catering to the department of
- road-cleaning. On the floor above was the Manager&rsquo;s and Musical Director&rsquo;s
- Parlour, where the august Carpentaria held consultations with Ilam and
- with the heads of other departments, from that of music, with its
- subsections (a) open-air bands, (b) theatre and other bands, (c)
- restaurant bands, (d) vocal music, (e) pianolas, gramophones, and
- mechanical orchestras, to the procession and fêtes department. But the
- heart of the City was nowhere in this building.
- </p>
- <p>
- There were also scattered about the immense grounds, various other
- executive buildings of a smaller size, where sectional managers, viceroys
- of Ilam and Carpentaria, held their mimic sway. But the heart of the City
- was not in any of these, either.
- </p>
- <p>
- Very few persons, even among those on the salary-list of the City, did
- know where the heart was; for it was not talked about. Talking about it
- was discouraged; the hearts of such places are never talked about. And it
- is a most singular thing that visitors to the City scarcely gave a thought
- to the question of the situation of the heart of the City. The most
- interesting of all the many secrets of the City seldom aroused public
- curiosity, so strange is the public.
- </p>
- <p>
- The heart of the City, as I propose to reveal, was situated beneath the
- Storytellers&rsquo; Hall, near the northern end of the Central Way, on your left
- hand as you passed down from the north entrance-gates. The Storytellers&rsquo;
- Hall was an invention of Carpentaria&rsquo;s&mdash;one of his best. Between two
- o&rsquo;clock and four, between five o&rsquo;clock and seven, and between half-past
- eight and closing-time you could pay sixpence to go into the Storytellers&rsquo;
- Hall and listen to a succession of American and Irish and English
- performers, whose sole business it was to sit in an armchair on the
- diminutive stage and tell funny stories. The entertainment consisted in
- nothing else. It was the simplest thing in the world, and yet one of the
- completest successes of the City. It was a success from the very first
- hour of its existence. The little hall was nearly always crowded, chiefly
- by men. One is bound to admit that women were not enchanted by it; either
- they laughed in the wrong places, or they turned to their husbands,
- sweethearts, uncles, nephews, at the end of the story, and asked if that
- really was the end of the story, and, if it was, would their husbands,
- sweethearts, uncles, nephews kindly explain the joke to them.
- </p>
- <p>
- Well, the heart of the City was beneath that gay and mirthful structure.
- While storytellers told stories above the level of the ground, the most
- serious business of the City was being transacted a few feet away, below
- the level of the ground. Let me explain.
- </p>
- <p>
- Take an average intelligent visitor to the City. He approaches, say, the
- northern entrance, and among the twenty patent turnstiles which confront
- him he chooses the nearest one that is empty. He puts a shilling on the
- iron table of the turnstile; an official in the livery of the City
- scrutinizes the coin to make sure that it is what it pretends to be, and
- then pushes it down a little hole. The shilling disappears&mdash;not only
- from the sight, but from the thoughts of the visitor.
- </p>
- <p>
- It is a highly remarkable fact&mdash;as he squeezes through the turnstile
- he actually forgets all about his shilling, forgets it for evermore!
- </p>
- <p>
- Yet shillings are being poured in a continuous stream into the mouth of
- that turnstile and into the mouths of scores of similar turnstiles, all
- day. What becomes of them? Surely this question ought to interest the
- average intelligent visitor! What becomes of them? The turnstiles won&rsquo;t
- hold an unlimited number of shillings; nevertheless, shillings are falling
- into them eternally and they are never emptied; they are never even moved;
- they could not be moved, since they are imbedded in concrete. Here <i>is</i>
- a puzzle for the average intelligent visitor.
- </p>
- <p>
- It will occur to anyone that when four hundred thousand people have each
- paid a shilling entrance, quite a nice little lot of money must have
- accumulated somewhere in the City by nightfall; for, besides the entrance
- shillings, there is the vast expenditure of the visitors after they have
- entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- The nice little bit of money runs to the heart of the City. That is what
- the heart of the City is for; that is why it is called the heart.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now, the heart was a long, wide, and low apartment, lighted by
- electricity, and lined with concrete. In the centre, its top level with
- the floor, was a huge safe, which by hydraulic power could be raised till
- its top was nearly level with the ceiling, and its doors bared to the
- persuasions of keys. Round about were large wooden tables, furnished with
- large and small balances, copper scoops, bags, and steel coffers. A few
- chairs completed the apparatus of the apartment.
- </p>
- <p>
- The shillings of the clients of the City dropped through the mouths of the
- turnstiles right down to a small subterranean chamber, which could only be
- reached from a tunnel beneath each entrance. Thus, the officials in charge
- of the turnstiles had no control whatever over the coins once they had
- been slipped into the orifices. The coins were checked and collected by an
- entirely separate set of officials, who visited the underground chambers
- every three hours and brought back the booty, enclosed in coffers, in
- specially constructed insignificant-looking carriages, to the solitary
- door of the heart. And the door of the heart was by no means in the
- Central Way; it gave on a back entry running parallel to the Way and just
- wide enough to permit the passage of one carriage. The coffers were
- received, and receipted for, by an official of the heart, and handed by
- him into the interior. Neither he nor the collectors were ever allowed to
- enter the heart.
- </p>
- <p>
- On the evening of the day of the secret interview between Juliette and
- Ilam, the inconspicuous door of the heart was guarded, not by its usual
- official, but by a tall Soudanese, and waiting close to him was an
- automobile with chauffeur on board. The automobile was one of several
- employed specially to transport the riches of the City to the head offices
- of the London and West-End Bank in King William Street. The journeys were
- made at night, twice a week, and the offices of the London and West-End
- were specially opened to receive the coin. Automobiles laden with vast
- wealth are less apt to be remarked when they travel at night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Within the heart itself were three people&mdash;Ilam; a middle-aged man
- named Gloucester, who spent all his days in counting and weighing gold and
- silver, and who was the presiding genius of the heart; and, thirdly, a
- clerk from the London and West-End Bank.
- </p>
- <p>
- Gloucester was weighing sovereigns, the clerk was counting coffers and
- piling them up in a corner near the door, and Ilam was idly inspecting the
- doors of the huge safe, which had been raised out of its well and stood
- open and empty.
- </p>
- <p>
- During that day and the previous two days, what with a monster Y.M.C.A.
- fête then in progress, and what with the weather, over a million shillings
- had been taken at the turnstiles. Now, a new shilling weighs eighty-seven
- grains, and about seven thousand average current shillings go to the
- hundredweight. A million shillings, or fifty thousand pounds in silver,
- will weigh, therefore, something like seven tons. Nearly the whole of this
- treasure had already started on its way to the famous vaults of the London
- and West-End Bank; only a few coffers remained. But there was, in
- addition, about ten thousand pounds in gold, which weighed about a couple
- of hundredweight, and it was chiefly for this gold that the last
- automobile was waiting.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Seven coffers of silver, Mr. Gloucester,&rdquo; said the clerk; &ldquo;two of gold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall be ready with the others in a few minutes,&rdquo; replied Mr.
- Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I&rsquo;ll be making out the check-sheets,&rdquo; said the clerk.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do so,&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester, who was a formal old person, and wore
- steel-rimmed spectacles. And he continued his weighing of the gold.
- </p>
- <p>
- At this interesting and dazzling juncture, the unique door of the
- apartment, an affair of solid Bessemer steel, swung slowly on its hinges,
- and disclosed the figure of a man in a blue suit, with grey hair under his
- soft hat. Mr. Gloucester, being just a little short-sighted and just a
- little hard of hearing, neither saw nor heard the visitor. Nor did Mr.
- Ilam, who was actually within the safe, measuring its-shelves. But the
- bank-clerk, who was quite close to the door, most decidedly did see the
- man. And the clerk started, whether with fear, surprise, or mere
- nervousness, will probably never be known.
- </p>
- <p>
- The man shut the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; began the clerk.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the other end of the room,&rdquo; said the man commandingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam!&rdquo; the clerk called out respectfully, alarmed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the other end of the room,&rdquo; repeated the man.&rsquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The clerk perceived then that he had a revolver. Mr. Gloucester also
- perceived the man and his revolver, and Mr. Ilam came out of the safe
- rather like a jack out of a box.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0020" id="link2HCH0020"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XX&mdash;What Jetsam Wanted
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">H</span>ullo, Jos! said
- the intruder in a light, careless and rather scornful tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a stroke of genius on his part to address Mr. Ilam as &ldquo;Jos.&rdquo; That
- curt and familiar monosyllable, directed like a bullet at the formidable
- Ilam, the august President of the City, made such an impression upon both
- Mr. Gloucester and the L. and W. E. Bank-clerk that they took no part
- whatever in the immediately subsequent proceedings. They were astounded
- into silence. They trembled lest lightning should descend and utterly
- destroy the intruder.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Ilam himself was plainly at a loss. He was about to say to the
- intruder: &ldquo;You have no right to speak to me in such a way,&rdquo; and to order
- him out of the place, when the ridiculousness of protesting and the
- futility of ordering presented themselves vividly to his mind.
- </p>
- <p>
- Besides, there was the revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- So Mr. Ilam said merely, in a sort of pained surprise:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jetsam!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly,&rdquo; said Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the imperturbable fellow, with his grey hair and his shabby suit and
- his weary eyes, nonchalantly sat down on the edge of one of the
- counting-tables, his legs dangling, and his body leaning forward.
- </p>
- <p>
- The two employés were by this time convinced that the new-comer must be
- either the Shah of Persia in disguise, or else some extremely intimate and
- life-long friend of Ilam&rsquo;s, perhaps richer than Ilam himself. The
- bank-clerk knew by sight several chairmen of banks who were quite as badly
- dressed as the man on the table. Nevertheless, they did not carry
- revolvers. The revolver was certainly rather disquieting. However, they
- bent to their work, as though both eyes of the Recording Angel were upon
- them.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam closed the door of the safe.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The doorkeeper let you pass?&rdquo; he ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, not at all,&rdquo; replied Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He isn&rsquo;t at his post?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not just at the moment. I&rsquo;ve had him removed for a bit. He&rsquo;ll doubtless
- return as soon as I&rsquo;ve gone. I thought it would be simpler to have my own
- doorkeeper.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What did the Soudanese say, though?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which Soudanese?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The Soudanese who is outside the door.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, him? He didn&rsquo;t say anything.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is a serious breach of rules for you to be here, you know,&rdquo; said
- Ilam. &ldquo;And I must ask you to go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I really can&rsquo;t go just yet,&rdquo; said Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing,&rdquo; said Jetsam; &ldquo;except nursing this revolver. I&rsquo;m going to do
- something soon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Both the bank-clerk and Mr. Gloucester looked up. They even went so far as
- to glance at their employer for instructions; but their employer seemed to
- avoid the eyes of the underlings. Then Mr. Gloucester spoke in a low tone
- to the clerk, and the clerk replied, and some bags of gold were bundled
- into a coffer and the coffer locked and double-locked, and the bank-clerk
- murmured respectfully:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;These are the lot, sir. Shall I take them and go?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you help me?&rdquo; said the clerk to Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Mr. Gloucester and the clerk each picked up several coffers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night, sir,&rdquo; said the clerk.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop that!&rdquo; Jetsam exclaimed, turning his head slowly behind him to
- follow the movements of the pair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I beg pardon?&rdquo; murmured the clerk interrogatively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought I told you to go to the other end of the room,&rdquo; thundered
- Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Mr. Ilam&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the other end of the room, up there at that corner,&rdquo; Jetsam
- commanded sternly, adding, &ldquo;or I&rsquo;ll blow your idiotic brains out! Do you
- hear?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The clerk was in love with a girl who lived with her mother in a pretty
- little semi-detached villa at Weybridge. He thought of her; he thought of
- all the evenings he had spent with her; he conjured her up in all her
- different dresses; he heard her voice in all its tones&mdash;and all this
- in the fraction of a second. Then he put down the boxes and discreetly
- betook himself to the corner indicated by Mr. Jetsam, thinking obscurely
- and slangily that to be a bank-clerk was not all jam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you, too!&rdquo; ordered Jetsam, raising a finger to Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Gloucester was not in love with a charming young thing at Weybridge.
- He never had been in love; he had never lived with anyone except himself
- and a bull-terrier; but he was fond of playing chess at night at
- Simpson&rsquo;s; and he suddenly saw Simpson&rsquo;s and the chess-boards, and the
- foamy quart, and the bull-terrier lying under the table. Life and
- Simpson&rsquo;s seemed infinitely precious to him in those instants. And he put
- down his boxes and followed the bank-clerk to the suggested corner.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must really&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; he began protestingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Silence!&rdquo; exploded Mr. Jetsam; and there was silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- You must picture the large, low room, with its concrete lining and its
- half-dozen sixteen candle-power electric lights burning in the ceiling;
- and underneath these lights the four men&mdash;Ilam leaning against the
- gigantic safe which rose out of the floor in the middle of the apartment;
- Jetsam still nonchalantly swinging his legs as he sat on the table, facing
- him directly; and the democracy, somewhat scared and undecided, in a
- corner. Jetsam had his back to the door, and since the two piles of
- coffers were near the door they were out of his field of vision.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam winked at Ilam&mdash;deliberately winked at him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Simple as a, b, c, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; he pleasantly remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What?&rdquo; demanded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What I&rsquo;m doing now&mdash;holding up a strong room and its staff.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll suffer for this,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That remains to be seen,&rdquo; was the reply. &ldquo;I gravely doubt if I shall
- suffer for it. Up to now, what have I done? I have asked those gentlemen
- to go into a corner and not to indulge in desultory and disturbing
- conversation; and they have been good enough to humour my caprice; and I
- have winked at you, Jos. Is there anything illegal in winking at you? A
- few days ago you did more than wink at me&mdash;you nearly killed me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must go,&rdquo; said Ilam. &ldquo;I have an appointment&mdash;I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He moved slightly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let me advise you not to move,&rdquo; Jetsam warned him, raising the revolver
- an inch or so. &ldquo;It mightn&rsquo;t be very good for your constitution. You must
- grasp, the fact that you are being held up. A worn-out operation, you will
- say&mdash;a trick lacking in novelty! Yes; but one, nevertheless, based on
- the fundamental human instincts, and therefore pretty certain to succeed.
- Indeed, I am surprised how simple it is. You might fancy from my easy
- bearing that I had devoted a lifetime to holding people up. Not in the
- least. I have never held anyone up before. And yet, how well I am
- succeeding! The thing works like a charm; merely because you can see in my
- eye that I mean to be obeyed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose you want money?&rdquo; said Ilam savagely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want impudence!&rdquo; retorted Jetsam. &ldquo;Apologize, if you please, my
- friend!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What have I said?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t what you said&mdash;it&rsquo;s your manner of saying it that was
- unworthy of you. You mean to apologize for wounding my feelings, don&rsquo;t
- you?&rdquo; Jetsam smiled. &ldquo;No, don&rsquo;t move; merely express your regret!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m sorry,&rdquo; muttered Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&mdash;you see!&rdquo; cried Jetsam to the men in the corner. &ldquo;Let that be
- a lesson to you. And remember, that only great men like Mr. Ilam have
- sufficient moral force, when they are in the wrong, to admit the fact.
- Well, Jos, I accept your apology in the cheerful and generous spirit in
- which you offer it; and I shall not deny that I do want money. That is
- part of what I came for.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How much do you want?&rdquo; asked Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;How much have you got handy?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Ilam intimated that there was a small sum in gold.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A thousand in gold?&rdquo; queried Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Probably more,&rdquo; Jetsam commented. &ldquo;But a thousand will suffice me. If I
- need a fresh supply I can always come again, can&rsquo;t I? And besides, all
- that is yours is mine, eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam maintained silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Eh?&rdquo; repeated Jetsam persuasively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; growled Ilam, and his eye caught the eye of the young bank-clerk by
- pure accident.
- </p>
- <p>
- At that moment the young bank-clerk, fired by martial valour, a thirst for
- glory, and the thought of what a splendid thrilling tale he would have to
- tell to the charming young thing at Weybridge, sprang furiously forward in
- the direction of Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop!&rdquo; said Jetsam, slipping off the table and facing the youth, revolver
- ready.
- </p>
- <p>
- The youth hesitated for the fifth of a second.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said the youth, and came on.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam fired almost point-blank at the hero&rsquo;s face, and the hero started
- back and sank to the ground. And there was a great hush in the room and a
- smell of powder and a little smoke. The youth lay still.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Get up!&rdquo; said Jetsam fiercely. &ldquo;Get up, or I&rsquo;ll kick you up!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And, strange to relate, the youth discovered the whereabouts of his limbs
- and got up, and returned to the corner.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A singular example of what imagination will do!&rdquo; commented Jetsam. &ldquo;The
- first chamber of this revolver was loaded with blank. I expected to have
- to use it for theatrical effect, to begin with, and I was not wrong. Let
- me add that the other five chambers are most carefully loaded, and that I
- once earned my living in a music-hall by shooting the pips out of cards
- with this revolver.&rdquo; He then addressed Mr. Gloucester. &ldquo;Now, old man,&rdquo; he
- said, &ldquo;how much gold is there in one of those boxes?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Two thousand five hundred!&rdquo; answered Mr. Gloucester politely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And it weighs?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;About sixty pounds.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t worth while breaking into it,&rdquo; said Jetsam smoothly, looking at
- Ilam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll take the lot. In our final settlement it shall be brought into
- account.&rdquo; His glance shifted to Gloucester. &ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;for
- this information so courteously given.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps you are satisfied now!&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you go? You think you won&rsquo;t get caught, but you will.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Surely, you won&rsquo;t give me away, Jos!&rdquo; protested Jetsam. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m convinced
- you won&rsquo;t; because you see, if you begin to talk about me I should
- probably begin to talk about you, and think how dreadful that would be.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Keep it up! Keep it up!&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hence,&rdquo; Jetsam proceeded, ignoring the interruption, &ldquo;I shall confidently
- rely on you to see that these excellent gentlemen here in the corner keep
- their elegant mouths shut. I shall rely on you for that. You understand,
- gentlemen, Mr. Ilam wishes you not to prattle, even in the privacy of your
- own homes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you going?&rdquo; said Ilam doggedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Jetsam; &ldquo;and so are you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you. The money is a mere incidental. What I came for was your
- distinguished self.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m not coming with you. I haven&rsquo;t the slightest intention of coming with
- you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You may not have much intention, but you are coming,&rdquo; said the suave
- Jetsam. &ldquo;Besides, who is going to carry this box outside for me? I can&rsquo;t
- carry the box and a revolver, too. Obviously Providence has designated
- precisely you to carry this box. Come.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not I!&rdquo; Ilam defied him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come!&rdquo; repeated Jetsam. &ldquo;I have a vehicle awaiting outside, and we shall
- see what we shall see.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No!&rdquo; insisted Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam advanced two paces.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen!&rdquo; said he angrily and yet calmly. &ldquo;If you don&rsquo;t come, I&rsquo;ll shoot
- you where you stand. You ought to be able to perceive that I mean what I
- say.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam&rsquo;s reply was a mute surrender. He dropped his eyes, and the next
- moment the two underlings had the spectacle of the corpulent Mr. Ilam
- lifting a sixty-pound weight and struggling with it to the door, followed
- by the revolver and Mr. Jetsam behind the revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stop in the doorway a second,&rdquo; ordered Jetsam. He addressed the clerks
- again. &ldquo;If I were you, I shouldn&rsquo;t hurry out of here. You might catch
- cold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then they saw Ilam disappear, the box in his arms, and Mr. Jetsam
- follow him. Mr. Jetsam closed the door. The clerks were alone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, of all the&mdash;&mdash;!&rdquo; exclaimed the younger man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wonder how soon it will be safe for us to leave!&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0021" id="link2HCH0021"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXI&mdash;Interrupting a Concert
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hat evening the
- nightly concert of the &ldquo;Carpentaria Band&rdquo; was held in the great court of
- the Exposition Palace, partly because the weather was threatening, and
- partly because the Y.M.C.A. wished it so. The stalwart members of the
- Y.M.C.A. were prominent and joyous, and they pervaded the City to the
- number of some fifty thousand. They were nearly all young, and they were
- all, without exception, enthusiastic. They had taken possession of
- practically the whole of the tables on the three tiers of balconies that
- surrounded the court, and there was also a considerable sprinkling of them
- on the ground floor. They liked Carpentaria; they liked his music; they
- liked his way of conducting. They admired him when he split the drums of
- their ears, and they equally admired him when he wooed those organs with a
- hint of sound that was something less than a whisper. They violently
- cheered his marches, and with the same violence they cheered his serenades
- and his cradlesongs.
- </p>
- <p>
- Consequently Carpentaria was content. He was more than content&mdash;he
- glowed with pleasure. He was the centre of the vast illuminated court,
- with its ornate architecture, and its wonderful roof, and its serried rows
- of lights. All eyes were centred on him. He swayed not only his band, but
- the multitude, by a single movement of the slim baton&mdash;that magic bit
- of ivory which he held in his hand. He said to himself that he had never
- had a better, a more appreciative and enthusiastic audience in the whole
- of his glorious career. The result was, that-he conducted in his most
- variegated and polychromatic manner. He did things with his wand that no
- conductor had ever done with a wand before; he performed gyrations,
- contortions, and acrobatics beyond all his previous exploits. In a word,
- he surpassed himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- He was in the very act of surpassing himself, in his renowned &ldquo;Cockney
- Serenade,&rdquo; when he observed, out of the tail of his eye, a middle-aged
- man, who was forcing his way at all costs across the floor of the hall
- towards the bandstand.
- </p>
- <p>
- When seven thousand people are packed on chairs on a single floor, it is
- not the quietest task in the world to penetrate through them. And the
- middle-aged man was not doing it quietly, in fact, he was making decidedly
- more noise than the &ldquo;Cockney Serenade,&rdquo; and attracting quite as much
- attention.
- </p>
- <p>
- A number of ardently musical young men on the grand balcony leaned over
- the wrought-iron parapet and advised the middle-aged man to lie down and
- die, in a manner unmistakably ferocious. (It is extraordinary how
- ferocious a youth can be on mere lemonade.) But the middle-aged man
- continued his course, and he arrived at the bandstand, despite official
- and unofficial protests, simultaneously with the conclusion of the
- serenade.
- </p>
- <p>
- Gales of applause swept about the court, and Carpentaria bowed, and bowed
- again&mdash;bowed innumerably, all the time regarding the middle-aged man
- with angry and suppressed curiosity. The middle-aged man had lifted up a
- hand and pulled the triangle-player by the belt of his magnificent
- uniform, and the triangle-player had bent down to speak to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it? What is it?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria, his nerves on edge.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A person insists on speaking to you, sir,&rdquo; replied the triangle-player.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He cannot,&rdquo; snapped Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He says he shall,&rdquo; said the triangle-player.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Carpentaria began an anathema, and then stopped. He
- went to the rail of the bandstand and leaned over to the middle-aged man.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At your age,&rdquo; he said grimly, &ldquo;you ought to know better than to interrupt
- my concerts in this way. Who are you? What do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My name is Gloucester, sir,&rdquo; was the answer. &ldquo;Doubtless you recollect.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do nothing of the kind,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m in charge of the&mdash;er&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; Here Gloucester stood up on
- tiptoe in an endeavour to whisper directly into Carpentaria&rsquo;s ear&mdash;&ldquo;the
- strong-rooms.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; asked Carpentaria, &ldquo;what do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Been robbed, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great Heavens, man!&rdquo; Carpentaria exploded. &ldquo;You come to interrupt my
- concert because the strong-rooms have been robbed!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Two thousand five hundred pounds, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care if it&rsquo;s two thousand times two thousand five hundred pounds.
- Go away! Go and worry Mr. Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s just it, sir. Mr. Ilam has been taken, too.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- By this time the multitudinous eyes of the audience were fixed on
- Carpentaria and his interlocutor, and everybody was sapiently saying to
- everybody else that something extraordinary must have occurred.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean&mdash;Mr. Ilam been taken?&rdquo; Carpentaria demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s been carried off&mdash;he carried the money off&mdash;he was forced
- to, sir. Revolver, sir. Can&rsquo;t you come, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can I come? Ye gods! Man, do you know what a concert is? Can I come? Of
- course I can&rsquo;t come!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam may be dead, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall have leisure to bury him after the concert,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- &ldquo;Go away. Go and consult Lapping, head of the police department. Or,
- rather, don&rsquo;t. You&rsquo;ll upset the audience making your way out. Sit down.
- Sit right down there, and don&rsquo;t move. We&rsquo;re going to play my new
- arrangement of the &lsquo;Glory Song&rsquo; with variations. You&rsquo;ll see it will bring
- the house down. It will be something you&rsquo;ll remember as long as you live.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, sir,&rdquo; pleaded Mr. Gloucester pathetically.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Sit down&mdash;and listen,&rdquo; Carpentaria repeated sternly.
- </p>
- <p>
- He returned to the centre of his men. He rapped the magic wand on his
- desk, and the next moment the band had burst deliriously into the now
- famous orchestral arrangement of the &ldquo;Glory Song.&rdquo; The audience was
- thrilled by the waves of sound that emanated from the instruments,
- especially when the variations began. So the entertainment continued,
- while Mr. Gloucester, consuming his middle-aged impatience as best he
- could, ruminated upon the strange caprices of employers. He had been an
- employé all his life; he had never commanded; and his conclusion, at the
- age of fifty odd, was to the effect that the nature of employers is
- incomprehensible, and that you never know what they will do next.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me, sir.&rdquo; He timidly touched Carpentaria when the concert was
- over.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, it appeared, in the rush and fever of the music, had
- forgotten all about him, and was on the point of leaving the court
- deafened by applause.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, yes!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;That thief. Two thousand five hundred
- pounds. And you say that Mr. Ilam has been carried off. Tell me all about
- that. Come this way. Come into the street&mdash;it is always the most
- private place.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And in the Central Way, near the fountain, upon which coloured lights were
- reflected from below, Mr. Gloucester related in detail to Carpentaria the
- episode of the theft.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You say it was a man dressed in blue, with grey hair?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And there were three of you, including Mr. Ilam, and you could not manage
- to disarm him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It might have meant death for the first of us, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Carpentaria absently, &ldquo;what if it did?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Gloucester grunted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You said I was to consult Mr. Lapping, sir. Shall we go there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;not yet. I will look into it myself first. The
- principal mystery is that of the doorkeeper. What is his name?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wiggins.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And he has disappeared?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He was not there when I left, sir. And he could not have been there when
- the thief entered.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because he would not have allowed the thief to enter, sir. He has strict
- orders.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Humph! Come along.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They hastened up the Central Way, in a northerly direction. The rain had
- kept off, and the illuminations, which were superb, evidently met with the
- ecstatic approval of the Y.M.C.A. adherents, who paraded to and fro, and
- filled the flying cars, with the hectic enjoyment of people who feel that
- closing time is near. The progress made by Carpentaria and his companion
- was therefore not of the quickest.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s more than an hour since,&rdquo; said Mr. Gloucester, daring to show his.
- discontent.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is?&rdquo; asked Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Since the crime occurred.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The fellow must have calculated on my concert,&rdquo; replied Carpentaria. &ldquo;He
- probably knew that everybody in this City runs to me when the slightest
- thing goes wrong.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The slightest thing!&rdquo; repeated Mr. Gloucester bitterly&mdash;but not
- aloud, only in his secret soul.
- </p>
- <p>
- They hurried round by the side of the Storytellers&rsquo; Hall, and so to the
- passage at the back. And standing at the entrance to the vaults,
- underneath a solitary jet of electric light, was Wiggins, the doorkeeper
- of the heart of the City. He was a man aged about thirty-five, six feet
- two high, and not quite so broad.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you&rsquo;re here!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where have you been since&mdash;since Mr. Ilam arrived here?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did what you told me, sir,&rdquo; said Wiggins, with an air of independence.
- Wiggins was not a Mr. Gloucester.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What was that?&rdquo; demanded Carpentaria, mystified.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, your note, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What note?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Wiggins pulled a crumpled paper from his pocket and handed it to
- Carpentaria, who read:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come to me in my office at once. If I am not there, wait for me. The
- bearer will take your duties meanwhile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;C. Carpentaria.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;And who brought this?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A Soudanese, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which Soudanese?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. They&rsquo;re all alike to me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And it didn&rsquo;t occur to you that this note was forged?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir. Why should it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It didn&rsquo;t occur to you,&rdquo; Carpentaria continued, &ldquo;that I was conducting my
- concert, and that therefore I couldn&rsquo;t possibly be in my office?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t know anything about any concert, sir. I&rsquo;m doorkeeper here&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not know about my concert!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria. Then he calmed himself.
- &ldquo;Mr. Ilam came before the Soudanese brought the note to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir, but only a few seconds before. He had but just gone in when the
- Soudanese came. I was talking to the driver of the motor-car as was
- waiting, sir, here in front of the door.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh. So there was a motor-car?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir. It was one of the City cars. No. 28, sir. To take the money
- away, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good. Who was the driver? Do you know his name?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think his name&rsquo;s Pratt, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you left immediately and went to my office and waited for me, and
- then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I got tired of waiting and I came back here, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Mr. Gloucester, the garage is indicated as our
- next resort.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The immense garage of the City was close to the northern entrance gates.
- And it, too, was guarded by a doorkeeper, hidden in a little box near the
- double-wooden doors.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I want to know if Car No. 28 has come in,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; was the reply. &ldquo;Came in twenty minutes ago.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you see it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said the doorkeeper.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who was driving it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t notice, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Show us the car, if you please.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They passed into the desert expanse of the garage, where a few men were
- cleaning cars. Car No. 28 was in its place. In shape it was rather like a
- police-van, but smaller. Carpentaria noticed that its wheels were very
- dirty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Open it,&rdquo; said he.
- </p>
- <p>
- The key was found, and the interior of the car exposed to the light of a
- lantern. And at the extremity of the car could be seen a vague mass, a
- collection of limbs and clothes on the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Get in,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;and see what that is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The next moment two men were dragged out of the car in a state of stupor.
- One was the Soudanese entitled &ldquo;Spats,&rdquo; who had become Ilam&rsquo;s bodyguard,
- and the other wore the uniform of an automobile driver.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is this?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It looks precious like Pratt, the man as usually drives this car, sir,&rdquo;
- answered the doorkeeper.
- </p>
- <p>
- All the attendants in the place had now gathered round.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0022" id="link2HCH0022"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXII&mdash;Carpentaria as Detective
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">Y</span>ou will now relate
- to me, as accurately as you can,&rdquo; said Carpentaria somewhat peremptorily
- to Pratt the chauffeur, &ldquo;exactly what were the circumstances which led to
- your ceasing to be master of your car.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria had had Pratt and the Soudanese carried to the strong-room,
- the heart of the City, where a chemist and Dr. Rivers had united to treat
- them for the effects of the narcotic which had evidently, by some means,
- been administered to them. Rivers repeated that, so far as he could judge,
- the narcotic employed was chloral hydrate, a drug more powerful than
- morphine, more effective in its action on the heart, and less annoying to
- other functional parts of the body. When Rivers and the chemist had
- finished their ministrations, Carpentaria had politely intimated to them
- that he did not absolutely insist on their remaining&mdash;a piece of
- information which surprised the doctor, who, having been let into one of
- his director&rsquo;s secrets, expected, with the confidence of youth, to be let
- into all of them. The three men, two white and one Ethiop, were thus alone
- together in the chamber.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, sir,&rdquo; said Pratt, who was a fair man, talkative, with, just at
- present, a terrific sense of his own importance as the central hero of a
- mysterious drama. &ldquo;It was like this: After I&rsquo;d had the drink&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What drink?&rdquo; demanded Carpentaria sharply. &ldquo;The drink the other driver
- offered to me, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What other driver?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There came up another driver, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the City uniform?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who was he? What was his name?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No idea, sir. I seemed to remember his face, like, but I couldn&rsquo;t
- recollect his name. I asked him his name, and he said: &lsquo;Don&rsquo;t try to be
- funny, Pratt; you&rsquo;ve had a drop too much.&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And had you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not I, sir&mdash;of course I hadn&rsquo;t. I&rsquo;d made two journeys to the Bank
- with full loads, and the next one was to be the last, and&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you hadn&rsquo;t had anything to drink at all?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing to speak of, sir. A glass of port at Short&rsquo;s as I was coming back
- the first time, and a pint of beer&mdash;or it might have been a pint and
- a half&mdash;at the Redcliffe as I was coming back the second time.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was absolutely all?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir, except a drop of whisky which was left in my flask.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But how came the other driver to be in a position to offer you drink? Was
- he carrying casks and other things about with him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir, only a flask. Every chauffeur has a flask. Necessary, sir. Cold
- work, sir. And you&rsquo;ll recollect it hasn&rsquo;t been exactly sultry to-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What did he say? Are you in the habit of accepting drinks from men whose
- names you can&rsquo;t call to mind?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He was in the profession, sir, and in the uniform; besides, he said he&rsquo;d
- got a new cordial, fresh from Madeira, that would keep anyone warm, even
- in the depth of winter, for at least two hours.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But this isn&rsquo;t the depth of winter.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir; but, as the cordial was handy, I thought I might as well try
- it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And when you had tried it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I felt rather jolly, sir. I never felt better in my life, and thinks I to
- myself: &lsquo;I&rsquo;d better write down the name and address of this cordial before
- I forget it.&rsquo; So I says: &lsquo;What&rsquo;s-your-name,&rsquo; I says, meaning the other
- driver, &lsquo;what&rsquo;s the name and address of this cordial, before I forget it?&rsquo;
- And I was just taking a pencil out of my pocket to write it down when I
- felt a bit less jolly and the pencil wouldn&rsquo;t stop in my hand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You were on your driving seat?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And that is all you remember?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir. Except that once, dreamy like, I thought I was in prison for
- exceeding the legal limit, and that all the lights in the prison were
- turned out, and an earthquake was going on.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The other driver stood in the road by the car, eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How was he dressed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve told you, sir. This uniform. Blue and white cap, same as this, and
- long overcoat.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You couldn&rsquo;t see what he wore underneath the overcoat?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you?&rdquo; Carpentaria turned swiftly on the Soudanese. &ldquo;Did you drink
- too?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Spats smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And after you had drunk?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Spats shook his head, still smiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You remember nothing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He means he doesn&rsquo;t remember anything,&rdquo; Pratt explained.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You mean you remember nothing?&rdquo; Carpentaria questioned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did you drink?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese looked at Pratt, smiling.. &ldquo;Because Pratt drank?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have been waiting on Mr. Ilam lately, haven&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When he came to the outer door there, and entered in here, did he tell
- you to wait outside?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can both go,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Come to me at eight o&rsquo;clock
- to-morrow, Pratt, in case I should want you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Pratt. &ldquo;Yes, sah,&rdquo; said the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, not you,&rdquo; Carpentaria explained.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One moment,&rdquo; said Carpentaria to the Ethiopian. &ldquo;Did Mr. Ilam or any
- other person give you a note to hand to the doorkeeper outside there?&rdquo; The
- Soudanese shook his fierce and yet amiable head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; cried Pratt, addressing him in surprise, &ldquo;didn&rsquo;t you come up and
- give a note to Wiggins and then go away again, and return a second time?&rdquo;
- The Soudanese shook his head once more.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then there must have been two of &rsquo;em, sir,&rdquo; said Pratt to
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;This chap&rsquo;s honest enough.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Me have brother,&rdquo; said the Soudanese, &ldquo;same me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is your brother?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese shook his head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the native village?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go and fetch him,&rdquo; ordered Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the next moment he was alone in the great chamber, and he felt tempted
- simply to go to the regular police, of whom a few were constantly employed
- by the City, and tell them what had happened, and leave the whole affair
- entirely in their hands. And then the strange attraction which always
- emanates from a mystery appealed to him so strongly that he determined to
- probe a little further into the peculiar matter of Ilam&rsquo;s disappearance,
- without the aid of professional detectives. He didn&rsquo;t imagine for an
- instant that Ilam was dead. He was capable of believing that Ilam had
- disappeared willingly; and yet such a theory, having regard to the
- recitals of Mr. Gloucester and of the bank-clerk (by this time doubtless
- on his way to Weybridge, and the young thing) was to say the least
- exceedingly improbable.
- </p>
- <p>
- He unlocked the door and went outside. Wiggins was at his post, actuated
- by the exaggerated alertness which characterizes one who has been caught
- napping.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anything happened, Wiggins?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir. Nothing whatever.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall return soon. If the Soudanese comes, keep him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He passed into the Central Way, which was almost deserted. The last
- visitor, the very last stalwart of the Y.M.C.A., had departed, and the
- sole signs of life in the great thoroughfare were a lamplighter
- extinguishing the gas-lamps which were provided in case of a sudden
- failure of electricity, and a road-sweeper in charge of a complicated
- machine with two horses. The clock in the tower of the Exposition Palace
- showed half an hour after closing time. The moon was peeping over the
- eastern roofs.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria went to the garage, and, not without difficulty, for it was
- shut up, made his way into the interior and procured some light. He wished
- to make a thorough examination of the car which had been employed as the
- instrument of the plot. He had it drawn out to the centre of the garage,
- under the full flare of an electric chandelier. A sleepy attendant hovered
- in the background.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Get a ladder and see if there&rsquo;s anything on the roof of the van&mdash;any
- tyres or boxes or anything,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&rsquo;s only this, sir,&rdquo; replied the attendant when he had climbed up,
- and he produced a cap and overcoat of the City uniform.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;m&mdash;&mdash;!&rdquo; exclaimed Carpentaria, and a notion struck him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doorkeeper gone to bed?&rdquo; he queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wake him and tell him I want him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- While waiting for the doorkeeper, Carpentaria scrutinized attentively the
- wheels of the vehicle; those wheels, even on his first visit, had put an
- idea into his head. Then the doorkeeper arrived, not quite as spruce and
- perfect as a doorkeeper ought to be.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one can enter this garage except under your observation?&rdquo; Carpentaria
- asked him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one,&rdquo; said the doorkeeper, positively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you don&rsquo;t keep such a careful eye on the people who go out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally not, sir. They can&rsquo;t go out till they&rsquo;ve been in, and if
- they&rsquo;ve been in they&rsquo;re all right.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Just so. Now try to remember. Soon after this car returned to the garage
- to-night, did any one leave the garage who was unfamiliar to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t remember, sir. You see, sir&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly. I see. I am not blaming you. Your theory, though defective, is a
- natural one. Now, do you remember, for instance, a man in a blue suit,
- with grey hair, going out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Upon my soul, I believe I do, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are certain?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, no, sir. I&rsquo;m not certain. But I have a sort of a hazy idea&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look at these wheels,&rdquo; Carpentaria cut him short. &ldquo;That&rsquo;s clayey mud,
- isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where could the car have been to get that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There&rsquo;s that passage down under the embankment, sir, that way as leads to
- the river.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doorkeeper,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;you are brilliant. I also have thought of
- that spot, where just such clay exists. But why should the car go down
- there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; said the doorkeeper. &ldquo;There you beat me, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then perhaps you are not so brilliant after all,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And having minutely examined the interior of the car, with no result, he
- left the garage, and returned to the strong room.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese was awaiting him at the door, and there were evident signs
- of a quarrelsome temper on the part of Wiggins. Wiggins had not forgotten
- the colour of the messenger who had handed him the forged note.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked of the Soudanese. &ldquo;Where&rsquo;s your brother?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The man shook his head, but not smilingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Has he gone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, sah.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one knows at the village where he&rsquo;s gone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Spats shook his head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wiggins,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Is this the man who brought you the note?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Wiggins hesitated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, sir,&rdquo; he said at length&rsquo;, resentfully. &ldquo;But they&rsquo;re all alike, them
- folk are.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;H&rsquo;m!&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria. &ldquo;Since there is nothing to guard here, you
- may as well go, Wiggins. You, too, Spats.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Two minutes later he was crossing the Oriental Gardens in the direction of
- the Thames. And when he had travelled two hundred yards or so he heard
- footsteps behind him, light, rapid, irregular. He turned quickly, his hand
- on the revolver in his pocket, to face his pursuer. His pursuer, however,
- was Pauline Dartmouth and no other. So he left the revolver where it was.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0023" id="link2HCH0023"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIII&mdash;The Talk in the Garden
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">S</span>he was so out of
- breath that at first it seemed as if she could not speak. He could hear
- her hurried breathing, almost like the catch of a sob, and in the
- moonlight he could see fairly clearly her flushed face, under the hat, and
- her tall, rather imperious figure. But he could not make out the
- expression of her eyes. Nevertheless, as he peered curiously into them,
- the thought suddenly struck him: &ldquo;She is angry with me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria, I want to have a word with you,&rdquo; she said at length,
- stiffly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My dear Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he answered in his courtly and elaborate manner,
- &ldquo;I shall be delighted. What can I do for you? I regret very much that you
- should have had to run after me like this.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been following you up for quite a long time,&rdquo; she remarked, in a
- more friendly tone. It appeared as if his attitude and greeting had made
- some impression on her, in spite of herself. &ldquo;First I went to your office.
- Then to the strong-rooms, then to the garage, then to the strong-rooms
- again, and now I&rsquo;m here. I saw you crossing the gardens. Nobody seemed to
- be inclined to give me any information about you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No?&rdquo; he murmured, in a cautious interrogative. &ldquo;Now tell me; how can I be
- of service to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She scanned his features. They were alone together in the midst of the
- immense gardens. A hundred yards away was the bandstand, the scene of the
- greatest triumphs of his life. And yet in that moment his triumphs seemed
- nothing to him as he stood under her gaze. Her personality affected him
- powerfully. He said to himself that no woman had ever looked at him like
- that. There was no admiration in her glance, no prejudice either for or
- against him; nothing but a candid and judicial inquiry. &ldquo;I hope I shall
- come well out of this scrutiny,&rdquo; his thoughts ran. And the masculine
- desire formed obscurely in his breast to make this girl think favourably
- of him, to make her admire him, love him, worship him. He felt that to see
- love in these calm, courageous, independent eyes of hers would be a
- recompense and a reward for all he had suffered in the forty years of his
- existence. In a word she piqued him. He little knew that up to that very
- evening she had worshipped him afar off as women do worship their heroes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nobody ill, I hope,&rdquo; he ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- She ignored the observation, and said:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria, what have you done with Cousin Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What?&rdquo; he cried, amazed both by the question, and by the cold firmness
- with which it was put.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think you heard what I said,&rdquo; she replied. &ldquo;What have you done with
- Cousin Ilam? Where is he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth, do you imagine for one instant that I know where Mr. Ilam
- is? I should only like to know where he is. I&rsquo;m looking for him now. But I
- was not aware that the fact of his disappearance was known. Indeed, I
- meant it to be kept as secret as possible. I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no,&rdquo; she interrupted him. &ldquo;I was hoping you would be frank. I thought
- you had an honest face, Mr. Carpentaria, and it is because of that that I
- have come&mdash;like this. I have just left your poor sister. She is in
- despair. She has told me all.&rdquo; Carpentaria did not reply immediately. At
- last he repeated:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Told you all? All what? You have soon become fast friends, you and
- Juliette.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is possible,&rdquo; said Pauline drily. &ldquo;I have met your sister three times,
- but in seasons of distress we women are obliged to cling to each other. As
- for Miss D&rsquo;Avray and me, we live next door to each other. What more
- natural than that I should call on her this evening? And finding her in a
- condition of&mdash;shall I say?&mdash;despair, what more natural than that
- I should ask her what was the matter, and what more natural, seeing that
- she has no women friends here, and is of a nature that demands sympathy,
- than that on the spur of the moment she should confide in me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I assure you, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;that I was entirely
- unaware of my sister&rsquo;s despair&mdash;as you call it. What precisely has
- she confided to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, about her engagement to Cousin Ilam, and your opposition.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me, there has been no engagement,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me,&rdquo; said Pauline, &ldquo;there has been an engagement, because my
- cousin and your half-sister made it. Is there anybody better qualified
- than them to make an engagement?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She lifted her chin.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Let us assume that there was an engagement.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They were to be married to-morrow,&rdquo; remarked Pauline calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To-morrow!&rdquo; Carpentaria exclaimed, aghast. &ldquo;Secretly?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you pretend to be surprised? As for the secrecy, your opposition
- has forced them to secrecy, because your sister is afraid of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And now that your cousin has disappeared, of course, they can&rsquo;t be
- married to-morrow,&rdquo; mused Carpentaria. &ldquo;Hence this woe.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why have you taken such extreme measures, such cruel measures, such
- wicked measures?&rdquo; asked Pauline, full of indignation. &ldquo;I can understand
- well enough that you, as a great artist, cannot be expected to behave like
- other people; I can understand you doing mad things, original things. I
- can understand you defying the law, and taking the most serious risks on
- yourself. But I can&rsquo;t understand you being so cruel to your sister, and so
- utterly beside yourself, as to carry off Mr. Ilam by force.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Her cheeks had flushed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By force?&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he laughed loudly, violently, magnificently, after his manner. His
- laugh resounded through the deserted gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette thinks I have removed her betrothed by force?&rdquo; he queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally she does!&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;The most extraordinary rumours are
- about. It is even said that you have had a quarrel and killed him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tut-tut!&rdquo; said Carpentaria, and after clearing his throat he proceeded:
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth, will you kindly fix your eyes on mine. I tell you I have
- had nothing whatever to do with your cousin&rsquo;s disappearance, and that I
- was entirely unaware of his intention to marry Juliette to-morrow.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She gazed at him doubtfully.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;On your honour?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said proudly, &ldquo;not on my honour. When I talk to a person as I am
- talking to you, if I say a thing is so, it is so. I decline to back my
- assertions with my honour.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I believe you,&rdquo; she whispered softly, and her eyes fell.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thanks!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Will you shake hands?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And she gave him her hand loyally. And he thought it was a very slim and
- thrilling hand to shake.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you know,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;it was exceedingly naughty of you to go and
- credit me with being such a monster.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she replied, &ldquo;perhaps I never did really believe it.&rdquo; She smiled
- at him courageously. &ldquo;But I was angry with you for objecting to the match.
- I suppose you won&rsquo;t deny that you have objected to the match.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I shan&rsquo;t deny that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And your reasons?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I could not disclose them to Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s cousin,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;And
- perhaps they are not as strong as they were. I am beginning to think that
- just as you accused me wrongly, so I have accused your cousin wrongly. But
- I can assure you I had better reason than you. Ah, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he
- added, &ldquo;it may well occur that you will infinitely regret ever having come
- into the City.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never!&rdquo; she said positively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s very polite,&rdquo; he commented.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are getting away from the point,&rdquo; she remarked in a new tone. &ldquo;I have
- left your sister in a pitiable state. If you have not had anything to do
- with the disappearance of Cousin Ilam, who has?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He may have disappeared voluntarily,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Impossible!&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think so too.&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed. &ldquo;At first I was capable of believing
- that he had played an enormous comedy in order to disappear in the most
- effective manner. But really the comedy grows too enormous to be any
- longer a comedy. It may be a tragedy by this time.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And whom do you suspect?&rdquo; queried Pauline impatiently.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I were you,&rdquo; was Carpentaria&rsquo;s strange response, &ldquo;I should ask your
- sister, Miss Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria, what on earth do you mean?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I mean that your sister probably knows something of the affair. Where is
- she at the present moment?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is watching Mrs. Ilam, in place of the nurse.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I gravely doubt it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria with firmness.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But I have seen her there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is conceivable,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;But I gravely doubt if she is
- still there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall be compelled to think that after all you are a little mad,&rdquo;
- Pauline observed coldly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are all more or less mad,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Otherwise your sister,
- for instance, would not hold long conversations with a highly suspicious
- character every night from the window of her room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline, in the light of her knowledge of what had taken place in and
- about the Ilam bungalow on the first night of her residence there, could
- scarcely affect not to understand, at any rate partially, Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- allusion.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t quite&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; she began, lamely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you mean to say,&rdquo; he interrupted her at once, &ldquo;do you mean to say,
- dear lady, that you are entirely unaware of the surreptitious visits of a
- certain mysterious person to Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s house?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am not entirely unaware of them,&rdquo; she said frankly! &ldquo;I saw the man
- myself one night. I spoke to him. My sister also&mdash;also spoke to him.
- But I have not seen nor heard of him since. Nor has Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of that you are sure?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I think I may say I am sure.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I must undeceive you,&rdquo; Carpentaria spoke firmly. &ldquo;I also have
- acquired a certain curiosity as to that strange individual. And to satisfy
- my curiosity I have kept a considerable number of vigils. And I am in a
- position to state that, not only on the first night of your arrival, but
- every night your sister has had speech with that person from the window of
- her room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who is he? What can he want?&rdquo; demanded Pauline, nervously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is a question that I meant to put to you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria in
- reply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As for me, I know nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When you spoke to him, as you admit you did, did he not ask you to do
- something?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, and I refused his request.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But your sister? What did she do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh! Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; murmured Pauline, &ldquo;can I trust you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know that you can.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She related to him all the details of the episode of the black box.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And after that,&rdquo; Carpentaria commented, &ldquo;your sister continues to have
- stolen interviews with this man.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t help thinking you are mistaken. Rosie would never keep such a
- secret from me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It will be very easy to throw some light on the matter,&rdquo; said
- Carpentaria. &ldquo;Let us go to your house and see whether Miss Rosie is in
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s room as you imagine her to be, and as I imagine her not to be.
- I may tell you quite openly my opinion that Miss Rosie has had something
- to do with the disappearance of Mr. Ilam. I am convinced, indeed I know,
- that he has been spirited away, together with a trifling amount of money,
- by our mysterious visitor, and since our mysterious visitor talks to Miss
- Rosie each night, she on her balcony and he beneath it&mdash;well, I leave
- the inference to yourself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline started back.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said, in a low voice, &ldquo;let us go and see.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And they went, walking side by side in silence across the gardens.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will wait here,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when they arrived at the side-door
- of the Ilam bungalow. &ldquo;You can ascertain whether anything unusual has
- occurred in the house, and particularly if your sister is still at her
- post, and then you will be kind enough to come back and report to me. I
- will watch here.&rdquo; Without replying Pauline passed into the house. In a few
- minutes she returned. Tears stood in her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well?&rdquo; queried Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie is not in the house,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam is alone. Happily
- she is asleep. Everything is quiet. But Rosie&mdash;&mdash;!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A sob escaped her.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2H_PART3" id="link2H_PART3"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- PART III&mdash;JETSAM
- </h2>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0024" id="link2HCH0024"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIV&mdash;The Boat
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria and
- Pauline continued to stand motionless outside the house, both of them
- hesitant, recoiling before the circumstances which faced them. The night
- remained clear, almost brilliant.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The entire situation is changed,&rdquo; said Carpentaria at length. &ldquo;A new
- factor has entered into it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What factor?&rdquo; Pauline demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, your sister, of course!&rdquo; he replied, with a slight smile that
- disclosed momentarily the quizzical male person in him. &ldquo;Consider how it
- complicates the affair. If I had to deal only with the mysterious
- individual with grey hair and a blue suit&mdash;perhaps you do not know
- that he calls himself Jetsam?&mdash;I could go to work in a simple
- masculine fashion, and in the end one of us would suffer, probably he. But
- with a woman in the case&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How can you be sure,&rdquo; Pauline interrupted him, &ldquo;that Rosie is in the
- case?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can you doubt it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot understand why she should behave so!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps she knew him before,&rdquo; Carpentaria hazarded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never,&rdquo; said Pauline positively&mdash;&ldquo;never.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then he has certainly been able to exercise a most remarkable influence
- over her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not a hypnotic influence, or anything of that kind?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps an influence of quite another kind&mdash;quite another kind.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Rosie is scarcely half his age.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do these things depend on age?&rdquo; cried Carpentaria. &ldquo;They depend on
- glances, sympathies, and trifles even more subtle than sympathies.
- Besides, she is more than half his age.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; murmured Pauline, with a sudden wistful appeal in her voice, &ldquo;I
- shall trust you to help me, Mr. Carpentaria. Rosie may be in danger; she
- may be doing something very foolish, mixing herself up like this in the
- kidnapping of poor Cousin Ilam. What is to be done?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is decidedly doing something very foolish,&rdquo; said Carpentaria,
- &ldquo;foolish, that is, from a mere ordinary common-sense point of view. But I
- don&rsquo;t think she is in any danger. I don&rsquo;t think that either she or you are
- the sort of woman that gets into danger without very good cause. As to
- what is to be done, I have an idea. Mrs. Ilam will be all right alone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; for a few hours, at any rate.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then will you come with me to the river? I have some investigations to
- make.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- And as they crossed the Oriental Gardens for the second time that night,
- he told her what he knew about the use, or rather the abuse, of the
- automobile.
- </p>
- <p>
- The marble parapet of the immense terrace of the gardens stood a dozen
- feet above the level of high tide. The terrace was continuous from end to
- end, but in several places it formed a viaduct over paths that ran from
- the gardens at a steep slope down to the bed of the river. It was one of
- these paths, a specially clayey one, at the point where it ran under the
- terrace, that Carpentaria suspected the automobile of having taken.
- Assuming his suspicion to be correct, the automobile could only have
- descended to the Thames, and then, if the tide gave room, turned round and
- returned; or, if the tide did not give room, backed out without turning.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Its sole purpose,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, as they talked the matter over,
- &ldquo;could have been to pass something to a boat. Don&rsquo;t you think so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Pauline agreed, and then she added, &ldquo;unless they merely wanted to
- throw something into the river.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; He cried; &ldquo;a corpse?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; she said calmly. &ldquo;I was thinking of the two thousand five hundred
- pounds in gold that you told me had been stolen.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He paused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is really very clever of you,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;But why should they throw
- it into the river.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s high tide, or rather it was, about an hour and a
- half ago. They might have sunk the money, intending to recover it at their
- leisure during the night when the tide sank.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I must repeat,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;this is really very clever of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They were already beginning to descend the broadest of the three paths
- which led from the level of the gardens to the level of the river, and the
- wheelmarks of an automobile were clearly visible thereon, when Carpentaria
- halted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose,&rdquo; he whispered, &ldquo;they are there now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who? Mr. Jetsam and my sister?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, not your sister. Mr. Jetsam and his&mdash;other accomplices&mdash;whoever
- they may be. I do not imagine that your sister has been concerned in the
- actual&mdash;er&mdash;affair. Indeed, she was at home with you at the
- time. But if Jetsam, for instance, should be down there now, alone or with
- others, there might be a row on my appearance. I will therefore ask you to
- stay where you are, Miss Dartmouth.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She shook her head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have begun,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I will go through with it. Besides, what
- danger could there be? People don&rsquo;t go shooting and killing promiscuously
- like that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t they!&rdquo; Carpentaria exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Moreover, I have no fancy to be left alone here now,&rdquo; she added. &ldquo;And
- most likely there isn&rsquo;t anyone there at all.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Can&rsquo;t you hear the splash of an oar? Listen!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They listened.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she murmured. &ldquo;And is not that the noise of a boat crunching on the
- beach?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The path disappeared mysteriously before them under the terrace; they
- could not see the end of it. But the sound-waves came clearly enough
- through the little tunnel.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We will go back,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;and slip on to the terrace. Behind
- the parapet we can see anything that may happen to be going on. But
- quietly, quietly, dear lady.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In a few moments they were creeping across the broad terrace.
- Simultaneously they bent down, side by side, under the parapet and looked
- between its squat, rounded pillars at the water below.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline gave a slight smothered cry, which Carpentaria, with an imperious
- gesture, bade her check.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not a word,&rdquo; he whispered in her ear.
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie&mdash;Rosie and no other&mdash;was manoeuvring a boat off the shore.
- Her face, her dress, her hat, were plainly visible in the moonlight. She
- stood up in the boat, and by means of a boat-hook hooked to a large oblong
- stone, drew the boat to the shore. She then seized the painter and jumped
- lightly out.
- </p>
- <p>
- The curious thing was that she went directly to the large oblong stone,
- and with a great effort, lifted it up in her arms, tottered with it to the
- boat, and deposited it therein. Carpentaria perceived then that the stone
- was not a stone, but one of the coffers in which was kept the gold of the
- City of Pleasure. He perceived also that, attached to the coffer, was a
- dozen feet or so of rope with a cork float at the end. Rosie followed the
- coffer into the boat, pushed off, and then, at a distance of a few yards
- from the shore, pitched the coffer into the river. This done, she landed,
- made fast the painter of the boat to an iron ring in the wall of the
- embankment and departed; and she did it all rather neatly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Immediately she had disappeared under the terrace, Pauline cried, starting
- up:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must go to her&mdash;I must ask her what she means by doing such
- things.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me,&rdquo; said Carpentaria; &ldquo;you must do nothing of the kind. I most
- seriously beg you to do nothing of the kind. By interfering now you may
- spoil the coup which we may ultimately make.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t quite comprehend you,&rdquo; Pauline observed. &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; he
- addressed her excitedly, &ldquo;there can be no doubt in your mind now that your
- sister is concerned in this plot, whatever it is. I am perfectly convinced
- that her motives are good, honourable, kind-hearted. But she is concerned
- in it. We must, therefore, so far as we can, treat her as one of the
- conspirators&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But surely&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Always with profound respect,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Had the person in the
- boat been any other than your sister, should we have revealed ourselves?
- Certainly not! We should have followed the plot to its next development,
- with this advantage&mdash;that we knew something which the conspirators
- imagined to be a secret. The fact that the person in the boat was your
- sister must not alter our course of conduct. And permit me to add, Miss
- Dartmouth, that you first approached me on behalf of <i>my</i> sister. We
- owe something to her, do we not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Pauline in a low voice. &ldquo;Then what do you mean to do next?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suggest that we go back to your house, to see whether your sister has
- returned. May I ask whether, when you last spoke to her, she gave you to
- understand that she meant to stay with Mrs. Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline breathed a reluctant affirmative.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No hint that she was going out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;None. And&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And what?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, dear!&rdquo; Pauline sighed. &ldquo;Must I tell you? Yes, I must! I&rsquo;m sure Rosie
- is acting for the best, but really it was not her turn to watch Mrs. Ilam
- to-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Whose turn was it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The nurse&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And your sister changed the rotation?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. She said the nurse needed a holiday, and told her she could go away
- for twenty-four hours, and that she would take her place.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What time was that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;About six o&rsquo;clock this evening, I think.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And where has the nurse gone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The nurse has gone to a concert at Queen&rsquo;s Hall, and will sleep at the
- house of some friends at Islington.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And does your sister imagine you to be in bed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I expect so,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- They slowly returned to the neighbourhood of the bungalows. Carpentaria
- wanted to hurry, but it seemed as though Pauline was being held back by
- some occult force. As a matter of fact, she dreaded the moment when she
- should re-enter the house. But at length, they stood once again by the
- doorstep of Josephus Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What am I to do?&rdquo; Pauline demanded sadly. &ldquo;What do you think will be the
- best thing to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We have not seen your sister in the gardens,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;She has
- most probably returned. She would not be likely to leave Mrs. Ilam for
- very long, would she? Go and see if she has returned, if she is in Mrs.
- Ham&rsquo;s room. And if she is, question her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But how? What am I to say? Am I to ask her if she has been out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By no means!&rdquo; said Carpentaria promptly. &ldquo;You are to pretend that you
- know nothing. You must approach her diplomatically. Either she will tell
- the truth or she will&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Lie! Lie!&rdquo; cried Pauline. &ldquo;Say it openly! Say the word! Admit that you
- are persuading me to behave despicably to the creature who is dearest to
- me in all the world.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If there is duplicity,&rdquo; Carpentaria answered, &ldquo;you, at any rate, did not
- begin it. We are convinced of your sister&rsquo;s good intentions. What else
- matters? In a few days, perhaps to-morrow, all will be explained. Let me
- entreat you to go at once. I will await your report.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She shook her head sadly, opened the door with her latchkey, and was just
- about to shut it when Carpentaria stopped her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One moment,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;You have told me your sister believes you to be in
- bed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I say &lsquo;probably.&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is important that she should not be undeceived. I need not insist. You
- can easily make it appear that, having been awakened by some noise, you
- have got up. Eh?&rdquo; And he smiled.
- </p>
- <p>
- She tried to smile in return, and disappeared from his view. Within the
- house, she crept upstairs, and into her bedroom, feeling like a thief.
- When she emerged therefrom she had put on a <i>peignoir</i>, and her <i>coiffure</i>
- was disarranged. She went to the door of Mrs. Ham&rsquo;s room, and listened
- intently. There was not a sound. If she was to obey Carpentaria she must
- enter, and she must wear a false mask: to that sister to whom she had all
- her life been as sincere as it is possible for one human being to be to
- another. Well, she could not enter&mdash;she could not enter! Her legs
- would not carry her through the doorway. And so, instead of going in, she
- called:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But her voice was so weak that she scarcely even heard it herself.
- </p>
- <p>
- No reply came from the interior. And she called again, this time quite
- loudly:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie, dear!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then she opened the door an inch or two. There was a rush of skirts across
- the room, and Rosie appeared. She was evidently in a state of extreme
- excitement.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter? Are you ill?&rdquo; asked Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&mdash;I was wakened by some noise or other,&rdquo; said Pauline painfully,
- and it appeared to her that Carpentaria was whispering in her ear the
- words that she must say. &ldquo;And&mdash;and&mdash;I&mdash;I thought perhaps
- something had gone wrong here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; was Rosie&rsquo;s reply. &ldquo;But how queer you look, darling! You must have
- had a nightmare. You have quite startled me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline did not answer at once.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You aren&rsquo;t undressed! You haven&rsquo;t lain down,&rdquo; she said at length. &ldquo;I
- thought you could always sleep very well on that sofa.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So I can,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;But I&rsquo;ve been reading. And besides&mdash;it&rsquo;s
- rather upsetting about Cousin Ilam. I wonder where he can be.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; Pauline remarked summarily, &ldquo;he&rsquo;s pretty certain to turn up
- to-morrow. I expect he&rsquo;s gone into town.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie yawned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, good-night, darling,&rdquo; said Pauline, and took Rosie&rsquo;s hand. .
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How cold your hand is!&rdquo; Pauline observed, with an inward tremor. &ldquo;Have
- you been out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Been out? What do you mean?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Outside on to the balcony?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. I haven&rsquo;t stirred from my chair, darling. Bye-bye.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They stared at each other for an instant, each full of dissimulation, and
- yet also of love, and then they kissed one another passionately, and
- Pauline departed. They were women.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0025" id="link2HCH0025"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXV&mdash;-A Wholesale Departure
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">H</span>aving retired to
- her bedroom and divested herself of the deceitful <i>peignoir</i>, Pauline
- made her way, with all the precautions of secrecy, downstairs again, and
- so to the door which gave on the avenue. Carpentaria was not in view when
- she timorously put her head out of the door, and she was in a mind to rush
- back to her sister in order to confide in her absolutely, and to demand in
- return her entire confidence. She allowed herself to suspect for a brief
- instant that, after all, Carpentaria had not been behaving openly with
- her; but just then the musician arrived&mdash;he had evidently been
- watching the other side of the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You were right,&rdquo; she whispered, before he had time to ask a question.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your sister denies that she has been out?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Does this help us?&rdquo; she inquired, as it were, bitterly. &ldquo;Are we any
- better off, now that I have lied to Rosie, and forced Rosie to lie to me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think so,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; Pauline retorted. &ldquo;And I have passed the most dreadful five
- minutes of all my life.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She seemed to be desolated, to be filled with grief.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so sorry, so very sorry,&rdquo; he murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no,&rdquo; she said quickly. &ldquo;You have been quite right. We find ourselves
- in the centre of a mystery, and I have no excuse for being sentimental. My
- trust in Rosie remains what it always was. Still, facts are facts, and I
- am ready to do whatever you instruct me to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;your sister must have had some reason for insisting on
- watching Mrs. Ilam out of her turn; and that reason is not connected with
- the little matter of the boat. If she had merely wished to go unobserved
- to the boat she would have gone to bed as usual and said nothing, wouldn&rsquo;t
- she?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is obvious, therefore, that there is something else to be done, or to
- occur&mdash;probably in Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom. For if it is not to happen in
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom, why should your sister have voluntarily tied herself
- up there?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what could possibly happen in Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom?&rdquo; demanded Pauline,
- with a nervous start of apprehension.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do I know?&rdquo; Carpentaria replied. &ldquo;I can only point to certain
- indications, which lead to certain conclusions. You will oblige me by
- watching, Miss Dartmouth.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The landing and the stairs of your house. Is there a view of the stairs
- from your room?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you can watch from there. Do not burn a light.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And if anything strange does occur?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to your balcony, and tie a white handkerchief to the railings.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you?&rdquo; queried Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- At that moment there was the sound of a window opening in Carpentaria&rsquo;s
- bungalow across the avenue, and a voice called plaintively:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos, is that you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is I,&rdquo; he answered, as low as he could.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to her. Comfort her,&rdquo; Pauline enjoined him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am coming to you,&rdquo; he obediently called in the direction of the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- Both of them could see the vague figure of Juliette, framed in the window.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poor thing!&rdquo; murmured Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Afterwards,&rdquo; said Carpentaria hurriedly, &ldquo;I shall come out again and
- watch the outside of your house. With you inside and me outside, it will
- be very difficult for anything peculiar to occur without our knowledge.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he left her, impressed by her common sense and her self-control, and
- withal her utter womanliness.
- </p>
- <p>
- The hall of his own house was dark, and all the rooms of the ground-floor
- deserted. He mounted to the upper story. Juliette, hearing his footsteps,
- had come to the door of the study, from whose window she had hailed him,
- and she stared at him with a fixed and almost stony gaze as he approached.
- Her figure was silhouetted against the electric light in the study.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Turn that light out instantly,&rdquo; he said, with involuntary sternness.
- </p>
- <p>
- She did not move, and, obsessed by the importance of giving to anyone who
- might be spying the impression that all the occupants of the house had
- retired for the night, he pushed past her and turned off the switch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, Carlos,&rdquo; Juliette sighed, &ldquo;how cruel you are?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He now saw her indistinctly in the deep gloom of the chamber, and her form
- seemed pathetic to him, and her sad, despairing voice even more pathetic.
- He went up to her impulsively and took her hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Juliette,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;can you believe it of me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Miss Dartmouth has spoken to you?&rdquo; she asked, a glimmer of hope in her
- tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Can you believe that I have&mdash;have caused anything to
- be done to Ilam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you not?&rdquo; she demanded eagerly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And he told her what he had previously told Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- She thanked him with an affectionate kiss.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carlos,&rdquo; she said, and the words fell in a little torrent from her mouth,
- &ldquo;I told you a falsehood this morning. I acted a part. He was in my
- sitting-room all the time. Can you forgive me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was sure of it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria calmly, &ldquo;and I can forgive you,&rdquo; he
- added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You do not know what it is to love,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You have never cared for
- anyone&mdash;in that way. I hadn&rsquo;t&mdash;until I met&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who says I don&rsquo;t know what it is to love!&rdquo; he stopped her. &ldquo;Perhaps I am
- learning. But tell me, when did you last see Ilam? Have you seen him since
- this morning?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At his offices this evening.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He gave no hint that he was in any danger?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No immediate danger. Oh, Carlos, he is not what you think him to be. He
- is an honest man, and I am so sorry for him, and I love him. Where is he?
- What has happened to him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t tell you now,&rdquo; was Carpentaria&rsquo;s reply, &ldquo;but before morning we
- shall know more, or I am mistaken.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is for the crimes of others that he is suffering,&rdquo; said Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He told you so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, but I guess; I am sure. I know all his faults&mdash;all of them. I do
- not hide one of them from myself. Why should I, since he loves me and I
- love him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My child,&rdquo; said Carpentaria abruptly, &ldquo;you might have trusted me more.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should have trusted you absolutely,&rdquo; answered Juliette, &ldquo;but he is
- afraid of you. He would not let me. I could not disobey him. Sometime,
- somehow, you must have said something to frighten him and, though he is so
- big and strong, he is timid; he has timid eyes. It was because of his eyes
- that I first began to like him. Carlos, what are you going to do?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am going to watch,&rdquo; was the response.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A man came to the back-door not long since, and asked whether you were at
- home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A man came to the back-door?&rdquo; repeated Carpentaria sharply, every nerve
- suddenly on the strain. &ldquo;Who was it? What did you say to him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At first I thought it was one of the night-staff, and then the man&rsquo;s face
- made me suspicious; I imagined it might be a thief&mdash;you know what a
- state I am in, Carlos&mdash;and so I told him you had just gone to bed,
- and I shut the door in his face. I didn&rsquo;t want him to think there were
- only women in the house. But, of course, it couldn&rsquo;t have been a burglar&mdash;here&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is the wisest thing you have done this day, Juliette,&rdquo; Carpentaria
- remarked; and then he questioned her as to the appearance of the
- mysterious inquirer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you going to leave me?&rdquo; cried Juliette, when Carpentaria picked up
- his hat, which had fallen from a chair to the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;you must try to rest.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then they were both startled by a strange noise on the window-pane.
- They listened. The noise was repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it rain?&rdquo; asked Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s gravel.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He went out on to the balcony. A form was discernible in the avenue below.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is that you, Miss Dartmouth?&rdquo; he whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; came the reply. &ldquo;I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush!&rdquo; he warned her. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll be with you in a second.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With a brief explanation to Juliette, he hastened downstairs and let
- himself out of the house. Pauline was already standing at the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anything happened?&rdquo; he questioned her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing has happened,&rdquo; said Pauline, &ldquo;but there is something extremely
- curious, all the same, in our house. It is a most singular thing that the
- housemaid, who never forgets anything, forgot just to-night to leave some
- milk in my room&mdash;a thing which I had specially reminded her to
- remember, so I rang the bell for her. There is a bell that communicates
- direct with her room&mdash;it used to be in Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom, but we
- have had it changed&mdash;there was no answer. I rang again. No answer.
- You know, I&rsquo;m the sort of person that can&rsquo;t stand that sort of thing from
- servants, so I went upstairs to her. She was not in her room. There are
- two beds in that room, the second one for the cook. Both beds were empty;
- they had neither of them been slept in. I went into the rooms of the other
- servants. They are all empty. Rosie and I and Mrs. Ilam are alone in the
- house.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria paused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you tell your sister?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, I came straight here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was very discreet of you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am beginning to get frightened,&rdquo; Pauline added. &ldquo;What can it mean? All
- the servants gone&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0026" id="link2HCH0026"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVI&mdash;The Empty Bedroom
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">W</span>ithin the bungalow
- of the Ilams there remained only two persons who were legally entitled to
- be there, and those persons were Mrs. Ilam, motionless for ever, but with
- her bright, tragic eyes staring continually at the same point in the
- ceiling, and Rosie Dartmouth. These two women, however, were decidedly not
- alone in the house. It was a large house, a bungalow more by the character
- of its architecture and its many balconies, than by its size and shape.
- Most bungalows are long and low; this one was long without being low. On
- the ground floor were the reception rooms and kitchen offices; on the
- first floor were the principal bedrooms; and above these was a low-ceiled
- floor of servants&rsquo; bedrooms. Nor was that all; for the steeply-sloping
- roof had been utilized by an architect who hated to waste space as a miser
- hates to waste money, and hence, above even the servants&rsquo; floor was a vast
- attic, serviceable for storage. The attic was reached by a little flight
- of stairs of its own, and it was lighted by two panes of glass let into
- the roof, one on either side.
- </p>
- <p>
- The ground-floor and the servants&rsquo; floor were now dark and uninhabited. On
- the first floor the only occupied room was the bedchamber of Mrs. Ilam,
- where Rosie stood nervously by the mantelpiece in an attitude of uneasy
- expectation. The sole illumination was given by the small rose-shaded
- lamp, which threw a circle of light on the white cloth of the invalid&rsquo;s
- night-table; all else, including Rosie, was in gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie was evidently listening&mdash;the door was ajar&mdash;and after a
- few moments she stepped hastily outside on to the landing, and glanced up
- the well of the staircase. At the summit of the staircase she saw the door
- of the great attic open, and a figure emerge; the figure, which was
- carrying a small electric lantern, carefully locked the door of the attic
- behind it, and then, with some deliberation, descended the narrow attic
- stairs, and, more quietly, the stairs from the servants&rsquo; floor to the
- first floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- The figure was that of Mr. Jetsam, clothed in his eternal suit of blue
- serge.
- </p>
- <p>
- The stairs and landing were quite dark, save for his lantern and the faint
- glimmer that came from Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom. Mr. Jetsam had moved without a
- sound, for he was wearing thick felt slippers. He did not immediately
- notice Rosie on the landing, and when the light of his lantern caught and
- showed her dress, he started back slightly. Rosie made no move.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did not expect you to be there,&rdquo; he whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- She regarded him with steady eyes, and then, without a word, motioned him
- to proceed further downstairs to the ground-floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You want to talk to me?&rdquo; he whispered again.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had a voice which was curiously capable of being almost inaudible, and
- yet at the same time distinct.
- </p>
- <p>
- She nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- He pointed to the open door of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s room, but Rosie shook her head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- She shook her head once more, and they went downstairs to the dining-room,
- both silently creeping. With infinite precautions he opened the
- dining-room door, and shut it when they had entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It would have been better to remain upstairs,&rdquo; he said mildly. &ldquo;The least
- possible movement is dangerous enough. At this stage a creaking stair
- might spoil the whole business.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot talk there,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, since Mrs. Ilam is utterly helpless,&rdquo; he protested, &ldquo;what can it
- matter what she hears? She cannot talk.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The fact that she hears is more than enough to upset me,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;I
- am like that, you see. I know it is silly, but I can&rsquo;t help it. I wanted
- to tell you that I have just had a dreadful scene with Pauline.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A dreadful scene! You&rsquo;ve not quarrelled?&rdquo; he demanded anxiously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, no! But I&rsquo;ve lied to her&mdash;I&rsquo;ve lied to her in the most shocking
- way, and, what is worse, I fancy she didn&rsquo;t quite believe me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She suspects something?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His tone sounded apprehensive in the gloom.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know; I hope not. In any case, what can she suspect? She&rsquo;s been
- in bed all the time.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;True,&rdquo; said Mr. Jetsam reflectively. &ldquo;True! You have behaved
- magnificently, Miss Rosie. Never, never, in this world, shall I be able to
- thank you. I had not thought that such a woman as you existed. You have
- given me the first sympathy I have ever had. Yes, the first!&mdash;without
- you I could never have succeeded. I could scarcely have begun. And now I
- shall succeed. Listen to me&mdash;I shall succeed! A wrong will be
- righted. Justice will be done. If it isn&rsquo;t, I shall kill myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He finished grimly, as it were, ferociously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t say that,&rdquo; pleaded Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- He laughed. Then he lifted the little lantern and threw its ray on her
- face. She did not flinch. &ldquo;You are very pale,&rdquo; he remarked softly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you expect?&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;You have gone much further&mdash;very
- much further than I ever dreamt of. You have led me on.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;it is your own kindness of heart, your sympathy with the
- unfortunate that has led you on. I assure you I was never so bold before I
- met you, before I appealed to you that night when you stood on your
- balcony. Do you regret? If you tell me to stop, to abandon my plans and
- depart&mdash;well, I will depart.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She smiled sadly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not want you to do that,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Nevertheless, I tremble for
- what you have done.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do not tremble,&rdquo; he said coaxingly. &ldquo;If I am not safe here, where am I
- safe? Is not this the very last place where anyone would expect to find me
- and my&mdash;my booty?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, then, sending the servants away,&rdquo; she exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing simpler,&rdquo; he commented.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how I did it,&rdquo; she mused, as if aghast at the memory of what
- she had achieved; &ldquo;and as for to-morrow, how I shall explain it to Pauline
- I really can&rsquo;t imagine!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To-morrow,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;everything will be over one way or the other; you
- will be able to resume your habit of speaking the truth. By the way,&rdquo; he
- went on, in a tone carefully careless, &ldquo;you managed to do what I asked you
- with the boat?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you meet anyone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not a soul.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you pulled the plug out and cut the boat: adrift?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pulled the plug out and cut the boat adrift!&rdquo; she repeated after him,
- amazed. &ldquo;No; you never told me to do that!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pardon me,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;that was the most important thing of all. It is
- essential that there should be no trace of the boat.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t understand,&rdquo; she faltered. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so sorry. I never heard&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I regret I didn&rsquo;t make myself more clear,&rdquo; he remarked. &ldquo;You see, at
- intervals during the night the watchmen do their patrols, and I know there
- is a regular inspection of the terrace. Supposing the boat is seen?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I really don&rsquo;t remember, that you asked me to do that,&rdquo; she persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anyhow,&rdquo; he said politely, &ldquo;what you have done deserves all my praise and
- gratitude. But&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would like me to go and sink the boat, wouldn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hesitate to ask you. It is really too much&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, yes,&rdquo; she said passionately. &ldquo;I will go and do it&mdash;alone.&rdquo; Then
- she paused. &ldquo;But suppose I meet the patrol?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are you,&rdquo; was Jetsam&rsquo;s response. &ldquo;You are the President&rsquo;s cousin. You
- have the right to amuse yourself with a boat, at no matter what hour of
- the day or night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Just so,&rdquo; she admitted. &ldquo;I will go now. I shall be back quite soon. Shall
- you be ready by the time I return?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Everything is all right?&rdquo; She seemed to question him anxiously.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Quite all right,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;Let me thank you again.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With an impulsive movement he took her hand and kissed it. She blushed and
- trembled. Then he opened the door and they passed out into the hall.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will unfasten the front-door for you,&rdquo; he whispered. &ldquo;I think I can do
- it more quietly than you. It may be left on the latch till you come back;&rdquo;
- and he unfastened the front-door. Through its panes a faint light entered
- the hall.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must get my hat,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- They went upstairs.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll leave you,&rdquo; he whispered. &ldquo;You can manage?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She nodded. He put the light on a bracket on the landing and ascended to
- the upper parts of the house. Rosie went into her bedroom. When she came
- out, wearing a hat, she noticed for the first time that the door of
- Pauline&rsquo;s bedroom was not shut. She pushed it open very carefully, and
- peered in. A feeble reflection of the moonlight redeemed it from absolute
- obscurity, and Rosie perceived that the bed was unoccupied, that it had
- not even been slept in. Instantly her mind became full of suspicions. Had
- Pauline lied to her as she had lied to Pauline? Was her part in the plot
- of Mr. Jetsam discovered? No, impossible! And yet&mdash;Then she
- recollected having heard, or having thought that she had heard, the
- distant ringing of one of the service-bells in the house some time before
- Mr. Jetsam came downstairs. She had forgotten to mention this disturbing
- fact to Mr. Jetsam. Evidently he had not heard the ringing, or he would
- have questioned her about it. Supposing they were being watched, after
- all? And in any case where was Pauline? Pauline had given her to
- understand that she had retired to rest, and lo! the bed had not been
- touched! Full of tremors, she silently shut the door on the empty room.
- </p>
- <p>
- She remembered Jetsam&rsquo;s threat of what he should do if his plans failed,
- and she hesitated.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0027" id="link2HCH0027"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVII&mdash;The Photograph
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">M</span>r. Jetsam, having
- with an attentive ear heard the vague sound of the shutting of a door,
- came out a second time from the mysterious attic and descended the stairs.
- He was a man to omit no precautions, and every door that he passed he
- locked on the outside, not only on the servants&rsquo; floor, but on the first
- floor. He penetrated then to the ground-floor, and fastened not merely
- every door, but every window. At last he arrived at the front door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a pity to lock her out,&rdquo; he murmured to himself; &ldquo;but what can I do?
- It would be madness to let her assist at the scene I have to go through.
- She expects to, but I must disappoint her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he noiselessly bolted and locked the front door.
- </p>
- <p>
- The fact was that Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s plans had been slightly deranged. He had
- hoped to get through his great scene&mdash;the scene to which all his
- efforts had tended&mdash;during Rosie&rsquo;s first absence on the river. He
- relied on Rosie; he had been amazed at her goodness and her fortitude; he
- had been still more amazed at his singular influence over her; and he
- naturally told her a great deal. But he did not tell her quite everything.
- He feared to frighten her. Hence proceeded one of his reasons for sending
- her to the boat, with the object of sinking the coffer further in the
- river as the tide fell. But she had dispatched the business with such
- extraordinary celerity, and he, on his part, had been so hindered by such
- an unexpected contretemps, that she was back again before even he had
- begun.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thus, he had been obliged to invent a new errand for her, and he flattered
- himself that he had invented the errand, and dispatched her on it, with a
- certain histrionic skill&mdash;and he had the right so to flatter himself.
- It desolated him to deceive her, to hoodwink her; but he saw no
- alternative.
- </p>
- <p>
- Having secured the house, he ascended again, this time taking less care to
- maintain an absolute silence, to the first floor. The affair was fully
- launched now, and no one could interrupt him. If Pauline awoke in her
- locked bedroom and heard things, so much the worse for her, he reflected.
- She could not go out on to her balcony because he had seen long ago to the
- fastening of the window. Therefore she might cry as much as she liked. He
- laughed as he thought of this, not having the least idea that he had so
- elaborately fastened the door and the window of an empty room.
- </p>
- <p>
- He went into Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom with a slight swagger, and shut the door.
- A fire was burning in the grate. He cast a single glance at the bed and
- its mute and helpless occupant, and putting his little lantern on the
- mantelpiece, he walked round the room, inspecting its arrangement and its
- corners. Then, suddenly remembering his own burglarious exploit of forcing
- an entrance into the room by the window, he approached the window, flung
- it wide open and stepped outside on to the balcony. Far across the expanse
- of the Oriental Gardens, in the moonlight, he discerned a figure vaguely
- moving in the direction of the river. It was a woman&rsquo;s figure.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There she is,&rdquo; he murmured. &ldquo;Admirable creature! Why did I not meet such
- a woman when I was younger?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he came in again, shut and fastened the window, and drew the heavy
- curtains across it, taking care that no chink was left through which light
- could be seen. Then he began to whistle softly, and he turned on all the
- electricity in the apartment; there were a cluster of lamps in the
- ceiling, and two lights over&rsquo; the dressing-table, besides the table-lamps,
- and his own trifling gleam of a lantern. The room was brilliantly, almost
- blindingly, lit, and every object stood revealed.
- </p>
- <p>
- He stepped towards the bed, and deliberately gazed into the eyes of the
- stricken old woman. Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s burning orbs blinked at intervals.
- Otherwise she gave no sign of volition or of life. Jetsam placed his eyes
- in the fixed line of her gaze, so that they were obliged to exchange a
- glance. She appeared to be unconscious of it. Only a scarcely perceptible
- trémulation ran along her arms, which lay stretched, as usual, outside the
- coverlet, like the arms of a corpse.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Jetsam, &ldquo;here I am at last, you see. Do you recognize me?
- I&rsquo;ve changed, haven&rsquo;t I, old hag? But you can&rsquo;t be mistaken in me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The pent-up bitterness of a lifetime escaped from him in the tones of his
- voice. But the old woman showed no symptom that the terrible past was thus
- revisiting her in its most awful form.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You thought I was dead, didn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; Jetsam continued. &ldquo;For over forty
- years you have been sure that I was dead, and that your crime was one of
- the thousands of crimes which go unpunished. And look here,&rdquo; he went on;
- &ldquo;if you have any doubt, murderess, as to my identity, look at this. I&rsquo;ll
- make you look at it, by heaven!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He bent down, drew up the trouser of his left leg to the knee, and pushed
- the sock into his boot, so that the calf of the leg was exposed. On the
- fleshy part of the calf could be plainly seen a large birth-stain. With
- the movement of an acrobat he raised that leg over the bed, over the eyes
- of Mrs. Ilam, and held it there during several seconds. Then he dropped
- it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There!&rdquo; he exclaimed. &ldquo;That&rsquo;s to show you who it is you have to deal
- with.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His voice was cruel, icy, and inexorable. He had no pity, no trace of
- mercy, for the woman who, whatever the enormity of her sins, was entitled
- to some respect by reason of her extreme age, her absolutely defenceless
- condition, and her suffering.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They tell me you can answer &lsquo;yes&rsquo; or &lsquo;no,&rsquo;&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;by your eyelids.
- Blinking means &lsquo;yes,&rsquo; and no movement means &lsquo;no.&rsquo; I am going to put some
- questions to you. Did you take the photograph out of the box? Answer.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam closed her eyes and kept them closed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What does that mean?&rdquo; Jetsam grumbled. &ldquo;Open your eyes again, murderess.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But Mrs. Ilam did not open her eyes again. She obstinately kept them
- closed; and she might have been asleep, except that now and then a tear
- exuded from under the lids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll make you open them,&rdquo; cried Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- His hand approached the old woman&rsquo;s eyes, but even his implacable and
- cruel bitterness recoiled from the coward villainy of touching that
- stricken and helpless organism. He drew back his hand, and some glimmering
- sense of the dreadfulness of the scene which he was acting reached his
- heart. The thought ran through his brain that it was a good thing Rosie
- had not been present.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;as you like. Only I know that you, or one of you,
- must have taken that photograph out of the box, and I have every reason to
- believe that it is in this room. In any case I mean to know very shortly
- whether it is or not.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- So saying, he went abruptly out of the room, shutting the door, and
- climbed once more to the attic.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Jakel&rdquo; he called quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And a Soudanese, the brother of Ilam&rsquo;s protector, &ldquo;Spats,&rdquo; obediently
- appeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am ready,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;Come, pass in front of me. I will lock the
- door myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They went together to Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know how to search, Jake?&rdquo; Jetsam instructed him. &ldquo;Everything in this
- room has to be searched to find a photograph&mdash;a photograph, you know&mdash;the
- same sort of thing as this.&rdquo; And he pointed to a portrait of Josephus Ilam
- that stood on the mantelpiece.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Soudanese nodded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Begin with the chest of drawers,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- In a quarter of an hour the room was in such a state of havoc as might
- have resulted from the passage through it of a cyclone. Every drawer in
- every piece of furniture had been ransacked and emptied. The Soudanese had
- even climbed on a chair in order to inspect the top of the wardrobe, and
- had dislodged therefrom a pile of cardboard boxes. Every book had been
- torn to pieces. Piles of letters lay scattered about. The floor was heaped
- up with Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s private possessions. Chairs were overturned. One or
- two vases with narrow necks and wide bases had been smashed in order the
- better to search their interiors. The place was wrecked. But the
- mysterious photograph which Jetsam wanted had not been discovered. The
- Soudanese had found dozens of photographs, but not the right one.
- </p>
- <p>
- The bed of the invalid was alone undisturbed. Among all the ruins of the
- chamber it remained untouched, white, apparently inviolate, and the old
- woman&rsquo;s arms lay ever in the same position, and her eyes, open and blazing
- now, gazed ever at the same spot in the ceiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have it!&rdquo; exclaimed Jetsam suddenly. &ldquo;The bed&mdash;the bed! The box
- was hidden under the bed, but I got it. The photograph is hidden under the
- bed, and I will get it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He hesitated. Dare he search the bed? Dare he disturb its helpless burden?
- He wondered. He was ready for anything. He was capable of slaughter, but
- he wavered and retreated before the idea of searching for the photograph
- in the place where the box had been.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he suddenly decided.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Take firm hold of the bed itself, not the mattress,&rdquo; he ordered the
- Soudanese, &ldquo;and I will take hold on this side. Be very gentle. Do not
- disarrange the clothes. We will lift it over the foot of the bedstead and
- place it on the floor. Carefully now&mdash;carefully!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And with the utmost delicacy the two men lifted the bed bodily and laid it
- very gently on the floor, and Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s gaze was directed to a new
- point: of the ceiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That will be a change for you,&rdquo; said Jetsam, with a touch of compunction
- in his voice. &ldquo;I was obliged to do it. We&rsquo;ll put you back presently.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he searched thoroughly the mattress and the bedstead, but there was no
- photograph.
- </p>
- <p>
- He paused and wiped, his brow. The Soudanese stood at attention by the
- side of the bed. Jetsam looked at Jake.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go and fetch him down,&rdquo; he said peremptorily to the Soudanese.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Jake vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One way or another this shall end,&rdquo; he murmured, gazing at the old woman
- in her lowly position among the heaped confusion of the floor; and he
- waited, eyeing at intervals the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- At length the door opened, and the Soudanese came in, and he was leading
- by the hand Josephus Ilam. Jetsam stepped quickly behind them and shut and
- locked the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now then, Ilam,&rdquo; said he, &ldquo;sit down. Make him sit down, Jake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And quite obediently Ilam sat down on a chair, near the night-table. He
- made no remark; he scarcely looked round; his senses seemed to be dulled;
- it was as though his mind had retired to some fastness from which it
- refused to emerge.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you want?&rdquo; Ilam demanded gloomily. &ldquo;What have you been doing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to make one last appeal to you, Ilam,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;I
- kidnapped you for this, I may tell you. I was determined to confront the
- mother and the son if necessity should arise. But you nearly did for me by
- swallowing too much of that blessed opiate. You are clumsy, even when you
- are a victim. However, you&rsquo;ve got over it nicely, haven&rsquo;t you? Pretty
- notion, wasn&rsquo;t it,&rdquo; he continued, &ldquo;to conceal you in your own attic, where
- no one would ever think of looking for you? But it wanted doing, my
- weighty friend&mdash;it wanted doing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you after?&rdquo; Ilam asked again, as if in the grip of one fixed
- idea. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ve got the money&mdash;what else do you want?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know perfectly well what I want,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;My case is complete
- except for that photograph, and I&rsquo;ve secured as much money as will keep me
- on my pins till I&rsquo;ve forced you to see reason. But the photograph is
- lacking; you are aware of that. It&rsquo;s certainly rather hard lines on you
- that you should be forced to give up the very thing whose possession by me
- will ruin you. But what would you have? I am desperate, and no one knows
- better than you and this sad creature here that my cause is just. Tell me
- where the photograph is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what you mean,&rdquo; said Ilam doggedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam turned to Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen, murderess,&rdquo; he said, and Ilam shuddered at that word: &ldquo;if you do
- not answer my questions I will kill your son before your eyes. Does Ilam
- know where the photograph is?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Once again the old woman obstinately shut her eyes and refused to give any
- indication.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam, who seemed mentally to be quickly regaining his normal state, stood
- up and moved to the fireplace.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Stand!&rdquo; said Jetsam angrily, and he drew his revolver from his pocket. &ldquo;I
- will know where that photograph is or I will hang for you. I shall not be
- the first man who has died in a good cause. Now, where is that photograph?
- Did you or your mother take it out of the box?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He lifted the revolver.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I took it out of the box,&rdquo; snarled Ilam&mdash;&ldquo;I&mdash;I&mdash;I&mdash;and
- my mother knew nothing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And where is it?&rdquo; asked Jetsam, smiling triumphantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is here,&rdquo; Ilam cried, and he took a faded photograph from his breast
- pocket. &ldquo;You never thought of searching me, eh? Ass!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give it me,&rdquo; said Jetsam quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ilam; and with a sudden movement he stuck it in the fire.
- </p>
- <p>
- The flame destroyed it in an instant.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam sprang towards him, and then fell back as if stunned. Jetsam was
- beaten, after all. He gave a sort of groan and walked to the other side of
- the room, as if in a dream. He had failed, and he meant to commit suicide.
- All his trouble, all his risks, had gone for nothing. He raised the
- revolver again, and no one in the room quite guessed the tragedy that was
- preparing for them. His finger was on the trigger.
- </p>
- <p>
- Immediately behind him was a draught-screen, and the draught-screen began
- mysteriously to sink forward. It lodged lightly on his shoulders. He
- turned, the revolver at his temple; and round the screen, from behind it,
- appeared Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t do that,&rdquo; she said calmly, and she took the revolver out of his
- unresisting hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam turned round, saw that the person who had so mysteriously
- interfered was Rosie herself, and sank down on a chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have done me an evil turn,&rdquo; he breathed, at the same time with a
- gesture ordering the Soudanese to leave the room.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have saved your life,&rdquo; she said simply.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he replied, with a trace of bitterness. &ldquo;That is what I mean. You
- are not the first who has saved my life. And if the first saviour had
- refrained we should all have been happier now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do not say that,&rdquo; she whispered. &ldquo;I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You&mdash;you would never have met me,&rdquo; he said curtly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am glad I have met you,&rdquo; she retorted, bravely facing him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; he sighed. &ldquo;And yet you play tricks on me! Yet you make promises to
- me and break them!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no,&rdquo; she cried. &ldquo;I only promised to go to the boat, and I would have
- gone to the boat afterwards.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did you not go at once?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She told him how she had gone by accident into Pauline&rsquo;s bedroom and found
- it empty, and how thus all her suspicions were aroused.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was afraid your plans might fail,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;and you had threatened to
- kill yourself if they failed; and I thought something dreadful might
- happen during my absence. And so&mdash;so&mdash;I hid myself here&mdash;without
- thinking. I&rsquo;m so sorry.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And tears came to her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A few minutes ago I might have been seriously perturbed by what you have
- told me,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;But what does it matter now? If your sister is
- against me, if the house is surrounded by spies, it makes no difference. I
- wanted to kill this man here. I should have killed him; but I thought of
- the annoyance it would give you. Yes,&rdquo; he smiled, &ldquo;I did really. Not to
- mention the futile trouble it would cause me. And on the whole I regarded
- it as simpler and neater to kill myself. But you have stopped that. Will
- you oblige me by putting down that revolver? It is at full cock.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not touch it?&rdquo; she demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not touch it,&rdquo; he replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- She laid it at the foot of the bed, and then bent down inquiringly to old
- Mrs. Ilam, who rested with closed eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is asleep,&rdquo; murmured Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Through all this?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, thank heaven! She sleeps very heavily sometimes. Will you not put
- the bed back in its place? I do not like to see it here. It is painful,
- very painful, in spite of all you have told me about her, to see this. She
- is very old and very helpless.&rdquo; During the conversation Ilam had remained
- in a sort of stupor. It was as though the effort of putting the photograph
- in the fire, and then the shock of Rosie&rsquo;s sudden appearance, had
- exhausted the energies which he had managed with difficulty to collect as
- the results of the narcotic passed away; it was as though the narcotic had
- resumed its sway over him for a time. But now he came brusquely forward,
- taking two long steps across the room, and stood between Rosie and Jetsam,
- and he put his face quite close to Rosie&rsquo;s face, as an actor does to an
- actress on the stage.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you this scoundrel&rsquo;s accomplice?&rdquo; he asked hoarsely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cousin,&rdquo; said Rosie, &ldquo;Mr. Jetsam is not a scoundrel, and I am nobody&rsquo;s
- accomplice.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He has nearly killed me, and he has robbed me of two thousand five
- hundred pounds,&rdquo; pursued Ilam. &ldquo;If that is not being a scoundrel, what is?
- Tell me that. You are his accomplice. You came into this house to serve
- his ends.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed, I did not,&rdquo; protested Rosie, &ldquo;I came into this house with my
- sister at your urgent request.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; sneered Ilam. &ldquo;That is what you made me believe, you chit! You
- worked it very well; but I know different now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Until I came here I had never seen Mr. Jetsam,&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have come to understand each other remarkably well in quite a few
- days.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps we have,&rdquo; admitted the girl. &ldquo;But if you object you have a simple
- remedy.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You say he is a thief and almost a murderer. You say that I am his
- accomplice; we are criminals therefore. Bring us to justice. Have the
- entire affair thrashed out, Cousin Ilam.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know that I cannot do that,&rdquo; said Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am well aware that you dare not,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;The scandal would be
- intolerable. Think of Pauline&rsquo;s feelings.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But suppose Pauline, too, is in the conspiracy?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There would always be the scandal. It would ruin the City.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is neither the scandal nor the City that you are thinking of, Cousin
- Ilam,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;It is merely yourself or your mother. If it is your
- mother, well and good.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam retired a couple of paces, uncertain what to say in reply, and
- possibly fearing some attack from Mr. Jetsam, who stood behind him. There
- was a silence, and then Ilam murmured:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah! my poor mother, sleeping there in the midst of all this!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a cry from the strange man&rsquo;s heart, and another silence ensued. The
- situation had reached such a point as baffled all the parties to it to
- discover a solution.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Jetsam who broke the silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will leave you,&rdquo; he said in a low voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good-bye,&rdquo; he said, as no one replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where are you going to?&rdquo; asked Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am merely going,&rdquo; answered Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you will tell me where?&rdquo; she insisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is vague,&rdquo; he replied. &ldquo;Out of your life&mdash;that is all I can say.
- It was too much to hope that at the end of a career which has been one
- long and uninterrupted misfortune the sun of happiness should shine on me.
- I was destined to failure from the beginning. You do not know all my
- story; but you know some of it&mdash;enough to enable you, perhaps, to
- forgive me. Good-bye!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He moved to the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not leave me like that,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;You dare not leave me like
- that. You are going to kill yourself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I have got over that caprice, I think. I shall drag out my
- existence to its natural end.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give me your address,&rdquo; Rosie said doggedly.
- </p>
- <p>
- He shook his head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are cruel,&rdquo; she whimpered. &ldquo;After&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was interrupted by Ilam himself, who said:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie, go downstairs. I have two words to speak to this fellow. Go
- downstairs. Leave us.&rdquo; His tone was cold and acid.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Jetsam agreed after a moment. &ldquo;Leave us; we have to speak to each
- other.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not go without seeing me?&rdquo; asked Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not,&rdquo; replied Jetsam, and the next instant the two men were alone
- together in the room, save for the unconscious form of Mrs. Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- The door had been locked again, this time by Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is in love with you,&rdquo; Ilam shouted fiercely. &ldquo;You have imposed on
- her; you have taken advantage of her ignorance of life, and she is in love
- with you! It is infamous. I am stronger than you, and unless you promise
- me&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Idiot!&rdquo; Jetsam stopped him. &ldquo;What are you raving about? You must be mad.
- You must have forgotten&mdash;as your mother forgets. As for this poor
- girl being in love with me&mdash;&mdash;-&rdquo; He stopped with a hard laugh.
- &ldquo;What has that to do with you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It has everything to do with me,&rdquo; cried Ilam, and, as if transported by
- fury, he suddenly sprang on Jetsam, who was all unprepared, and, clasping
- him in a murderous embrace, threw him to the ground. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve had enough of
- you,&rdquo; he ground out the words through his teeth. &ldquo;And if I finish you, I
- can easily show that it was in self-defence.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he had scarcely spoken when his hands fell lax in astonishment and
- alarm, for immediately outside the window, or so it seemed, there sounded
- four notes of a trombone, brazen, clear, and imposing in the night. No one
- who has heard Beethoven&rsquo;s greatest symphony will ever forget the four
- notes&mdash;commonly called the notes of fate&mdash;with which the most
- tremendous of musical compositions opens. It was these notes which the
- trombone had given forth. There was a silence, and the instrument repeated
- them, and in the next pause that followed, the two men who an instant
- before had been joined in a dreadful struggle, lay moveless, listening to
- their own breathing; and a third time the trombone sounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0028" id="link2HCH0028"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVIII&mdash;The Dead March
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">W</span>hen Pauline,
- standing outside Carpentaria&rsquo;s bungalow, had communicated to Carpentaria
- the fateful fact that all Ilam&rsquo;s servants had disappeared from their
- rooms, and had given expression to the vague and terrible fear that was
- beginning to take possession of her, the musician said in reply:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have every reason to be afraid, and yet I shall ask you to try to
- calm your apprehensions. Whether the servants are there or not, nobody can
- get into your house without our knowing it, and when anybody starts to
- attempt to get in, there will be plenty of time for you to alarm yourself
- then.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Rosie alone there with poor Mrs. Ilam!&rdquo; sighed Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam can&rsquo;t do her any harm, at any rate,&rdquo; said Carpentaria
- comfortingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- And with that he commenced a cautious perambulation of the exterior of
- Ilam&rsquo;s house, Pauline following him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish you would go to my sister until I have something to report,&rdquo; he
- murmured. &ldquo;You will take cold, and you will work yourself up into a fever,
- and do no good to anybody.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall not work myself up into a fever,&rdquo; replied Pauline firmly. &ldquo;I am
- capable of being just as calm as you are yourself. Let us go at once into
- the house&mdash;let us go to Rosie.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; expostulated Carpentaria, &ldquo;and spoil whatever scheme is going on?
- No, my dear young lady, we have gone so far that we must go a little
- further. We must catch the schemers red-handed. If we do not, our night&rsquo;s
- work will have been wasted.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The idea of weakly and pusillanimously changing a course of conduct at the
- very moment when that course promised the most interesting adventures
- shocked all the artist in him.
- </p>
- <p>
- They stared blankly at the house, whose form was clearly revealed in the
- misty moonlight, but none of whose windows showed the slightest glimmer of
- light. It was an extremely modern tenement, and its architecture was in no
- way startlingly original; nevertheless, in those moments it seemed to both
- of them the strangest, the most mysterious, the most insubstantial house
- that the hand of man had ever raised.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly Pauline clutched his arm.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hear some one walking somewhere in the grounds,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- They both listened. In the stillness of the night regular steps sounded
- plainly from a distance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is the patrol on the terrace,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is assuredly on the terrace&mdash;the sound of heavy boots on stone
- flags, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; Pauline agreed, loosing his arm.
- </p>
- <p>
- They were twenty or thirty yards from the house.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I want you to be brave and to do something for me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria turned to her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go to the patrol, and tell him I have sent you, and that he is to remain
- within sight of the boat there, until further orders, keeping as much in
- the background as possible. Will you go?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Alone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Alone. There is no danger. Besides, one of us must remain here, and one
- person can more easily keep out of sight than two. My fear is that the
- boat may be used again. The patrol is not to prevent the boat being used.
- He is not to show himself; he is merely to observe. You understand?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you insist on my going?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, I entreat you to go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And without more words she went. It was her figure, and not the figure of
- Rosie, that Mr. Jetsam had seen in the gardens when he peeped out of the
- window of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, now alone, recommenced from a fresh spot his vigil over the
- closed house. He argued with himself with much ingenuity as to what point
- the persons who wished to enter it would choose for their appearance, but
- he could decide nothing. They might, he thought, come by the avenue, or
- round by the back from the other side of the buildings of the Central Way,
- or even through the gardens. He was growing impatient of a delay
- apparently interminable, and then his glance happened to wander upwards to
- the roof of the house. He could not see the roof itself, because he was
- now too near the wall, but it appeared to him that he detected a
- phenomenon above the roof which was somewhat unusual. He walked carefully
- away from the house until the expanse of roof became visible; and, indeed,
- he had not been mistaken. There was a radiance there. The small square
- pane of the attic, flat with the surface of the roof itself, was
- illuminated, and sent up a faint shaft of light into the sky.
- </p>
- <p>
- Instantly he saw his own shortcomings as a counter-schemer against
- schemers. He had assumed that the schemers were not already in the house,
- whereas he had had no grounds for such an assumption. The schemers were
- most obviously in the house, and they had most obviously been there for a
- considerable time, since no one could have recently entered it without his
- knowledge. He was angry with the schemers, and he was more angry with
- himself, and one of those wild ideas seized him&mdash;one of those ideas
- which could only occur to a Carpentaria. He would catch these schemers
- himself, by his own devices, and he would do it leisurely, dramatically,
- and effectively. He would make such a capture as never had been made
- before. He did not know precisely who the schemers were, nor their
- numbers, nor their nefarious occupations in the house; and he did not
- care. When once he was in the toils of a grand romantic idea he cared for
- nothing except the execution of it. He laughed with joy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you laugh?&rdquo; said a voice behind him.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Pauline, who had returned. She had given the instructions to the
- patrol.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;An idea,&rdquo; he replied&mdash;&ldquo;a notion that appealed to me.&rdquo; And then he
- perceived that he must at all costs get rid of Pauline, and he continued:
- &ldquo;My sister is extremely disturbed,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Will you not, as a last
- favour, go and stay with her? Do not refuse me this. I will find some one
- to assist me in my work here&mdash;one of my trombone-players on whom I
- can rely. I&mdash;I really do not care for you to be out here like this.
- The strain is too much for you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But Rosie&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; she objected again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie is all right,&rdquo; he reassured her. &ldquo;I will answer for Rosie&rsquo;s safety
- with my life; and when I say that, I mean it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will do as you wish,&rdquo; said Pauline at length.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let me see you into the house,&rdquo; he murmured, enchanted.
- </p>
- <p>
- He unlocked his front-door for her, and called out softly, &ldquo;Juliette!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is that you, Carlos?&rdquo; said a voice in the darkness at the top of the
- stairs.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Here is Miss Dartmouth come to keep you company. Do not
- use a light&mdash;at least, use as little light as possible, until you
- hear some music.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hear some music? What music?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind what music. If you should hear some music you will know that
- you are at liberty to turn on all the lights you like. Miss Dartmouth will
- tell you why I want darkness at present. Here are the stairs, Miss
- Dartmouth. Cling to the rail. <i>Au revoir.</i>&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; faltered Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>Au revoir</i>, I said,&rdquo; he whispered insistently.
- </p>
- <p>
- Before leaving the house he rushed into the kitchen, found a long
- clothes-line, of which he seemed to know exactly the whereabouts, and
- appropriated it.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next minute he was tying the handle of Ilam&rsquo;s front-door firmly to the
- railing, so that it would be impossible to open the door from the inside.
- He secured in the same manner the side-door and also the gate in the wall
- of the kitchen yard. He then fixed pieces of rope under windows, in such a
- manner that a person endeavouring to leap from a window to the ground
- would almost certainly be caught in the rope, and break a leg or an arm,
- if not a neck or so.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Cheerful for them!&rdquo; he murmured maliciously. &ldquo;I only hope it won&rsquo;t be
- Miss Rosie who tries to make her exit by the window. I have answered for
- her. However, I must take the risks.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He glanced finally round the house, throwing away some short unused pieces
- of rope, but keeping two long pieces. He surveyed the house with
- satisfaction.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think I can safely leave it for five minutes or so now,&rdquo; he said to
- himself; and he shut his penknife with a vicious snap and put it in his
- pocket.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he ran off at a great speed in the direction of the Central Way. At
- the southern end of the Central Way, nearly opposite to the general
- offices of the City, was an elegant building known as the band-house. Here
- dwelt the majority of the members of Carpentaria&rsquo;s world-renowned
- orchestra. Some members, being married to women instead of married to
- their art, had permission to possess domestic hearths in London and the
- suburbs, but these were few. The edifice was a very large one, as it. had
- need to be. A peculiar feature of it was the rehearsal-room on the top
- floor, constructed, like the finest flats in New York, in such a manner as
- to be absolutely sound-proof.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria rang the electric bell at the portals of the band-house, and
- the portals were presently opened by a sleepy person whose duty it was to
- admit bandsmen returning after late leave.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look &rsquo;ere,&rdquo; said the porter, &ldquo;this is a bit thick, this is. Do you
- know as the hour is exactly&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hold your tongue, you fool!&rdquo; Carpentaria stopped him briefly, &ldquo;and go and
- bring Mr. Bruno to me at once; it&rsquo;s very important. Let&rsquo;s have some
- light.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I beg pardon, sir,&rdquo; said the porter, astounded by this nocturnal
- apparition of the autocrat of the band. &ldquo;Mr. Bruno is asleep, sir. He had
- two whiskies to make him sleep, and went to bed afore midnight, sir.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know he&rsquo;s asleep. Do you suppose I thought he was standing on his head
- waiting for the dawn? Go and waken him&mdash;and quicker than that! Here,
- I&rsquo;ll go with you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The two men went upstairs together, and Mr. Bruno, principal
- trombone-player of the band, was soon sitting up in bed, awaking to the
- presence of his chief.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Bruno, my lad,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;give me your trombone.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My trombone, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Mendelssohn once remarked that the trombone was
- an instrument too sacred to use often, but I think the supreme occasion
- has arrived for me to use it to-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s there, in the corner, sir,&rdquo; said Bruno, wondering vaguely what was
- this latest caprice of Carpentaria&rsquo;s.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria rushed to the thing, took it out of its case, and put it to
- his mouth.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;H&rsquo;m!&rdquo; he murmured, after he had sounded a note gently. &ldquo;I can do it, I
- think. Listen, Bruno! The occasion is not only supreme; it is unique. You
- are to rouse all the men; you are to dress, and take your instruments; and
- you are to go out quietly and surround the bungalow of our honoured
- President, Mr. Josephus Ilam. You are to make no noise of any kind until
- you hear me give the first bars of a tune, either with my mouth or with
- this instrument. You are then to join in that tune.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What tune, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will hear.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where shall you be, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will see. Get up, now; don&rsquo;t lose a second.&rdquo; Carpentaria was off
- again. He returned to Ilam&rsquo;s house, and climbed to the balcony of the
- window of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s bedroom. It was fortunate that he had preserved the
- rope, for he could not have climbed with the trombone in his arms. His
- method was to leave the trombone on the ground, the rope tied to it; he
- kept the other end of the rope in his hand, and drew the trombone after
- him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then it was that he sounded on the trombone the terrible phrase of
- Beethoven&rsquo;s, which put a period to the struggle between Ilam and Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- He felt for the handle of the French window, and, finding the window
- fastened on the inside, adopted the simple device of leaning with his full
- weight against the window-frame. The whole thing gave way, and through a
- crashing of glass, a splintering of wood, and the tearing of curtains he
- backed into the room, the trombone held precariously in one hand and his
- revolver very firmly in the other.
- </p>
- <p>
- The scene that confronted him was sufficiently surprising. Amid the
- extraordinary disorder of the chamber he found its three occupants all
- stretched on the floor. The old woman was apparently oblivious, but the
- two men, releasing each other, gazed at him for all the world like two
- schoolboys caught in an act contrary to discipline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did I startle you? I hope so,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when he had found his
- bearings. &ldquo;I meant to.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam was the first to rise.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You with the red hair!&rdquo; cried Jetsam. &ldquo;You are trying to save my life
- again!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind my red hair,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, ruffled. &ldquo;I am not trying to
- save anybody&rsquo;s life. I&rsquo;m here on a mission of inquiry. No one leaves this
- room until I have had a full explanation of everything. I have stood just
- about as much as I can stand of the mystery that has been hanging over
- this City for a week past. Ilam, let me beg you to get up and take a seat
- over there in that corner. Thanks!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He relinquished the musical instrument as Ilam clumsily resumed his feet
- and obeyed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As for you, Mr. Jetsam,&rdquo; continued Carpentaria, &ldquo;you know, from accounts
- which have reached me, the precise moral effect of a loaded revolver such
- as I am now pointing at you. Go into the other corner.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;You can fire if you like. As a matter of fact,
- you daren&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You propose to leave the room and defy me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I propose to leave the room.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- He took the trombone and blew on it loudly a few notes which neither
- Jetsam nor Ilam immediately recognized. But the musicians, who had by this
- time surrounded the house, recognized them. And at once there entered by
- the smashed window the solemn and moving strains of the Dead March in
- &ldquo;Saul.&rdquo; The house seemed to be ringed in a circle of awful melody.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam shuddered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now kindly stay where you are,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- And Jetsam stayed where he was, at the foot of the bed, his back to Mrs.
- Ilam&rsquo;s prone figure.
- </p>
- <p>
- The playing continued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What foolery is this?&rdquo; demanded Ilam slowly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is part of a larger piece of foolery that has rescued you, Ilam,&rdquo;
- Carpentaria replied, and he was crossing the room to approach Ilam, when
- he saw something in the looking-glass over the mantelpiece, and he started
- back.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam, the paralytic, roused in some strange way, either by the
- violence of the scenes at which she had assisted, or by the inexplicable
- influence of the music, was almost erect in her bed, and her trembling
- parchment hands had seized the revolver which Rosie had left on the floor,
- and she was endeavouring to point it between Jetsam&rsquo;s shoulders. The other
- two men turned and saw the fatal and appalling movement of the aged
- creature, who was evidently in the grip of some tremendously powerful
- instinct&mdash;the kind of instinct that only dies with death.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria alone retained his self-possession. With a swift and yet
- gentle movement he disarmed the terrible old woman, and she sank back,
- with streaming eyes, helpless and moveless as before. The incident was
- over in a few seconds.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And now,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;I will hear your story, Mr. Jetsam. But
- first, we must lift this bed back to its proper-position.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; replied Jetsam, trembling in spite of himself. &ldquo;You shall
- hear my story.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The music ceased.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0029" id="link2HCH0029"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIX&mdash;Mr. Jetsam&rsquo;s Recital
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">W</span>e will go
- downstairs,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, when a certain amount of order had been
- restored to the room. &ldquo;We shall be more at ease there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; cried Jetsam, and there was a note of passion in his voice. &ldquo;This
- old woman shall hear my tale. I tell it in her presence, or I tell it not
- at all.&rdquo; Carpentaria gazed at Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s eyes, which made no response.
- Her bed was now replaced in its proper position, and those strange burning
- eyes perused their old spot in the ceiling. After the brief and terrible
- return of activity to that stricken body, it seemed to have sunk back into
- a condition of helplessness more absolute even than before. The eyes
- burned, but not quite with their former disturbing brilliance.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very well,&rdquo; Carpentaria agreed.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ilam was already seated, apparently half-comatose. The other two men each
- seized a chair. And then there was a timid but insistent knocking.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that?&rdquo; demanded Carpentaria of Jetsam. &ldquo;You ought to know; you
- have been master here for some hours.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is Miss Rosie, I imagine,&rdquo; Jetsam answered. &ldquo;Your singular music has
- startled her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria walked rapidly to the door, unlocked it, and opened it. Rosie
- it indeed was who stood there.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, my dear young lady,&rdquo; he said lightly, without giving her an
- opportunity even to express her astonishment. &ldquo;I would like you to go to
- your sister, who is in my house over the way. But I fear you cannot open
- any of the doors. Won&rsquo;t you retire and rest a little, after your
- complicated labours?&rdquo; He smiled a little grimly. &ldquo;Everything is all right
- here, and should your aged relative need your ministrations you may rely
- on me to call you. In the meantime, your cousin and I, and your particular
- friend Mr. Jetsam, must have a chat on business matters.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He bowed, covering the aperture of the door with his body so that Rosie
- could not see inside the room. As for Rosie, she hesitated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I entreat you,&rdquo; he insisted, &ldquo;go and rest, and don&rsquo;t have anything more
- to do with boats; you might drown yourself. And believe me when I say that
- nothing further will be done in secret. The moment I am free I will
- endeavour to free the doors.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Rosie moved reluctantly away down the landing. She had not spoken a word.
- Carpentaria closed the portal softly and retired to his chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have my attention,&rdquo; he remarked significantly to Mr. Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Jetsam, after a moment&rsquo;s pause. &ldquo;It goes back a very long
- time, this affair does, Mr. Carpentaria. It certainly began before you
- were born&mdash;down at Torquay. Torquay, according to what they tell me,
- was not the place then that it is now, not by a considerable distance; but
- it was fashionable. It had got a bit of a name as a good place to go and
- get fat in. Perhaps that was why a certain soda-water manufacturer went
- there to spend a year or so. He was a very wealthy man, and he rented a
- villa there. It&rsquo;s one of those villas on the top of the hill between Union
- Street and the sea, and it still exists. His age was about fifty, and he
- was supposed to be worth half a million or so&mdash;all made out of gas
- and splutter, you see. Being supposed to be worth half a million or so, of
- course he soon had the entire population of Torquay knocking at his door
- and throwing cards into his card-basket. He made a wide circle of friends
- in rather less than no time, and being a simple, decent creature, though
- not faultless, he was pretty well pleased with himself. Now among the
- friends that he made was a certain widow, age uncertain&mdash;but in the
- neighbourhood of thirty, and her name was Kilmarnock.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At this time Mr. Jetsam stood up, and bending over Mrs. Ham&rsquo;s bed with his
- smile so ruthlessly cruel, he repeated, staring at the invalid:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Her name was Kilmarnock, wasn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam made no sign. Mr. Jetsam resumed his chair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A pretty woman, I believe she was, with magnificent black eyes; the most
- wonderful eyes in the West Country, people said,&rdquo; Mr. Jetsam proceeded.
- &ldquo;Husband dead some little time. Anyhow, she had gone out of mourning, and
- her dresses were the amazement of the town. They&rsquo;d look pretty queer
- nowadays, I reckon, because that was before 1860. However, her dresses
- have got nothing to do with it, especially as the soda-water manufacturer&mdash;have
- I happened to mention that his name was Ilam?&mdash;especially as Mr. Ilam
- couldn&rsquo;t see them very well. Mr. Ilam was beginning to suffer from a
- cataract; both his eyes were affected, and the disease was making progress
- rapidly. You must remember that oculists didn&rsquo;t know as much about
- cataract then as they do now. Well, Mr. Ilam was himself a widower&mdash;a
- widower with one child, aged three years. He had been a widower for two
- years when he first met Mrs. Kilmarnock. He liked Mrs. Kilmarnock. She
- seemed to have in her the makings of a good nurse, and one of the things
- that Mr. Ilam wanted was a faithful, loving nurse. He was certainly in an
- awkward predicament. He also wanted a mother for his child; and Mrs.
- Kilmarnock took a tremendous fancy to the child&mdash;a simply tremendous
- fancy. He was a man who talked pretty freely and openly, Mr. Ilam was, and
- he made no secret of the fact that, though he preferred to marry a widow,
- he would never permit himself to marry a widow who had children of her
- own. And one day he said to Mrs. Kilmarnock that, since he had never heard
- her mention a child, he assumed that she had no children.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She replied that his assumption was correct, and that she continually
- regretted being childless, as she adored children, and felt very severely
- the need of something to give her a real interest in life. A month later
- Mr. Ilam asked Mrs. Kilmarnock to marry him, and she consented like a
- bird. Three months later they were married. Everybody said kind things;
- for you must know that Mrs. Kilmarnock was not penniless herself. Oh, no!
- She lived in very good style in Torquay, and gave dinners that Torquay
- liked. And Torquay is a good judge of dinners. Her husband had been a
- Scottish writer to the Signet, she said. So the marriage was celebrated
- amid universal plaudits, and there was quite three-quarters of a column
- about it in the <i>Western Morning News</i>.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At this juncture Carpentaria ventured to interrupt the speaker.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You appear,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;to be remarkably well informed about matters which
- occurred long before you were of an age to take an intelligent interest in
- them. At the time of this marriage you surely were not in the habit of
- reading newspapers?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was not,&rdquo; answered Jetsam drily. &ldquo;I had attained the mature age of
- three years. If I am well informed it is because I have taken the trouble
- to inform myself. You see, I was interested, and I have spared no pains
- during this last year or two to acquire all the circumstantial details of
- the case.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I perceive,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;But how were you interested?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will understand presently,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;To continue. This Mrs.
- Kilmarnock, whom we must now call Mrs. Ilam, used, both before and after
- her second marriage, to pay visits to the town of Teignmouth, and these
- visits were, not to put too fine a point on it, of an extremely discreet
- nature; they were, in fact, strictly secret. Mrs. Ilam fell into the habit
- of telling her husband that she was going to Exeter to shop, but instead
- of going to Exeter she went only as far as Teignmouth. She was always
- dressed very simply indeed for these Teignmouth visits. She used to walk
- through the town from the station, and, having taken the ferry across the
- Teign, she walked up the right bank of the river till she came to a
- cottage that stood by itself in the marshy land thereabouts. At the
- cottage an old man and woman and a little boy would meet her. And the
- strange thing was that the old man spoke French; he could not speak
- English. You may possibly not be aware that onion-boats from the coast of
- Brittany are constantly arriving at the smaller Devonshire ports, such as
- Torquay and Teignmouth. The old man was a Breton peasant, with all the
- characteristics of a Breton peasant, who had arrived at Teignmouth once in
- an onion-boat, and forgotten to go back again because he fell in love with
- an Englishwoman&mdash;a Devonshire lass with a soft drawling accent. So
- Mrs. Ilam used to talk to the Breton peasant in French, and to his wife in
- English, and to the boy in baby language. She would cover the boy with
- kisses; she would call him by pet names, and she saw him at least once a
- week.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He was her son?&rdquo; Carpentaria put in interrogatively.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have naturally guessed it,&rdquo; Jetsam responded. &ldquo;He was her son.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But if she was really a widow, and this was really her son, why did she&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; cried Jetsam, &ldquo;I think she was really a widow, and there is not the
- slightest shadow of doubt that this was really her son. Perhaps she kept
- him a secret from Torquay because she felt that he might prove an obstacle
- to the achievement of her desires in Torquay. Anyhow, she loved him
- passionately. Her son was, beyond question, the greatest passion of her
- life.&rdquo; He turned abruptly again to the old woman, &ldquo;Wasn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo; he
- demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the aged creature&rsquo;s burning eyes were filled with tears.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think perhaps it might be as well to leave Mrs. Ilam out of the
- conversation,&rdquo; suggested Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Impossible to leave her out of the conversation,&rdquo; said Jetsam quickly,
- &ldquo;because the conversation is almost exclusively about her. However, I will
- not trouble her any more for confirmation of what I say. Well, for nearly
- a year after her second marriage these clandestine visits of Mrs. Ilam to
- the cottage on the banks of the Teign continued with the most perfect
- regularity, and then something extremely remarkable happened.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What was that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;First, I must tell you that soon after the marriage Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s cataract
- got rapidly worse. In six months he could only distinguish objects
- vaguely. He could not read anything except shop signs. In Mrs. Ilam he
- found an admirable nurse and companion. Except for her shopping excursions
- to Exeter she never left his side. She was a model wife, and all Torquay
- admitted the fact. Even when Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s impaired vision rendered him
- captious, querulous, and indeed unbearable, she remained sweetness itself;
- and Mr. Ilam would not admit anyone but her to his presence. He even took
- a dislike to his child, his only son, and the infant was left in the
- charge of servants and governesses, except that Mrs. Ilam saw him as
- frequently as she could.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But this is not very remarkable,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;such things are
- constantly happening.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am coming to the remarkable part,&rdquo; replied Jetsam, with a certain
- solemnity of manner. &ldquo;One day the old Breton fisherman told Mrs. Ilam that
- a relative had left him property in his native district, and that he had
- persuaded his wife to go with him to France so that they might end their
- days there. Mrs. Ilam was extremely disturbed by this piece of news,
- because she did not know what to do with the boy. She asked the Frenchman
- how soon he proposed to leave, and the Frenchman said in about three
- weeks. She left and said she would come back again in a few days. It is at
- this point that the remarkable begins. Within a week all Torquay was made
- aware that Mr. Ilam, at the solicitation of his wife, had decided to go to
- Paris to consult a great specialist there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see,&rdquo; breathed Carpentaria, while Ilam&rsquo;s face wore at length a look of
- interest.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I doubt if you do see,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;You think that Mrs. Ilam was
- arranging to go to Paris in order to be nearer her son. Well, she was, but
- not at all in the way you imagine. They departed from Torquay almost at
- once, and in a somewhat remarkable manner, for Mrs. Ilam dismissed every
- servant, even her own maid and Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s man, and the child&rsquo;s nurse&mdash;all
- were dismissed in Torquay itself&mdash;and Mr. Ilam and his wife and child
- left Torquay railway station entirely unaided, except by porters and the
- domestics of a hotel. Mrs. Ilam would certainly have all her work cut out
- to conduct the expedition, for you must remember that at this period Mr.
- Ilam was practically blind. Well, they had to change at Exeter and catch
- the Plymouth express, and at Exeter the old French peasant was waiting on
- the platform, evidently by arrangement, and he held Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s own little
- boy by the hand, and Mrs. Ilam and the peasant had a long talk by
- themselves, and then the express came in, and the Ilams got into it, and
- the express started off again for London, and the French peasant was left
- standing on the platform holding the little boy by the hand. You see?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Carpentaria bluntly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; proceeded Jetsam. &ldquo;It was not the same little boy that the peasant
- held by the hand. Mrs. Ilam had taken her own child with her, and left
- behind her step-child.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Great heavens!&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria. &ldquo;Exactly,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;Only the
- heavens didn&rsquo;t happen to interfere. This was no common case of
- substitution at birth, it was a monstrously ingenious change which Mrs.
- Ilam, out of her passionate love for her own son, had planned and carried
- out in a manner suggested to her by the facts of the situation. Consider.
- The two boys were the same age&mdash;about three years&mdash;and they were
- dressed alike, Mrs. Ilam had seen to that. Mr. Ilam is nearly blind,
- certainly he could not distinguish one child of three from another child
- of three, even if they had been dressed differently. Moreover, Mr. Ilam is
- not interested in the child. He is wrapped up in his own complaint, a
- ferocious egotist, like most sufferers. Probably the child sleeps during
- the journey to London&mdash;probably Mrs. Ilam gives him something to make
- him sleep. The party arrive at Paddington, and are met by a new set of
- servants whom Mrs. Ilam has engaged. She left Torquay with a child; she
- arrived at Paddington with a child. Who, except the old French peasant, is
- to know that there has been a change <i>en route?</i> The new child is
- kept entirely out of Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s presence. He is taught his new name; he is
- taught to forget his past on the banks of the Teign; and he readily
- succeeds in doing so. His new nurse is suitably discreet. During their
- brief stay in London the Ilams stop at a hotel. They do not visit friends,
- on the plea of Mr. Ilam&rsquo;s complaint. Then they leave London for Paris.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The thing was perfect,&rdquo; observed Carpentaria, astounded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was fatally perfect,&rdquo; Jetsam agreed. &ldquo;Even had Mr. Ilam been cured at
- once, the danger would have been but slight, because he had never seen his
- own child clearly. However, Mr. Ilam was not cured at once, for it
- happened that the famous oculist whom they meant to consult died on the
- very day they entered Paris. It was seven years before Mr. Ilam got
- himself cured; but in the end he was cured almost completely. The boy was
- then aged ten years. What possible chance was there of a discovery of the
- fraud? Even had Mr. Ilam ever seen his child clearly, what resemblance is
- there between an infant of three and a boy of ten? None; none whatever.
- Mrs. Ilam had triumphed: she had deposed the authentic heir of Mr. Ilam
- and had put her own son on the throne in his stead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And the other boy?&rdquo; Carpentaria queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam paused, his eyes bent downwards.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you know the Breton peasantry?&rdquo; he demanded suddenly, at length.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not in the least,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, well; that doesn&rsquo;t matter! When you hear the sequel of the story you
- will be able to imagine what a Breton peasant is capable of. He is the
- equal of the Norman peasant, and no French novelist has ever yet dared to
- write down the actual! truth about the Norman peasant. I told you that
- Mrs. Ilam and the old Frenchman had a chat on Exeter platform. She told
- him that she was giving him a new charge, preferring to take the other boy
- herself. It was arranged that the new charge should accompany the Breton
- to France, and live with him as his foster-child. Terms were fixed up, no
- doubt to the entire satisfaction of the peasant. Then Mrs. Ilam ventured
- to play her great card. She informed the Frenchman that his new charge was
- a very delicate plant, frequently ill, and not apparently destined to long
- life. This, by the way, was grossly untrue. &lsquo;Of course, if he were to
- die,&rsquo; she said in effect to the peasant, &lsquo;you would lose the income which
- I shall pay to you for looking after the child, and to compensate you for
- that loss I will promise to give you, if he dies, the sum of five hundred
- pounds.&rsquo; I expect she managed to put a peculiar and sinister emphasis on
- these words. Anyhow, the Frenchman understood. That was just the kind of
- thing that you might rely on a Breton peasant to comprehend without too
- much explanation. Five hundred pounds is five hundred pounds; it is over
- twelve thousand francs, and twelve thousand francs to a Breton peasant is
- worth anything&mdash;it is worth eternal torture.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And so, in due course, Mrs. Ilam received news of her stepson&rsquo;s death?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In due course she received news of her stepson&rsquo;s death,&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;It
- took a considerable time&mdash;six years, in fact&mdash;&lsquo;but it was
- accompanied by legal proof, and when she received it Mrs. Ilam must have
- been as happy as the day is long, especially as her own boy was growing up
- strong and well, and Mr. Ilam had taken quite a fancy to him. So all trace
- of the crime&mdash;would you call it a crime, or only a pleasing
- manifestation of a mother&rsquo;s love?&mdash;all trace of the crime was lost,
- for the French peasant died; the English wife of the French peasant had
- expired a long time before.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And Jetsam paused again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am accepting all that you say as gospel,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Because
- somehow it impresses me vividly as being true.&rdquo; Here he looked at Josephus
- Ilam, who avoided his glance. &ldquo;But how does this matter concern yourself,
- and in what way did you come upon the traces of the crime?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you,&rdquo; Jetsam recommenced. &ldquo;It was like this. The boy was not
- dead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not dead?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. He had run away. He had had a pretty hard time before the death of
- the peasant&rsquo;s wife. Afterwards, his existence was a trifle more exciting
- than he could bear. He was starved and he was beaten. But that was not
- all. On board fishing boats he was forced to accept dangers and risks of
- such a nature that the continuance of his life was nothing less than a
- daily miracle. So he ran away. He was aged nine, and he had a perfect
- knowledge of two languages as his stock-in-trade.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But the legal proof of his death?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing simpler. The foster-father was a great friend of the village
- schoolmaster, and the schoolmaster, as you may know, is always the
- secretary of the mayor in a French village. He it is who makes out all
- certificates, and transacts every bit of the routine business of
- population-recording. The foster-father suggested to the schoolmaster that
- in exchange for a certificate of the boy&rsquo;s death, the schoolmaster should
- receive a note of the Bank of France for a thousand francs. This was more
- than half a year&rsquo;s salary to the schoolmaster, and the result was that the
- foster-father got the certificate. No fear of discovery! None knew of the
- issue of the certificate except these two men. And the lady for whose
- benefit the certificate was issued would be extremely unlikely to visit a
- remote French fishing village.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And what occurred to the boy?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The principal thing that occurred to the boy is that he is now sitting
- here and telling you his story,&rdquo; said Jetsam, calmly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I guessed it,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, with equal calmness, &ldquo;as soon as you
- mentioned that the boy was not dead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Josephus Ilam maintained a stony silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knocked about for nine or ten years,&rdquo; continued Jetsam, &ldquo;both in
- England and France, chiefly fishing. Then I suddenly became respectable. I
- got a place in a house-agency in Cannes, chiefly on the strength of my
- knowledge of French and English. Of course, that only lasted during the
- winter season. But my employer had a similar agency in Ostend during the
- summer. It was in Ostend that I became gay. I joined a theatrical troupe.
- I travelled a great deal. I did everything except make money. And after
- ten years of that I settled down again as a house-agency clerk. I really
- was rather good at that, much better than as a music-hall performer with
- revolvers, for instance. And in various &lsquo;pleasure cities&rsquo; of Europe I
- acted as a clerk for over twenty years. Think of it&mdash;twenty years!
- And me growing older and narrower and more gloomy every year in the
- service of &lsquo;pleasure.&rsquo; I never saved any money to speak of, even though I
- remained single, perhaps because I remained single. And then one day,
- finding myself at St. Malo, I thought I would go and have a look at that
- fishing village which I had fled from over thirty years before. My
- delightful foster-father was, of course, dead; so was the schoolmaster;
- but one or two people remembered me, and among them was an old woman who
- had been a charming young girl when I left. It appeared that my old
- foster-father had fallen deeply in love with her in a senile way, and at
- her parents&rsquo; instigation she had married him for his money. He had
- confided to her, once when he thought he was dying, the secret of the
- substitution on Exeter platform. And now she told me. She had always liked
- me. You should have heard her pronounce &lsquo;Exeter.&rsquo; It was the funniest
- thing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Jetsam laughed hardly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So that was how you got on the track?&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes. I then pursued my inquiries in Torquay, and I found my old nurse.
- She told me that the real child of Mr. Ilam had a large crimson birthmark
- on the calf of his left leg. I had that mark. She also told me that there
- existed a photograph&mdash;one of the old daguerreotypes&mdash;of me as a
- child in the arms of my step-mother, my father standing close by, and that
- the mark on my leg was most clearly visible on this photograph. And that
- was the only real solid piece of information that I obtained, except that
- the photograph used to be kept in an old lacquered box. I had an instinct
- that the photograph had been preserved. And it was preserved&mdash;until
- to-night! I relied on the photograph. I could dimly recollect Torquay and
- Exeter platforms, but of what use would my assertions be without some
- proof, some tangible proof? When I thought of my wasted and spoiled and
- miserable life&mdash;and of what it might have been had I not been hated
- by a woman, I was filled with hatred and with&mdash;with such sorrow as
- you can&rsquo;t understand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A sob escaped from Mr. Jetsam, and Carpentaria got up and took his hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is not too late for justice,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That woman has always hated me,&rdquo; Jetsam murmured. &ldquo;And even to-night her
- hatred still burned so fiercely that she tried to kill me. Even if she
- could speak, would she admit the truth? And she cannot speak.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think I can cause her to communicate with us,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;You
- will see in a moment.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0030" id="link2HCH0030"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXX&mdash;The Words of Mrs. Ilam
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">C</span>arpentaria bent
- over the old woman, as if to search &lsquo;her eyes and find some kindness
- there.
- </p>
- <p>
- And it seemed to him, indeed, that the character of her gaze had somewhat
- changed, though those brilliant orbs, famous in Torquay fifty years ago
- for their splendour, showed no trace of humidity.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria himself was moved. It would have been impossible for anyone,
- least of all an artist of romantic instincts such as he, to listen to
- Jetsam&rsquo;s recital without emotion. And now, when the narrative was
- finished, Jetsam sat silent and preoccupied, the figure of grief and of
- failure. One felt, in observing him, the immense tragedy of his life&mdash;a
- life which would not have been a tragedy, but merely a little slice of the
- commonplace, had he not by chance learned the sinister secret of his
- origin. One understood how the discovery of that secret had completely
- changed his view of existence, how it had filled him with ideas of frantic
- hope, frantic revenge, and frantic regret at the long drab irrecoverable
- years which the past had swallowed up. One penetrated, as it were, into
- his brain, and watched how he was continually contrasting what his career
- actually had been with what it might have been&mdash;with what it would
- have been but for the ruthless action of the woman on the bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then there was the burly, smitten figure of Josephus Ilam, too,
- equally pathetic in its way. For love of this strong, heavy man, who once
- had been a little boy in a sailor suit standing on Exeter platform, the
- woman on the bed had committed a crime which was certainly worse than
- murder. She had made one life and she had marred another. And now she
- herself was stricken, withered, about to appear before the ultimate
- tribunal. It was incontrovertible that, if she had sinned, she had sinned
- magnificently, in the grand manner.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria glanced at the two men, and then back again at the aged
- mother.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I understand, Mrs. Ilam,&rdquo; he began in a voice strangely soft and
- persuasive, &ldquo;that you can indicate &lsquo;yes&rsquo; or &lsquo;no&rsquo; by a slight movement.
- Miss Dartmouth told me the other day. Is this so? I entreat you to answer
- me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With a sudden jerk Josephus Ilam rose from his chair and rushed to the
- bedside.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Answer him, mother.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mother and son exchanged a long gaze, and then Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s eyelids
- blinked. It was the affirmative sign.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; said Carpentaria simply. &ldquo;Now it seems to me, if you are not
- too tired, that we can quite easily carry on a conversation upon this
- basis. It will be slow, but it will be none the less sure. By successively
- choosing letters out of the alphabet you can make up words, and so form
- sentences. You can choose the letters thus: I will run through the
- alphabet, and when I come to the letter you want, you will blink. Do you
- comprehend my scheme?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And are you willing to try it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a considerable pause, but in the end the eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very good,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;Now, quite probably you will want to begin
- with the letter &lsquo;I,&rsquo; eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes blinked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excellent! Your first word is &lsquo;I.&rsquo; Let us go to the next word. A, B, C, D&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At &ldquo;D&rdquo; the eyes blinked again.
- </p>
- <p>
- With infinite patience, Carpentaria continued to help Mrs. Ilam to express
- herself, and though that mouth was incapable of speech and those hands
- would never write again, the woman transmitted her first thought to the
- outer world, and it went thus:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;<i>I do not regret</i>.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was something terrible, something majestic, in that unrepentant
- enunciation. It illustrated the remorseless character of the aged
- creature, whose spirit nothing apparently could conquer. Josephus Ilam
- moved away from the bed and hovered uncertainly between the dressing-table
- and the window. Jetsam got up from his chair and, taking Ilam&rsquo;s place,
- examined the features of the woman who had ruined his life and cheated him
- out of all that was his. And even Jetsam could not forbear an admiring
- exclamation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are tremendous,&rdquo; he murmured. &ldquo;I could almost like you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria waved him aside.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Has Mr. Jetsam told us the truth, dear madam?&rdquo; he interrogated her.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the eyes blinked. It was as though they blinked joyously, defiantly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you agree that restitution should be made, so far as restitution is
- possible?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was no movement of the eyelids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You object to restitution, even now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Still there was no movement of the eyelids. But Josephus Ilam&rsquo;s legs could
- be heard shuffling on the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wish to speak, then? A, B, C, D&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria went on to &ldquo;W&rdquo; before Mrs. Ilam signified that the sentence
- was to commence. The words ran:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why named Jetsam?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The woman&rsquo;s mind was evidently exploring, in a sort of indifferent
- curiosity, the side-issues, the minor scenes, of the terrific drama which
- she had started and of which she now witnessed the climax.
- </p>
- <p>
- She appeared to have no sense at all of her own responsibility.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was a name I gave myself when I first found out who I was,&rdquo; said
- Jetsam bitterly. &ldquo;Something chucked overboard and forgotten, you see.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A slight smile seemed to illuminate the woman&rsquo;s face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you agree that restitution should be made?&rdquo; Carpentaria repeated
- patiently.
- </p>
- <p>
- The eyes of the paralytic made no sign until Carpentaria began again to go
- through the alphabet. Then, letter by letter, the message came:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If my son wishes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother,&rdquo; Ilam murmured, averting his face from the bed, &ldquo;of course I
- wish. I nearly killed him myself the other day. You thought I had been
- dreaming&mdash;till you saw him yourself, and, and&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He stopped; he broke down.
- </p>
- <p>
- And then Mrs. Ilam proceeded, with Carpentaria&rsquo;s help:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My son must tell me about that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; Jetsam put in authoritatively; &ldquo;I will tell you about that. Ilam&mdash;or
- rather I should say Kilmarnock&mdash;is in no condition to make speeches.
- When I first came to this place to begin my struggle for what was mine, I
- really had not got much of a plan in my head. It was so difficult to make
- a start. It may seem to you quite a simple thing&rdquo;&mdash;he turned away
- from Mrs. Ilam and addressed Carpentaria&mdash;&ldquo;to go up to a person and
- say to him, &lsquo;Look here, you are standing in my shoes, and your mother has
- committed an act foully criminal!&rsquo; But in practice it isn&rsquo;t quite as easy
- as it seems. You want a gigantic nerve to make a statement like that as if
- you meant it&mdash;although you do mean it. It sounds rather wild, you
- see. And then I met my supplanter rather before I was ready for him. The
- truth is that he came into that little place where I was hiding in just
- the same way as you came in, Mr. Carpentaria. He caught me like you did&mdash;a
- trespasser; and, of course, I was at a disadvantage. He spoke to me very
- roughly, and then angered me&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How could I know who you were?&rdquo; demanded Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly. You couldn&rsquo;t know. But the effect on me was the same. Put
- yourself in my place, Mr. Kilmarnock. I had been cheated out of my whole
- career. You were in unlawful possession of it; and on the top of that you
- came along, and behaved to me as if I were a dog. Well&rdquo;&mdash;here Jetsam
- addressed his stepmother again&mdash;&ldquo;I told him who I was, and pretty
- quick too, and I could see from his manner that he knew the history of our
- origin, and the substitution on Exeter platform.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knew,&rdquo; Ilam admitted with a certain sadness. &ldquo;My mother had once told
- me&mdash;I came across traces of a mystery, and she told me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you did nothing?&rdquo; queried Jetsam. &ldquo;It was not on your conscience?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must recollect that we had the legal proof of your death. What was
- there to be done? I could not have made restitution to the dead, even had
- my mother permitted.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But when I told you who I was,&rdquo; rejoined Mr. Jetsam, &ldquo;unless I am much
- mistaken, you believed what I said.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did,&rdquo; Ilam agreed. &ldquo;Moreover, you bear a most distinct likeness to a
- portrait of my stepfather, painted when he was about your age.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You believed me, and your answer was to try to kill me?&rdquo; Jetsam sneered.
- </p>
- <p>
- The two men, the son and the stepson, were now opposite to one another, on
- either side of the bed, while Carpentaria, intently listening, stood at
- the foot.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did not try to kill you,&rdquo; answered Ilam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You pretty nearly succeeded,&rdquo; said Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought I had killed you,&rdquo; Ilam said gravely. &ldquo;But I had no intention
- of doing so. You said something very scathing about my mother&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I said nothing that was not justified.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You insulted my mother. I lost my temper. I hated you. We always hate
- those whom we have wronged. I struck you. You fell, and you must have
- knocked your head against the pile of planks lying in the enclosure; you
- never moved. I examined you. I could have sworn you were dead&mdash;I was
- afraid&mdash;I thought of inquests. I knew the whole truth would come out.
- I had not meant to kill. So I took you and buried you temporarily, while I
- considered what I should do afterwards. I went back to the house and told
- my mother. She would not believe me. She thought I had been dreaming. I do
- frequently have bad nightmares. And certain things that occurred
- afterwards made even me suspect that after all I had been dreaming. It was
- not until you came again that I&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And even your mother believed then, eh?&rdquo; said Jetsam. &ldquo;Your mother
- believed too suddenly. She saw me and she believed! And the result was
- paralysis! I ought to have broken it to her more gently. That would have
- been perhaps better for all of us&mdash;perhaps better!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause. And Jetsam added, as if communing with himself:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How she hated me! How she hates me still! even to-night, if some one had
- not interfered in time&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He could not get away from the amazing tenacity of Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s purpose.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wish to speak?&rdquo; said Carpentaria, who had been observing the woman&rsquo;s
- eyes; the eyes were blinking nervously.
- </p>
- <p>
- He began the alphabet again, and her message ran thus:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not hate him; but I love my son. To-night I thought Josephus was in
- danger. That was why&mdash;revolver. I always acted for my son. I love
- him!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- These sentiments, so unmistakably clear in their significance, took some
- time to transmit. Mrs. Ilam appeared to be exhausted. But after a few
- moments she continued:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is Rosie? She helped him. I want to know why.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The men exchanged glances.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did she help you?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked of Jetsam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Better ask her!&rdquo; replied Jetsam curtly.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria did not hesitate an instant. He went to the door, opened it,
- and called Rosie, and his voice resounded through the well of the
- staircase and the empty rooms. And then Rosie came from; downstairs, like
- an apparition. She had been crying.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mrs. Ilam wants you to explain why you have been helping Mr. Jetsam,&rdquo;
- said Carpentaria, as she entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Helping him in what?&rdquo; Rosie parleyed timidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In his plans&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Against me,&rdquo; Ilam added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I only helped him in his plans for justice,&rdquo; said Rosie.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I was sorry for him. Because there is something in his tone&mdash;because&mdash;oh!
- if he has told you all, are you not all sorry for him? When I think of
- what his life has been&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She stopped and burst into tears.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But my hair is grey,&rdquo; murmured Jetsam. &ldquo;How can you possibly be
- interested in me? What does it matter what happens to me? My life is
- over.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No it isn&rsquo;t!&rdquo; Rosie protested. &ldquo;It hasn&rsquo;t yet begun. It is just
- beginning. Mrs. Ilam and Cousin Ilam will be just to you. You will not
- bear them ill-will. The wrong is too old for that. You will forget it. You
- will forget all the past. Your hair may be grey, but I&rsquo;m sure your heart
- isn&rsquo;t. And your voice can influence even the Soudanese. The way that man
- obeyed you! The way he got the better of his brother just to please you!
- It seems strange, but I can understand it, because I have&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again she stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- Jetsam went up to her and took her hand, which she seemed willingly to
- release to him. And he held it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How good you are!&rdquo; he said steadily. &ldquo;I am almost ashamed to have roused
- your sympathy so much.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The other two men watched.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what Pauline will say,&rdquo; Rosie stammered.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly there was the sound of music. The band, which everybody in the
- room had forgotten, had begun to play, apparently of its own accord. And
- the melody it had chosen was, &ldquo;See the Conquering Hero Comes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria rushed to the window. And then, as he drew the curtains, all
- noticed for the first time that the dawn had begun.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you making that noise for?&rdquo; he demanded angrily from the
- balcony. The music ceased abruptly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;re saluting the sun, sir,&rdquo; came the reply. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s morning. We imagined
- that possibly you had lost sight of the fact of our existence.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I had,&rdquo; said Carpentaria. &ldquo;However, you can go!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria,&rdquo; cried another voice&mdash;a woman&rsquo;s, firm and
- imperious. &ldquo;Open the front door immediately and let me in. I insist.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said Carpentaria obediently. &ldquo;Kindly cut the
- rope which you will see tied to the handle. I will tell the Soudanese to
- admit you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he did so.
- </p>
- <p>
- And presently footsteps were heard on the stairs, and both Pauline and
- Juliette came in.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rosie!&rdquo; exclaimed Pauline. The sisters were clasped in each other&rsquo;s arms.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Forgive me, dearest!&rdquo; Rosie entreated; and they kissed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what have you&mdash;&mdash;?&rdquo; Pauline began, naturally mystified to
- the utmost.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, Miss Dartmouth,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;I fear you must wait for
- enlightenment until you can hear the whole story.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But the servants?&rdquo; cried Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I sent them to sleep in the staff-dormitories. I said you wished it,&rdquo;
- answered Rosie, smiling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But why should I wish it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Rosie. &ldquo;When they asked me that, I told them I didn&rsquo;t
- know,&rdquo; she smiled again faintly. &ldquo;But Mr. Jetsam will explain it all to
- you. I&mdash;I tried to help him, and I have succeeded&mdash;I think.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- During this conversation, Juliette, with that direct candour which
- frequently distinguishes women in a crisis, had gone straight to Josephus
- Ilam and seized his hand. She was assuring herself that he was not hurt,
- when Mrs. Ilam once more gave a sign with her eyelids. Carpentaria resumed
- his position as helper.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was because I loved him,&rdquo; Carpentaria spelt out for her, &ldquo;that I tried
- to kill you&mdash;twice.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria fell back. Then he regained his self-command and, pushing his
- fingers through his red-gold hair, he asked monosyllabically, &ldquo;Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And then he interpreted for her the answer to his own question.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You worried Josephus. He wanted to get rid of you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Josephus disengaged his hands from those of Juliette.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother!&rdquo; he moaned sadly, and then added, &ldquo;She is mad!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But through Carpentaria Mrs. Ilam said:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am not mad. But my love has always been too strong.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you know of this, Ilam?&rdquo; Carpentaria asked his partner solemnly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course I did not,&rdquo; was the answer&mdash;&ldquo;not till it was too late.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then, why did you warn me up in the wheel?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I suspected. I suspected my poor mother was beginning to hate
- you, and I feared that&mdash;&mdash; I can&rsquo;t say any more.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria, powerfully moved, walked out of the room, and it was Pauline
- who followed him.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mrs. Ilam&rsquo;s eyes were now shut.
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0031" id="link2HCH0031"> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXI&mdash;Unison
- </h2>
- <p class="pfirst">
- <span class="dropcap" style="font-size: 4.00em">T</span>hat summer was
- astoundingly fine and warm, not to say tropical. But since it remains
- clearly in the memory of all, especially of the London water-companies, as
- a unique caprice on the part of the English climate, there is no need to
- go into details of its beauty. Towards the end of September the weather
- was exceedingly lovely. And of course the City prospered accordingly. It
- had been thought that the record &ldquo;gates&rdquo; during the great fêtes of August
- would make the September returns look meagre and feeble. Such, however,
- was not the case. In the first week of September over a million people
- paid fifty thousand pounds at the turnstiles to enjoy the charms of the
- City. And a water-famine in most other parts of London did not impair
- their pleasure, for Ilam and Carpentaria had sunk their own Artesian
- wells, and they had sunk them deep enough. Consequently, the glorious
- lawns of the Oriental Gardens and the turf of the cricket field kept a
- vivid green through that solitary summer.
- </p>
- <p>
- The consumption of multi-coloured liquids in the cafés dotted about the
- gardens exceeded the most sanguine estimates. It was stated that during
- one of Carpentaria&rsquo;s concerts twelve thousand pints of Pilsen beer (the
- genuine article, imported daily in casks from the Erste Pilsen
- Actien-Brauerei, Pilsen) were consumed within sight of the bandstand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This,&rdquo; said Carpentaria emphatically, &ldquo;is success. No
- composer-conductor,&rdquo; he added, &ldquo;has ever before been able to say that he
- was listened to by an audience that put away Pilsen beer at the rate of a
- hundred pints a minute.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And he was right. Success was written large all over the place. Success
- shone on the faces of the entire staff, and it shone particularly on the
- face of Carpentaria, though he tried to pretend that it was nothing to
- him. It was, naturally, a great deal to him. He was the lion of London,
- and he knew it. All his previous triumphs were nothing in comparison with
- this triumph, which was the triumph of his ideas as well as a personal
- triumph.
- </p>
- <p>
- Fifty amusement-mongers in London were asking themselves why they had not
- thought of building a City of Pleasure&mdash;and they were not getting
- satisfactory replies to the conundrum!
- </p>
- <p>
- One evening, towards the middle of September, after a more than usually
- effective concert, Carpentaria laid down his baton on the plush cushion
- provided for its repose, and bowed and bowed and bowed again, in response
- to the enthusiastic plaudits, but with a somewhat pre-occupied mien.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What&rsquo;s up with the old man?&rdquo; a French-horn player whispered to his mate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dashed if I know!&rdquo; replied the second French-horn-player. &ldquo;Unless he&rsquo;s in
- love.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, he is,&rdquo; said the first. &ldquo;Everybody knows that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They called him the old man, no doubt, because his age was barely forty
- and because he looked younger than any of them.
- </p>
- <p>
- Carpentaria descended from his throne, smiling absently at the applause of
- his band as he made his way through them to the steps leading down from
- the bandstand to the level of the gardens. He had only to move a few paces
- in order to be lost in the surging crowd. But before he could do this, he
- heard a voice:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Carpentaria.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned sharply. It was a woman&rsquo;s voice. It was more&mdash;it was
- Pauline&rsquo;s voice. Had she come to meet him? Impossible! That would have
- been too much happiness. However, he determined to ascertain, and he
- ascertained in his usual direct manner.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you come specially to meet me?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she replied, in a low voice:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was extremely kind of you,&rdquo; he said, trembling with joy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; she protested. &ldquo;I had something to tell you&mdash;and&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- She hesitated, and then stopped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose we take a little stroll,&rdquo; he suggested.
- </p>
- <p>
- And she said, quite naturally:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I should love to.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This woman is simply the divinest creature,&rdquo; he told himself. &ldquo;She is not
- like other women. She would like to go for a stroll with me, and she does
- not pretend the contrary. I am a great man, but I have done nothing,
- absolutely nothing, to deserve her goodness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They crossed the gardens, with difficulty, in the direction of the
- terrace. And around were the light and laughter of the City&mdash;the
- brilliant illuminated cafés and the sombre trees for a background, and
- thousands of pretty toilettes and thousands of men gazing at the pretty
- toilettes, so attractive in the gloom under the starry sky. A burst of
- minor music would come now and then from some little café-orchestra, or
- the sound of the popping of guns from a distant shooting-gallery or the
- roar of a lion, forced unwillingly to go through its performance in the
- menagerie. Then, every woman in the gardens gave a little start or a
- little shriek at the noise of the great cannon which signalled the
- commencement of the fireworks, and the rush to the terrace, where the best
- view was to be obtained, became a stampede.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you mean to go on to the terrace?&rdquo; asked Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, madam,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, teasingly. &ldquo;I mean to go on to the
- foreshore of the river. The tide is low&mdash;we shall be alone&mdash;we
- shall see both the crowd and the fireworks; and we shall be secure from
- interruption.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With one of his pass-keys he unlocked a gate giving access to a tunnel
- leading down to the river. They passed through, and he locked the gate
- again. They arrived at the edge of the stream just as the first cluster of
- rockets was expanding itself in the firmament. The scene was impressive,
- and the roaring cheers of the serried crowd behind and above them did not
- detract from its impressiveness.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So you have something to tell me?&rdquo; he remarked, tapping his foot idly
- against a stone. &ldquo;I also have something to tell you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Really?&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- He examined her face and figure. She was dressed in mourning, for Mrs.
- Ilam had died within two days of the events set down in the previous
- chapter, and Carpentaria thought that black had never suited any woman so
- well as it suited Pauline.... There was something about her face... In
- short... Well, those who have been through what Carpentaria was going
- through will readily understand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And what are you going to tell me?&rdquo; he queried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a message from Cousin Ilam,&rdquo; said Pauline. &ldquo;You haven&rsquo;t seen him
- to-day, have you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No. I&rsquo;ve been very much alone to-day. Juliette&rsquo;s been away all day&mdash;I
- suppose preparing for the wedding&mdash;there&rsquo;s only a few days left now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Pauline, &ldquo;Cousin Ilam told me to tell you they aren&rsquo;t going
- to be married next week.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What!&rdquo; cried Carpentaria, &ldquo;after all? Why not?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because they were married this morning. They&rsquo;re already on their
- honeymoon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And Juliette has played this trick on me?&rdquo; murmured Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In any case, the marriage would have had to be very quiet,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- &ldquo;I fancy Cousin Ilam didn&rsquo;t particularly care for your notion of having a
- section of your band to play at the church. Anyhow, he wanted the affair
- absolutely quiet. You know how nervous and self-conscious he is.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now I come to think of it,&rdquo; Carpentaria said, &ldquo;Juliette did kiss me this
- morning rather fervently, and I wondered why.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wonder no longer,&rdquo; observed Pauline, smiling. &ldquo;It was just a little
- plot.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Extraordinary! Most extraordinary!&rdquo; Carpentaria exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think it&rsquo;s quite so extraordinary as all that!&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know what I mean,&rdquo; Carpentaria replied. &ldquo;I also have a message&mdash;for
- you. It is from our friend Mr. Jetsam Ilam and your sister. Have you seen
- Miss Rosie since this morning?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Pauline; &ldquo;she went with Juliette.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Exactly. She went with Juliette. And she has done what Juliette has done.
- I was asked by Mr. Jetsam Ilam to inform you that instead of marrying your
- sister next week he has married her this week. He is very sorry. He has a
- perfect horror of publicity. In fact they chose the registry office.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What a shame!&rdquo; cried Pauline. &ldquo;What a shame!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; said Carpentaria, &ldquo;you didn&rsquo;t mind them deceiving me! But when it
- comes to deceiving you&mdash;&mdash;! It must have been a united plot on
- the part of those two pairs of people to deceive us two; and, I must say,
- they managed the thing pretty well. Don&rsquo;t you think so?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think they&rsquo;ve been horrid,&rdquo; said Pauline.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And we two are quite alone, for one solid week&mdash;you in your house,
- and I in mine,&rdquo; said Carpentaria.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was a pause, and then he heard a sob.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You aren&rsquo;t really crying, are you?&rdquo; he demanded.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pauline made no answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- In crying she had lost herself. She had given herself away&mdash;she had
- precipitated a crisis which, in any event, could not have been long
- postponed. In a word, he tried to comfort her. You may guess how he did
- it. You may guess whether she objected. You may guess if he succeeded. In
- a quarter of an hour she was telling him that she had always liked him,
- that, formerly, she and Rosie used to worship him&mdash;Rosie even more
- than she&mdash;but that that sort of worship was nothing compared to the
- feelings which she at present entertained&mdash;<i>et seq</i>.
- </p>
- <p>
- And the fireworks and the applause of the vast crowd provided the kind of
- setting that Carlos Carpentaria loved.
- </p>
- <h3>
- THE END
- </h3>
- <div style="height: 6em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The City Of Pleasure, by Arnold Bennett
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CITY OF PLEASURE ***
-
-***** This file should be named 55115-h.htm or 55115-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/1/1/55115/
-
-Produced by David Widger from page images generously
-provided by the Internet Archive
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
-</html>